Tristram Shandy

(1759)

by Laurene Sterne

     Character List
Walter Shandy Father of Tristram. A man who loves hypotheses, theories, and erudition, and hates interruptions. He is an easily disappointed man.
Mrs. Shandy (Elizabeth) Mother of Tristram. A singularly down-to-earth woman whose outstanding traits are her lack of imagination and her inability to ask an interesting question.
Captain Toby Shandy (retired) Uncle of Tristram and brother of Walter. His main interest in life is fortifications and military history, and his character is one of gentleness and amiability.
Corporal Trim (James Butler) Loyal servant and former companion-at-arms of Toby Shandy. An eloquent orator who shares his master's enthusiasm for past battles.
Susannah The Shandy maidservant. A young woman who bustles about, she is the unwitting tool of various small disasters that strike the Shandy household.
Obadiah The manservant. Another bustler, distinguished by frequent maladroitness and poor sense of timing.
The Scullion A fat, simple kitchen servant.
Bobby Shandy The older son of the Shandy family. Although he never appears in the book, his death is discussed in Book 4, Chapter 31
Tristram Shandy
No. 1
The "hero," who is born in Book 3, Chapter 23. Victim of small misfortunes that seem great ones to his father. We see him rarely; all there is to him is the series of accidents, the question of whether his parents should put him into trousers, and the mention of a trip he took to France with his father and his Uncle Toby.
Tristram Shandy
No. 2
The author of The Life and Opinions of Tristram Shandy, Gentleman. Laurence Sterne's chief character, he tells the story of the people listed above, he makes judgments about the events of their lives, and he gives us the step-by-step details of the problems and difficulties involved in writing this sort of book.
Parson Yorick The village parson. Friend and level-headed adviser of the Shandy family, his iconoclastic wit makes many enemies.
Widow Wadman A woman who has cold feet in bed. Disappointed in her first husband, she hopes to find a better one in Captain Toby Shandy.
Bridget Her maidservant. Sometime paramour of Corporal Trim.
Eugenius A man of the world. Friend of Parson Yorick, he tries unsuccessfully to teach him caution and prudence.
Dr. Slop The man-midwife. A very short, very fat obstetrician who attaches great importance to obstetrical instruments.
The Midwife An old woman who assists at the delivery of Tristram.
The Curate (named "Tristram") An officious person who baptizes Tristram.
Aunt Dinah The Shandy family scandal.
Lieutenant Le Fever An unfortunate soldier, sustained in his last moments of life by Mr. Toby Shandy.
Billy Le Fever Son of the above and recipient of the generous bounty of Mr. Toby Shandy.
Kysarcius, Phutatorius, Didius, and Gastripheres Learned men and acquaintances of Parson Yorick.
Jenny A casually mentioned young lady friend of the author Tristram Shandy.




Volume 1

[Frontispiece] [Dedication] [Ch.1] [Ch.2] [Ch.3] [Ch.4] [Ab Ovo]
[The Association of Ideas] [Ch.5] [Tristram's Birthday] [Ch.6]
[Ch.7] [The Midwife] [Hobby-Horses 1] [Ch.8] [Ch.9] [Ch.10]
[Ch.11] [Mr. Yorick] [Yorick's Opinion on Gravity] [Ch.12]
[The Black Page] [Ch.13] [Ch.14] [Ch.15] [The Marriage Settlement]
[Ch.16] [Ch.17] [Ch.18] [March 9, 1759] [Jenny 1] [Jenny 2]
[Ch.19] [Walter's Opinion on Names] [Ch.20] [The "Memoire"]
[Ch.21] [Toby's "--I think," 1] [March 26, 1759] [Aunt Dinah]
[Toby's Wound] [Lillabullero] [Ch.22] [The Praise of Digression]
[Ch.23] [Ch.24] [Hobby-Horses 2] [Ch.25]

Volume 2

[Title-Page] [Ch.1] [Ch.2] [Locke's Theory of Confusion] [Ch.3]
[Toby's Desire of Knowledge] [Ch.4] [Ch.5] [Corporal Trim]
[Toby's Miniature Fortifications 1] [Ch.6] [Toby's "--I think," 2]
[Ch.7] [Ch.8] [The Hypercritic's Clock] [Ch.9] [Dr. Slop]
[Ch.10] [Stevinus 1] [Ch.11] [Writing as Conversation] [Ch.12]
[Stevinus 2] [The Fly] [Ch.13] [Ch.14] [Stevinus 3] [Ch.15]
[Ch.16] [Ch.17] [Trim's Posture] [The Sermon 1] [The Sermon 2]
[Ch.18] [Ch.19] [The Center of the Brain] [The Crushed Intellectual
Web]

Volume 3

[Frontispiece] [Ch.1] [Ch.2] [Ch.3] [Ch.4] [Ch.5] [Ch.6] [Ch.7]
[The Knotted Bag] [Ch.8] [Ch.9] [Ch.10] [Ch.11] [The Curse of
Ernulphus] [Ch.12] [The Cant of Criticism] [Ch.13] [Ch.14] [Ch.15]
[Ch.16] [Dr. Slop's Forceps] [Ch.17] [Ch.18] [Ch.19] [Ch.20]
[The Author's Preface] [Ch.21] [The Hinge: Tristram Is Born]
[Ch.22] [Ch.23] [Dr. Slop's "Bridge"] [The Narrator's Crossroad]
[Ch.24] [Trim and the Draw-Bridge] [Ch.25] [Ch.26] [Ch.27] [The
Crushed Nose] [Ch.28] [Ch.29] [Walter in a Horizontal Position]
[Ch.30] [Ch.31] [The Definition of "Nose"] [Ch.32] [Ch.33]
[Walter's Opinion on Noses] [Ch.34] [Ch.35] [Ch.36] [The Marbled
Page] [Ch.37] [Ch.38] [Hafen Slawkenbergius] [Ch.39] [Ch.40]
[Ch.41] [Ch.42]

Volume 4

[Title-Page] [Slawkenbergius's Tale: The Protasis] [Slawkenbergius's
Tale: The Epitasis] [Slawkenbergius's Tale: The Catastasis] [Slawk-
enbergius's Tale: The Catastrophe] [Ch.1] [Ch.2] [Ch.3] [Ch.4] [Ch.5]
[Ch.6] [Ch.7] [Ch.8] [Trismegistus 1] [Ch.9] [Ch.10] [The Chapter on
Chapters] [Ch.11] [Trismegistus 2] [Ch.12] [Ch.13] [Writing and Living]
[Ch.14] [The Baptism] [Ch.15] [Ch.16] [Ch.17] [Ch.18] [Ch.19]
[Walter's Lamentation] [Ch.20] [Ch.21] [The Story of Francis I]
[Ch.22] [Against the Spleen] [Ch.23] [The Visitation Dinner] [Ch.25]
[On the Omitted Chapter] [Ch.26] [Yorick's Opinion on Sermons] [Ch.27]
[Phutatorius's "Zounds!"] [Ch.28] [Ch.29] [Ch.30] [Ch.31] [Bobby and
the Ox-Moor] [Ch.32] [True Shandeism]

Volume 5

[Title-Page] [Dedication] [Ch.1] [On Plagiarism] [The Fragment on
Whiskers] [Ch.2] [Bobby's Death] [Ch.3] [Walter the Orator] [Ch.4]
[Ch.5] [Elizabeth Behind the Door 1] [Ch.6] [Ch.7] [Trim the Orator]
[Ch.8] [Ch.9] [Ch.10] [Ch.11] [Ch.12] [Elizabeth Behind the Door 2]
[Ch.13] [Ch.14] [Ch.15] [Intermission: The Grave Man in Black] [Ch.16]
[The Tristrapaedia 1] [Ch.17] [The Sash Window] [August 10, 1761]
[Ch.18] [Ch.19] [Ch.20] [Ch.21] [Ch.22] [Ch.23] [Ch.24] [Ch.25]
[Ch.26] [Ch.27] [On Circumcision] [Ch.28] [Ch.29] [Gymnast vs. Tripet]
[Ch.30] [The Tristrapaedia 2] [Ch.31] [Ch.32] [Ch.33] [Radical Heat &
Radical Moisture 1] [Ch.34] [Ch.35] [Ch.36] [Radical Heat & Radical
Moisture 2] [Ch.37] [Ch.38] [Ch.39] [Ch.40] [Ch.41] [Ch.42]
[The Auxiliary Verbs] [Ch.43]

Volume 6

[Title-Page] [Ch.1] [Ch.2] [Ch.3] [Susannah vs. Dr. Slop] [Ch.4] [Ch.5]
[The Right Kind of Tutor] [Ch.6] ["The Story of Le Fever" 1] [Ch.7]
["Le Fever" 2] [Ch.8] ["Le Fever" 3] [Ch.9] [Ch.10] ["Le Fever" 4]
[Ch.11] [Yorick's Funeral Sermon for Le Fever] [Ch.12] [Ch.13] [Ch.14]
[Rumors and Breeches] [Ch.15] [Ch.16] [The Beds of Justice] [Ch.17]
[Ch.18] [Ch.19] [Albertus Rubenius on Ancient Dress] [Ch.20] [Ch.21]
[Toby's Miniature Fortifications 2] [Ch.22] [Ch.23] [Ch.24] [Ch.25]
[Ch.26] [Ch.27] [Ch.28] [Ch.29] [Toby Dressed in a New Character]
[Ch.30] [Ch.31] [The Treaty of Utrecht] [Ch.32] [Toby's Apologetical
Oration] [Ch.33] [Ch.34] [The Demolition of Dunkirk 1] [Ch.35] [Ch.36]
[Ch.37] [The Picture of Mrs. Wadman] [Ch.38] [Ch.39] [Ch.40] [Wriggly
Lines and the Straight Line]

Volume 7

[Title-Page] [Ch.1] [Tristram's Flight from Death] [Ch.2] [Ch.3] [Ch.4]
[Calais] [Ch.5] [Ch.6] [Ch.7] [Ch.8] [The French Post-Chaise] [Ch.9]
[Janatone] [Ch.10] [Ch.11] [Ch.12] [On Dying in an Inn] [Ch.13] [Ch.14]
[Ch.15] [Ch.16] [Ch.17] [Paris] [Ch.18] [Ch.19] [Ch.20] [The Abbess of
Andoüillets] [Ch.21] [Ch.22] [Ch.23] [Ch.24] [Ch.25] [Ch.26] [Ch.27]
[Tristram's Grand Tour] [Ch.28] [Ch.29] [Tristram and Jenny] [Ch.30]
[Ch.31] [Amandus and Amanda] [Ch.32] [The Ass of Lyons] [Ch.33] [The
Commissary] [Ch.34] [Ch.35] [Ch.36] [The Lost "Remarks"] [Ch.37] [Ch.38]
[Ch.39] [Ch.40] [Ch.41] [Ch.42] [Ch.43] [The Dance of the Peasants]

Volume 8

[Title-Page] [Ch.1] [Ch.2] [The Best Way of Beginning a Book] [Ch.3]
[Ch.4] [Ch.5] [Ch.6] [Tristram's Grave Crisis] [Ch.7] [Ch.8] [Ch.9]
[Ch.10] [Ch.11] [Ch.12] [Ch.13] [Ch.14] [Ch.15] [Ch.16] [Mrs. Wadman's
Attack 1] [Ch.17] [Ch.18] [The Demolition of Dunkirk 2] [Ch.19] ["The
King of Bohemia" 1] ["Bohemia" 2] ["Bohemia" 3] ["Bohemia" 4] ["Bohemia"
5] [Trim's Amour] [Ch.20] [Ch.21] [Ch.22] [Ch.23] [Mrs. Wadman's
Attack 2] [Ch.24] [Ch.25] [Ch.26] [Ch.27] [Ch.28] [Ch.29] [Ch.30]
[Ch.31] [Ch.32] [Ch.33] [Ch.34] [Walter's Letter of Advice to Toby]
[Ch.35]

Volume 9

[Title-Page] [Dedication] [Ch.1] [August 12, 1766] [Ch.2] [Toby's
Counterattack] [Ch.3] [Ch.4] [Trim's Curve of Celibacy] [Ch.5] [Tom
and the Jew's Widow] [Ch.6] [Ch.7] [Ch.8] [Elizabeth's "I Dare Say," 1]
[Time Wastes Too Fast] [Ch.9] [Ch.10] [Ch.11] [Elizabeth's "I Dare
Say," 2] [Ch.12] [Ch.13] [Ch.14] [Waiting for Ch.15] [Ch.16] [Knocking
on Wadman's Door] [Ch.17] [The Blank Chapters] [Ch.18] [Ch.19] [Ch.20]
[Ch.21] [The Right Kind of Husband] [Slawkenbergius's Third Decad]
[Ch.22] [Ch.23] [Ch.24] [The Invocation] [Maria] [Ch.25] [The Eighteenth
Chapter] [Chapter the Nineteenth] [Ch.26] [Ch.27] [Ch.28] [Trim and Bridget]
[Ch.29] [Ch.30] [Ch.31] [Mrs. Wadman's Virtues] [Ch.32] [Ch.33]
[Obadiah and the Shandy Bull]


[Frontspiece}





To the Right Honourable Mr. Pitt.

Sir,

Never poor Wight of a Dedicator had less hopes from his
Dedication, than I have from this of mine; for it is writ-
ten in a bye corner of the kingdom, and in a retir'd thatch'd
house, where I live in a constant endeavour to fence against
the infirmities of ill health, and other evils of life, by
mirth; being firmly persuaded that every time a man smiles,
--but much more so, when he laughs, it adds something to
this Fragment of Life.


I humbly beg, Sir, that you will honour this book, by taking
it--(not under your Protection,--it must protect itself, but)
--into the country with you; where, if I am ever told, it has
made you smile; or can conceive it has beguiled you of one
moment's pain--I shall think myself as happy as a minister
of state;--perhaps much happier than any one (one only except-
ed) that I have read or heard of.

        I am, Great Sir,
    (and, what is more to your Honour)
        I am, Good Sir,
        Your Well-wisher,
     and most humble Fellow-subject,
        The Author.
       Laurence Sterne





The Life and Opinions of Tristram Shandy, Gent.


1



Volume 1, Chapter I.



I WISH EITHER MY FATHER OR MY MOTHER, or indeed both of them, as they
were in duty both equally bound to it, had minded what they were about
when they begot me; had they duly consider'd how much depended upon
what they were then doing;--that not only the production of a rational
Being was concerned in it, but that possibly the happy formation and
temperature of his body, perhaps his genius and the very cast of his mind;--
and, for aught they knew to the contrary, even the fortunes of his whole
house might take their turn from the humours 2 and dispositions which
were then uppermost;
--Had they duly weighed and considered all this,
and proceeded accordingly,--I am verily persuaded
I should have made a
quite different figure in the world
, from that in which the reader is likely
to see me.--Believe me, good folks, this is not so inconsiderable a thing as
many of you may think it;--you have all, I dare say, heard of the animal
spirits, as how they are transfused from father to son, &c. &c.--and a
great deal to that purpose:--
Well, you may take my word, that nine parts
in ten of a man's sense or his nonsense, his successes and miscarriages in
this world depend upon their motions and activity, and the different tracks
and trains you put them into, so that when they are once set a-going,
whether right or wrong, 'tis not a half-penny matter,--away they go
cluttering like hey-go mad; and by treading the same steps over and over
again, they presently make a road of it, as plain and as smooth as a gar-
denwalk, which, when they are once used to, the Devil himself sometimes
shall not be able to drive them off it.

Pray my Dear, quoth my mother, have you not forgot to wind up the
clock
?--Good G--! cried my father, making an exclamation, but taking
care to moderate his voice at the same time,--Did ever woman, since the
creation of the world, interrupt a man with such a silly question
? Pray,
what was your father saying?--Nothing.




Volume 1. Chapter II.



--THEN, POSITIVELY, there is nothing in the question that I can see, either
good or bad.--Then, let me tell you,
Sir, it was a very unseasonable ques-
tion at least,--because it scattered and dispersed the animal spirits,
whose business it was to have escorted and gone hand in hand with the
HOMUNCULUS, and conducted him safe to the place destined for his reception.


The HOMUNCULUS, Sir, in however low and ludicrous a light he may appear,
in this age of levity, to the eye of folly or prejudice;--to the eye of
reason in scientific research,
he stands confess'd--a Being guarded and
circumscribed with rights.--The minutest philosophers, who by the bye,
have the most enlarged understandings, (their souls being inversely as
their enquiries) shew us incontestably, that the Homunculus is created by
the same hand,--engender'd in the same course of nature,--endow'd with
the same loco-motive powers and faculties with us:--That he consists as
we do, of skin, hair, fat, flesh, veins, arteries, ligaments, nerves,
cartilages, bones, marrow, brains, glands, genitals, humours, and artic-
ulations
;--is a Being of as much activity,--and in all senses of the
word, as much and as truly our fellow-creature as my Lord Chancellor
of England.--He may be benefitted,--he may be injured,--he may obtain
redress;
in a word, he has all the claims and rights of humanity, which
Tully, Puffendorf,
3 or the best ethick writers allow to arise out of that
state and relation.


Now, dear Sir, what if any accident had befallen him in his way alone!--
or that through terror of it, natural to so young a traveller, my little
Gentleman had got to his journey's end miserably spent;--his muscular
strength and virility worn down to a thread;--his own animal spirits
ruffled beyond description,--and that in this sad disorder'd state of
nerves, he had lain down a prey to sudden starts, or a series of melan-
choly dreams and fancies, for nine long, long months together.--I trem-
ble to think what a foundation had been laid for a thousand weaknesses
both of body and mind, which no skill of the physician or the philosopher
could ever afterwards have set thoroughly to rights.




Volume 1. Chapter III.



To my uncle Mr. Toby Shandy do I stand indebted for the preceding
anecdote,
4 to whom my father, who was an excellent natural philosopher,
and much given to close reasoning upon the smallest matters, had oft, and
heavily complained of the injury;
but once more particularly, as my uncle
Toby well remember'd, upon his
observing a most unaccountable obliquity,
(as he call'd it) in my manner of setting up my top
, and justifying the
principles upon which I had done it,--the old gentleman shook his head,
and in a tone more expressive by half of sorrow than reproach,--he said
his heart all along foreboded, and he saw it verified in this, and from a
thousand other observations he had made upon me, That I should neither
think nor act like any other man's child:--But alas! continued he, shaking
his head a second time, and wiping away a tear which was trickling down
his cheeks, My Tristram's misfortunes began nine months before ever he
came into the world.


--My mother, who was sitting by, look'd up, but she knew no more
than her backside what my father meant,
--but my uncle, Mr. Toby Shandy,
who had been often informed of the affair,--understood him very well.



Volume 1 Chapter IV.



I know there are readers in the world, as well as many other good people
in it, who are no readers at all,--who
find themselves ill at ease, unless
they are let into the whole secret fom first to last, of every thing which
concerns you.

It is in pure compliance with this humour of theirs, and from a backward-
ness in my nature to disappoint any one soul living
, that I have been so
very particular already. As my life and opinions are likely to make some
noise in the world, and, if I conjecture right, will take in all ranks,
professions, and denominations of men whatever,--be no less read than the
Pilgrim's Progress
5 itself--and in the end, prove the very thing which
Montaigne dreaded his Essays should turn out, that is, a book for a parlour-
window;--I find it necessary to consult every one a little in his turn; and
therefore must beg pardon for going on a little farther in the same way:
For which cause, right glad I am, that I have begun the history of myself
in the way I have done; and that I am able to go on, tracing every thing in
it, as Horace says, ab Ovo.
6

Horace, I know, does not recommend this fashion altogether: But that gen-
tleman is speaking only of an epic poem or a tragedy;--(I forget which,)
besides, if it was not so, I should beg Mr. Horace's pardon;--for in writ-
ing what I have set about, I shall confine myself neither to his rules, nor
to any man's rules that ever lived.

To such however as do not choose to go so far back into these things, I
can give no better advice than that they skip over the remaining part of
this chapter; for I declare before-hand, 'tis wrote only for the curious
and inquisitive.
-------------------Shut the door.----------------------------
I was begot in the night betwixt the first Sunday and the first Monday
in the month of March, in the year of our Lord one thousand seven hundred
and eighteen. I am positive I was.--But how I came to be so very particular
in my account of a thing which happened before I was born
, is owing to
another small anecdote known only in our own family, but now made publick
for the better clearing up this point.


My father, you must know, who was originally a Turky merchant,7 but had
left off business for some years, in order to retire to, and die upon, his
paternal estate in the county of ----, was, I believe, one of the most
regular men in every thing he did, whether 'twas matter of business, or
matter of amusement, that ever lived. As a small specimen of this extreme
exactness of his, to which he was in truth a slave, he had made it a rule for
many years of his life,--on the first Sunday-night of every month through-
out the whole year,--as certain as ever the Sunday-night came,--to wind
up a large house-clock, which we had standing on the back-stairs head,
with his own hands:--And being somewhere between fifty and sixty years
of age at the time I have been speaking of,--he had likewise gradually
brought some other little family concernments to the same period, in
order, as he would often say to my uncle Toby, to get them all out of the
way at one time, and be no more plagued and pestered with them the rest
of the month.

It was attended but with one misfortune, which, in a great measure, fell
upon myself, and the effects of which I fear I shall carry with me to my
grave; namely, that from an unhappy association of ideas, which have no
connection in nature, it so fell out at length, that my poor mother could
never hear the said clock wound up,--but the thoughts of some other
things unavoidably popped into her head--& vice versa
:--Which strange
combination of ideas, the sagacious Locke,
8 who certainly understood the
nature of these things better than most men, affirms to have produced
more wry actions than all other sources of prejudice whatsoever.


But this by the bye.

Now it appears by a memorandum in my father's pocket-book, which
now lies upon the table, ‘That on Lady-day,9 which was on the 25th of the
same month in which I date my geniture,--my father set upon his journey to
London, with my eldest brother Bobby, to fix him at Westminster school;'
and, as it appears from the same authority, ‘That he did not get down
to his wife and family till the second week in May following,'--it brings
the thing almost to a certainty. However, what follows in the beginning
of the next chapter, puts it beyond all possibility of a doubt.

--But pray, Sir, What was your father doing all December, January, and
February?--Why, Madam,--he was all that time afflicted with a Sciatica.10



Volume 1 Chapter V.



ON THE FIFTH DAY of November, 1718, which to the aera fixed on, was as
near nine kalendar months as any husband could in reason have expected,
11
--
was I Tristram Shandy, Gentleman, brought forth into this scurvy and
disastrous world of ours.--I wish I had been born in the Moon, or in any
of the planets, (except Jupiter or Saturn, because I never could bear cold
weather) for it could not well have fared worse with me in any of them
(though I will not answer for Venus)
12 than it has in this vile, dirty planet of
ours,--which, o' my conscience, with reverence be it spoken, I take to be
made up of the shreds and clippings of the rest;--
not but the planet is
well enough, provided a man could be born in it to a great title or to a
great estate; or could any how contrive to be called up to public charges,
and employments of dignity or power;--but that is not my case;--and
therefore every man will speak of the fair as his own market has gone in
it;--for which cause I affirm it over again to be one of the vilest worlds
that ever was made;
--for I can truly say, that from the first hour I drew
my breath in it, to this, that I can now scarce draw it at all, for an asthma
13
I got in scating against the wind in Flanders;--I have been the continual
sport of what the world calls Fortune; and though I will not wrong her by
saying, She has ever made me feel the weight of any great or signal evil;--
yet with all the good temper in the world I affirm it of her, that in every
stage of my life, and at every turn and corner where she could get fairly at
me, the ungracious duchess has pelted me with a set of as pitiful misadven-
tures and cross accidents as ever small Hero sustained.




Volume 1 Chapter VI.



IN THE BEGINNING of the last chapter, I informed you exactly when I was
born; but I did not inform you how. No, that particular was reserved
entirely for a chapter by itself;--besides, Sir, as you and I are in a
manner perfect strangers to each other, it would not have been proper to
have let you into too many circumstances relating to myself all at once.
--You must have a little patience.
I have undertaken, you see, to write
not only my life, but my opinions also; hoping and expecting that your
knowledge of my character, and of what kind of a mortal I am, by the one,
would give you a better relish for the other: As you proceed farther with
me, the slight acquaintance, which is now beginning betwixt us, will grow
into familiarity; and that unless one of us is in fault, will terminate in
friendship
.--O diem praeclarum!14--then nothing which has touched me will
be thought trifling in its nature, or tedious in its telling. Therefore,
my dear friend and companion, if you should think me somewhat sparing
of my narrative on my first setting out--bear with me,--and let me go
on, and tell my story my own way:--Or, if I should seem now and then to
trifle upon the road,--or should sometimes put on a fool's cap with a bell
to it, for a moment or two as we pass along,--don't fly off,--but rather
courteously give me credit for a little more wisdom than appears upon my
outside;--and as we jog on, either laugh with me, or at me, or in short do
any thing,--only keep your temper.




Volume 1. Chapter VII.



IN THE SAME VILLAGE where my father and my mother dwelt, dwelt also
a thin, upright, motherly, notable, good old body of a midwife, who with
the help of a little plain good sense, and some years full employment in
her business, in which she had all along trusted little to her own efforts,
and a great deal to those of dame Nature,--had acquired, in her way, no
small degree of reputation in the world:--by which word world, need I in
this place inform your worship, that I would be understood to mean no
more of it, than a small circle described upon the circle of the great
world, of four English miles diameter, or thereabouts, of which the cot-
tage where the good old woman lived is supposed to be the centre?--She
had been left it seems a widow in great distress, with three or four
small children, in her forty-seventh year; and as she was at that time
a person of decent carriage,--grave deportment,--a woman moreover of
few words and withal an object of compassion, whose distress, and sil-
ence under it, called out the louder for a friendly lift:
the wife of
the parson of the parish was touched with pity; and having often lam-
ented an inconvenience to which her husband's flock had for many years
been exposed, inasmuch as there was no such thing as a midwife, of any
kind or degree, to be got at, let the case have been never so urgent,
within less than six or seven long miles riding; which said
seven long
miles in dark nights and dismal roads, the country thereabouts being
nothing but a deep clay
, was almost equal to fourteen; and that in ef-
fect was sometimes next to having no midwife at all; it came into her
head, that it would be doing as seasonable a kindness to the whole par-
ish, as to the poor creature herself, to get her a little instructed in
some of the plain principles of the business, in order to set her up
in it.
As no woman thereabouts was better qualified to execute the plan
she had formed than herself, the gentlewoman very charitably undertook
it; and having great influence over the female part of the parish, she
found no difficulty in effecting it to the utmost of her wishes. In
truth, the parson join'd his interest with his wife's in the whole af-
fair, and
in order to do things as they should be, and give the poor
soul as good a title by law to practise, as his wife had given by in-
stitution,--he cheerfully paid the fees for the ordinary's licence him-
self, amounting in the whole, to the sum of eighteen shillings and four
pence; so that betwixt them both,
the good woman was fully invested in
the real and corporal possession of her office, together with all its
rights, members, and appurtenances whatsoever.
15

These last words, you must know, were not according to the old form in
which such licences, faculties, and powers usually ran, which in like cases
had heretofore been granted to the sisterhood.
But it was according to a
neat Formula of Didius his own devising, who having a particular turn for
taking to pieces, and new framing over again all kind of instruments in
that way, not only hit upon this dainty amendment, but coaxed many of
the old licensed matrons in the neighbourhood, to open their faculties
afresh, in order to have this wham-wham of his inserted.


I own I never could envy Didius in these kinds of fancies of his:--But
every man to his own taste.--
Did not Dr. Kunastrokius,16 that great man,
at his leisure hours, take the greatest delight imaginable in combing of
asses tails, and plucking the dead hairs out with his teeth, though he had
tweezers always in his pocket? Nay, if you come to that, Sir, have not the
wisest of men in all ages, not excepting Solomon himself,--have they not
had their Hobby-Horses;
17--their running horses,--their coins and their
cockle-shells, their drums and their trumpets, their fiddles, their pallets,--
their maggots and their butterflies?--and so long as a man rides his Hobby-
Horse peaceably and quietly along the King's highway, and neither compels
you or me to get up behind him,--pray, Sir, what have either you or I to
do with it?




Volume 1. Chapter VIII.



--DE GUSTIBUS NON EST DISPUTANDUM;18--that is, there is no disputing
against HOBBY-HORSES; and for my part, I seldom do; nor could I with any
sort of grace, had I been an enemy to them at the bottom; for happening,
at certain intervals and changes of the moon, to be both fiddler and painter,
according as the fly stings
:--Be it known to you, that I keep a couple of
pads myself, upon which, in their turns, (nor do I care who knows it) I
frequently ride out and take the air;--though sometimes, to my shame be
it spoken, I take somewhat longer journies than what a wise man would
think altogether right.--But the truth is,--
I am not a wise man;--and
besides am a mortal of so little consequence in the world, it is not much
matter what I do: so I seldom fret or fume at all about it:
Nor does it
much disturb my rest, when I see such great Lords and tall Personages as
hereafter follow;--such, for instance, as my Lord A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H,
I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, and so on, all of a row, mounted upon their several
horses,--
some with large stirrups, getting on in a more grave and sober
pace;--others on the contrary, tucked up to their very chins, with whips
across their mouths, scouring and scampering it away like so many little
party-coloured devils astride a mortgage,
--and as if some of them were
resolved to break their necks.--So much the better--say I to myself;--for

in case the worst should happen, the world will make a shift to do excel-
lently well without them; and for the rest,--why--God speed them--e'en
let them ride on without opposition from me; for were their lordships
unhorsed this very night--'tis ten to one but that many of them would be
worse mounted by one half before tomorrow morning.


Not one of these instances therefore can be said to break in upon my
rest.
--But there is an instance, which I own puts me off my guard, and
that is, when I see one born for great actions, and what is still more
for his honour, whose nature ever inclines him to good ones;--
when I be-
hold such a one, my Lord, like yourself, whose principles and conduct
are as generous and noble as his blood, and whom, for that reason, a
corrupt world cannot spare one moment;--when I see such a one, my Lord,
mounted, though it is but for a minute beyond the time which my love to
my country has prescribed to him, and my zeal for his glory wishes,--
then, my Lord, I cease to be a philosopher, and in the first transport of
an honest impatience, I wish the Hobby-Horse, with all his fraternity,
at the Devil.

My Lord,

"I maintain this to be a dedication, notwithstanding its singu-
larity in the three great essentials of matter, form and place: I beg,
therefore, you will accept it as such, and that you will permit me to
lay it, with the most respectful humility, at your Lordship's feet--
when you are upon them,--which you can be when you please;--and that
is, my Lord, whenever there is occasion for it
, and I will add, to
the best purposes too. I have the honour to be,

My Lord,
Your Lordship's most obedient,
and most devoted,
and most humble servant,
Tristram Shandy.



Volume 1. Chapter IX.



I SOLEMNLY DECLARE to all mankind, that the above dedication was made
for no one Prince, Prelate, Pope, or Potentate,--Duke, Marquis, Earl,
Viscount, or Baron, of this, or any other Realm in Christendom;--
nor
has it yet been hawked about, or offered publicly or privately, directly or
indirectly, to any one person or personage, great or small; but is honestly
a true Virgin-Dedication untried on, upon any soul living.

I labour this point so particularly
, merely to remove any offence or ob-
jection which might arise against it from the manner in which
I propose
to make the most of it;--which is the putting it up fairly to public sale;
which I now do.

--Every author has a way of his own in bringing his points to bear;--
for my own part, as I hate chaffering and higgling for a few guineas in a
dark entry;--I resolved within myself, from the very beginning, to deal
squarely and openly with your Great Folks in this affair, and try whether
I should not come off the better by it.

If therefore there is any one Duke, Marquis, Earl, Viscount, or Baron,
in these his Majesty's dominions, who stands in need of a tight, genteel
dedication, and whom the above will suit, (for by the bye, unless it suits
in some degree, I will not part with it)--it is much at his service for
fifty guineas;
--which I am positive is twenty guineas less than it ought
to be afforded for, by any man of genius.

My Lord, if you examine it over again,
it is far from being a gross piece
of daubing, as some dedications are. The design, your Lordship sees, is
good,--the colouring transparent,--the drawing not amiss;--or to speak
more like a man of science,--and measure my piece in the painter's scale,
divided into 20,--I believe, my Lord, the outlines will turn out as 12,--
the composition as 9,--the colouring as 6,--the expression 13 and a half,--
and the design,--if I may be allowed, my Lord, to understand my own
design, and supposing absolute perfection in designing, to be as 20,--I
think it cannot well fall short of 19.
Besides all this,--there is keeping in
it, and the dark strokes in the Hobby-Horse, (which is a secondary figure,
and a kind of back-ground to the whole) give great force to the principal
lights in your own figure, and make it come off wonderfully;--and besides,
there is an air of originality in the tout ensemble.
19

Be pleased, my good Lord, to order the sum to be paid into the hands of
Mr. Dodsley,
20 for the benefit of the author; and in the next edition care
shall be taken that this chapter be expunged, and your Lordship's titles,
distinctions, arms, and good actions, be placed at the front of the pre-
ceding chapter: All which, from the words, De gustibus non est disputandum,
and whatever else in this book relates to Hobby-Horses, but no more,
shall stand dedicated to your Lordship.--
The rest I dedicate to the Moon,
who, by the bye, of all the Patrons or Matrons I can think of, has most
power to set my book a-going, and make the world run mad after it.


Bright Goddess, If thou art not too busy with Candid21 and Miss Cunegund's
affairs,--take Tristram Shandy's under thy protection also.




Volume 1. Chapter X.



WHATEVER DEGREE of small merit the act of benignity in favour of the
midwife might justly claim
, or in whom that claim truly rested,--at first
sight seems not very material to this history;--certain however it was, that
the gentlewoman, the parson's wife, did run away at that time with the
whole of it:
And yet, for my life, I cannot help thinking but that the
parson himself, though he had not the good fortune to hit upon the design
first,--yet,
as he heartily concurred in it the moment it was laid before
him, and as heartily parted with his money to carry it into execution,
had
a claim to some share of it,--if not to a full half of whatever honour
was due to it.

The world at that time was pleased to determine the matter otherwise.
Lay down the book, and I will allow you half a day to give a probable
guess at the grounds of this procedure.

Be it known then, that, for about five years before the date of the mid-
wife's licence, of which you have had so circumstantial an account,--
the
parson we have to do with had made himself a country-talk by a breach of
all decorum, which he had committed against himself, his station, and his
office;--and that was in never appearing better, or otherwise mounted,
than upon a lean, sorry, jackass of a horse,
value about one pound fifteen
shillings; who, to shorten all description of him, was full brother to
Rosinante, as far as similitude congenial could make him; for
he answered
his description to a hair-breadth in every thing,--except that I do not
remember 'tis any where said, that Rosinante
22 was broken-winded; and
that, moreover, Rosinante, as is the happiness of most Spanish horses,
fat or lean,--was undoubtedly a horse at all points.


I know very well that the Hero's horse was a horse of chaste deportment,

which may have given grounds for the contrary opinion: But it is as cer-
tain at the same time that
Rosinante's continency (as may be demonstrated
from the adventure of the Yanguesian carriers)
proceeded from no bodily
defect or cause whatsoever, but from the temperance and orderly current
of his blood.--And let me tell you, Madam, there is a great deal of very
good chastity in the world, in behalf of which you could not say more for
your life.

Let that be as it may, as my purpose is to do exact justice to every crea-
ture brought upon the stage of this dramatic work,--I could not stifle this
distinction in favour of Don Quixote's horse;--in all other points, the
parson's horse, I say, was just such another, for he was
as lean, and as
lank, and as sorry a jade, as Humility herself could have bestrided.


In the estimation of here and there a man of weak judgment,
it was
greatly in the parson's power to have helped the figure of this horse of
his,--for he was master of a very handsome demi-peaked saddle, quilted
on the seat with green plush, garnished with a double row of silver-headed
studs, and a noble pair of shining brass stirrups, with a housing altogether
suitable, of grey superfine cloth, with an edging of black lace, terminating
in a deep, black, silk fringe, poudre d'or,
23--all which he had purchased in
the pride and prime of his life, together with a grand embossed bridle,
ornamented at all points as it should be.--But not caring to banter his
beast, he had hung all these up behind his study door:
and, in lieu of
them, had seriously befitted him with just such a bridle and such a saddle,
as the figure and value of such a steed might well and truly deserve.

In the several sallies about his parish, and in the neighbouring visits to
the gentry who lived around him,--you will easily comprehend, that
the
parson, so appointed, would both hear and see enough to keep his philoso-
phy from rusting. To speak the truth, he never could enter a village,
but he caught the attention of both old and young.--Labour stood still
as he pass'd--the bucket hung suspended in the middle of the well,--the
spinning-wheel forgot its round,--even chuck-farthing and shuffle-cap
24
themselves stood gaping till he had got out of sight; and as his movement
was not of the quickest, he had generally time enough upon his hands to
make his observations,--to hear the groans of the serious,--and the laugh-
ter of the light-hearted; all which he bore with excellent tranquillity.
--His
character was,--he loved a jest in his heart--and as he saw himself in the
true point of ridicule, he would say he could not be angry with others for
seeing him in a light, in which he so strongly saw himself: So that to his
friends, who knew his foible was not the love of money, and who therefore
made the less scruple in bantering the extravagance of his humour,--instead
of giving the true cause,--
he chose rather to join in the laugh against
himself; and as he never carried one single ounce of flesh upon his own
bones, being altogether as spare a figure as his beast,--he would sometimes
insist upon it, that the horse was as good as the rider deserved;--that
they were, centaur-like,--both of a piece
. At other times, and in other
moods, when his spirits were above the temptation of false wit,--he would
say, he found himself going off fast in a consumption; and, with great
gravity, would pretend, he could not bear the sight of a fat horse, without
a dejection of heart, and a sensible alteration in his pulse; and that he
had made choice of the lean one he rode upon, not only to keep himself in
countenance, but in spirits.


At different times he would give fifty humorous and apposite reasons
for riding a meek-spirited jade of a broken-winded horse, preferably to
one of mettle;--for on such a one he could sit mechanically, and meditate
as delightfully de vanitate mundi et fuga faeculi,
25 as with the advantage of
a death's-head before him;--that, in all other exercitations, he could spend
his time, as he rode slowly along,--to as much account as in his study;--
that he could draw up an argument in his sermon,--or a hole in his breeches,
as steadily on the one as in the other;--that brisk trotting and slow argu-
mentation, like wit and judgment, were two incompatible movements.--But
that upon his steed--he could unite and reconcile every thing,--he could
compose his sermon--he could compose his cough,--and, in case nature gave
a call that way, he could likewise compose himself to sleep.
--In short, the
parson upon such encounters would assign any cause but the true cause,
--and he with-held the true one, only out of a nicety of temper, because
he thought it did honour to him.


But the truth of the story was as follows: In the first years of this gen-
tleman's life,
and about the time when the superb saddle and bridle were
purchased by him, it had been his manner, or vanity, or call it what you
will,--to run into the opposite extreme.--In the language of the county
where he dwelt, he was said to have loved a good horse, and generally had
one of the best in the whole parish standing in his stable always ready
for saddling: and as the nearest midwife, as I told you, did not live
nearer to the village than seven miles, and i
n a vile country,--it so fell
out that the poor gentleman was scarce a whole week together without some
piteous application for his beast;
and as he was not an unkind-hearted man,
and every case was more pressing and more distressful than the last;--as
much as he loved his beast, he had never a heart to refuse him; the upshot
of which was generally this; that his horse was either
clapp'd, or spavin'd,
or greaz'd;--or he was twitter-bon'd, or broken-winded, or something, in
short, or other had befallen him, which would let him carry no flesh
;--so
that he had every nine or ten months a bad horse to get rid of,--and a
good horse to purchase in his stead.


What the loss in such a balance might amount to, communibus annis,26 I
would leave to a special jury of sufferers in the same traffick, to determine;
--but let it be what it would, the honest gentleman bore it for many years
without a murmur, till at length, by repeated ill accidents of the kind,
he found it necessary to take the thing under consideration; and upon
weighing the whole, and summing it up in his mind, he found it not only
disproportioned to his other expences, but
withal so heavy an article
in itself, as to disable him from any other act of generosity in his parish:
Besides this, he considered that with half the sum thus galloped away
, he
could do ten times as much good;--and what still weighed more with him
than all other considerations put together, was this, that
it confined
all his charity into one particular channel, and where, as he fancied, it
was the least wanted, namely, to the child-bearing and child-getting part
of his parish; reserving nothing for the impotent,--nothing for the aged,
--nothing for the many comfortless scenes he was hourly called forth to
visit, where poverty, and sickness and affliction dwelt together.

For these reasons he resolved to discontinue the expence; and there ap-
peared but two possible ways to extricate him clearly out of it;--and these
were, either to make it an irrevocable law never more to lend his steed
upon any application whatever,--or else be content to ride the last poor
devil, such as they had made him, with all his aches and infirmities, to
the very end of the chapter.


As he dreaded his own constancy in the first--he very chearfully betook
himself to the second; and though he could very well have explained it, as
I said, to his honour,--yet, for that very reason,
he had a spirit above it;
choosing rather to bear the contempt of his enemies, and the laughter of
his friends, than undergo the pain of telling a story, which might seem a
panegyrick upon himself.


I have the highest idea of the spiritual and refined sentiments of this
reverend gentleman, from this single stroke in his character, which I think
comes up to any of the honest refinements of the peerless knight of La
Mancha
, whom, by the bye, with all his follies, I love more,
and would
actually have gone farther to have paid a visit to, than the greatest hero
of antiquity.

But this is not the moral of my story: The thing I had in view was to
shew the temper of the world in the whole of this affair
.--For you must
know, that so long as this explanation would have done the parson credit,--
the devil a soul could find it out,--I suppose his enemies would not, and
that his friends could not.--But no sooner did he bestir himself in behalf
of the midwife, and pay the expences of the ordinary's licence to set her
up,--but the whole secret came out; every horse he had lost, and two
horses more than ever he had lost, with all the circumstances of their
destruction, were known and distinctly remembered.--
The story ran like
wild-fire.--'The parson had a returning fit of pride which had just seized
him; and he was going to be well mounted once again in his life; and if it
was so, 'twas plain as the sun at noon-day, he would pocket the expence of
the licence ten times told, the very first year:
--So that every body was
left to judge what were his views in this act of charity.'

What were his views in this, and in every other action of his life,--or
rather
what were the opinions which floated in the brains of other people
concerning it, was a thought which too much floated in his own, and too
often broke in upon his rest, when he should have been sound asleep.


About ten years ago this gentleman had the good fortune to be made
entirely easy upon that score,--it being just so long since he left his
parish,--and the whole world at the same time behind him,--and stands
accountable to a Judge of whom he will have no cause to complain.

But there is a fatality attends the actions of some men: Order them as
they will, they pass thro' a certain medium, which so twists and refracts
them from their true directions--that, with all the titles to praise which
a rectitude of heart can give, the doers of them are nevertheless forced to
live and die without it.


Of the truth of which, this gentleman was a painful example.--But to know
by what means this came to pass,--and to make that knowledge of use to you,
I insist upon it that you read the two following chapters, which contain
such a sketch of his life and conversation, as will carry its moral along
with it.--When this is done, if nothing stops us in our way, we will go on
with the midwife.



Volume 1. Chapter XI.



YORICK WAS THIS PARSON'S NAME,27 and, what is very remarkable in it,
(as appears from a most ancient account of the family, wrote upon strong
vellum, and now in perfect preservation)
it had been exactly so spelt for
near,--I was within an ace of saying nine hundred years;--but I would
not shake my credit in telling an improbable truth, however indisputable
in itself,--and therefore I shall content myself with only saying--It had
been exactly so spelt, without the least variation or transposition of a
single letter, for I do not know how long; which is more than I would ven-
ture to say of one half of the best surnames in the kingdom; which, in a
course of years, have generally undergone as many chops and changes as
their owners. --Has this been owing to the pride, or to the shame of the
respective proprietors?--In honest truth, I think sometimes to the one,
and sometimes to the other, just as the temptation has wrought. But a
villainous affair it is, and will one day so blend and confound us all
together, that no one shall be able to stand up and swear, ‘That his
own great grandfather was the man who did either this or that.'


This evil had been sufficiently fenced against by the prudent care of the
Yorick's family, and their religious preservation of these records I quote,
which do farther inform us, That the family was originally of Danish
extraction, and had been transplanted into England
as early as in the reign
of Horwendillus, king of Denmark, in whose court, it seems, an ancestor
of this Mr. Yorick's, and from whom he was lineally descended, held a
considerable post to the day of his death. Of what nature this considerable
post was, this record saith not;--it only adds, That, for near two centur-
ies, it had been totally abolished, as altogether unnecessary, not only in
that court, but in every other court of the Christian world.

It has often come into my head, that this post could be no other than
that of the king's chief Jester;--and that Hamlet's Yorick, in our Shake-
speare
, many of whose plays, you know, are founded upon authenticated
facts, was certainly the very man.


I have not the time to look into Saxo-Grammaticus's Danish history, to
know the certainty of this;--but if you have leisure, and can easily get
at the book, you may do it full as well yourself.

I had just time, in my travels through Denmark with Mr. Noddy's eldest
son, whom, in the year 1741, I accompanied as governor, riding along
with him at a prodigious rate thro' most parts of Europe, and of which
original journey performed by us two, a most delectable narrative will be
given in the progress of this work. I had just time, I say, and that was
all, to prove the truth of an observation made by a long sojourner in that
country;--namely,
‘That nature was neither very lavish, nor was she very
stingy in her gifts of genius and capacity to its inhabitants;--but, like a
discreet parent, was moderately kind to them all; observing such an equal
tenor in the distribution of her favours, as to bring them, in those points,
pretty near to a level with each other; so that you will meet with few
instances in that kingdom of refined parts; but a great deal of good plain
houshold understanding amongst all ranks of people, of which every body
has a share;'
which is, I think, very right.

With us, you see, the case is quite different:--we are all ups and downs
in this matter;--you are a great genius;--or 'tis fifty to one, Sir, you are
a great dunce and a blockhead;--not that there is a total want of intermed-
iate steps,--no,--we are not so irregular as that comes to;--but the two
extremes are more common, and in a greater degree in this unsettled island,
where nature, in her gifts and dispositions of this kind, is most whimsical
and capricious; fortune herself not being more so in the bequest of her
goods and chattels than she.

This is all that ever staggered my faith in regard to Yorick's extraction,
who, by what I can remember of him, and by all the accounts I could ever
get of him,
seemed not to have had one single drop of Danish blood in his
whole crasis; in nine hundred years, it might possibly have all run out:--
I will not philosophize one moment with you about it; for happen how it
would, the fact was this:--That instead of that cold phlegm and exact
regularity of sense and humours, you would have looked for, in one so
extracted;--he was, on the contrary, as mercurial and sublimated a comp-
osition,--as heteroclite a creature in all his declensions;--with as much
life and whim, and gaite de coeur
28 about him, as the kindliest climate
could have engendered and put together. With all this sail, poor Yorick
carried not one ounce of ballast; he was utterly unpractised in the world;
and at the age of twenty-six, knew just about as well how to steer his
course in it, as a romping, unsuspicious girl of thirteen: So that upon his
first setting out, the brisk gale of his spirits, as you will imagine, ran
him foul ten times in a day of somebody's tackling; and as the grave and
more slow-paced were oftenest in his way,--you may likewise imagine, 'twas
with such he had generally the ill luck to get the most entangled.
For
aught I know there might be some mixture of unlucky wit at the bottom
of such Fracas:--For, to speak the truth, Y
orick had an invincible dislike
and opposition in his nature to gravity
;--not to gravity as such;--for
where gravity was wanted, he would be the most grave or serious of mortal
men for days and weeks together;--but
he was an enemy to the affectation
of it, and declared open war against it, only as it appeared a cloak for
ignorance, or for folly: and then, whenever it fell in his way, however
sheltered and protected
, he seldom gave it much quarter.

Sometimes, in his wild way of talking, he would say, that Gravity was an
errant scoundrel, and he would add,--of the most dangerous kind too,--
because a sly one; and that he verily believed,
more honest, well-meaning
people were bubbled out of their goods and money by it in one twelvemonth,
than by pocket-picking and shop-lifting in seven. In the naked temper which
a merry heart discovered, he would say there was no danger,--but to itself:
--whereas the very essence of gravity was design, and consequently deceit;
--'twas a taught trick to gain credit of the world for more sense and know-
ledge than a man was worth; and that, with all its pretensions,--it was no
better, but often worse, than what a French wit had long ago defined it,
--viz. ‘A mysterious carriage of the body to cover the defects of the
mind
;'
29--which definition of gravity, Yorick, with great imprudence, would
say, deserved to be wrote in letters of gold.


But, in plain truth, he was a man unhackneyed and unpractised in the
world, and was altogether as indiscreet and foolish on every other subject
of discourse where policy is wont to impress restraint.
Yorick had no im-
pression but one, and that was what arose from the nature of the deed
spoken of; which impression he would usually translate into plain English
without any periphrasis;--and too oft without much distinction of either
person, time, or place;--so that when mention was made of a pitiful or an
ungenerous proceeding--he never gave himself a moment's time to reflect
who was the hero of the piece
,--what his station,--or how far he had
power to hurt him hereafter;--but if it was a dirty action,--without more
ado,--The man was a dirty fellow,--and so on.--
And as his comments had
usually the ill fate to be terminated either in a bon mot,
30 or to be en-
livened throughout with some drollery or humour of expression, it gave
wings to Yorick's indiscretion.
In a word, tho' he never sought, yet, at
the same time, as he seldom shunned occasions of saying what came up-
permost, and without much ceremony;--
he had but too many temptations
in life, of scattering his wit and his humour,--his gibes and his jests about
him
.--They were not lost for want of gathering.

What were the consequences, and what was Yorick's catastrophe thereupon,
you will read in the next chapter.



Volume 1, Chapter XII



THE MORTGAGER AND MORTGAGEE differ the one from the other, not more
in length of purse, than the Jester and Jestee do, in that of memory. But
in this the comparison between them runs, as the scholiasts call it, u-
pon allfour; which, by the bye, is upon one or two legs more than some
of the best of Homer's can pretend to;--namely, That the one raises a
sum, and the other a laugh at your expence, and thinks no more about
it. Interest, however, still runs on in both cases;
--the periodical or
accidental payments of it, just serving to keep the memory of the af-
fair alive; till, at length, in some evil hour, pop comes the creditor
upon each, and by demanding principal upon the spot, together with full
interest to the very day, makes them both feel the full extent of their
obligations.

As the reader (for I hate your ifs) has a thorough knowledge of human
nature, I need not say more to satisfy him, that
my Hero could not go on
at this rate without some slight experience of these incidental mementos.

To speak the truth, he had wantonly involved himself in a multitude of
small book-debts of this stamp, which, notwithstanding Eugenius's
31 fre-
quent advice, he too much disregarded;
thinking, that as not one of them
was contracted thro' any malignancy;--but, on the contrary, from an hon-
esty of mind, and a mere jocundity of humour, they would all of them be
cross'd out in course.


Eugenius would never admit this; and would often tell him, that one
day or other he would certainly be reckoned with; and he would often
add, in an accent of sorrowful apprehension,--to the uttermost mite. To
which
Yorick, with his usual carelessness of heart, would as often answer
with a pshaw!--and if the subject was started in the fields,--with a hop,
skip, and a jump at the end of it; but if close pent up in the social
chimney-corner, where the culprit was barricado'd in, with a table and
a couple of arm-chairs, and could not so readily fly off in a tangent,
--Eugenius would then go on with his lecture upon discretion in words
to this purpose, though somewhat better put together.

Trust me, dear Yorick, this unwary pleasantry of thine will sooner or
later bring thee into scrapes and difficulties, which no after-wit can
extricate thee out of.--In these sallies, too oft, I see, it happens,
that a person laughed at, considers himself in the light of a person
injured, with all the rights of such a situation belonging to him; and
when thou viewest him in that light too, and reckons up his friends,
his family, his kindred and allies,--and musters up with them the many
recruits which will list under him from a sense of common danger;--'tis
no extravagant arithmetic to say, that for every ten jokes,--thou hast
got an hundred enemies; and till thou hast gone on, and raised a swarm
of wasps about thine ears, and art half stung to death by them, thou
wilt never be convinced it is so.


I cannot suspect it in the man whom I esteem, that there is the least
spur from spleen or malevolence of intent in these sallies--I believe
and know them to be truly honest and sportive:--But consider, my dear
lad, that fools cannot distinguish this,--and that knaves will not:

and thou knowest not what it is, either to provoke the one, or to make
merry with the other:--whenever they associate for mutual defence,
depend upon it, they will carry on the war in such a manner against
thee, my dear friend, as to make thee heartily sick of it, and of thy
life too.

REVENGE from some baneful corner shall level a tale of dishonour at
thee, which no innocence of heart or integrity of conduct shall set
right.--The fortunes of thy house shall totter,--thy character, which
led the way to them, shall bleed on every side of it,--thy faith ques-
tioned,--thy works belied,--thy wit forgotten,--thy learning trampled
on. To wind up the last scene of thy tragedy, Cruelty and Cowardice,
twin ruffians, hired and set on by Malice in the dark, shall strike
together at all thy infirmities and mistakes:--The best of us, my dear
lad, lie open there,--and trust me,--trust me,
Yorick, when to gratify
a private appetite, it is once resolved upon, that an innocent and an
helpless creature shall be sacrificed, 'tis an easy matter to pick up
sticks enough from any thicket where it has strayed, to make a fire to
offer it up with.


Yorick scarce ever heard this sad vaticination of his destiny read over to
him, but with a tear stealing from his eye, and a promissory look attending
it, that he was resolved, for the time to come, to ride his tit
32 with more
sobriety.--But, alas, too late!--a grand confederacy with...and...at the
head of it, was formed before the first prediction of it.--The whole plan of
the attack, just as Eugenius had foreboded, was put in execution all at once,--
with so little mercy on the side of the allies,--and so little suspicion in
Yorick, of what was carrying on against him,--that when he thought, good
easy man! full surely preferment was o'ripening,
33--they had smote his root,
and then he fell, as many a worthy man had fallen before him. Yorick, how-
ever, fought it out with all imaginable gallantry for some time; till, o-
verpowered by numbers, and worn out at length by the calamities of the
war,--but more so, by the ungenerous manner in which it was carried on,--
he threw down the sword; and though he kept up his spirits in appearance
to the last, he died, nevertheless, as was generally thought, quite bro-
ken-hearted.

What inclined Eugenius to the same opinion was as follows:

A few hours before Yorick breathed his last, Eugenius stept in with an
intent to take his last sight and last farewell of him.
Upon his drawing
Yorick's curtain, and asking how he felt himself, Yorick looking up in his
face took hold of his hand,--and after thanking him for the many tokens
of his friendship to him, for which, he said, if it was their fate to meet
hereafter,--he would thank him again and again,--
he told him, he was
within a few hours of giving his enemies the slip for ever
.--I hope not,
answered Eugenius, with tears trickling down his cheeks, and with the
tenderest tone that ever man spoke.--I hope not, Yorick, said he.--Yorick
replied, with a look up, and a gentle squeeze of Eugenius's hand, and that
was all,--but it cut Eugenius to his heart.--Come,--come, Yorick, quoth
Eugenius, wiping his eyes, and summoning up the man within him,--my
dear lad, be comforted,--let not all thy spirits and fortitude forsake thee
at this crisis when thou most wants them;--who knows what resources
are in store, and what the power of God may yet do for thee!--Yorick laid
his hand upon his heart, and gently shook his head;--For my part, contin-
ued Eugenius, crying bitterly as he uttered the words,--I declare I know
not, Yorick, how to part with thee, and would gladly flatter my hopes,
added Eugenius, chearing up his voice, that there is still enough left of
thee to make a bishop, and that I may live to see it.
--I beseech thee,
Eugenius, quoth Yorick, taking off his night-cap as well as he could with
his left hand,--his right being still grasped close in that of Eugenius,--
I beseech thee to take a view of my head.--I see nothing that ails it,
replied Eugenius. Then,
alas! my friend, said Yorick, let me tell you,
that 'tis so bruised and mis-shapened with the blows which...and..., and
some others have so unhandsomely given me in the dark, that I might say with
Sancho Panca,
34 that should I recover, and ‘Mitres thereupon be suffered to
rain down from heaven as thick as hail, not one of them would fit it.'--
Yorick's last breath was hanging upon his trembling lips
ready to depart as
he uttered this:--yet still it was uttered with something of a Cervantick
tone;--and as he spoke it,
Eugenius could perceive a stream of lambent
fire lighted up for a moment in his eyes;--faint picture of those flashes of
his spirit
, which (as Shakespeare said of his ancestor) were wont to set the
table in a roar!


Eugenius was convinced from this, that the heart of his friend was broke:
he squeezed his hand,--and then walked softly out of the room, weeping
as he walked.
Yorick followed Eugenius with his eyes to the door,--he
then closed them, and never opened them more.

He lies buried in the corner of his church-yard, in the parish of...,
under a plain marble slab, which his friend Eugenius, by leave of his ex-
ecutors, laid upon his grave, with no more than these three words of in-
scription, serving both for his epitaph and elegy.
35

Alas, poor Yorick!

Ten times a day has Yorick's ghost the consolation to hear his monumental
inscription read over with such a variety of plaintive tones, as denote a
general pity and esteem for him
;--a foot-way crossing the churchyard close
by the side of his grave,--not a passenger goes by without stopping to cast
a look upon it,--and sighing as he walks on,


Alas, poor Yorick!



Volume 1, Chapter XIII.



IT IS SO LONG since the reader of this rhapsodical work has been parted
from the midwife, that it is high time to mention her again to him, merely
to put him in mind that there is such a body still in the world
, and whom,
upon the best judgment I can form upon my own plan at present, I am
going to introduce to him for good and all: But as fresh matter may be
started, and much unexpected business fall out betwixt the reader and
myself, which may require immediate dispatch;--'twas right to take care
that the poor woman should not be lost in the mean time;--because when
she is wanted, we can no way do without her.

I think I told you that this good woman was a person of no small note
and consequence throughout our whole village and township;--that
her
fame had spread itself to the very out-edge and circumference of that
circle of importance, of which kind every soul living, whether he has a
shirt to his back or no,--has one surrounding him;--which said circle, by
the way, whenever 'tis said that such a one is of great weight and impor-
tance in the world,--I desire may be enlarged or contracted in your wor-
ship's fancy, in a compound ratio of the station, profession, knowledge,
abilities, height and depth (measuring both ways) of the personage
brought before you.


In the present case, if I remember, I fixed it about four or five miles,
which not only comprehended the whole parish, but
extended itself to
two or three of the adjacent hamlets in the skirts of the next parish
; which
made a considerable thing of it. I must add, That she was, moreover, very
well looked on at one large grange-house, and some other odd houses and
farms within
two or three miles, as I said, from the smoke of her own
chimney:--But I must here, once for all, inform you, that all this will be
more exactly delineated and explain'd in a map, now in the hands of the
engraver, which, with many other pieces and developements of this work,
will be added to the end of the twentieth volume,--not to swell the work,--
I detest the thought of such a thing;--but by way of commentary, scholium,
illustration, and key to such passages, incidents, or inuendos as shall be
thought to be either of private interpretation, or of dark or doubtful mean-
ing, after my life and my opinions shall have been read over (now don't
forget the meaning of the word) by all the world;
--which, betwixt you
and me, and in spite of all the gentlemen-reviewers in Great Britain, and
of all that their worships shall undertake to write or say to the contrary,--
I am determined shall be the case.--I need not tell your worship, that all
this is spoke in confidence.




Volume 1, Chapter XIV.



UPON LOOKING into my mother's marriage settlement, in order to satisfy
myself and reader in a point necessary to be cleared up, before we could
proceed any farther in this history;--I had the good fortune to pop upon
the very thing I wanted before I had read a day and a half straight for-
wards,--it might have taken me up a month;--which shews plainly, that
when a man sits down to write a history,--tho' it be but the history of
Jack Hickathrift
36 or Tom Thumb, he knows no more than his heels what
lets and confounded hindrances he is to meet with in his way,--or what a
dance he may be led, by one excursion or another, before all is over.
Could
a historiographer drive on his history, as a muleteer drives on his mule,--
straight forward;--for instance, from Rome all the way to Loretto,
37 without
ever once turning his head aside, either to the right hand or to the
left,--he might venture to foretell you to an hour when he should get to
his journey's end;--but the thing is, morally speaking, impossible: For, if
he is a man of the least spirit, he will have fifty deviations from a straight
line to make with this or that party as he goes along, which he can no ways
avoid. He will have views and prospects to himself perpetually soliciting
his eye, which he can no more help standing still to look at than he can
fly; he will moreover have various

Accounts to reconcile:
Anecdotes to pick up:
Inscriptions to make out:
Stories to weave in:
Traditions to sift:
Personages to call upon:
Panegyricks
38 to paste up at this door;

Pasquinades at that:--All which both the man and his mule are quite exempt
from. To sum up all; there are archives at every stage to be look'd into, and
rolls, records, documents, and endless genealogies, which justice ever and
anon calls him back to stay the reading of:--In short there is no end of it;
--for my own part, I declare I have been at it these six weeks, making all
the speed I possibly could,--and am not yet born:
--I have just been able,
and that's all, to tell you when it happen'd, but not how;--so that you see
the thing is yet far from being accomplished.

These unforeseen stoppages, which I own I had no conception of when
I first set out;--but which, I am convinced now, will rather increase than
diminish as I advance,--have struck out a hint which I am resolved to
follow;--and that is,--not to be in a hurry;--but to go on leisurely, writ-
ing and publishing two volumes of my life every year;--which, if I am suf-
fered to go on quietly, and can make a tolerable bargain with my booksell-
er, I shall continue to do as long as I live.




Volume 1, Chapter XV.



THE ARTICLE in my mother's marriage-settlement, which I told the reader
I was at the pains to search for, and which, now that I have found it, I
think proper to lay before him,--is so much more fully express'd in the
deed itself, than ever I can pretend to do it, that it would be barbarity
to take it out of the lawyer's hand:--It is as follows.39

"And this Indenture further witnesseth, That the said Walter Shandy, mer-
chant, in consideration of
the said intended marriage to be had, and, by
God's blessing, to be well and truly solemnized and consummated between
the said Walter Shandy and Elizabeth Mollineux aforesaid, and divers other
good and valuable causes and considerations him thereunto specially moving,
--doth grant, covenant, condescend, consent, conclude, bargain, and fully
agree to
and with John Dixon, and James Turner, Esqrs. the abovenamed
Trustees, &c. &c.--to wit,--That in case it should hereafter so fall out,
chance, happen, or otherwise come to pass,--That the said Walter Shandy,
merchant, shall have left off business before the time or times, that
the said Elizabeth Mollineux shall, according to the course of nature, or
otherwise, have left off bearing and bringing forth children;--and that, in
consequence of the said Walter Shandy having so left off business, he shall
i
n despight, and against the free-will, consent, and good-liking of the said
Elizabeth Mollineux
,--make a departure from the city of London, in order
to retire to, and dwell upon, his estate at Shandy Hall, in the county of--,
or at any other country-seat, castle, hall, mansion-house, messuage or
graingehouse, now purchased, or hereafter to be purchased, or upon any part
or parcel thereof:--That then, and as often as the said Elizabeth Mollineux
shall happen to be enceint with child or children severally and lawfully
begot, or to be begotten, upon the body of the said Elizabeth Mollineux
,
during her said coverture,--he the said Walter Shandy shall, at his own
proper cost and charges, and out of his own proper monies, upon good and
reasonable notice, which is hereby agreed to be within six weeks of her the
said Elizabeth Mollineux's full reckoning, or time of supposed and computed
delivery,--pay, or cause to be paid, the sum of one hundred and twenty
pounds of good and lawful money
, to John Dixon, and James Turner, Esqrs.
or assigns,--upon Trust and confidence, and for and unto the use and uses,
intent, end, and purpose following:--That is to say,--That the said sum
of one hundred and twenty pounds shall be paid into the hands of the
said Elizabeth Mollineux, or to be otherwise applied by them the said
Trustees, for the well and truly hiring of one coach, with able and suffi-
cient horses, to carry and convey the body of the said Elizabeth Mollineux,
and the child or children which she shall be then and there enceint and preg-
nant with,--unto the city of London; and for the further paying and defraying
of all other incidental costs, charges, and expences whatsoever,--in and about,
and for, and relating to, her said intended delivery and lying-in, in the said
city or suburbs thereof. And that the said Elizabeth Mollineux shall and
may, from time to time, and at all such time and times as are here covenanted
and agreed upon,--
peaceably and quietly hire the said coach and horses,
and have free ingress, egress, and regress throughout her journey, in and
from the said coach, according to the tenor, true intent, and meaning of
these presents, without any let, suit, trouble, disturbance, molestation,
discharge, hinderance, forfeiture, eviction, vexation, interruption, or
incumbrance whatsoever.
--And that it shall moreover be lawful to and for the
said Elizabeth Mollineux, from time to time, and as oft or often as she shall
well and truly be advanced in her said pregnancy, to the time heretofore
stipulated and agreed upon,--to live and reside in such place or places, and
in such family or families, and with such relations, friends, and other per-
sons within the said city of London, as she at her own will and pleasure,
notwithstanding her present coverture, and as if she was a femme sole
40 and
unmarried,--shall think fit.
--And this Indenture further witnesseth, That
for the more effectually carrying of the said covenant into execution, the
said Walter Shandy, merchant, doth hereby grant, bargain, sell, release, and
confirm unto the said John Dixon, and James Turner, Esqrs. their heirs, ex-
ecutors, and assigns, in their actual possession now being, by virtue of an
indenture of bargain and sale for a year to them the said John Dixon, and
James Turner, Esqrs. by him the said Walter Shandy, merchant, thereof made;
which said bargain and sale for a year, bears date the day next before the date
of these presents, and by force and virtue of the statute for transferring of
uses into possession,--All that the manor and lordship of Shandy, in the
county of...,
with all the rights, members, and appurtenances thereof; and
all and every the messuages, houses, buildings, barns, stables, orchards,
gardens, backsides, tofts, crofts, garths, cottages, lands, meadows, feedings,
pastures, marshes, commons, woods, underwoods, drains, fisheries, waters,
and water-courses;--together with all rents, reversions, services, annuities,
fee-farms, knights fees, views of frankpledge, escheats, reliefs, mines,
quarries, goods and chattels of felons and fugitives, felons of themselves,
and put in exigent, deodands, free warrens, and all other royalties and seign-
iories, rights and jurisdictions, privileges and hereditaments
whatsoever.--
And also the advowson, donation, presentation, and free disposition of the
rectory or parsonage of Shandy aforesaid, and all and every the tenths,
tythes, glebelands.'
--In three words,--"My mother was to lay in (if she
chose it) in London.'

But in order to put a stop to the practice of any unfair play on the part
of my mother, which a marriage-article of this nature too manifestly opened
a door to, and which indeed had never been thought of at all, but for my
uncle Toby Shandy;--a clause was added in security of my father which
was this:--"That in case my mother hereafter should, at any time, put my
father to the trouble and expence of a London journey, upon false cries
and tokens;--that for every such instance, she should forfeit all the right
and title which the covenant gave her to the next turn;--but to no more,--
and so on, toties quoties,
41 in as effectual a manner, as if such a covenant
betwixt them had not been made.'--This, by the way, was no more than
what was reasonable;--and yet, as reasonable as it was, I have ever thought
it hard that the whole weight of the article should have fallen entirely,
as it did, upon myself.

But I was begot and born to misfortunes;--for my poor mother, whether
it was wind or water--or a compound of both,--or neither;--or whether
it was simply the mere swell of imagination and fancy in her;--or how far
a strong wish and desire to have it so, might mislead her judgment;--in
short, whether she was deceived or deceiving in this matter
, it no way
becomes me to decide. The fact was this, That in the latter end of Septem-
ber 1717, which was the year before I was born, my mother having carried
my father up to town much against the grain,--
he peremptorily insisted
upon the clause;--so that I was doom'd, by marriage-articles, to have my
nose squeez'd as flat to my face, as if the destinies had actually spun me
without one.


How this event came about,--and what a train of vexatious disappointments,
in one stage or other of my life, have pursued me from the mere loss, or
rather compression, of this one single member,
--shall be laid before the
reader all in due time.



Volume 1, Chapter XVI



MY FATHER, as any body may naturally imagine, came down with my mother
into the country, in but a pettish kind of a humour. The first twenty or
five-and-twenty miles he did nothing in the world but fret and teaze him-
self, and indeed my mother too, about the cursed expence
, which he said
might every shilling of it have been saved;--then
what vexed him more
than every thing else was, the provoking time of the year,
--which, as I
told you, was towards the end of
September, when his wall-fruit and green
gages especially, in which he was very curious, were just ready for pull-
ing:--'Had he been whistled up to London, upon a Tom Fool's errand, in
any other month of the whole year, he should not have said three words
about it.'

For the next two whole stages,
42 no subject would go down, but the heavy
blow he had sustain'd from the loss of a son
, whom it seems he had fully
reckon'd upon in his mind, and register'd down in his pocket-book, as a
second staff for his old age, in case Bobby should fail him.
"The disap-
pointment of this, he said, was ten times more to a wise man, than all the
money which the journey, &c. had cost him, put together,--rot the hundred
and twenty pounds,--he did not mind it a rush.'

From Stilton, all the way to Grantham, nothing in the whole affair
provoked him so much as the condolences of his friends, and the foolish
figure they should both make at church, the first Sunday;--of which, in
the satirical vehemence of his wit, now sharpen'd a little by vexation, he
would give so many humorous and provoking descriptions,--and place
his rib and self in so many tormenting lights and attitudes in the face of
the whole congregation;--that my mother declared, these two stages were
so truly tragi-comical, that she did nothing but laugh and cry in a breath,
from one end to the other of them all the way.


From Grantham, till they had cross'd the Trent, my father was out of all
kind of patience at the vile trick and imposition which he fancied my
mother had put upon him in this affair--'Certainly,' he would say to
himself, over and over again,
"the woman could not be deceived herself--
if she could,--what weakness!'--tormenting word!--which led his imagi-
nation a thorny dance, and, before all was over, play'd the duce and all
with him;--for sure as ever the word weakness was uttered, and struck
full upon his brain--so sure it set him upon running divisions upon how
many kinds of weaknesses there were;--that there was such a thing as
weakness of the body,--as well as weakness of the mind,--and then he
would do nothing but syllogize within himself for a stage or two together
,
How far the cause of all these vexations might, or might not, have arisen
out of himself.

In short,
he had so many little subjects of disquietude springing out of
this one affair, all fretting successively in his mind as they rose up in it,
that my mother
, whatever was her journey up, had but an uneasy journey
of it down.--In a word, as she
complained to my uncle Toby, he would
have tired out the patience of any flesh alive.




Volume 1, Chapter XVII.



THOUGH MY FATHER travelled homewards, as I told you, in none of the
best of moods,--
pshawing and pishing all the way down,--yet he had the
complaisance to keep the worst part of the story still to himself;--which
was the resolution he had taken of doing himself the justice
, which my
uncle Toby's clause in the marriage-settlement empowered him; nor was it
till the very night in which I was begot, which was thirteen months after,
that she had the least intimation of his design: when my father, happen-
ing, as you remember, to be a little chagrin'd and out of temper,--took
occasion as they lay chatting gravely in bed afterwards, talking over what
was to come,--to let her know that she must accommodate herself as well
as she could to the bargain made between them in their marriage-deeds;
which was to lye-in of her next child in the country, to balance the last
year's journey.

My father was a gentleman of many virtues,--but
he had a strong spice
of that in his temper, which might, or might not, add to the number.--
'Tis known by the name of perseverance in a good cause,--and of obsti-
nacy in a bad one:
Of this my mother had so much knowledge, that she
knew 'twas to no purpose to make any remonstrance,--so she e'en re-
solved to sit down quietly, and make the most of it.




Volume 1, Chapter XVIII



AS THE POINT was that night agreed, or rather determined, that my mother
should lye-in of me in the country, she took her measures accordingly; for
which purpose, when she was three days, or thereabouts, gone with child,
she began to cast her eyes upon the midwife, whom you have so often
heard me mention; and before the week was well got round, as the famous
Dr. Maningham
43 was not to be had, she had come to a final determination
in her mind,--notwithstanding there was a scientific operator within
so near a call as eight miles of us, and who, moreover, had expressly
wrote
a five shillings book upon the subject of midwifery, in which he had expos-
ed, not only the blunders of the sisterhood itself,--but had likewise
super-added many curious improvements for the quicker extraction of the
foetus in cross births, and some other cases of danger, which belay us
in getting into the world;
notwithstanding all this, my mother, I say, was
absolutely determined to trust her life, and mine with it, into no soul's
hand but this old woman's only.--
Now this I like;--when we cannot get
at the very thing we wish--never to take up with the next best in degree to
it:--no; that's pitiful beyond description;
--it is no more than a week from
this very day, in which I am now writing this book for the edification of
the world;--which is March 9, 1759,--that
my dear, dear Jenny,44 observing
I looked a little grave, as she stood cheapening a silk of five-and-twenty
shillings a yard,--told the mercer, she was sorry she had given him so
much trouble;--and immediately went and bought herself a yard-wide stuff
of ten-pence a yard.--"Tis the duplication of one and the same greatness
of soul;
only what lessened the honour of it, somewhat, in my mother's
case, was, that she could not heroine it into so violent and hazardous an
extreme, as one in her situation might have wished, because the old mid-
wife had really some little claim to be depended upon,
--as much, at least,
as success could give her; having, in the course of her practice of near
twenty years in the parish, brought every mother's son of them into the
world without any one slip or accident which could fairly be laid to her
account.


These facts, tho' they had their weight, yet
did not altogether satisfy
some few scruples and uneasinesses which hung upon my father's spirits
in relation to this choice.--To say nothing of the natural workings of
humanity and justice--or of the yearnings of parental and connubial love
,
all which prompted him to leave as little to hazard as possible in a case of
this kind;--he felt himself concerned in a particular manner, that all should
go right in the present case;--from the accumulated sorrow he lay open
to, should any evil betide his wife and child in lying-in at Shandy-Hall.--
He knew the world judged by events, and would add to his afflictions in
such a misfortune, by loading him with the whole blame of it.--
"Alas
o'day;--had Mrs. Shandy, poor gentlewoman! had but her wish in going
up to town just to lye-in and come down again;--which they say, she
begged and prayed for upon her bare knees,--and which, in my opinion,
considering the fortune which Mr. Shandy got with her,--was no such
mighty matter to have complied with, the lady and her babe might both
of them have been alive at this hour.'

This exclamation, my father knew, was unanswerable;--and yet, it was
not merely to shelter himself,--nor was it altogether for the care of his
offspring and wife that he seemed so extremely anxious about this point;--
my father had extensive views of things,--and stood moreover, as he
thought, deeply concerned in it for the publick good, from the dread he
entertained of the bad uses an ill-fated instance might be put to.

He was very sensible that all political writers upon the subject had
unanimously agreed and lamented, from the beginning of Queen Elizabeth's
reign down to his own time, that the current of men and money towards
the metropolis, upon one frivolous errand or another,--set in so strong,--
as to become dangerous to our civil rights,--though, by the bye,--a cur-
rent
was not the image he took most delight in,--a distemper was here his
favourite metaphor, and he would run it down into a perfect allegory, by
maintaining it was identically the same in the body national as in the
body natural, where the blood and spirits were driven up into the head
faster than they could find their ways down;--a stoppage of circulation
must ensue, which was death in both cases.

There was little danger, he would say, of losing our liberties by French
politicks or French invasions;--n
or was he so much in pain of a consump-
tion from the mass of corrupted matter and ulcerated humours in our con-
stitution
, which he hoped was not so bad as it was imagined;--but he
verily feared, that in some violent push, we should go off, all at once, in
a state-apoplexy
;--and then he would say, The Lord have mercy upon us
all.


My father was never able to give the history of this distemper,--without
the remedy along with it.

"Was I an absolute prince,' he would say, pulling up his breeches with
both his hands, as he rose from his arm-chair, "I would appoint able judg-
es, at every avenue of my metropolis, who should take cognizance of every
fool's business who came there;--and if, upon a fair and candid hearing,
it appeared not of weight sufficient to leave his own home, and come up,
bag and baggage, with his wife and children, farmer's sons, &c. &c. at his
backside, they should be all sent back, from constable to constable, like
vagrants as they were, to the place of their legal settlements. By this means
I shall take care, that my metropolis totter'd not thro' its own weight;--
that the head be no longer too big for the body;--that the extremes, now
wasted and pinn'd in, be restored to their due share of nourishment, and
regain with it their natural strength and beauty:--I would effectually pro-
vide, That the meadows and corn fields of my dominions, should laugh
and sing;
--that good chear and hospitality flourish once more;--and that
such weight and influence be put thereby into the hands of the Squirality
45
of my kingdom, as should counterpoise what I perceive my Nobility are
now taking from them.


"Why are there so few palaces and gentlemen's seats,' he would ask, with
some emotion, as he walked across the room, "throughout so many deli-
cious provinces in France? Whence is it that the few remaining Chateaus
amongst them are so dismantled,--so unfurnished, and in so ruinous and
desolate a condition?--
Because, Sir' (he would say) "in that kingdom no
man has any country-interest to support;--the little interest of any kind
which any man has any where in it, is concentrated in the court, and the
looks of the Grand Monarch: by the sunshine of whose countenance, or
the clouds which pass across it, every French man lives or dies.'


Another political reason which prompted my father so strongly to guard
against the least evil accident in my mother's lying-in in the country,--
was, That any such instance would infallibly throw a balance of power,
too great already, into the weaker vessels of the gentry, in his own, or
higher stations;--which, with the many other usurped rights which that
part of the constitution was hourly establishing,--would, in the end,
prove fatal to the monarchical system of domestick government estab-
lished in the first creation of things by God.

In this point he was entirely of Sir Robert Filmer's
46 opinion, That the
plans and institutions of the greatest monarchies in the eastern parts of
the world, were, originally, all stolen from that admirable pattern and
prototype of this houshold and paternal power;--which, for a century, he
said, and more, had gradually been degenerating away into a mix'd gover-
nment;--the form of which, however desirable in great combinations of the
species,--was very troublesome in small ones,
--and seldom produced any
thing, that he saw, but sorrow and confusion.


For all these reasons, private and publick, put together,--my father was
for having the man-midwife by all means,--my mother, by no means. My
father begg'd and intreated, she would for once recede from her prero-
gative in this matter, and suffer him to choose for her;--my mother, on
the contrary, insisted upon her privilege in this matter, to choose for
herself,--and have no mortal's help but the old woman's.--What could my
father do?
He was almost at his wit's end;--talked it over with her in all
moods;--placed his arguments in all lights;--argued the matter with her
like a christian,--like a heathen,--like a husband,--like a father,--like
a patriot,--like a man:--My mother answered every thing only like a
woman; which was a little hard upon her;--for as she could not assume
and fight it out behind such a variety of characters,--"twas no fair match:--
"twas seven to one.--What could my mother do?--She had the advantage
(otherwise she had been certainly overpowered) of a small reinforcement
of chagrin personal at the bottom, which bore her up, and enabled her to
dispute the affair with my father with so equal an advantage,--that both
sides sung Te Deum.
47 In a word, my mother was to have the old woman,--
and the operator was to have licence to drink a bottle of wine with my
father and my uncle Toby Shandy in the back parlour,--for which he was
to be paid five guineas.


I must beg leave, before I finish this chapter, to enter a caveat in the
breast of my fair reader;--and it is this,--Not to take it absolutely for
granted, from an unguarded word or two which I have dropp'd in it,--
"That I am a married man.'--I own, the tender appellation of my dear,
dear Jenny,--with some other strokes of conjugal knowledge, interspersed
here and there, might, naturally enough, have misled the most candid
judge in the world into such a determination against me.--All I plead for,
in this case, Madam, is strict justice, and that you do so much of it, to
me as well as to yourself,--as not to prejudge, or receive such an impres-
sion of me, till you have better evidence, than, I am positive, at present
can be produced against me.--
Not that I can be so vain or unreasonable,
Madam, as to desire you should therefore think, that my dear, dear Jenny is
my kept mistress;--no,--that would be flattering my character in the other
extreme, and giving it an air of freedom, which, perhaps, it has no kind of
right to. All I contend for, is the utter impossibility, for some volumes,
that you, or the most penetrating spirit upon earth, should know how this
matter really stands.--It is not impossible, but that my dear, dear Jenny!
tender as the appellation is, may be my child.--Consider,--I was born in
the year eighteen.--Nor is there any thing unnatural or extravagant in the
supposition, that my dear Jenny may be my friend.--Friend!--My friend.
--Surely, Madam, a friendship between the two sexes may subsist, and be
supported without--Fy! Mr. Shandy:--Without any thing, Madam, but that
tender and delicious sentiment which ever mixes in friendship, where
there is a difference of sex. Let me intreat you to study the pure and
sentimental parts of the best French Romances;--it will really, Madam,
astonish you to see with what a variety of chaste expressions this de-
licious sentiment, which I have the honour to speak of, is dress'd out.




Volume 1, Chapter XIX.



I WOULD SOONER undertake to explain the hardest problem in geometry,
than pretend to account for it, that a gentleman of my father's great good
sense
,--knowing, as the reader must have observed him, and curious too in
philosophy,--wise also in political reasoning,--and in polemical
(as he will
find) no way ignorant,--could be capable of entertaining a notion in his
head, so out of the common track,--that I fear the reader, when I come to
mention it to him,
if he is the least of a cholerick temper, will immediatly
throw the book by; if mercurial, he will laugh most heartily at it;--and if he
is of a grave and saturnine cast, he will, at first sight, absolutely condemn
as fanciful and extravagant
; and that was in respect to the choice and impo-
sition of christian names, on which he thought a great deal more depended
than what superficial minds were capable of conceiving.

His opinion, in this matter, was,
That there was a strange kind of magick
bias, which good or bad names, as he called them, irresistibly impressed
upon our characters and conduct.


The hero of Cervantes48 argued not the point with more seriousness,--
nor had he more faith,--or more to say on the powers of necromancy in
dishonouring his deeds,--or on Dulcinea's name, in shedding lustre upon
them, than my father had on those of Trismegistus or Archimedes, on the
one hand--or of Nyky and Simkin on the other.
How many Caesars and Pom-
peys, he would say, by mere inspiration of the names, have been rendered
worthy of them? And how many, he would add, are there, who might have
done exceeding well in the world, had not their characters and spirits
been totally depressed and Nicodemus'd into nothing?


I see plainly, Sir, by your looks, (or as the case happened) my father
would say--that you do not heartily subscribe to this opinion of mine,--
which,
to those, he would add, who have not carefully sifted it to the
bottom,--I own has an air more of fancy than of solid reasoning in it;
--
and yet, my dear Sir, if I may presume to know your character, I am
morally assured, I should hazard little in stating a case to you, not as a
party in the dispute,--but as a judge, and trusting my appeal upon it to
your own good sense and candid disquisition
in this matter;--you are a
person free from as many narrow prejudices of education as most men;--
and,
if I may presume to penetrate farther into you,--of a liberality of
genius above bearing down an opinion, merely because it wants friends.

Your son,--your dear son,--from whose sweet and open temper you have
so much to expect.--
Your Billy, Sir!--would you, for the world, have
called him Judas?--Would you, my dear Sir, he would say, laying his hand
upon your breast, with the genteelest address,--and in that soft and ir-
resistible piano
49 of voice, which the nature of the argumentum ad hominem
absolutely requires,--Would you, Sir, if a Jew of a godfather had pro-
posed the name for your child, and offered you his purse along with it,
would you have consented to such a desecration of him?--O my God! he
would say, looking up, if I know your temper right, Sir,--you are in-
capable of it;--you would have trampled upon the offer;--you would have
thrown the temptation at the tempter's head with abhorrence.


Your greatness of mind in this action, which I admire, with that generous
contempt of money, which you shew me in the whole transaction, is really
noble;
--and what renders it more so, is the principle of it;--the workings
of a parent's love upon the truth and conviction of this very hypothesis,
namely,
That was your son called Judas,--the sordid and treacherous idea,
so inseparable from the name, would have accompanied him through life
like his shadow, and, in the end, made a miser and a rascal of him, in
spite, Sir, of your example.


I never knew a man able to answer this argument.--But, indeed, to speak
of my father as he was;--he was certainly irresistible;--both in his ora-
tions and disputations;--he was born an orator;--.
50--Persua-
sion hung upon his lips, and the elements of Logick and Rhetorick were
so blended up in him,--and, withal, he had so shrewd a guess at the
weaknesses and passions of his respondent,--that Nature might have stood
up and said,--"This man is eloquent.'
--In short, whether he was on the
weak or the strong side of the question, 'twas hazardous in either case to
attack him.--And yet, 'tis strange, he had never read Cicero,
51 nor Quinti-
lian de Oratore
, nor Isocrates, nor Aristotle, nor Longinus, amongst the
antients;--nor Vossius, nor Skioppius, nor Ramus, nor Farnaby, amongst
the moderns;--and what is more astonishing,
he had never in his whole
life the least light or spark of subtilty struck into his mind, by one
single lecture
upon Crackenthorp or Burgersdicius or any Dutch logic-
ian or commentator;--he knew not so much as in what the difference of
an argument ad ignorantiam, and an argument ad hominem consisted; so
that I well remember, when he went up along with me to enter my name
at Jesus College in...,
52--it was a matter of just wonder with my worthy
tutor, and two or three fellows of that learned society,--
that a man who
knew not so much as the names of his tools, should be able to work after
that fashion with them.


To work with them in the best manner he could, was what my father was,
however, perpetually forced upon;--
for he had a thousand little sceptical
notions of the comick kind to defend--most of which notions, I verily
believe, at first entered upon the footing of mere whims, and of a
vive la Bagatelle;
53 and as such he would make merry with them for half an
hour or so, and having sharpened his wit upon them, dismiss them till
another day.

I mention this, not only as matter of hypothesis or conjecture upon the
progress and establishment of my father's many odd opinions,--but as a
warning to the learned reader against the indiscreet reception of such
guests, who, after a free and undisturbed entrance, for some years, into
our brains,--at length claim a kind of settlement there,--working some-
times like yeast;--but more generally after the manner of the gentle
passion, beginning in jest,--but ending in downright earnest.

Whether this was the case of the singularity of my father's notions--or
that his judgment, at length, became the dupe of his wit;--or how far, in
many of his notions, he might, though odd, be absolutely right;--the
reader, as he comes at them, shall decide. All that I maintain here, is,
that in this one, of the influence of christian names, however it gained
footing, he was serious;
--he was all uniformity;--he was systematical,
and, like all systematic reasoners, he would move both heaven and earth,
and twist and torture every thing in nature to support his hypothesis.

In a word I repeat it over again;--he was serious;--and, in consequence
of it, he would lose all kind of patience whenever he saw people, espe-
cially of condition, who should have known better,--as careless and as
indifferent about the name they imposed upon their child,--or more so,
than in the choice of Ponto or Cupid for their puppy-dog.

This, he would say, look'd ill;--and had, moreover, this particular ag-
gravation in it, viz. That when once a vile name was wrongfully or in-
judiciously given, 'twas not like the case of a man's character, which,
when wrong'd, might hereafter be cleared;--and, possibly, some time or
other, if not in the man's life, at least after his death,--be, somehow
or other, set to rights with the world:
But the injury of this, he would
say, could never be undone;--nay, he doubted even whether an act of par-
liament could reach it:--He knew as well as you, that the legislature
assumed a power over surnames;--but for very strong reasons, which he
could give, it had never yet adventured, he would say, to go a step far-
ther.

It was observable, that tho' my father, in consequence of this opinion,
had, as I have told you, the strongest likings and dislikings towards certain
names;--
that there were still numbers of names which hung so equally in
the balance before him, that they were absolutely indifferent to him. Jack,
Dick
, and Tom were of this class: These my father called neutral names;--
affirming of them, without a satyr,
54 That there had been as many knaves
and fools, at least, as wise and good men, since the world began, who had
indifferently borne them;--so that, like equal forces acting against each
other in contrary directions, he thought they mutually destroyed each
other's effects; for which reason, he would often declare, He would not
give a cherry-stone to choose amongst them. Bob, which was my brother's
name, was another of these neutral kinds of christian names, which oper-
ated very little either way; and as my father happen'd to be at Epsom,
55
when it was given him,--he would oft-times thank Heaven it was no
worse. Andrew was something like a negative quantity in Algebra with
him;--'twas worse, he said, than nothing.--William stood pretty high:--
Numps again was low with him:--and Nick, he said, was the DEVIL.


But of all names in the universe he had the most unconquerable aversion
for Tristram;
56--he had the lowest and most contemptible opinion of it of
any thing in the world,--thinking it could possibly produce nothing in
rerum natura,
57 but what was extremely mean and pitiful: So that in the
midst of a dispute on the subject, in which, by the bye, he was frequently
involved,--
he would sometimes break off in a sudden and spirited Epi-
phonema, or rather Erotesis,
58 raised a third, and sometimes a full fifth
above the key of the discourse,--and demand it categorically of his an-
tagonist, Whether he would take upon him to say, he had ever remembered,
--whether he had ever read,--or even whether he had ever heard tell of
a man, called Tristram, performing any thing great or worth recording?

--No,--he would say,--Tristram!--The thing is impossible.

What could be wanting in my father but to have wrote a book to publish
this notion of his to the world? Little boots it to the subtle speculatist
to stand single in his opinions,--unless he gives them proper vent:--It
was the identical thing which my father did:--for in the year sixteen,
which was two years before I was born, he was at the pains of writing an
express Dissertation simply upon the word Tristram
,--shewing the world,
with great candour and modesty, the grounds of his great abhorrence to
the name.

When this story is compared with the title-page,--Will not the gentle
reader pity my father from his soul?--to see an orderly and well-disposed
gentleman, who tho' singular,--yet inoffensive in his notions,--so played
upon in them by cross purposes;--
to look down upon the stage, and see
him baffled and overthrown in all his little systems and wishes; to behold
a train of events perpetually falling out against him, and in so critical
and cruel a way, as if they had purposedly been plann'd and pointed against
him, merely to insult his speculations.--In a word, to behold such a one,
in his old age, ill-fitted for troubles, ten times in a day suffering sorrow;--
ten times in a day calling the child of his prayers Tristram!--Melancholy
dissyllable of sound! which, to his ears, was unison to Nincompoop, and
every name vituperative under heaven.--By his ashes! I swear it,--if ever
malignant spirit took pleasure, or busied itself in traversing the purposes
of mortal man
,--it must have been here;--and if it was not necessary I
should be born before I was christened,
I would this moment give the
reader an account of it.



Volume 1, Chapter XX.



--HOW COULD YOU, Madam, be so inattentive in reading the last chapter?
I told you in it,
That my mother was not a papist.--Papist! You told me
no such thing, Sir.--Madam, I beg leave to repeat it over again, that
I
told you as plain, at least, as words, by direct inference, could tell
you such a thing.--Then, Sir, I must have miss'd a page.--No, Madam, you
have not miss'd a word.--Then I was asleep, Sir.--My pride, Madam, cannot
allow you that refuge.
--Then, I declare, I know nothing at all about the
matter.--That, Madam, is the very fault I lay to your charge; and as a
punishment for it,
I do insist upon it, that you immediately turn back,
that is as soon as you get to the next full stop, and read the whole
chapter over again.


I have imposed this penance upon the lady, neither out of wantonness nor
cruelty;
but from the best of motives; and therefore shall make her no
apology for it when she returns back:--
"Tis to rebuke a vicious taste,
which has crept into thousands besides herself,--of reading straight
forwards, more in quest of the adventures, than of the deep erudition
and knowledge which a book of this cast, if read over as it should be,
would infallibly impart with them--The mind should be accustomed to
make wise reflections, and draw curious conclusions as it goes along;

the habitude of which made Pliny the younger
59 affirm, "That he never
read a book so bad, but he drew some profit from it.' The stories of
Greece and Rome, run over without this turn and application,--do less
service, I affirm it, than the history of Parismus and Parismenus,
60 or
of the Seven Champions of England, read with it.

--But here comes my fair lady. Have you read over again the chapter,
Madam, as I desired you?--You have: And did you not observe the pas-
sage, upon the second reading, which admits the inference?--Not a word
like it!
Then, Madam, be pleased to ponder well the last line but one of
the chapter, where I take upon me to say, "It was necessary I should be
born before I was christen'd.' Had my mother, Madam, been a Papist, that
consequence did not follow.
61

It is a terrible misfortune for this same book of mine, but more so to the
Republick of letters;--so that my own is quite swallowed up in the consid-
eration of it,--that this self-same vile pruriency for fresh adventures in
all things, has got so strongly into our habit and humour,--and so wholly
intent are we upon satisfying the impatience of our concupiscence that
way,--that nothing but the gross and more carnal parts of a composition
will go down:--The subtle hints and sly communications of science fly
off, like spirits upwards,--the heavy moral escapes downwards; and both
the one and the other are as much lost to the world, as if they were still
left in the bottom of the ink-horn.


I wish the male-reader has not pass'd by many a one, as quaint and cur-
ious as this one, in which the female-reader has been detected. I wish it
may have its effects;--and that all good people, both male and female,
from example, may be taught to think as well as read.


I wish the male-reader has not pass'd by many a one, as quaint and cur-
ious as this one, in which the female-reader has been detected. I wish it
may have its effects;--and that all good people, both male and female,
from example, may be taught to think as well as read.


Memoire presente a Messieurs les Docteurs de Sorbonne

Un Chirurgien Accoucheur, represente a Messieurs les Docteurs de
Sorbonne, qu'il y a des cas, quoique tres rares, ou une mere ne scauroit
accoucher, & meme ou l'enfant est tellement renferme dans le sein de sa
mere, qu'il ne fait paroitre aucune partie de son corps, ce qui seroit un cas,
suivant les Rituels, de lui conferer, du moins sous condition,
le bapteme.
Le Chirurgien, qui consulte, pretend, par le moyen d'une petite canulle,
de pouvoir baptiser immediatement l'enfant, sans faire aucun tort a la
mere.--Il demand si ce moyen, qu'il vient de proposer, est permis & legi-
time, & s'il peut s'en servir dans les cas qu'il vient d'exposer.


Reponse

Le Conseil estime, que la question proposee souffre de grandes difficultes.
Les Theologiens posent d'un cote pour principe, que le bapteme, qui est
une naissance spirituelle, suppose une premiere naissance; il faut etre ne
dans le monde, pour renaitre en Jesus Christ, comme ils l'enseignent. S.
Thomas, 3 part. quaest. 88 artic. II. suit cette doctrine comme une verite
constante; l'on ne peut, dit ce S. Docteur, baptiser les enfans qui sont
renfermes dans le sein de leurs meres, & S. Thomas est fonde sur ce, que
les enfans ne sont point nes, & ne peuvent etre comptes parmi les autres
hommes; d'ou il conclud, qu'ils ne peuvent etre l'objet d'une action
exterieure, pour recevoir par leur ministere, les sacremens necessaires au
salut: Pueri in maternis uteris existentes nondum prodierunt in lucem ut
cum aliis hominibus vitam ducant; unde non possunt subjici actioni
humanae, ut per eorum ministerium sacramenta recipiant ad salutem. Les
rituels ordonnent dans la pratique ce que les theologiens ont etabli sur les
memes matieres, & ils deffendent tous d'une maniere uniforme, de baptiser
les enfans qui sont renfermes dans le sein de leurs meres, s'ils ne sont
paroitre quelque partie de leurs corps. Le concours des theologiens, & des
rituels, qui sont les regles des dioceses, paroit former une autorite qui
termine la question presente; cependant le conseil de conscience considerant
d'un cote, que le raisonnement des theologiens est uniquement fonde sur
une raison de convenance, & que la deffense des rituels suppose que l'on
ne peut baptiser immediatement les enfans ainsi renfermes dans le sein de
leurs meres, ce qui est contre la supposition presente; & d'un autre cote,
considerant que les memes theologiens enseignent, que l'on peut risquer
les sacremens que Jesus Christ a etablis comme des moyens faciles, mais
necessaires pour sanctifier les hommes; & d'ailleurs estimant, que les enfans
renfermes dans le sein de leurs meres, pourroient etre capables de salut,
parcequ'ils sont capables de damnation;--pour ces considerations, & en
egard a l'expose, suivant lequel on assure avoir trouve un moyen certain de
baptiser ces enfans ainsi renfermes, sans faire aucun tort a la mere, le Conseil
estime que l'on pourroit se servir du moyen propose, dans la confiance
qu'il a, que Dieu n'a point laisse ces sortes d'enfans sans aucuns secours, &
supposant, comme il est expose, que le moyen dont il s'agit est propre a
leur procurer le bapteme; cependant comme il s'agiroit, en autorisant la
pratique proposee, de changer une regle universellement etablie, le Conseil
croit que celui qui consulte doit s'addresser a son eveque, & a qui il
appartient de juger de l'utilite, & du danger du moyen propose, & comme,
sous le bon plaisir de l'eveque, le Conseil estime qu'il faudroit recourir au
Pape, qui a le droit d'expliquer les regles de l'eglise, & d'y deroger dans le
cas, ou la loi ne scauroit obliger, quelque sage & quelque utile que paroisse
la maniere de baptiser dont il s'agit, le Conseil ne pourroit l'approver sans
le concours de ces deux autorites. On conseile au moins a celui qui consulte,
de s'addresser a son eveque, & de lui faire part de la presente decision, afin
que, si le prelat entre dans les raisons sur lesquelles les docteurs soussignes
s'appuyent, il puisse etre autorise dans le cas de necessite, ou il risqueroit
trop d'attendre que la permission fut demandee & accordee d'employer le
moyen qu'il propose si avantageux au salut de l'enfant. Au reste, le Conseil,
en estimant que l'on pourroit s'en servir, croit cependant, que si les enfans
dont il s'agit, venoient au monde, contre l'esperance de ceux qui se seroient
servis du meme moyen, il seroit necessaire de les baptiser sous condition;
& en cela le Conseil se conforme a tous les rituels, qui en autorisant le
bapteme d'un enfant qui fait paroitre quelque partie de son corps,
enjoignent neantmoins, & ordonnent de le baptiser sous condition, s'il
vient heureusement au monde.


Delibere en Sorbonne, le 10 Avril, 1733.

A. Le Moyne.
L. De Romigny.
De Marcilly.

Mr. Tristram Shandy's compliments to Messrs. Le Moyne, De Romigny,
and De Marcilly;
hopes they all rested well the night after so tiresome a
consultation.--He begs to know, whether after the ceremony of marriage,
and before that of consummation, the baptizing all the Homunculi at
once, slapdash, by injection, would not be a shorter and safer cut still;
on
condition, as above, That if the HOMUNCULI do well, and come safe into
the world after this, that each and every of them shall be baptized again
(sous condition62)--And provided, in the second place, That the thing can
be done, which Mr. Shandy apprehends it may, par le moyen d'une petite
canulle, and sans faire aucune tort au pere.
63


Volume 1, Chapter XXI



--I WONDER what's all that noise, and running backwards and forwards for,
above stairs, quoth my father, addressing himself, after an hour and a
half's silence, to my uncle Toby,--who, you must know, was sitting on the
opposite side of the fire, smoking his social pipe all the time, in mute
contemplation of a new pair of black plush-breeches which he had got
on:--What can they be doing, brother?--quoth my father,--we can scarce
hear ourselves talk.

I think, replied my uncle Toby, taking his pipe from his mouth, and
striking the head of it two or three times upon the nail of his left thumb,
as he began his sentence,--I think, says he:--But to enter rightly into my
uncle Toby's sentiments upon this matter, you must be made to enter first
a little into his character,
the out-lines of which I shall just give you,
and then the dialogue between him and my father will go on as well again.

Pray what was that man's name,--for I write in such a hurry, I have no
time to recollect or look for it,--who first made the observation, "That
there was great inconstancy in our air and climate?'
64 Whoever he was, 'twas
a just and good observation in him.--But the corollary drawn from it,
namely,
"That it is this which has furnished us with such a variety of odd
and whimsical characters;'
--that was not his;--it was found out by another
man, at least a century and a half after him: Then again,--that this
copious store-house of original materials, is the true and natural cause
that our Comedies are so much better than those of France, or any others
that either have, or can be wrote upon the Continent:--that discovery
was not fully made till about the middle of King William's reign,--when
the great Dryden, in writing one of his long prefaces, (if I mistake not)
most fortunately hit upon it. Indeed toward the latter end of queen Anne,
the great Addison began to patronize the notion, and more fully explained
it to the world in one or two of his Spectators;--but the discovery was not
his.--
Then, fourthly and lastly, that this strange irregularity in our cli-
mate, producing so strange an irregularity in our characters,--doth thereby,
in some sort, make us amends, by giving us somewhat to make us merry
with when the weather will not suffer us to go out of doors,--that obser-
vation is my own;--and was struck out by me this very rainy day, March
26, 1759, and betwixt the hours of nine and ten in the morning.

Thus--thus, my fellow-labourers and associates in this great harvest of
our learning, now ripening before our eyes; thus it is, by slow steps of
casual increase, that our knowledge physical, metaphysical, physiological,
polemical, nautical, mathematical, aenigmatical, technical, biographical,
romantical, chemical, and obstetrical, with fifty other branches of it, (most
of 'em ending as these do, in ical) have for these two last centuries and
more, gradually been creeping upwards towards that Akme
65 of their perfect-
ions, from which, if we may form a conjecture from the advances of these
last seven years, we cannot possibly be far off.


When that happens, it is to be hoped, it will put an end to all kind of
writings whatsoever;--the want of all kind of writing will put an end to
all kind of reading;--and that in time, As war begets poverty; poverty
peace
,
66--must, in course, put an end to all kind of knowledge,--and then--
we shall have all to begin over again; or, in other words, be exactly where
we started.


--Happy! Thrice happy times! I only wish that the aera of my begetting,
as well as the mode and manner of it, had been a little alter'd,--or
that it could have been put off, with any convenience to my father or
mother,
for some twenty or five-and-twenty years longer, when a man in
the literary world might have stood some chance.--

But I forget my uncle Toby, whom all this while we have left knocking
the ashes out of his tobacco-pipe.

His humour was of that particular species, which does honour to our
atmosphere; and I should have made no scruple of ranking him amongst
one of the first-rate productions of it, had not there appeared too many
strong lines in it of a family-likeness, which shewed that
he derived the
singularity of his temper more from blood, than either wind or water, or
any modifications or combinations of them whatever:
And I have, therefore,
oft-times wondered, that my father, tho' I believe he had his reasons
for it, upon his observing some tokens of eccentricity, in my course, when
I was a boy,--should never once endeavour to account for them in this
way: for all
the Shandy Family were of an original character throughout:
--I mean the males,--the females had no character at all,--except,
indeed, my great aunt Dinah, who, about sixty years ago, was married and
got with child by the coachman,
for which my father, according to his
hypothesis of christian names, would often say, She might thank her god-
fathers and godmothers.
67

It will seem strange,--and I would as soon think of dropping a riddle in
the reader's way, which is not my interest to do, as set him upon guessing
how it could come to pass,
that an event of this kind, so many years after
it had happened, should be reserved for the interruption of the peace and
unity, which otherwise so cordially subsisted, between my father and my
uncle Toby. One would have thought, that the whole force of the misfortune
should have spent and wasted itself in the family at first
,--as is general-
ly the case.--But nothing ever wrought with our family after the ordinary
way. Possibly at the very time this happened,
it might have something else
to afflict it; and as afflictions are sent down for our good, and that
as this had never done the Shandy Family any good at all, it might lie
waiting till apt times and circumstances should give it an opportunity to
discharge its office
.--Observe, I determine nothing upon this.--My way
is ever to point out to the curious
, different tracts of investigation, to
come at the first springs of the events I tell;--
not with a pedantic Fes-
cue
,
68--or in the decisive manner of Tacitus, who outwits himself and his
reader;--but with the officious humility of a heart devoted to the assist-
ance merely of the inquisitive
;--to them I write,--and by them I shall be
read,--if any such reading as this could be supposed to hold out so long,--
to the very end of the world.

Why this cause of sorrow, therefore, was thus reserved for my father and
uncle, is undetermined by me. But how and in what direction it exerted
itself so as to become the cause of dissatisfaction between them, after it
began to operate, is what I am able to explain with great exactness, and
is as follows:

My uncle Toby Shandy, Madam, was a gentleman, who, with the virtues which
usually constitute the character of a man of honour and rectitude,--posses-
sed one in a very eminent degree, which is seldom or never put into the
catalogue; and that was a most extreme and unparallel'd modesty of nature;
--though I correct the word nature, for this reason, that I may not pre-
judge a point which must shortly come to a hearing, and that is,
Whether
this modesty of his was natural or acquir'd.--Whichever way my uncle Toby
came by it, 'twas nevertheless modesty in the truest sense of it; and that
is, Madam, not in regard to words, for he was so unhappy as to have very
little choice in them,--but to things;--and this kind of modesty so pos-
sessed him, and it arose to such a height in him, as almost to equal, if
such a thing could be, even the modesty of a woman: That female nicety,
Madam, and inward cleanliness of mind and fancy, in your sex, which makes
you so much the awe of ours.

You will imagine, Madam, that my uncle Toby had contracted all this
from this very source;--that he had spent a great part of his time in
converse with your sex, and that from a thorough knowledge of you, and
the force of imitation which such fair examples render irresistible, he
had acquired this amiable turn of mind.

I wish I could say so,--for unless it was with his sister-in-law, my fa-
ther's wife and my mother--my uncle Toby scarce exchanged three words
with the sex in as many years;--no, he got it, Madam, by a blow.--A blow!--
Yes, Madam, it was owing to a blow from a stone, broke off by a ball from
the parapet of a horn-work at the siege of Namur,
69 which struck full upon
my uncle Toby's groin
.--Which way could that effect it? The story of that,
Madam, is long and interesting;--but it would be running my history all u-
pon heaps to give it you here.--
'Tis for an episode hereafter; and
every circumstance relating to it, in its proper place, shall be faithfully
laid before you:--'Till then, it is not in my power to give farther light
into this matter, or say more than what I have said already,--That
my uncle
Toby was a gentleman of unparallel'd modesty, which happening to be some-
what subtilized and rarified by the constant heat of a little family pride
,--
they both so wrought together within him, that he could never bear to
hear the affair of my aunt Dinah touch'd upon, but with the greatest emo-
tion.--The least hint of it was enough to make the blood fly into his
face;--but when my father enlarged upon the story in mixed companies,
which the illustration of his hypothesis frequently obliged him to do,--
the unfortunate blight of one of the fairest branches of the family, would
set my uncle Toby's honour and modesty o'bleeding; and he would often
take my father aside, in the greatest concern imaginable, to expostulate
and tell him, he would give him any thing in the world, only to let the
story rest.


My father, I believe, had the truest love and tenderness for my uncle
Toby, that ever one brother bore towards another, and would have done
any thing in nature, which one brother in reason could have desir'd of
another, to have made my uncle Toby's heart easy in this, or any other
point. But this lay out of his power.

--My father, as I told you was a philosopher in grain,--speculative,--
systematical;--and my aunt Dinah's affair was a matter of as much conse-
quence to him, as the retrogradation of the planets to Copernicus:
70--The
backslidings of Venus in her orbit fortified the Copernican system, called
so after his name; and the backslidings of my aunt Dinah in her orbit, did
the same service in establishing my father's system, which, I trust, will
for ever hereafter be called the Shandean System, after his.

In any other family dishonour, my father, I believe, had as nice a sense
of shame as any man whatever;--and neither he, nor, I dare say, Copernicus,
would have divulged the affair in either case, or have taken the least notice
of it to the world, but for the obligations they owed, as they thought, to
truth.--Amicus Plato, my father would say, construing the words to my
uncle Toby, as he went along, Amicus Plato; that is, Dinah was my aunt;--
sed magis amica veritas
71--but Truth is my sister.

This contrariety of humours betwixt my father and my uncle, was the
source of many a fraternal squabble. The one could not bear to hear the
tale of family disgrace recorded,--and the other would scarce ever let a
day pass to an end without some hint at it.

For God's sake, my uncle Toby would cry,--and for my sake, and for all
our sakes, my dear brother Shandy,--
do let this story of our aunt's and
her ashes sleep in peace;--how can you,--how can you have so little feeling
and compassion for the character of our family?--What is the character of
a family to an hypothesis?
my father would reply.--Nay, if you come to
that--what is the life of a family?--The life of a family!--my uncle Toby
would say, throwing himself back in his arm chair, and lifting up his
hands, his eyes, and one leg--
Yes, the life,--my father would say,
maintaining his point. How many thousands of 'em are there every year
that come cast away, (in all civilized countries at least)--and consider-
ed as nothing but common air, in competition of an hypothesis. In my plain
sense of things, my uncle Toby would answer,--every such instance is
downright Murder, let who will commit it.--There lies your mistake, my
father would reply;--for, in Foro Scientiae
72 there is no such thing as
Murder,--"tis only Death, brother.

My uncle Toby would never offer to answer this by any other kind of
argument, than that of whistling half a dozen bars of Lillebullero.
73--You
must know it was the usual channel thro' which his passions got vent,
when any thing shocked or surprized him:--but especially when any thing,
which he deem'd very absurd, was offered.


As not one of our logical writers, nor any of the commentators upon
them, that I remember, have thought proper to give a name to this parti-
cular species of argument.--I here take the liberty to do it myself, for
two reasons. First, That, in order to prevent all confusion in disputes,
it may stand as much distinguished for ever, from every other species of
argument--as the Argumentum ad Verecundiam,
74 ex Absurdo, ex Fortiori,
or any other argument whatsoever:--And, secondly, That it may be said
by my children's children, when my head is laid to rest,--that their
learn'd grandfather's head had been busied to as much purpose once, as
other people's;--That he had invented a name, and generously thrown it
into the Treasury of the Ars Logica, for one of the most unanswerable
arguments in the whole science. And, if the end of disputation is more to
silence than convince,--they may add, if they please, to one of the best
arguments too.

I do, therefore, by these presents, strictly order and command, That
it be known and distinguished by the name and title of the Argumentum
Fistulatorium
, and no other;--and that it rank hereafter with the
Argumentum Baculinum and the Argumentum ad Crumenam, and for
ever hereafter be treated of in the same chapter.


As for the Argumentum Tripodium, which is never used but by the
woman against the man;--and the Argumentum ad Rem, which, contrary-
wise, is made use of by the man only against the woman;--As these
two are enough in conscience for one lecture;--and, moreover, as
the one is the best answer to the other,--let them likewise be kept
apart, and be treated of in a place by themselves.



Volume 1, Chapter XXII.



THE LEARNED BISHOP HALL, I mean the famous Dr. Joseph Hall, who was
Bishop of Exeter in King James the First's reign, tells us in one of Decads,
at the end of his divine art of meditation, imprinted at London, in the year
1610, by John Beal, dwelling in Aldersgate-street, "That it is an abominable
thing for a man to commend himself;'--and I really think it is so.

And yet, on the other hand,
when a thing is executed in a masterly kind of
a fashion, which thing is not likely to be found out;--I think it is full
as abominable, that a man should lose the honour of it, and go out of the
world with the conceit of it rotting in his head.

This is precisely my situation.

For in this long digression which I was accidentally led into, as
in all
my digressions (one only excepted) there is a master-stroke of digressive
skill
, the merit of which has all along, I fear, been over-looked by my
reader,--not for want of penetration in him,--but because 'tis an excel-
lence seldom looked for, or expected indeed, in a digression;--and it is
this: That tho' my digressions are all fair, as you observe,--and that
I fly
off from what I am about, as far, and as often too, as any writer in Great
Britain; yet I constantly take care to order affairs so that my main business
does not stand still in my absence.


I was just going, for example, to have given you the great out-lines of
my uncle Toby's most whimsical character;--when my aunt Dinah and
the coachman came across us, and led us a vagary some millions of miles
into the very heart of the planetary system: Notwithstanding all this, you
perceive that the drawing of my uncle Toby's character went on gently all
the time;--not the great contours of it,--that was impossible,--but some
familiar strokes and faint designations of it, were here and there touch'd
on, as we went along, so that you are much better acquainted with my
uncle Toby now than you was before.

By this contrivance the machinery of my work is of a species by itself;
two contrary motions are introduced into it, and reconciled, which were
thought to be at variance with each other. In a word, my work is digres-
sive, and it is progressive too,--and at the same time.

This, Sir, is a very different story from that of the earth's moving round
her axis, in her diurnal rotation, with her progress in her elliptick orbit
which brings about the year, and constitutes that variety and vicissitude of
seasons we enjoy;
--though I own it suggested the thought,--as I believe
the greatest of our boasted improvements and discoveries have come from
such trifling hints.


Digressions, incontestably, are the sunshine;--they are the life, the soul
of reading!--take them out of this book, for instance,--you might as well
take the book along with them;--one cold eternal winter would reign in
every page of it; restore them to the writer;--he steps forth like a bride-
groom,--bids All-hail; brings in variety, and forbids the appetite to fail.

All the dexterity is in the good cookery and management of them, so as to
be not only for the advantage of the reader, but also of the author, whose
distress, in this matter, is truly pitiable: For, if he begins a digression,
--from that moment, I observe, his whole work stands stock still;--and if
he goes on with his main work,--then there is an end of his digression.

--This is vile work.--For which reason, from the beginning of this, you
see, I have constructed the main work and the adventitious parts of it
with such intersections, and have so complicated and involved the digres-
sive and progressive movements, one wheel within another, that the whole
machine, in general, has been kept a-going;--and, what's more, it shall be
kept a-going these forty years, if it pleases the fountain of health to bless
me so long with life and good spirits.




Volume 1, Chapter XXIII.



I HAVE A STRONG PROPENSITY in me to begin this chapter very nonsens-
ically, and I will not balk my fancy.--Accordingly I set off thus:

If the fixture of Momus's glass
75 in the human breast, according to the
proposed emendation of that arch-critick, had taken place,--first, This
foolish consequence would certainly have followed,--That the very wisest
and very gravest of us all, in one coin or other, must have paid window-
money
76 every day of our lives.

And, secondly, that had the said glass been there set up, nothing more
would have been wanting, in order to have taken a man's character, but to
have taken a chair and gone softly, as you would to a dioptrical bee-hive,
and look'd in,--view'd the soul stark naked;--observed all her motions,--
her machinations;--traced all her maggots from their first engendering to
their crawling forth;--watched her loose in her frisks, her gambols, her
capricios; and after some notice of her more solemn deportment, conse-
quent upon such frisks, &c.--then taken your pen and ink and set down
nothing but what you had seen, and could have sworn to:--But this is an
advantage not to be had by the biographer in this planet;--in the planet
Mercury (belike) it may be so, if not better still for him;--for there the
intense heat of the country, which is proved by computators, from its
vicinity to the sun, to be more than equal to that of red-hot iron,--must,
I think, long ago have vitrified the bodies of the inhabitants, (as the
efficient cause
77) to suit them for the climate (which is the final cause;)
so that betwixt them both, all the tenements of their souls, from top to
bottom, may be nothing else, for aught the soundest philosophy can shew to
the contrary, but one fine transparent body of clear glass (bating the um-
bilical knot)--so that, till the inhabitants grow old and tolerably wrinkled,
whereby the rays of light, in passing through them, become so monstrously
refracted,--or return reflected from their surfaces in such transverse lines
to the eye, that a man cannot be seen through;
--his soul might as well,
unless for mere ceremony, or the trifling advantage which the umbilical
point gave her,--might, upon all other accounts, I say, as well play the
fool out o'doors as in her own house.


But this, as I said above, is not the case of the inhabitants of this earth;--
our minds shine not through the body, but are wrapt up here in a dark cover-
ing of uncrystalized flesh and blood; so that, if we would come to the spe-
cific characters of them, we must go some other way to work.


Many, in good truth, are the ways, which human wit has been forced to
take, to do this thing with exactness.

Some, for instance, draw all their characters with wind-instruments.--
Virgil takes notice of that way in the affair of Dido and Aeneas;
78--but it
is as fallacious as the breath of fame;--and, moreover, bespeaks a narrow
genius. I am not ignorant that
the Italians pretend to a mathematical
exactness in their designations of one particular sort of character among
them, from the forte or piano
79 of a certain wind-instrument they use,--
which they say is infallible.--I dare not mention the name of the instru-
ment in this place;--'tis sufficient we have it amongst us,--but never think
of making a drawing by it;--this is aenigmatical, and intended to be so, at
least ad populum:
80--And therefore, I beg, Madam, when you come here,
that you read on as fast as you can, and never stop to make any inquiry
about it.


There are others again, who will draw a man's character from no other helps
in the world, but
merely from his evacuations;--but this often gives a very
incorrect outline,--unless, indeed, you
take a sketch of his repletions too;
and by correcting one drawing from the other, compound one good figure
out
of them both.


I should have no objection to this method, but that I think it must
smell too strong of the lamp,
81--and be render'd still more operose, by
forcing you to have an eye to the rest of his Non-naturals.--Why the
most natural actions of a man's life should be called his Non-naturals,
82--
is another question.


There are others, fourthly, who disdain every one of these expedients;--
not from any fertility of their own, but from the various ways of doing it,
which they have borrowed from the honourable devices which the Penta-
graphic Brethren
83 of the brush have shewn in taking copies.--These, you
must know, are your great historians.

One of these you will see drawing a full length character against the
light
;--that's illiberal,--dishonest,--and hard upon the character of the
man who sits.

Others, to mend the matter, will make a drawing of you in the Camera;
84--
that is most unfair of all, because, there you are sure to be represented
in some of your most ridiculous attitudes.


To avoid all and every one of these errors in giving you my uncle Toby's
character, I am determined to draw it by no mechanical help whatever;--
nor shall my pencil be guided by any one wind-instrument which ever was
blown upon, either on this, or on the other side of the Alps;--nor will
I consider either his repletions or his discharges,--or touch upon his
Nonnaturals; but, in a word, I will draw my uncle Toby's character from
his Hobby-Horse.




Volume 1, Chapter XXIV.



IF I WAS NOT MORALLY SURE that the reader must be out of all patience for
my uncle Toby's character,--I would here previously have convinced him
that there is no instrument so fit to draw such a thing with, as that which
I have pitch'd upon.


A man and his Hobby-Horse, tho' I cannot say that they act and re-act
exactly after the same manner in which the soul and body do upon each
other: Yet doubtless there is a communication between them of some kind;
and my opinion rather is, that there is something in it more of the manner
of electrified bodies,--and that, by means of the heated parts of the rider,
which come immediately into contact with the back of the HobbyHorse,--by
long journies and much friction, it so happens, that the body of the rider
is at length fill'd as full of Hobby-Horsical matter as it can hold;
--so
that if you are able to give but a clear description of the nature of the
one, you may form a pretty exact notion of the genius and character of
the other.

Now the Hobby-Horse which my uncle Toby always rode upon, was in
my opinion an Hobby-Horse well worth giving a description of, if it was
only upon the score of his great singularity;--for you might have tra-
velled from York to Dover,--from Dover to Penzance in Cornwall, and from
Penzance to York back again, and not have seen such another upon the
road; or if you had seen such a one, whatever haste you had been in, you
must infallibly have stopp'd to have taken a view of him. Indeed, the gait
and figure of him was so strange, and so utterly unlike was he, from his
head to his tail, to any one of the whole species, that it was now and then
made a matter of dispute,--whether he was really a Hobby-Horse or no:
But as the Philosopher
85 would use no other argument to the Sceptic, who
disputed with him against the reality of motion, save that of rising up
upon his legs, and walking across the room;--so would my uncle Toby
use no other argument to prove his Hobby-Horse was a Hobby-Horse
indeed, but by getting upon his back and riding him about;
--leaving the
world, after that, to determine the point as it thought fit.

In good truth, my uncle Toby mounted him with so much pleasure, and he
carried my uncle Toby so well,--that he troubled his head very little
with what the world either said or thought about it.


It is now high time, however, that I give you a description of him:--But
to go on regularly, I only beg you will give me leave to acquaint you
first, how my uncle Toby came by him.



Volume 1, Chapter XXV.



THE WOUND in my uncle Toby's groin, which he received at the siege of
Namur, rendering him unfit for the service, it was thought expedient he
should return to England, in order, if possible, to be set to rights.

He was four years totally confined,--part of it to his bed, and all of it to
his room: and in the course of his cure, which was all that time in hand,
suffer'd unspeakable miseries,--owing to a succession of exfoliations from
the os pubis,
86 and the outward edge of that part of the coxendix called the
os illium,--both which bones were dismally crush'd, as much by the irregularity
of the stone
, which I told you was broke off the parapet,--as by its size,--
(tho' it was pretty large) which inclined the surgeon all along to think,
that the great injury which it had done my uncle Toby's groin, was more
owing to the gravity of the stone itself, than to the projectile force of
it,--which he would often tell him was a great happiness.

My father at that time was just beginning business in London, and had
taken a house;--and as the truest friendship and cordiality subsisted
between the two brothers,--and that my father thought my uncle Toby
could no where be so well nursed and taken care of as in his own house,--
he assign'd him the very best apartment in it.
--And what was a much
more sincere mark of his affection still, he would never suffer a friend or
an acquaintance to step into the house on any occasion, but he would take
him by the hand, and lead him up stairs to see his brother Toby, and chat
an hour by his bed-side.

The history of a soldier's wound beguiles the pain of it;--my uncle's
visitors at least thought so, and in their daily calls upon him, from the
courtesy arising out of that belief, they would frequently turn the dis-
course to that subject,--and from that subject the discourse would gen-
erally roll on to the siege itself. These conversations were infinitely
kind; and my uncle Toby received great relief from them, and would have
received much more, but that they brought him into some unforeseen per-
plexities, which, for three months together, retarded his cure greatly;
and if he had not hit upon an expedient to extricate himself out of them,
I verily believe they would have laid him in his grave.


What these perplexities of my uncle Toby were,--"tis impossible for you
to guess;--if you could,--I should blush; not as a relation,--not as a
man,--nor even as a woman,--but I should blush as an author; inasmuch
as I set no small store by myself upon this very account, that my reader
has never yet been able to guess at any thing. And in this, Sir, I am
of so nice and singular a humour, that if I thought you was able to form
the least judgment or probable conjecture to yourself, of what was to come
in the next page,--I would tear it out of my book.




                BOOK II87



Volume 2, Chapter I.



I HAVE BEGUN A NEW BOOK, on purpose that I might have room enough
to explain the nature of the perplexities in which my uncle Toby was in-
volved, from the many discourses and interrogations about the siege of
Namur, where he received his wound.

I must remind the reader, in case he has read the history of King William's
wars,--but if he has not,--I then inform him, that one of the most memor-
able attacks in that siege, was that which was made by the English and
Dutch
upon the point of the advanced counterscarp,88 between the gate of
St. Nicolas, which inclosed the great sluice or water-stop, where the En-
glish were terribly exposed
to the shot of the counter-guard and demi-
bastion of St. Roch: The issue of which hot dispute, in three words, was
this; That the Dutch lodged themselves upon the counter-guard,--and
that the English made themselves masters of the covered-way before St.
Nicolas-gate, notwithstanding the gallantry of the French officers, who
exposed themselves upon the glacis sword in hand.

As this was the principal attack of which my uncle Toby was an eye-
itness at Namur,--the army of the besiegers being cut off, by the
confluence of the Maes and Sambre, from seeing much of each other's
operations,--
my uncle Toby was generally more eloquent and particular
in his account of it; and the many perplexities he was in, arose out of
the almost insurmountable difficulties he found in telling his story
intelligibly, and giving such clear ideas of the differences and dis-
tinctions between the scarp and counterscarp,--the glacis and covered-
way,--the half-moon and ravelin,--as to make his company fully compre-
hend where and what he was about.

Writers themselves are too apt to confound these terms; so that you will
the less wonder, if in his endeavours to explain them, and in opposi-
tion to many misconceptions, that my uncle Toby did oft-times puzzle
his visitors, and sometimes himself too.


To speak the truth, unless the company my father led up stairs were
tolerably clear-headed, or my uncle Toby was in one of his explanatory
moods, 'twas a difficult thing, do what he could, to keep the discourse
free from obscurity.

What rendered the account of this affair the more intricate to my uncle
Toby, was this,--that in the attack of the counterscarp, before the gate of
St. Nicolas, extending itself from the bank of the Maes, quite up to the
great water-stop,--
the ground was cut and cross cut with such a multitude
of dykes, drains, rivulets, and sluices
, on all sides,--and he would get
so sadly bewildered, and set fast amongst them, that frequently he could
neither get backwards or forwards to save his life; and was oft-times o-
bliged to give up the attack upon that very account only.

These perplexing rebuffs gave my uncle Toby Shandy more perturbations
than you would imagine; and as my father's kindness to him was continually
dragging up fresh friends and fresh enquirers,--he had but a very uneasy
task of it.

No doubt my uncle Toby had great command of himself,--and could guard
appearances, I believe, as well as most men;--yet any one may imagine,
that when he could not retreat out of the ravelin without getting into
the half-moon, or get out of the covered-way without falling down the
counterscarp, nor cross the dyke without danger of slipping into the ditch,
but that he must have fretted and fumed inwardly
:--He did so;--and the
little and hourly vexations, which may seem trifling and of no account to
the man who has not read Hippocrates,
89 yet, whoever has read Hippocrates,
or Dr. James Mackenzie, and has considered well the effects which the
passions and affections of the mind have upon the digestion--(Why not
of a wound as well as of a dinner?)--may easily conceive what sharp
paroxysms and exacerbations of his wound my uncle Toby must have unde-
rgone upon that score only. --My uncle Toby could not philosophize upon
it;--'twas enough he felt it was so,--and having sustained the pain and
sorrows of it for three months together, he was resolved some way or o-
ther to extricate himself.

He was one morning lying upon his back in his bed, the anguish and na-
ture of the wound upon his groin suffering him to lie in no other pos-
ition, when a thought came into his head, that if he could purchase such a
thing, and have it pasted down upon a board, as a large map of the forti-
fication of the town and citadel of Namur, with its environs, it might be a
means of giving him ease
.--I take notice of his desire to have the environs
along with the town and citadel, for this reason,--because my uncle Toby's
wound was got in one of the traverses, about thirty toises90 from the return-
ing angle of the trench, opposite to the salient angle of the demi-bastion
of St. Roch:--so that he was pretty confident he could stick a pin upon
the identical spot of ground where he was standing on when the stone
struck him.

All this succeeded to his wishes, and not only freed him from a world of
sad explanations, but, in the end, it proved the happy means, as you will
read, of procuring my uncle Toby his Hobby-Horse.



Volume 2, Chapter II.



THERE IS NOTHING so foolish, when you are at the expence of making an
entertainment of this kind, as to order things so badly, as to let your criticks
and gentry of refined taste run it down: Nor is there any thing so likely to
make them do it, as that of leaving them out of the party, or, what is full
as offensive, of bestowing your attention upon the rest of your guests in so
particular a way, as if there was no such thing as a critick (by occupation)
at table.

--I guard against both; for, in the first place, I have left half a dozen
places purposely open for them;--and in the next place, I pay them all
court.--Gentlemen, I kiss your hands, I protest no company could give
me half the pleasure,--by my soul I am glad to see you--I beg only you
will make no strangers of yourselves, but sit down without any ceremony,
and fall on heartily.


I said I had left six places, and I was upon the point of carrying my
complaisance so far, as to have left a seventh open for them,--and in this
very spot I stand on; but being told by a Critick (tho' not by occupation,
--but by nature) that I had acquitted myself well enough, I shall fill it
up directly, hoping, in the mean time, that I shall be able to make a great
deal of more room next year.

--How, in the name of wonder! could your uncle Toby, who, it seems,
was a military man, and whom you have represented as no fool,--be at
the same time such a confused, pudding-headed, muddle-headed, fellow,
as--Go look.

So, Sir Critick, I could have replied; but I scorn it.--'Tis language
unurbane,--and only befitting the man who cannot give clear and satis-
factory accounts of things, or dive deep enough into the first causes
of human ignorance and confusion. It is moreover the reply valiant
91--and
therefore I reject it; for tho' it might have suited my uncle Toby's char-
acter as a soldier excellently well,--and had he not accustomed himself,
in such attacks, to whistle the Lillabullero, as he wanted no courage,
'tis the very answer he would have given; yet it would by no means have
done for me. You see as plain as can be, that I write as a man of erudition;
--that even my similies, my allusions, my illustrations, my metaphors, are er-
udite
,--and that I must sustain my character properly, and contrast it
properly too,--else what would become of me? Why, Sir, I should be un-
done;--at this very moment that I am going here to fill up one place
against a critick,--I should have made an opening for a couple.

--Therefore I answer thus:

Pray, Sir, in all the reading which you have ever read, did you ever read
such a book as Locke's Essay upon the Human Understanding?
92--Don't
answer me rashly--because many, I know, quote the book, who have not
read it--and many have read it who understand it not:--If either of these
is your case, as I write to instruct, I will tell you in three words what
the book is.--It is a history.--A history! of who? what? where? when? Don't
hurry yourself--
It is a history-book, Sir, (which may possibly recommend
it to the world) of what passes in a man's own mind;
and if you will say
so much of the book, and no more, believe me, you will cut no contemptible
figure in a metaphysick circle.

But this by the way.

Now if you will venture to go along with me, and look down into the
bottom of this matter, it will be found that the cause of obscurity and
confusion, in the mind of a man, is threefold.


Dull organs, dear Sir, in the first place. Secondly, slight and transient
impressions made by the objects, when the said organs are not dull. And
thirdly, a memory like unto a sieve, not able to retain what it has re-
ceived.--Call down Dolly your chamber-maid, and I will give you my cap
and bell along with it, if I make not this matter so plain that Dolly
herself should understand it as well as Malbranch.
93--When Dolly has ind-
ited her epistle to Robin, and has thrust her arm into the bottom of her
pocket hanging by her right side;--take that opportunity to recollect that
the organs and faculties of perception can, by nothing in this world, be so
aptly typified and explained as by that one thing which Dolly's hand is in
search of.--Your organs are not so dull that I should inform you--'tis an
inch, Sir, of red seal-wax.

When this is melted and dropped upon the letter, if Dolly fumbles too
long for her thimble, till the wax is over hardened, it will not receive
the mark of her thimble from the usual impulse which was wont to imprint it.
Very well. If Dolly's wax, for want of better, is bees-wax, or of a temper
too soft,--tho' it may receive,--it will not hold the impression, how hard
soever Dolly thrusts against it; and last of all, supposing the wax good,
and eke
94 the thimble, but applied thereto in careless haste, as her Mistress
rings the bell;--in any one of these three cases the print left by the thimble
will be as unlike the prototype as a brass-jack.

Now you must understand that not one of these was the true cause of the
confusion in my uncle Toby's discourse; and it is for that very reason I
enlarge upon them so long, after the manner of great physiologists--to
shew the world, what it did not arise from.


What it did arise from, I have hinted above, and a fertile source of
obscurity it is,--and ever will be,--and that is the unsteady uses of
words, which have perplexed the clearest and most exalted understandings.

It is ten to one (at Arthur's
95) whether you have ever read the literary
histories of past ages;--if you have, what terrible battles, "yclept
logomachies,
96 have they occasioned and perpetuated with so much gall
and ink-shed,--that a good-natured man cannot read the accounts of
them without tears in his eyes.

Gentle critick! when thou hast weighed all this, and considered within
thyself how much of thy own knowledge, discourse, and conversation has
been pestered and disordered, at one time or other, by this, and this only:--
What a pudder and racket in Councils about
97 in
the Schools of the learned about power and about spirit;--about essences,
and about quintessences;--about substances, and about space.--What con-
fusion in greater Theatres from words of little meaning, and as indeterminate
a sense! when thou considerest this, thou wilt not wonder at my uncle
Toby's perplexities,--thou wilt drop a tear of pity upon his scarp and his
counterscarp;--his glacis and his covered way;--his ravelin and his half-
moon: 'Twas not by ideas,--by Heaven; his life was put in jeopardy by
words.




Volume 2, Chapter III.



WHEN MY UNCLE TOBY got his map of Namur to his mind, he began imme-
diately to apply himself, and with the utmost diligence, to the study of it; for
nothing being of more importance to him than his recovery, and his rec-
overy depending, as you have read, upon the passions and affections of
his mind, it behoved him to take the nicest care to make himself so far
master of his subject, as to be able to talk upon it without emotion.

In a fortnight's close and painful application, which, by the bye, did
my uncle Toby's wound, upon his groin, no good,--he was enabled, by the
help of some marginal documents at the feet of the elephant,
98 together
with Gobesius's military architecture and pyroballogy, translated from the
Flemish, to form his discourse with passable perspicuity;
and before he
was two full months gone,--
he was right eloquent upon it, and could make
not only the attack of the advanced counterscarp
with great order;--but
having, by that time, gone much deeper into the art, than what his first
motive made necessary, my uncle Toby was able to cross the Maes and
Sambre; make diversions as far as Vauban's line, the abbey of Salsines, &c.
and give his visitors as distinct a history of each of their attacks, as of
that of the gate of St. Nicolas, where he had the honour to receive his
wound.


But desire of knowledge, like the thirst of riches, increases ever with
the acquisition of it. The more my uncle Toby pored over his map, the more
he took a liking to it!--by the same process and electrical assimilation,
as I told you, through which I ween the souls of connoisseurs themselves,
by long friction and incumbition, have the happiness, at length, to get
all bevirtu'd--be-pictured,--be-butterflied, and be-fiddled.


The more my uncle Toby drank of this sweet fountain of science, the great-
er was the heat and impatience of his thirst,
so that before the first
year of his confinement had well gone round,
there was scarce a fortified
town in Italy or Flanders, of which, by one means or other, he had not
procured a plan, reading over as he got them, and carefully collating
therewith the histories of their sieges, their demolitions, their improv-
ements, and new works, all which he would read with that intense applica-
tion and delight, that he would forget himself, his wound, his confinement,
his dinner.


In the second year my uncle Toby purchased Ramelli99 and Cataneo, translat-
ed from the Italian;--likewise Stevinus, Moralis, the Chevalier de Ville,
Lorini, Cochorn, Sheeter, the Count de Pagan, the Marshal Vauban, Mons.
Blondel, with almost as many more books of military architecture, as Don
Quixote was found to have of chivalry, when the curate and barber invaded
his library.

Towards the beginning of the third year, which was in August, ninety-nine,
100
my uncle Toby found it necessary to understand a little of projectiles:--and
having judged it best to draw his knowledge from the fountain-head,
he began
with N. Tartaglia, who it seems was the first man who detected the imposition
of a cannon-ball's doing all that mischief under the notion of a right line--
This N. Tartaglia proved to my uncle Toby to be an impossible thing.

--Endless is the search of Truth.

No sooner was my uncle Toby satisfied which road the cannon-ball did
not go, but he was insensibly led on, and resolved in his mind to enquire
and find out which road the ball did go
: For which purpose he was obliged
to set off afresh with old Maltus,
101 and studied him devoutly.--He proceeded
next to Galileo and Torricellius, wherein,
by certain Geometrical rules,
infallibly laid down, he found the precise path to be a Parabola--or else
an Hyperbola
,--and that the parameter, or latus rectum, of the conic section
of the said path, was to the quantity and amplitude in a direct ratio, as the
whole line to the sine of double the angle of incidence, formed by the breech
upon an horizontal plane;--and that the semiparameter,
--stop! my dear uncle
Toby--stop!--go not one foot farther into this thorny and bewildered track,
--intricate are the steps! intricate are the mazes of this labyrinth!
intricate are the troubles which the pursuit of this bewitching phantom
Knowledge will bring upon thee.--O my uncle;--fly--fly,--fly from it as
from a serpent.--Is it fit--goodnatured man! thou should'st sit up, with
the wound upon thy groin, whole nights baking thy blood with hectic
watchings?--Alas! "twill exasperate thy symptoms,--check thy perspira-
tions--evaporate thy spirits--waste thy animal strength, dry up thy radical
moisture,
102 bring thee into a costive habit of body,--impair thy health,--
and hasten all the infirmities of thy old age.--O my uncle! my uncle Toby.




Volume 2, Chapter IV.



I WOULD NOT GIVE A GROAT for that man's knowledge in pen-craft, who
does not understand this,
--That the best plain narrative in the world,
tacked very close to the last spirited apostrophe to my uncle Toby--would
have felt both cold and vapid upon the reader's palate;--therefore I forth-
with put an end to the chapter, though I was in the middle of my story.

--Writers of my stamp have one principle in common with painters.
Where an exact copying makes our pictures less striking, we choose the
less evil; deeming it even more pardonable to trespass against truth, than
beauty.
This is to be understood cum grano salis;103 but be it as it will,--as
the parallel is made more for the sake of letting the apostrophe cool, than
any thing else,--"tis not very material whether upon any other score the
reader approves of it or not.


In the latter end of the third year, my uncle Toby perceiving that the
parameter and semi-parameter of the conic section angered his wound, he
left off the study of projectiles in a kind of a huff
, and betook himself to
the practical part of fortification only; the pleasure of which, like a spring
held back, returned upon him with redoubled force.


It was in this year that my uncle began to break in upon the daily regular-
ity of a clean shirt,--to dismiss his barber unshaven,--and to allow his
surgeon scarce time sufficient to dress his wound,
concerning himself so
little about it, as not to ask him once in seven times dressing, how it went
on: when, lo!--all of a sudden, for the change was quick as lightning, he
began to sigh heavily for his recovery,--complained to my father, grew im-
patient with the surgeon:--and one morning, as he heard his foot coming
up stairs, he shut up his books, and thrust aside his instruments, in order
to expostulate with him upon the protraction of the cure, which, he told him,
might surely have been accomplished at least by that time:--He dwelt long
upon the miseries he had undergone, and the sorrows of his four years mel-
ancholy imprisonment;--adding, that had it not been for the kind looks
and fraternal chearings of the best of brothers,--he had long since sunk
under his misfortunes.--My father was by. My uncle Toby's eloquence
brought tears into his eyes;
--"twas unexpected:--My uncle Toby, by nature
was not eloquent;--it had the greater effect:
--The surgeon was confounded;
--not that there wanted grounds for such, or greater marks of impatience,
--but 'twas unexpected too; in the four years he had attended him, he had
never seen any thing like it in my uncle Toby's carriage; he had never
once dropped one fretful or discontented word;--he had been all patience,
--all submission.

--We lose the right of complaining sometimes by forbearing it;--but
we often treble the force:--The surgeon was astonished
; but much more
so, when he heard my uncle Toby go on, and peremptorily insist upon his
healing up the wound directly,--or sending for Monsieur Ronjat, the king's
serjeant-surgeon, to do it for him.

The desire of life and health is implanted in man's nature;--the love of
liberty and enlargement is a sister-passion to it:
These my uncle Toby had
in common with his species--and either of them had been sufficient to account
for his earnest desire to get well and out of doors;--but I have told you
before, that nothing wrought with our family after the common way;--and
from the time and manner in which this eager desire shewed itself in the
present case, the penetrating reader will suspect there was some other cause
or crotchet for it in my uncle Toby's head:--There was so, and 'tis the sub-
ject of the next chapter to set forth what that cause and crotchet was. I own,
when that's done, "twill be time to return back to the parlour fire-side,
where we left my uncle Toby in the middle of his sentence.




Volume 2, Chapter V.



WHEN A MAN GIVES HIMSELF UP to the government of a ruling passion,--or,
in other words, when his Hobby-Horse grows headstrong,--farewell cool
reason and fair discretion!


My uncle Toby's wound was near well, and as soon as the surgeon recovere-
d his surprize, and could get leave to say as much--he told him,
'twas
just beginning to incarnate;
104 and that if no fresh exfoliation happened,
which there was no sign of,--it would be dried up in five or six weeks.
The sound of as many Olympiads, twelve hours before, would have conveyed
an idea of shorter duration to my uncle Toby's mind.--The succession of
his ideas was now rapid,--he broiled with impatience to put his design
in execution;--and so, without consulting farther with any soul living,
--which, by the bye, I think is right, when you are predetermined to
take no one soul's advice
,--he privately ordered Trim, his man, to pack
up a bundle of lint and dressings, and hire a chariot-and-four to be at the
door exactly by twelve o'clock that day, when he knew my father would be
upon 'Change.
105--So leaving a bank-note upon the table for the surgeon's
care of him, and a letter of tender thanks for his brother's--he packed up
his maps, his books of fortification, his instruments, &c. and by the help
of a crutch on one side, and Trim on the other,--my uncle Toby embarked
for Shandy-Hall.


The reason, or rather the rise of this sudden demigration was as follows:

The table in my uncle Toby's room, and at which, the night before this
change happened, he was sitting with his maps, &c. about him--being
somewhat of the smallest, for that infinity of great and small instruments
of knowledge which usually lay crowded upon it--he had the accident, in
reaching over for his tobacco-box, to throw down his compasses, and in
stooping to take the compasses up, with his sleeve he threw down his case
of instruments and snuffers;--and as the dice took a run against him, in
his endeavouring to catch the snuffers in falling,--he thrust Monsieur
Blondel off the table, and Count de Pagon o'top of him.

'Twas to no purpose for a man, lame as my uncle Toby was, to think of
redressing these evils by himself,--he rung his bell for his man Trim;--
Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, prithee see what confusion I have here been
making--I must have some better contrivance, Trim.--Can'st not thou
take my rule, and measure the length and breadth of this table, and then
go and bespeak me one as big again?
--Yes, an' please your Honour, rep-
lied Trim, making a bow; but I hope your Honour will be soon well
enough to get down to your country-seat, where,--as your Honour takes
so much pleasure in fortification, we could manage this matter to a T.
I must here inform you, that this servant of my uncle Toby's, who went
by the name of Trim, had been a corporal in my uncle's own company,--
his real name was James Butler,--but having got the nick-name of Trim,
in the regiment, my uncle Toby, unless when he happened to be very
angry with him, would never call him by any other name.

The poor fellow had been disabled for the service, by a wound on his
left knee by a musket-bullet, at the battle of Landen, which was two years
before the affair of Namur;--and as the fellow was well-beloved in the
regiment, and a handy fellow into the bargain, my uncle Toby took him
for his servant; and of an excellent use was he, attending my uncle Toby in
the camp and in his quarters as a valet, groom, barber, cook, sempster,
106
and nurse; and indeed, from first to last, waited upon him and served him
with great fidelity and affection.

My uncle Toby loved the man in return, and what attached him more to him
still, was the similitude of their knowledge.--For Corporal Trim, (for so,
for the future, I shall call him) by four years occasional attention to his
Master's discourse upon fortified towns, and
the advantage of prying and
peeping continually into his Master's plans, &c. exclusive and besides what
he gained Hobby-Horsically, as a body-servant, Non Hobby Horsical per
se;
107--had become no mean proficient in the science; and was thought,
by the cook and chamber-maid, to know as much of the nature of strong-
holds as my uncle Toby himself.


I have but one more stroke to give to finish Corporal Trim's character,
--and it is the only dark line in it.--
The fellow loved to advise,--or
rather to hear himself talk; his carriage, however, was so perfectly
respectful, 'twas easy to keep him silent when you had him so; but set
his tongue a-going,--you had no hold of him--he was voluble;--the eternal
interlardings of your Honour, with the respectfulness of Corporal Trim's
manner, interceding so strong in behalf of his elocution,--that though
you might have been incommoded,--you could not well be angry.
My
uncle Toby was seldom either the one or the other with him,--or, at least,
this fault, in Trim, broke no squares
108 with them. My uncle Toby, as I said,
loved the man;--and besides, as he ever looked upon a faithful servant,--
but as an humble friend,--
he could not bear to stop his mouth.--Such
was Corporal Trim.


If I durst presume, continued Trim, to give your Honour my advice,
and speak my opinion in this matter.--Thou art welcome, Trim, quoth
my uncle Toby--speak,--speak what thou thinkest upon the subject, man,
without fear.--
Why then, replied Trim, (not hanging his ears and scratch-
ing his head like a country-lout, but) stroking his hair back from his
forehead, and standing erect as before his division
,--I think, quoth Trim,
advancing his left, which was his lame leg, a little forwards,--and point-
ing with his right hand open towards a map of Dunkirk, which was pinned
against the hangings,--
I think, quoth Corporal Trim, with humble submis-
sion to your Honour's better judgment,--that these ravelins, bastions,
curtins, and hornworks, make but a poor, contemptible, fiddle-faddle
piece of work of it here upon paper, compared to what your Honour and I
could make of it were we in the country by ourselves, and had but a rood,
or a rood and a half of ground to do what we pleased with: As summer is
coming on, continued Trim, your Honour might sit out of doors, and
give me the nography--(Call it ichnography, quoth my uncle,)--of the
town or citadel, your Honour was pleased to sit down before,--and I will
be shot by your Honour upon the glacis of it, if I did not fortify it to
your Honour's mind.
--I dare say thou would'st, Trim, quoth my uncle.--For
if your Honour, continued the Corporal, could
but mark me the polygon,
with its exact lines and angles
--That I could do very well, quoth my
uncle.--
I would begin with the fosse, and if your Honour could tell me
the proper depth and breadth--I can to a hair's breadth, Trim, replied my
uncle.--I would throw out the earth upon this hand towards the town for
the scarp,--and on that hand towards the campaign for the counterscarp
.--
Very right, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby:--
And when I had sloped them to
your mind,--an' please your Honour, I would face the glacis, as the finest
fortifications are done in Flanders, with sods,--and as your Honour knows
they should be,--and I would make the walls and parapets with sods
too.--The best engineers call them gazons, Trim, said my uncle Toby.--
Whether they are gazons or sods, is not much matter, replied Trim; your
Honour knows they are ten times beyond a facing either of brick or stone
.--
I know they are, Trim in some respects,--quoth my uncle Toby, nodding
his head;--
for a cannon-ball enters into the gazon right onwards, without
bringing any rubbish down with it
, which might fill the fosse, (as was the
case at St. Nicolas's gate) and facilitate the passage over it.

Your Honour understands these matters, replied Corporal Trim, better
than any officer in his Majesty's service;--but
would your Honour please
to let the bespeaking of the table alone, and let us but go into the country,
I would work under your Honour's directions like a horse, and make fortifi-
cations for you something like a tansy,
109 with all their batteries, saps,
ditches, and palisadoes, that it should be worth all the world's riding
twenty miles to go and see it.

My uncle Toby blushed as red as scarlet as Trim went on;--but it was
not a blush of guilt,--of modesty,--or of anger,--it was a blush of joy;--
he was fired with Corporal Trim's project and description
.--Trim! said
my uncle Toby, thou hast said enough.--We might begin the campaign,
continued Trim, on the very day that his Majesty and the Allies take the
field, and
demolish them town by town as fast as--Trim, quoth my uncle
Toby, say no more. Your Honour, continued Trim,
might sit in your arm-
chair (pointing to it) this fine weather
, giving me your orders, and I would
--Say no more, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby--Besides,
your Honour would
get not only pleasure and good pastime--but good air, and good exercise,
and good health,--and your Honour's wound would be well in a month
.
Thou hast said enough, Trim,--quoth my uncle Toby (putting his hand
into his breeches-pocket)--I like thy project mightily.--And if your
Honour pleases, I'll this moment go and buy a pioneer's spade to take
down with us, and
I'll bespeak a shovel and a pick-axe, and a couple of--
Say no more, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, leaping up upon one leg, quite
overcome with rapture
,--and thrusting a guinea into Trim's hand,--Trim,
said my uncle Toby, say no more;--but go down, Trim, this moment, my
lad, and bring up my supper this instant.

Trim ran down and brought up his master's supper,--
to no purpose:--
Trim's plan of operation ran so in my uncle Toby's head, he could not
taste it.--Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, get me to bed.--"Twas all one.
--Corporal Trim's description had fired his imagination,--my uncle Toby
could not shut his eyes.--The more he considered it, the more bewitching
the scene appeared to him;
--so that, two full hours before day-light, he
had come to a final determination and had concerted the whole plan of his
and Corporal Trim's decampment.

My uncle Toby had a little neat country-house of his own, in the village
where my father's estate lay at Shandy, which had been left him by an old
uncle, with a small estate of about one hundred pounds a-year. Behind
this house, and contiguous to it, was a kitchen-garden of about half an
acre, and at the bottom of the garden, and
cut off from it by a tall yew
hedge, was a bowling-green, containing just about as much ground as
Corporal Trim wished for;--so that as Trim uttered the words, "A rood
and a half of ground to do what they would with,'--this identical bowling-
green instantly presented itself, and became curiously painted all at
once, upon the retina of my uncle Toby's fancy;--which was the physical
cause of making him change colour, or at least of heightening his blush,
to that immoderate degree I spoke of.

Never did lover post down to a beloved mistress with more heat and ex-
pectation, than my uncle Toby did, to enjoy this self-same thing in pri-
vate;--I say in private;--for it was sheltered from the house, as I told
you, by a tall yew hedge, and was covered on the other three sides, from
mortal sight, by rough holly and thick-set flowering shrubs:--so that the
idea of not being seen, did not a little contribute to the idea of pleasure
pre-conceived in my uncle Toby's mind.--Vain thought! however thick it
was planted about,--or private soever it might seem,--to think, dear uncle
Toby, of enjoying a thing which took up a whole rood and a half of
ground,--and not have it known!


How my uncle Toby and Corporal Trim managed this matter,--with
the history of their campaigns, which were no way barren of events,--
may make no uninteresting under-plot in the epitasis
110 and working-up of
this drama.--At present the scene must drop,--and change for the parlour
fire-side.




Volume 2, Chapter VI.



--WHAT CAN THEY BE DOING? brother, said my father.--I think, replied
my uncle Toby,--taking, as I told you, his pipe from his mouth, and
striking the ashes out of it as he began his sentence;--I think, re-
plied he,--it would not be amiss, brother, if we rung the bell.

Pray, what's all that racket over our heads, Obadiah?--quoth my fa-
ther;--my brother and I can scarce hear ourselves speak.

Sir, answered Obadiah, making a bow towards his left shoulder,--my
Mistress is taken very badly.--And where's Susannah running down the
garden there, as if they were going to ravish her?--Sir, she is running
the shortest cut into the town, replied Obadiah, to fetch the old midwife.--
Then saddle a horse, quoth my father, and do you go directly for Dr. Slop,
the man-midwife, with all our services,--and let him know your mistress
is fallen into labour--and that I desire he will return with you with all
speed.

It is very strange, says my father, addressing himself to my uncle Toby,
as Obadiah shut the door,--
as there is so expert an operator as Dr. Slop so
near,--that my wife should persist to the very last in this obstinate humour
of hers, in trusting the life of my child
, who has had one misfortune al-
ready, to the ignorance of an old woman;--and
not only the life of my child,
brother,--but her own life, and with it the lives of all the children I
might, peradventure, have begot out of her hereafter.


Mayhap, brother, replied my uncle Toby, my sister does it to save the
expence:--A pudding's end,--replied my father,--the Doctor must be paid
the same for inaction as action,--if not better,--to keep him in temper.

--Then it can be out of nothing in the whole world, quoth my uncle Toby,
in the simplicity of his heart,--but Modesty.--My sister, I dare say,
added he, does not care to let a man come so near her....
I will not say
whether my uncle Toby had completed the sentence or not;--'tis for his
advantage to suppose he had,--as,
I think, he could have added no One
Word which would have improved it.


If, on the contrary, my uncle Toby had not fully arrived at the period's
end--
then the world stands indebted to the sudden snapping of my father's
tobacco-pipe for one of the neatest examples of that ornamental figure in
oratory, which Rhetoricians stile the Aposiopesis.
111--Just Heaven! how
does the Poco piu and the Poco meno of the Italian artists;--the insensible
more or less, determine the precise line of beauty in the sentence, as well
as in the statue! How do the slight touches of the chisel, the pencil, the
pen, the fiddle-stick, et caetera,--give the true swell, which gives the
true pleasure!--O my countrymen:--be nice; be cautious of your language;
and never, O! never let it be forgotten upon what small particles your
eloquence and your fame depend.


--'My sister, mayhap,' quoth my uncle Toby, "does not choose to let a
man come so near her....' Make this dash,--'tis an Aposiopesis,--Take
the dash away, and write Backside,--'tis Bawdy.--Scratch Backside out,
and put Cover'd way in, 'tis a Metaphor;--and, I dare say, as fortification
ran so much in my uncle Toby's head, that if he had been left to have
added one word to the sentence,--that word was it.

But whether that was the case or not the case;--or whether the snapping
of my father's tobacco-pipe, so critically, happened through accident
or anger, will be seen in due time.




Volume 2, Chapter VII



THO' MY FATHER was a good natural philosopher,--yet he was something of
a moral philosopher too; for which reason,
when his tobacco-pipe snapp'd
short in the middle,--he had nothing to do, as such, but to have taken
hold of the two pieces, and thrown them gently upon the back of the
fire.--He did no such thing;--he threw them with all the violence in the
world;--and, to give the action still more emphasis,--he started upon
both his legs to do it.

This looked something like heat;
--and the manner of his reply to what
my uncle Toby was saying, proved it was so.

--"Not choose,' quoth my father, (repeating my uncle Toby's words) "to
let a man come so near her!'--By Heaven, brother Toby! you would try
the patience of Job;--and I think I have the plagues of one already
without it.--Why?--Where?--Wherein?--Wherefore?--Upon what account?
replied my uncle Toby: in the utmost astonishment.--To think, said my
father, of a man living to your age, brother, and knowing so little
about women!--
I know nothing at all about them,--replied my uncle Toby:
And I think, continued he, that the shock I received the year after the
demolition of Dunkirk, in my affair with widow Wadman;--which shock
you know I should not have received, but from my total ignorance of the
sex
,--has given me just cause to say, That I neither know nor do pretend
to know any thing about 'em or their concerns either.--
Methinks, brother,
replied my father, you might, at least, know so much as the right end of
a woman from the wrong.

It is said in Aristotle's Master Piece, "That when a man doth think of
any thing which is past,--he looketh down upon the ground;--but that
when he thinketh of something that is to come, he looketh up towards
the heavens.'
112

My uncle Toby, I suppose, thought of neither, for he look'd horizontal-
ly.--Right end! quoth my uncle Toby, muttering the two words low to himself,
and fixing his two eyes insensibly as he muttered them, upon a small cre-
vice, formed by a bad joint in the chimney-piece--Right end of a woman!--
I declare, quoth my uncle, I know no more which it is than the man in the
moon
;--and if I was to think, continued my uncle Toby (keeping his eyes
still fixed upon the bad joint) this month together, I am sure I should
not be able to find it out.

Then, brother Toby, replied my father, I will tell you.

Every thing in this world, continued my father (filling a fresh pipe)--
every thing in this world, my dear brother Toby, has two handles.--Not
always, quoth my uncle Toby.--At least, replied my father, every one has
two hands,--which comes to the same thing.--Now, if a man was to sit
down coolly, and consider within himself the make, the shape, the con-
struction, come-at-ability, and convenience of all the parts which con-
stitute the whole of that animal, called Woman, and compare them analo-
gically
--I never understood rightly the meaning of that word,--quoth my
uncle Toby.--


Analogy, replied my father, is the certain relation and agreement which
different--Here a devil of a rap at the door snapped my father's definition
(like his tobacco-pipe) in two,--and, at the same time, crushed the head
of as notable and curious a dissertation as ever was engendered in the
womb of speculation
;--it was some months before my father could get an
opportunity to be safely delivered of it
:--And, at this hour, it is a thing
full as problematical as the subject of the dissertation itself,--(consi-
dering the confusion and distresses of our domestick misadventures, which
are now coming thick one upon the back of another) whether I shall be able
to find a place for it in the third volume or not.



Volume 2, Chapter VIII



IT IS ABOUT AN HOUR AND A HALF'S tolerable good reading since my uncle
Toby rung the bell, when Obadiah was ordered to saddle a horse, and go
for Dr. Slop, the man-midwife;--so that no one can say, with reason, that
I have not allowed Obadiah time enough, poetically speaking, and consid-
ering the emergency too, both to go and come;--though, morally and
truly speaking, the man perhaps has scarce had time to get on his boots.


If the hypercritick will go upon this; and is resolved after all to take
a pendulum, and measure the true distance betwixt the ringing of the bell,
and the rap at the door;--and, after finding it to be no more than two
minutes, thirteen seconds, and three-fifths,--should take upon him to
insult over me for such a breach in the unity, or rather probability of
time;--I would remind him, that the idea of duration, and of its simple
modes, is got merely from the train and succession of our ideas--and is
the true scholastic pendulum,--and by which, as a scholar, I will be tried
in this matter,--abjuring and detesting the jurisdiction of all other pen-
dulums whatever.


I would therefore desire him to consider that it is but poor eight miles
from Shandy-Hall to Dr. Slop, the man-midwife's house:--and that
whilst
Obadiah has been going those said miles and back, I have brought my uncle
Toby from Namur, quite across all Flanders, into England:--That I have
had him ill upon my hands near four years;--and have since travelled him
and Corporal Trim in a chariot-and-four, a journey of near two hundred
miles down into Yorkshire
.--all which put together, must have prepared
the reader's imagination for the entrance of Dr. Slop upon the stage,--as
much, at least (I hope) as a dance, a song, or a concerto between the acts.


If my hypercritick is intractable, alledging, that two minutes and thir-
teen seconds are no more than two minutes and thirteen seconds,--when I
have said all I can about them; and that this plea, though it might save
me dramatically, will damn me biographically, rendering my book from
this very moment, a professed Romance, which, before, was a book apoc-
ryphal:
--If I am thus pressed--I then put an end to the whole objection
and controversy about it all at once,--by acquainting him, that Obadiah
had not got above threescore yards from the stable-yard, before he met
with Dr. Slop;--and
indeed he gave a dirty proof that he had met with
him, and was within an ace of giving a tragical one too.


Imagine to yourself;
--but this had better begin a new chapter.



Volume 2, Chapter IX.



IMAGINE TO YOURSELF a little squat, uncourtly figure of a Doctor Slop,113
of about four feet and a half perpendicular height, with a breadth of back,
and a sesquipedality of belly
, which might have done honour to a serjeant
in the horse-guards.


Such were the out-lines of Dr. Slop's figure, which--if you have read Ho-
garth's analysis of beauty,
114 and if you have not, I wish you would;--you
must know, may as certainly be caricatured, and conveyed to the mind by
three strokes as three hundred.

Imagine such a one,--for such, I say, were the outlines of Dr. Slop's
figure, coming slowly along, foot by foot, waddling thro' the dirt upon
the vertebrae of a little diminutive pony, of a pretty colour--but of
strength,--alack!--scarce able to have made an amble of it, under such a
fardel, had the roads been in an ambling condition.--They were not.--
Imagine to yourself, Obadiah mounted upon a strong monster of a coach-
horse, pricked into a full gallop, and making all practicable speed the
adverse way.

Pray, Sir, let me interest you a moment in this description.

Had Dr. Slop beheld Obadiah a mile off, posting in a narrow lane directly
towards him, at that monstrous rate,--splashing and plunging like a devil
thro' thick and thin, as he approached, would not such a phaenomenon,
with such a vortex of mud and water moving along with it, round its axis,--
have been a subject of juster apprehension to Dr. Slop in his situation,
than the worst of Whiston's comets?
115--To say nothing of the Nucleus; that
is, of Obadiah and the coach-horse.--In my idea, the vortex alone of 'em
was enough to have involved and carried, if not the doctor, at least the
doctor's pony, quite away with it. What then do you think must the terror
and hydrophobia of Dr. Slop have been, when you read (which you are just
going to do)
that he was advancing thus warily along towards Shandy-Hall,
and had approached to within sixty yards of it, and within five yards of
a sudden turn, made by an acute angle of the garden-wall,--
and in the
dirtiest part of a dirty lane,--when Obadiah and his coach-horse turned
the corner, rapid, furious,--pop,--full upon him!--Nothing, I think, in
nature, can be supposed more terrible than such a rencounter,--so im-
prompt! so ill prepared to stand the shock of it as Dr. Slop was.


What could Dr. Slop do?--he crossed himself--Pugh!--but the doctor,
Sir, was a Papist.--No matter; he had better have kept hold of the
pummel.--He had so;--nay, as it happened, he had better have done
nothing at all; for in crossing himself he let go his whip,--and in at-
tempting to save his whip betwixt his knee and his saddle's skirt, as
it slipped, he lost his stirrup,--in losing which he lost his seat;--
and in the multitude of all these losses (which, by the bye, shews what
little advantage there is in crossing) the unfortunate doctor lost his
presence of mind. So that without waiting for Obadiah's onset, he left
his pony to its destiny, tumbling off it diagonally, something in the
stile and manner of a pack of wool, and without any other consequence
from the fall, save that of being left (as it would have been) with the
broadest part of him sunk about twelve inches deep in the mire.

Obadiah pull'd off his cap twice to Dr. Slop;--once as he was falling,--
and then again when he saw him seated.--Ill-timed complaisance;--had
not the fellow better have stopped his horse, and got off and help'd him?--
Sir, he did all that his situation would allow;--but the Momentum of the
coach-horse was so great, that Obadiah could not do it all at once; he rode
in a circle three times round Dr. Slop, before he could fully accomplish it
any how;--and at the last, when he did stop his beast, 'twas done with
such an explosion of mud, that Obadiah had better have been a league off.
In short, never was a Dr. Slop so beluted,
116 and so transubstantiated, since
that affair came into fashion.




Volume 2, Chapter X.



WHEN DR. SLOP entered the back parlour, where my father and my uncle
Toby were discoursing upon the nature of women,--it was hard to deter-
mine whether Dr. Slop's figure, or Dr. Slop's presence, occasioned more
surprize to them; for as the accident happened so near the house, as
not to make it worth while for Obadiah to remount him,--
Obadiah had led
him in as he was, unwiped, unappointed, unannealed,
117 with all his stains
and blotches on him.--He stood like Hamlet's ghost, motionless and
speechless, for a full minute and a half at the parlour-door (Obadiah
still holding his hand) with all the majesty of mud. His hinder parts,
upon which he had received his fall, totally besmeared,--and in every
other part of him, blotched over in such a manner with Obadiah's ex-
plosion, that you would have sworn (without mental reservation) that
every grain of it had taken effect.


Here was a fair opportunity for my uncle Toby to have triumphed over
my father in his turn;--for no mortal, who had beheld Dr. Slop in that
pickle, could have dissented from so much, at least, of my uncle Toby's
opinion, "That mayhap his sister might not care to let such a Dr. Slop
come so near her....' But it was the Argumentum ad hominem;
118 and if my
uncle Toby was not very expert at it, you may think, he might not care
to use it.--No; the reason was,--'twas not his nature to insult.

Dr. Slop's presence at that time, was no less problematical than the mode
of it; tho' it is certain, one moment's reflexion in my father might have
solved it; for he had apprized Dr. Slop but the week before, that my mother
was at her full reckoning; and as the doctor had heard nothing since, 'twas
natural and very political too in him, to have taken a ride to Shandy-Hall,
as he did, merely to see how matters went on.


But
my father's mind took unfortunately a wrong turn in the investiga-
tion;
running, like the hypercritick's, altogether upon the ringing of the
bell and the rap upon the door,--measuring their distance, and keeping
his mind so intent upon the operation, as to have power to think of no-
thing else,--common-place infirmity of the greatest mathematicians! work-
ing with might and main at the demonstration, and so wasting all their
strength upon it, that they have none left in them to draw the corollary,
to do good with.

The ringing of the bell, and the rap upon the door, struck likewise strong
upon the sensorium of my uncle Toby,--but it excited a very different
train of thoughts;--the two irreconcileable pulsations instantly brought
Stevinus, the great engineer, along with them, into my uncle Toby's mind.

What business Stevinus
119 had in this affair,--is the greatest problem of
all:--It shall be solved,--but not in the next chapter.



Volume 2, Chapter XI.



WRITING, WHEN PROPERLY MANAGED (as you may be sure I think mine is)
is but a different name for conversation. As no one, who knows what he
is about in good company, would venture to talk all;--so no author, who
understands the just boundaries of decorum and good-breeding, would
presume to think all: The truest respect which you can pay to the reader's
understanding, is to halve this matter amicably, and leave him something
to imagine, in his turn, as well as yourself.

For my own part, I am eternally paying him compliments of this kind,
and do all that lies in my power to keep his imagination as busy as my
own.


'Tis his turn now;--I have given an ample description of Dr. Slop's sad
overthrow, and of his sad appearance in the back-parlour;--his imagi-
nation must now go on with it for a while.

Let the reader imagine then, that Dr. Slop has told his tale--and in
what words, and with what aggravations, his fancy chooses;--Let him
suppose, that Obadiah has told his tale also, and with such rueful looks
of affected concern, as he thinks best will contrast the two figures as
they stand by each other.--Let him imagine, that my father has stepped up
stairs to see my mother.--And, to conclude this work of imagination,--

let him imagine the doctor washed,--rubbed down, and condoled,--felici-
tated,
--got into a pair of Obadiah's pumps, stepping forwards towards
the door, upon the very point of entering upon action.

Truce!--truce, good Dr. Slop!--stay thy obstetrick hand;--return it safe
into thy bosom to keep it warm;--little dost thou know what obstacles,--
little dost thou think what hidden causes, retard its operation!--

Hast thou, Dr. Slop,--hast thou been entrusted with the secret articles of
the solemn treaty which has brought thee into this place?--Art thou aware
that at this instant, a daughter of Lucina
120 is put obstetrically over thy
head? Alas!--'tis too true.--Besides, great son of Pilumnus! what canst
thou do?--
Thou hast come forth unarm'd;--thou hast left thy tire-tete,121-
-thy new-invented forceps,--thy crotchet,--thy squirt, and all thy instru-
ments of salvation and deliverance, behind
thee,--By Heaven! at this moment
they are hanging up in a green bays bag, betwixt thy two pistols, at the
bed's head!--Ring;--call;--send Obadiah back upon the coach-horse to
bring them with all speed.

--Make great haste, Obadiah, quoth my father, and I'll give thee a crown!
and quoth my uncle Toby, I'll give him another.



Volume 2, Chapter XII.



YOUR SUDDEN AND UNEXPECTED ARRIVAL, quoth my uncle Toby, addres-
sing himself to Dr. Slop, (all three of them sitting down to the fire together,
as my uncle Toby began to speak)--
instantly brought the great Stevinus
into my head, who, you must know, is a favourite author with me.--Then,
added my father, making use of the argument Ad Crumenam,
122--I will lay
twenty guineas to a single crown-piece (which will serve to give away to
Obadiah when he gets back) that this same Stevinus was some engineer or
other--or has wrote something or other, either directly or indirectly,
upon the science of fortification.

He has so,--replied my uncle Toby.--
I knew it, said my father, though,
for the soul of me, I cannot see what kind of connection there can be
betwixt Dr. Slop's sudden coming, and a discourse upon fortification;--
yet I fear'd it.
--Talk of what we will, brother,--or let the occasion be
never so foreign or unfit for the subject,--you are sure to bring it in.
I would not, brother Toby, continued my father,--
I declare I would not
have my head so full of curtins and horn-works.--That I dare say you
would not, quoth Dr. Slop, interrupting him, and laughing most immod-
erately at his pun.

Dennis the critic could not detest and abhor a pun, or the insinuation
of a pun, more cordially than my father;--he would grow testy upon it at
any time;--but to be broke in upon by one, in a serious discourse, was
as bad, he would say, as a fillip upon the nose;
--he saw no difference.

Sir, quoth my uncle Toby, addressing himself to Dr. Slop,--the curtins
my brother Shandy mentions here, have nothing to do with beadsteads;--
tho', I know Du Cange
123 says, "That bed-curtains, in all probability, have
taken their name from them;'--
nor have the horn-works he speaks of, any
thing in the world to do with the horn-works of cuckoldom
: But the Cur-
tin, Sir, is the word we use in fortification, for that part of the wall
or rampart which lies between the two bastions and joins them--Besiegers
seldom offer to carry on their attacks directly against the curtin, for
this reason, because they are so well flanked. ('Tis the case of other
curtains, quoth Dr. Slop, laughing.)
However, continued my uncle Toby,
to make them sure, we generally choose to place ravelins before them,
taking care only to extend them beyond the fosse or ditch:--The common
men, who know very little of fortification, confound the ravelin and
the half-moon together,--tho' they are very different things;--not in
their figure or construction, for we make them exactly alike, in all
points; for they always consist of two faces, making a salient angle,
with the gorges, not straight, but in form of a crescent;--Where then
lies the difference? (quoth my father, a little testily.)
--In their
situations, answered my uncle Toby:--For when a ravelin, brother, stands
before the curtin, it is a ravelin; and when a ravelin stands before a
bastion, then the ravelin is not a ravelin;--it is a half-moon;--a half-
moon likewise is a half-moon, and no more, so long as it stands before
its bastion;--but was it to change place, and get before the curtin,--
'twould be no longer a half-moon; a half-moon, in that case, is not a
half-moon;--'tis no more than a ravelin.--I think, quoth my father,
that the noble science of defence has its weak sides--as well as
others.

As for the horn-work (high! ho! sigh'd my father) which, continued my
uncle Toby, my brother was speaking of, they are a very considerable part
of an outwork;--they are called by the French engineers, Ouvrage a corne,
and we generally make them to cover such places as we suspect to be
weaker than the rest;--'tis formed by two epaulments or demi-bastions--
they are very pretty,--and if you will take a walk, I'll engage to shew you
one well worth your trouble
.--I own, continued my uncle Toby, when we
crown them,--they are much stronger, but then they are very expensive,
and take up a great deal of ground, so that, in my opinion, they are most
of use to cover or defend the head of a camp; otherwise the double tenaille--
By the mother who bore us!--brother Toby, quoth my father, not able to
hold out any longer,--you would provoke a saint;--here have you got us,
I know not how, not only souse into the middle of the old subject again:--
But so full is your head of these confounded works, that though my wife
is this moment in the pains of labour, and you hear her cry out, yet
nothing will serve you but to carry off the man-midwife.
--Accoucheur,--if
you please, quoth Dr. Slop.--
With all my heart, replied my father, I don't
care what they call you,--but I wish the whole science of fortification,
with all its inventors, at the devil;--it has been the death of thousands,--
and it will be mine in the end.--I would not, I would not, brother Toby,
have my brains so full of saps, mines, blinds, gabions, pallisadoes, ravelins,
half-moons, and such trumpery, to be proprietor of Namur, and of all the
towns in Flanders with it.

My uncle Toby was a man patient of injuries;--not from want of courage,
--I have told you in a former chapter,
124 "that he was a man of courage:'
--And will add here, that where just occasions presented, or called it
forth,--I know no man under whose arm I would have sooner taken shelter;
--nor did this arise from any insensibility or obtuseness of his intel-
lectual parts;--for he felt this insult of my father's as feelingly as a
man could do;--but
he was of a peaceful, placid nature,--no jarring el-
ement in it,--all was mixed up so kindly within him; my uncle Toby had
scarce a heart to retaliate upon a fly.

--Go--says he, one day at dinner, to an over-grown one which had buzzed
about his nose, and tormented him cruelly all dinner-time,--and which
after infinite attempts, he had caught at last, as it flew by him;--I'll
not hurt thee, says my uncle Toby, rising from his chair, and going across
the room, with the fly in his hand,--I'll not hurt a hair of thy head:--Go,
says he, lifting up the sash, and opening his hand as he spoke, to let it
escape;--go, poor devil, get thee gone, why should I hurt thee?--This
world surely is wide enough to hold both thee and me.


I was but ten years old when this happened: but whether it was, that the
action itself was more in unison to my nerves at that age of pity, which
instantly set my whole frame into one vibration of most pleasurable sen-
sation;--or how far the manner and expression of it might go towards it;--
or in what degree, or by what secret magick,--a tone of voice and harmony
of movement, attuned by mercy, might find a passage to my heart, I know
not;--this I know, that the lesson of universal good-will then taught
and imprinted by my uncle Toby, has never since been worn out of my
mind:
And tho' I would not depreciate what the study of the Literae
humaniores
,
125 at the university, have done for me in that respect, or
discredit the other helps of an expensive education bestowed upon me,

both at home and abroad since;--yet I often think that I owe one half
of my philanthropy to that one accidental impression.

This is to serve for parents and governors instead of a whole volume
upon the subject.

I could not give the reader this stroke in my uncle Toby's picture, by the
instrument with which I drew the other parts of it,--that taking in no
more than the mere Hobby-Horsical likeness:--this is a part of his moral
character. My father, in this patient endurance of wrongs, which I men-
tion, was very different, as the reader must long ago have noted;
he had
a much more acute and quick sensibility of nature, attended with a little
soreness of temper; tho' this never transported him to any thing which
looked like malignancy:--yet in the little rubs and vexations of life,
'twas apt to shew itself in a drollish and witty kind of peevishness:--

He was, however, frank and generous in his nature;--at all times open
to conviction; and
in the little ebullitions of this subacid humour
towards others,
but particularly towards my uncle Toby, whom he truly
loved:--he would feel more pain, ten times told (except in the affair
of my aunt Dinah, or where an hypothesis was concerned) than what he
ever gave.

The characters of the two brothers, in this view of them, reflected light
upon each other, and appeared with great advantage in this affair which
arose about Stevinus.

I need not tell the reader, if he keeps a Hobby-Horse,--that a man's
Hobby-Horse is as tender a part as he has about him; and that these
unprovoked strokes at my uncle Toby's could not be unfelt by him.--No:--
as I said above, my uncle Toby did feel them, and very sensibly too.


Pray, Sir, what said he?--How did he behave?--O, Sir!--it was great:
For as soon as my father had done insulting his Hobby-Horse,--he turned
his head without the least emotion, from Dr. Slop, to whom he was ad-
dressing his discourse, and
looking up into my father's face, with a
countenance spread over with so much good-nature;--so placid;--so fra-
ternal;--so inexpressibly tender towards him:--it penetrated my father to
his heart:
He rose up hastily from his chair, and seizing hold of both my
uncle Toby's hands as he spoke:--Brother Toby, said he:--I beg thy par-
don;--forgive, I pray thee, this rash humour which my mother gave me.--
My dear, dear brother, answered my uncle Toby, rising up by my father's
help, say no more about it;--
you are heartily welcome, had it been ten
times as much, brother. But 'tis ungenerous, replied my father, to hurt
any man;--a brother worse;--but to hurt a brother of such gentle manners,--
so unprovoking,--and so unresenting;--'tis base:--By Heaven, 'tis coward-
ly.--You are heartily welcome, brother, quoth my uncle Toby,--had it
been fifty times as much.--Besides, what have I to do, my dear Toby,
cried my father, either with your amusements or your pleasures, unless
it was in my power (which it is not) to increase their measure?

--Brother Shandy, answered my uncle Toby, looking wistfully in his
face,--you are much mistaken in this point:--for you do increase my
pleasure very much, in begetting children for the Shandy family at your
time of life.--But, by that, Sir, quoth Dr. Slop, Mr. Shandy increases his
own.--Not a jot, quoth my father.




Volume 2, Chapter XIII.



MY BROTHER DOES IT, quoth my uncle Toby, out of principle.--In a family
way, I suppose, quoth Dr. Slop.--Pshaw!--said my father,--'tis not worth
talking of.




Volume 2, Chapter XIV.



AT THE END OF THE LAST CHAPTER, my father and my uncle Toby were left
both standing, like Brutus and Cassius
,126 at the close of the scene, making
up their accounts.

As my father spoke the three last words,--he sat down;--my uncle Toby
exactly followed his example, only, that before he took his chair, he rung
the bell, to order Corporal Trim, who was in waiting, to step home for
Stevinus:--my uncle Toby's house being no farther off than the opposite
side of the way.

Some men would have dropped the subject of Stevinus;--but my uncle
Toby had no resentment in his heart, and he went on with the subject,
to shew my father that he had none.

Your sudden appearance, Dr. Slop, quoth my uncle, resuming the discourse,
instantly brought Stevinus into my head. (My father, you may be sure, did
not offer to lay any more wagers upon Stevinus's head.)--Because, contin-
ued my uncle Toby, the celebrated sailing chariot, which belonged to Prince
Maurice, and was of such wonderful contrivance and velocity, as to carry
half a dozen people thirty German miles, in I don't know how few minutes,
--was invented by Stevinus, that great mathematician and engineer.

You might have spared your servant the trouble, quoth Dr. Slop (as the
fellow is lame) of going for Stevinus's account of it, because in my return
from Leyden thro' the Hague, I walked as far as Schevling, which is two
long miles, on purpose to take a view of it.

That's nothing, replied my uncle Toby, to what the learned Peireskius
did, who walked a matter of five hundred miles, reckoning from Paris to
Schevling, and from Schevling to Paris back again, in order to see it, and
nothing else.

Some men cannot bear to be out-gone.

The more fool Peireskius, replied Dr. Slop. But mark, 'twas out of no
contempt of Peireskius at all;--but that Peireskius's indefatigable labour
in trudging so far on foot, out of love for the sciences, reduced the exploit
of Dr. Slop, in that affair, to nothing
:--the more fool Peireskius, said he
again.--Why so?--replied my father, taking his brother's part, not only
to make reparation as fast as he could for the insult he had given him,
which sat still upon my father's mind;--but partly, that my father began
really to interest himself in the discourse.--
Why so?--said he. Why is
Peireskius, or any man else, to be abused for an appetite for that, or any
other morsel of sound knowledge: For notwithstanding I know nothing
of the chariot in question, continued he, the inventor of it must have had
a very mechanical head; and tho' I cannot guess upon what principles of
philosophy he has atchieved it;--yet certainly his machine has been con-
structed upon solid ones, be they what they will, or it could not have
answered at the rate my brother mentions.


It answered, replied my uncle Toby, as well, if not better; for, as Peireskius
elegantly expresses it, speaking of the velocity of its motion, Tam citus
erat, quam erat ventus; which, unless I have forgot my Latin, is, that it was
as swift as the wind itself.

But pray, Dr. Slop, quoth my father, interrupting my uncle (tho' not
without begging pardon for it at the same time) upon what principles was
this self-same chariot set a-going?--Upon very pretty principles to be sure,
replied Dr. Slop:--And I have often wondered, continued he, evading the
question, why none of our gentry, who live upon large plains like this of
ours,--(especially they whose wives are not past child-bearing) attempt
nothing of this kind; for
it would not only be infinitely expeditious upon
sudden calls, to which the sex is subject,--if the wind only served,--but
would be excellent good husbandry to make use of the winds, which cost
nothing, and which eat nothing, rather than horses, which (the devil take
'em) both cost and eat a great deal.

For that very reason, replied my father, "Because they cost nothing, and
because they eat nothing,'--the scheme is bad;--it is the consumption of
our products, as well as the manufactures of them, which gives bread to
the hungry, circulates trade,--brings in money, and supports the value of
our lands;--and tho', I own, if I was a Prince, I would generously recom-
pense the scientifick head which brought forth such contrivances;--yet I
would as peremptorily suppress the use of them.

My father here had got into his element,--and was going on as prosper-
ously with his dissertation upon trade, as my uncle Toby had before, upon
his of fortification;--but to the loss of much sound knowledge, the des-
tinies in the morning had decreed that no dissertation of any kind should
be spun by my father that day
,--for as he opened his mouth to begin the
next sentence,




Volume 2, Chapter XV.



IN POPPED CORPORAL TRIM with Stevinus:--But 'twas too late,--all the
discourse had been exhausted without him, and was running into a new
channel.

--You may take the book home again, Trim, said my uncle Toby, nodding to
him.

But prithee, Corporal, quoth my father, drolling,--look first into it, and see
if thou canst spy aught of a sailing chariot in it.

Corporal Trim, by being in the service, had learned to obey,--and not
to remonstrate,--so taking the book to a side-table, and running over the
leaves; An' please your Honour, said Trim, I can see no such thing;--
however, continued the Corporal, drolling a little in his turn, I'll make
sure work of it, an' please your Honour;--so taking hold of the two covers
of the book, one in each hand, and letting the leaves fall down as he bent
the covers back, he gave the book a good sound shake.

There is something falling out, however, said Trim, an' please your Hon-
our;--but it is not a chariot, or any thing like one:--Prithee, Corporal,
said my father, smiling, what is it then?--I think, answered Trim, stooping
to take it up,--'tis more like a sermon,--for it begins with a text of scrip-
ture, and the chapter and verse;--and then goes on, not as a chariot, but
like a sermon directly.

The company smiled.


I cannot conceive how it is possible, quoth my uncle Toby, for such a
thing as a sermon to have got into my Stevinus.

I think 'tis a sermon, replied Trim:--but if it please your Honours, as it
is a fair hand, I will read you a page;--for Trim, you must know, loved to
hear himself read almost as well as talk.


I have ever a strong propensity, said my father, to look into things which
cross my way, by such strange fatalities as these;--and as we have nothing
better to do, at least till Obadiah gets back, I shall be obliged to you,
brother, if Dr. Slop has no objection to it, to order the Corporal to give us
a page or two of it,--if he is as able to do it, as he seems willing. An'
please your honour, quoth Trim, I officiated two whole campaigns, in Flanders,
as clerk to the chaplain of the regiment.--He can read it, quoth my uncle
Toby, as well as I can.--Trim, I assure you, was the best scholar in my
company, and should have had the next halberd,
127 but for the poor fellow's
misfortune. Corporal Trim laid his hand upon his heart, and made an
humble bow to his master; then laying down his hat upon the floor, and
taking up the sermon in his left hand, in order to have his right at lib-
erty,--he advanced, nothing doubting, into the middle of the room, where
he could best see, and be best seen by his audience.




Volume 2, Chapter XVI.



--IF YOU HAVE ANY OBJECTION,--said my father, addressing himself to Dr.
Slop. Not in the least, replied Dr. Slop;--for it does not appear on which
side of the question it is wrote,--
it may be a composition of a divine of
our church, as well as yours,--so that we run equal risques.--'Tis wrote
upon neither side, quoth Trim, for 'tis only upon Conscience
, an' please
your Honours.

Trim's reason put his audience into good humour,--all but Dr. Slop,
who turning his head about towards Trim, looked a little angry.

Begin, Trim,--and read distinctly, quoth my father.--I will, an' please
your Honour, replied the Corporal, making a bow, and bespeaking attention
with a slight movement of his right hand.




Volume 2, Chapter XVII.



--BUT BEFORE THE CORPORAL BEGINS, I must first give you a descrip-
tion of his attitude;--otherwise he will naturally stand represented, by your
imagination, in an uneasy posture,--stiff,--perpendicular,--dividing the
weight of his body equally upon both legs;--his eye fixed, as if on duty;
--his look determined,--clenching the sermon in his left hand, like his
firelock.--In a word, you would be apt to paint Trim, as if he was stand-
ing in his platoon ready for action,--His attitude was as unlike all this
as you can conceive.

He stood before them with his body swayed, and bent forwards just so
far, as to make an angle of 85 degrees and a half upon the plain of the
horizon;--which sound orators, to whom I address this, know very well
to be the true persuasive angle of incidence;--in any other angle you may
talk and preach;--'tis certain;--and it is done every day;--but with what
effect,--I leave the world to judge!


The necessity of this precise angle of 85 degrees and a half to a math-
ematical exactness,--does it not shew us, by the way, how the arts and
sciences mutually befriend each other?

How the duce Corporal Trim, who knew not so much as an acute angle
from an obtuse one, came to hit it so exactly;--or whether it was chance
or nature, or good sense or imitation, &c. shall be commented upon in
that part of the cyclopaedia of arts and sciences, where the instrumental
parts of the eloquence of the senate, the pulpit, and the bar, the cof-
feehouse, the bed-chamber, and fire-side, fall under consideration.


He stood,--for I repeat it, to take the picture of him in at one view,
with his body swayed, and somewhat bent forwards,--his right leg from
under him, sustaining seven-eighths of his whole weight,--the foot of his
left leg, the defect of which was no disadvantage to his attitude, advanced
a little,--not laterally, nor forwards, but in a line betwixt them;--
his knee
bent, but that not violently,--but so as to fall within the limits of the line
of beauty;
128--and I add, of the line of science too;--for consider, it had one
eighth part of his body to bear up;
--so that in this case the position of the
leg is determined,--because the foot could be no farther advanced, or the
knee more bent, than what would allow him, mechanically to receive an
eighth part of his whole weight under it, and to carry it too.

This I recommend to painters;--need I add,--to orators!--I think not;
for unless they practise it,--they must fall upon their noses.


So much for Corporal Trim's body and legs
.--He held the sermon loosely,
not carelessly, in his left hand, raised something above his stomach, and
detached a little from his breast;--his right arm falling negligently by his
side, as nature and the laws of gravity ordered it,--but with the palm of it
open and turned towards his audience, ready to aid the sentiment in case
it stood in need.


Corporal Trim's eyes and the muscles of his face were in full harmony
with the other parts of him;--he looked frank,--unconstrained,--some-
thing assured,--but not bordering upon assurance.

Let not the critic ask how Corporal Trim could come by all this.--I've
told him it should be explained;--but so he stood before my father, my
uncle Toby, and Dr. Slop
,--so swayed his body, so contrasted his limbs, and
with such an oratorical sweep throughout the whole figure,--a statuary
might have modelled from it;--nay, I doubt whether the oldest Fellow of a
College,--or the Hebrew Professor himself, could have much mended it.


Trim made a bow, and read as follows:



           The Sermon.129
           Hebrews xiii. 18.

--For we trust we have a good Conscience.

"Trust!--Trust we have a good conscience!'

(Certainly, Trim, quoth my father, interrupting him, you give that sen-
tence a very improper accent; for you curl up your nose, man, and read it
with such a sneering tone, as if the Parson was going to abuse the Apostle.

He is, an' please your Honour, replied Trim. Pugh! said my father,
smiling.

Sir, quoth Dr. Slop, Trim is certainly in the right; for the writer (who I
perceive is a Protestant) by the snappish manner in which he takes up the
apostle, is certainly going to abuse him;
--if this treatment of him has not
done it already. But from whence, replied my father, have you concluded
so soon, Dr. Slop, that the writer is of our church?--for aught I can see
yet,--he may be of any church.--
Because, answered Dr. Slop, if he was of
ours,--he durst no more take such a licence,--than a bear by his beard:--
If, in our communion, Sir, a man was to insult an apostle,--a saint,--or
even the paring of a saint's nail,--he would have his eyes scratched out.--
What, by the saint?
quoth my uncle Toby. No, replied Dr. Slop, he would
have an old house over his head.
130 Pray is the Inquisition an ancient build-
ing, answered my uncle Toby, or is it a modern one?--I know nothing of
architecture, replied Dr. Slop.--An' please your Honours, quoth Trim,
the Inquisition is the vilest--
Prithee spare thy description, Trim, I hate
the very name of it, said my father.--No matter for that, answered Dr.
Slop,--it has its uses; for tho' I'm no great advocate for it, yet, in such a
case as this, he would soon be taught better manners; and I can tell him, if
he went on at that rate, would be flung into the Inquisition for his pains.
God help him then, quoth my uncle Toby. Amen, added Trim; for Heaven
above knows, I have a poor brother who has been fourteen years a captive
in it.--I never heard one word of it before, said my uncle Toby, hastily:--
How came he there, Trim?--O, Sir, the story will make your heart bleed,--
as it has made mine a thousand times;--but it is too long to be told now;--
your Honour shall hear it from first to last some day when I am working
beside you in our fortifications;--but the short of the story is this;--That

my brother Tom went over a servant to Lisbon,--and then married a Jew's
widow, who kept a small shop, and sold sausages, which somehow or
other, was the cause of his being taken in the middle of the night out of his
bed, where he was lying with his wife and two small children, and carried
directly to the Inquisition, where, God help him, continued Trim, fetch-
ing a sigh from the bottom of his heart,--the poor honest lad lies con-
fined at this hour; he was as honest a soul, added Trim, (pulling out his
handkerchief) as ever blood warmed.--

--The tears trickled down Trim's cheeks faster than he could well wipe
them away.--A dead silence in the room ensued for some minutes.--
Certain proof of pity!


Come Trim, quoth my father, after he saw the poor fellow's grief had
got a little vent,--read on,--and put this melancholy story out of thy
head:--I grieve that I interrupted thee; but prithee begin the sermon
again;--for
if the first sentence in it is matter of abuse, as thou sayest, I
have a great desire to know what kind of provocation the apostle has given.

Corporal Trim wiped his face, and returned his handkerchief into his
pocket, and, making a bow as he did it,--he began again.)



           The Sermon.
            Hebrews xiii. 18.

--For we trust we have a good Conscience.

"Trust! trust we have a good conscience! Surely if there is any thing
in this life which a man may depend upon, and to the knowledge of which
he is capable of arriving upon the most indisputable evidence, it must
be this very thing,--whether he has a good conscience or no.'


(I am positive I am right, quoth Dr. Slop.)

"If a man thinks at all, he cannot well be a stranger to the true state
of this account:--he must be privy to his own thoughts and desires;--he
must remember his past pursuits, and know certainly the true springs and
motives, which, in general, have governed the actions of his life.'


(I defy him, without an assistant, quoth Dr. Slop.)

"In other matters we may be deceived by false appearances; and, as the
wise man complains, hardly do we guess aright at the things that are upon
the earth, and with labour do we find the things that are before us
.
131 But
here the mind has all the evidence and facts within herself;--is con-
scious of the web she has wove;--knows its texture and fineness, and
the exact share which every passion has had in working upon the several
designs which virtue or vice has planned before her.'


(The language is good, and I declare Trim reads very well, quoth my
father.)

"Now,--as conscience is nothing else but the knowledge which the mind
has within herself of this; and the judgment, either of approbation or
censure, which it unavoidably makes upon the successive actions of our
lives; 'tis plain you will say, from the very terms of the proposition,--
whenever this inward testimony goes against a man, and he stands self-
accused, that he must necessarily be a guilty man.--And, on the contrary,
when the report is favourable on his side, and his heart condemns him
not:--that it is not a matter of trust, as the apostle intimates, but a
matter of certainty and fact
, that the conscience is good, and that the
man must be good also.'


(Then the apostle is altogether in the wrong, I suppose, quoth Dr. Slop,
and the Protestant divine is in the right. Sir, have patience, replied my
father, for
I think it will presently appear that St. Paul and the Protestant
divine are both of an opinion.--As nearly so, quoth Dr. Slop, as east is to
west;--but this, continued he, lifting both hands, comes from the liberty
of the press.


It is no more at the worst, replied my uncle Toby, than the liberty of
the pulpit; for it does not appear that the sermon is printed, or ever
likely to be.


Go on, Trim, quoth my father.)

"At first sight this may seem to be a true state of the case: and I make
no doubt but the knowledge of right and wrong is so truly impressed upon
the mind of man,
--that did no such thing ever happen, as that the con-
science of a man, by long habits of sin, might (as the scripture assures
it may) insensibly become hard;--and, like some tender parts of his body,
by much stress and continual hard usage, lose by degrees that nice sense
and perception with which God and nature endowed it:--Did this never
happen;--or was it certain that self-love could never hang the least bias
upon the judgment;--or that the little interests below could rise up and
perplex the faculties of our upper regions, and encompass them about
with clouds and thick darkness:--Could no such thing as favour and af-
fection enter this sacred Court--Did Wit disdain to take a bribe in it;--
or was ashamed to shew its face as an advocate for an unwarrantable en-
joyment: Or, lastly, were we assured that Interest stood always uncon-
cerned whilst the cause was hearing--and that Passion never got into the
judgment-seat, and pronounced sentence in the stead of Reason,
which is
supposed always to preside and determine upon the case:--Was this truly
so, as the objection must suppose;--no doubt then the religious and moral
state of a man would be exactly what he himself esteemed it:--and the
guilt or innocence of every man's life could be known, in general, by no
better measure, than the degrees of his own approbation and censure.


"I own, in one case, whenever a man's conscience does accuse him (as it
seldom errs on that side) that he is guilty;--and unless in melancholy and
hypocondriac cases, we may safely pronounce upon it, that there is always
sufficient grounds for the accusation.

"But the converse of the proposition will not hold true;--namely, that
whenever there is guilt, the conscience must accuse; and if it does not,
that a man is therefore innocent.--This is not fact--So that
the common
consolation which some good christian or other is hourly administering
to himself,--that he thanks God his mind does not misgive him; and that,
consequently, he has a good conscience, because he hath a quiet one,--
is fallacious;
--and as current as the inference is, and as infallible as the
rule appears at first sight, yet when you look nearer to it, and try the
truth of this rule upon plain facts,--you see it liable to so much error
from a false application;--the principle upon which it goes so often
perverted;-
-the whole force of it lost, and sometimes so vilely cast a-
way, that it is painful to produce the common examples from human life,
which confirm the account.

"A man shall be vicious and utterly debauched in his principles;--ex-
ceptionable in his conduct to the world; shall live shameless, in the open
commission of a sin which no reason or pretence can justify,--a sin by
which, contrary to all the workings of humanity, he shall ruin for ever
the deluded partner of his guilt;--rob her of her best dowry; and not only
cover her own head with dishonour;--but involve a whole virtuous family
in shame and sorrow for her sake. Surely, you will think conscience
must lead such a man a troublesome life; he can have no rest night and
day from its reproaches.

"Alas! Conscience had something else to do all this time, than break in
upon him; as Elijah reproached the god Baal,--this domestic God was ei-
ther talking, or pursuing, or was in a journey, or peradventure he slept
and could not be awoke.
132

"Perhaps He was gone out in company with Honour to fight a duel: to
pay off some debt at play;--or dirty annuity, the bargain of his lust;
Perhaps Conscience all this time was engaged at home, talking aloud against
petty larceny, and executing vengeance upon some such puny crimes as
his fortune and rank of life secured him against all temptation of com-
mitting;
so that he lives as merrily;'--(If he was of our church, tho',
quoth Dr. Slop, he could not)--
'sleeps as soundly in his bed;--and at last
meets death unconcernedly;--perhaps much more so, than a much better
man.'
(All this is impossible with us, quoth Dr. Slop, turning to my father,--
the case could not happen in our church.--
It happens in ours, however,
replied my father, but too often.--I own, quoth Dr. Slop, (struck a lit-
tle with my father's frank acknowledgment)--that a man in the Romish
church may live as badly;--but then he cannot easily die so.--'Tis little
matter, replied my father, with an air of indifference,--how a rascal dies.
--
I mean, answered Dr. Slop, he would be denied the benefits of the last
sacraments.--Pray how many have you in all, said my uncle Toby,--for I
always forget?--Seven, answered Dr. Slop.--
Humph!--said my uncle Toby;
tho' not accented as a note of acquiescence,--but as an interjection
of that particular species of surprize, when a man in looking into a draw-
er, finds more of a thing than he expected.--Humph! replied my uncle Toby.
Dr. Slop, who had an ear, understood my uncle Toby as well as if he had
wrote a whole volume against the seven sacraments.
133--Humph! replied Dr.
Slop, (stating my uncle Toby's argument over again to him)
--Why, Sir,
are there not seven cardinal virtues?--Seven mortal sins?--Seven golden
candlesticks?--Seven heavens?--'Tis more than I know, replied my uncle
Toby.--Are there not seven wonders of the world?--Seven days of the
creation?--Seven planets?--Seven plagues?--That there are, quoth my
father with a most affected gravity. But prithee, continued he, go on
with the rest of thy characters, Trim.)


"Another is sordid, unmerciful,' (here Trim waved his right hand) "a
strait-hearted, selfish wretch, incapable either of private friendship
or public spirit. Take notice how he passes by the widow and orphan in
their distress, and sees all the miseries incident to human life without
a sigh or a prayer.'
(An' please your honours, cried Trim, I think this
a viler man than the other.)

"Shall not conscience rise up and sting him on such occasions?--No;
thank God there is no occasion, I pay every man his own;--I have no
fornication to answer to my conscience;--no faithless vows or promises
to make up;--I have debauched no man's wife or child; thank God, I am
not as other men, adulterers, unjust, or even as this libertine, who
stands before me.


"A third is crafty and designing in his nature. View his whole life;--
'tis nothing but a cunning contexture of dark arts and unequitable sub-
terfuges,
basely to defeat the true intent of all laws,--plain dealing
and the safe enjoyment of our several properties.--You will see such a
one
working out a frame of little designs upon the ignorance and per-
plexities of the poor and needy man;--shall raise a fortune upon the
inexperience of a youth, or the unsuspecting temper of his friend, who
would have trusted him with his life.

"When old age comes on, and repentance calls him to look back upon this
black account, and state it over again with his conscience--Conscience
looks into the Statutes at Large;--finds no express law broken by what he
has done;--perceives no penalty or forfeiture of goods and chattels in-
curred;--sees no scourge waving over his head, or prison opening his gates
upon him:--What is there to affright his conscience?--Conscience has got
safely entrenched behind the Letter of the Law; sits there invulnerable,
fortified with Cases and Reports so strongly on all sides;--that it is
not preaching can dispossess it of its hold.'

(Here Corporal Trim and my uncle Toby exchanged looks with each other.

--Aye, Aye, Trim! quoth my uncle Toby, shaking his head,--these are but
sorry fortifications, Trim.--O! very poor work, answered Trim, to what
your Honour and I make of it.--The character of this last man, said
Dr. Slop, interrupting Trim, is more detestable than all the rest; and
seems to have been taken from some pettifogging Lawyer amongst you:--

Amongst us, a man's conscience could not possibly continue so long
blinded,--three times in a year, at least, he must go to confession. Will
that restore it to sight? quoth my uncle Toby,--Go on, Trim, quoth my
father, or Obadiah will have got back before thou has got to the end of thy
sermon.--'Tis a very short one, replied Trim.--I wish it was longer, quoth
my uncle Toby, for I like it hugely.--Trim went on.)


"A fourth man shall want even this refuge;--shall break through all their
ceremony of slow chicane;--scorns the doubtful workings of secret plots
and cautious trains to bring about his purpose:--See the bare-faced vil-
lain, how he cheats, lies, perjures, robs, murders!--Horrid!--But indeed
much better was not to be expected, in the present case--the poor man
was in the dark!--his priest had got the keeping of his conscience;--and
all he would let him know of it, was, That he must believe in the Pope;--
go to Mass;--cross himself;--tell his beads;--be a good Catholic, and
that this, in all conscience, was enough to carry him to heaven. What;--
if he perjures?--Why;--he had a mental reservation in it.--But if he is so
wicked and abandoned a wretch as you represent him;--if he robs,--if he
stabs, will not conscience, on every such act, receive a wound itself?--
Aye,--but the man has carried it to confession;--the wound digests there,
and will do well enough, and in a short time be quite healed up by abso-
lution. O Popery! what hast thou to answer for!--when not content with
the too many natural and fatal ways, thro' which the heart of man is every
day thus treacherous to itself above all things;--thou hast wilfully set open
the wide gate of deceit before the face of this unwary traveller, too apt,
God knows, to go astray of himself, and confidently speak peace to himself,
when there is no peace.


"Of this the common instances which I have drawn out of life, are too no-
torious to require much evidence. If any man doubts the reality of them,
or
thinks it impossible for a man to be such a bubble to himself,--I must
refer him a moment to his own reflections, and will then venture to trust
my appeal with his own heart.


"Let him consider in how different a degree of detestation, numbers of
wicked actions stand there, tho' equally bad and vicious in their own na-
tures;--he will soon find, that
such of them as strong inclination and
custom have prompted him to commit, are generally dressed out and paint-
ed with all the false beauties which a soft and a flattering hand can
give them;--and that the others, to which he feels no propensity, appear,
at once, naked and deformed, surrounded with all the true circumstances
of folly and dishonour.


"When David 134 surprized Saul sleeping in the cave, and cut off the skirt of
his robe--we read his heart smote him for what he had done:--But in the
matter of Uriah, where a faithful and gallant servant, whom he ought to
have loved and honoured, fell to make way for his lust,--where conscience
had so much greater reason to take the alarm, his heart smote him not.
A
whole year had almost passed from first commission of that crime, to the
time Nathan was sent to reprove him; and we read not once of the least
sorrow or compunction of heart which he testified, during all that time,
for what he had done.

"Thus conscience, this once able monitor,--placed on high as a judge
within us, and intended by our maker as a just and equitable one too,--
by an unhappy train of causes and impediments, takes often such im-
perfect cognizance of what passes,--does its office so negligently,
--sometimes so corruptly,
--that it is not to be trusted alone; and
therefore we find there is a necessity, an absolute necessity, of
joining another principle with it, to aid, if not govern, its deter-
minations.


"So that if you would form a just judgment of what is of infinite im-
portance to you not to be misled in,--namely, in what degree of real merit
you stand either as an honest man, an useful citizen, a faithful subject
to your king, or a good servant to your God,--call in religion and moral-
ity.--Look, What is written in the law of God?--How readest thou?--
Consult calm reason and the unchangeable obligations of justice and
truth;--what say they?

"Let Conscience determine the matter upon these reports;--and then if
thy heart condemns thee not, which is the case the apostle supposes,--
the rule will be infallible;'--(Here Dr. Slop fell asleep)--'thou wilt have
confidence towards God
;
135--that is, have just grounds to believe the judg-
ment thou hast past upon thyself, is the judgment of God; and nothing else
but an anticipation of that righteous sentence which will be pronounced upon
thee hereafter by that Being, to whom thou art finally to give an account
of thy actions.


"Blessed is the man, indeed, then, as the author of the book of
Ecclesiasticus expresses it, who is not pricked with the multitude of his
sins: Blessed is the man whose heart hath not condemned him; whether
he be rich, or whether he be poor, if he have a good heart
(a heart thus
guided and informed) he shall at all times rejoice in a chearful count-
enance; his mind shall tell him more than seven watch-men that sit above
upon a tower on high.
'
136--(A tower has no strength, quoth my uncle Toby,
unless 'tis flank'd.)--
In the darkest doubts it shall conduct him safer than
a thousand casuists, and give the state he lives in, a better security for his
behaviour than all the causes and restrictions put together, which lawmakers
are forced to multiply:--Forced, I say, as things stand; human laws not be-
ing a matter of original choice, but of pure necessity, brought in to fence
against the mischievous effects of those consciences which are no law unto
themselves; well intending, by the many provisions made,--that in all such
corrupt and misguided cases, where principles and the checks of conscience
will not make us upright,--to supply their force, and, by the terrors of
gaols and halters, oblige us to it.'

(I see plainly, said my father, that this sermon has been composed to be
preached at the Temple,
137--or at some Assize.--I like the reasoning,--and
am sorry that Dr. Slop has fallen asleep before the time of his convict-
ion:--for
it is now clear, that the Parson, as I thought at first, never
insulted St. Paul in the least
;--nor has there been, brother, the least
difference between them.
--A great matter, if they had differed, replied
my uncle Toby,--the best friends in the world may differ sometimes.--True,--
brother Toby quoth my father, shaking hands with him,--we'll fill our
pipes, brother, and then Trim shall go on.

Well,--what dost thou think of it? said my father, speaking to Corporal
Trim, as he reached his tobacco-box.

I think, answered the Corporal, that the seven watch-men upon the
tower, who, I suppose, are all centinels there,--are more, an' please your
Honour, than were necessary;--and, to go on at that rate, would harrass a
regiment all to pieces, which a commanding officer, who loves his men,
will never do, if he can help it, because two centinels, added the Corporal,
are as good as twenty.--I have been a commanding officer myself in the
Corps de Garde
138 a hundred times, continued Trim, rising an inch higher
in his figure, as he spoke,--and all the time I had the honour to serve his
Majesty King William, in relieving the most considerable posts, I never
left more than two in my life.--Very right, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby,--
but you do not consider, Trim, that the towers, in Solomon's days, were
not such things as our bastions, flanked and defended by other works;--
this, Trim, was an invention since Solomon's death; nor had they horn-
works, or ravelins before the curtin, in his time;--or such a fosse as
we make with a cuvette in the middle of it, and with covered ways and
counterscarps pallisadoed along it, to guard against a Coup de main:
139--So
that the seven men upon the tower were a party, I dare say, from the Corps
de Garde
, set there, not only to look out, but to defend it.--They could
be no more, an' please your Honour, than a Corporal's Guard.--My father
smiled inwardly, but not outwardly--the subject being rather too serious,
considering what had happened, to make a jest of.
--So putting his pipe
into his mouth, which he had just lighted,--he contented himself with
ordering Trim to read on. He read on as follows:

"To have the fear of God before our eyes, and, in our mutual dealings
with each other, to govern our actions by the eternal measures of right
and wrong:--
The first of these will comprehend the duties of religion;--the
second, those of morality, which are so inseparably connected together,
that you cannot divide these two tables,
140 even in imagination, (tho' the
attempt is often made in practice) without breaking and mutually destroy-
ing them both.


I said the attempt is often made; and so it is;--there being nothing
more common than to see
a man who has no sense at all of religion, and
indeed has so much honesty as to pretend to none, who would take it as
the bitterest affront, should you but hint at a suspicion of his moral
character,--or imagine he was not conscientiously just and scrupulous
to the uttermost mite.


"When there is some appearance that it is so,--tho' one is unwilling even
to suspect the appearance of so amiable a virtue as moral honesty, yet
were we to look into the grounds of it, in the present case, I am persuad-
ed we should find little reason to envy such a one the honour of his motive.

"Let him declaim as pompously as he chooses upon the subject, it will
be found to rest upon no better foundation than either his interest, his
pride, his ease, or some such little and changeable passion as will give
us but small dependence upon his actions in matters of great distress.


"I will illustrate this by an example.

"I know the banker I deal with, or the physician I usually call in,'--
(There is no need, cried Dr. Slop, (waking) to call in any physician in
this case)--'to be
neither of them men of much religion: I hear them make
a jest of it every day, and treat all its sanctions with so much scorn,
as to put the matter past doubt. Well;--notwithstanding this, I put my
fortune into the hands of the one:--and what is dearer still to me, I
trust my life to the honest skill of the other.


"Now let me examine what is my reason for this great confidence. Why,
in the first place, I believe there is no probability that either of them
will employ the power I put into their hands to my disadvantage;--
I con-
sider that honesty serves the purposes of this life:--I know their success
in the world depends upon the fairness of their characters.--In a word,
I'm persuaded that they cannot hurt me without hurting themselves more.


"But put it otherwise, namely, that interest lay, for once, on the other
side; that
a case should happen, wherein the one, without stain to his
reputation, could secrete my fortune, and leave me naked in the world;--
or that the other could send me out of it, and enjoy an estate by my death,
without dishonour to himself or his art:--In this case, what hold have I of
either of them?--Religion, the strongest of all motives, is out of the
question;--Interest, the next most powerful motive in the world, is strongly
against me:--What have I left to cast into the opposite scale to balance
this temptation?--Alas! I have nothing,--nothing but what is lighter than
a bubble--I must lie at the mercy of Honour, or some such capricious
principle--Strait security for two of the most valuable blessings!--my
property and myself.


"As, therefore, we can have no dependence upon morality without religion;
--so, on the other hand, there is nothing better to be expected from rel-
igion without morality; nevertheless, 'tis no prodigy to see a man whose
real moral character stands very low, who yet entertains the highest notion
of himself in the light of a religious man.


"He shall not only be covetous, revengeful, implacable,--but even want-
ing in points of common honesty; yet inasmuch as he talks aloud against
the infidelity of the age,--is zealous for some points of religion,--goes
twice a day to church,--attends the sacraments,--and amuses himself with
a few instrumental parts of religion,--shall cheat his conscience into
a judgment, that, for this, he is a religious man, and has discharged truly
his duty to God: And you will find that such a man, through force of this
delusion, generally looks down with spiritual pride upon every other man
who has less affectation of piety,--though, perhaps, ten times more real
honesty than himself.


"This likewise is a sore evil under the sun;141 and I believe, there is no
one mistaken principle, which, for its time, has wrought more serious
mischiefs.--
For a general proof of this,--examine the history of the Romish
church;'--(Well what can you make of that? cried Dr. Slop)--'see what
scenes of cruelty, murder, rapine, bloodshed,'--(They may thank their
own obstinacy, cried Dr. Slop)--have all been sanctified by a religion not
strictly governed by morality
.

"In how many kingdoms of the world'--(Here Trim kept waving his right-
hand from the sermon to the extent of his arm, returning it backwards
and forwards to the conclusion of the paragraph.)

"In how many kingdoms of the world has the crusading sword of this
misguided saint-errant, spared neither age or merit, or sex, or condition?--
and, as he fought under the banners of a religion which set him loose from
justice and humanity, he shewed none; mercilessly trampled upon both,--
heard neither the cries of the unfortunate, nor pitied their distresses.'


(I have been in many a battle, an' please your Honour, quoth Trim,
sighing, but never in so melancholy a one as this,--I would not have
drawn a tricker in it against these poor souls,--to have been made a
general officer.-
-Why? what do you understand of the affair? said Dr.
Slop, looking towards Trim, with something more of contempt than the
Corporal's honest heart deserved.--What do you know, friend, about this
battle you talk of?--I know, replied Trim, that I never refused quarter
in my life to any man who cried out for it;--but to a woman or a child,
continued Trim, before I would level my musket at them, I would loose
my life a thousand times
.--Here's a crown for thee, Trim, to drink with
Obadiah to-night, quoth my uncle Toby, and I'll give Obadiah another
too.--God bless your Honour, replied Trim,--I had rather these poor
women and children had it.--thou art an honest fellow, quoth my uncle
Toby.--My father nodded his head, as much as to say--and so he is.--


But prithee, Trim, said my father, make an end,--for I see thou hast
but a leaf or two left.

(Corporal Trim read on.)

"If the testimony of past centuries in this matter is not sufficient,--
consider at this instant, how the votaries of that religion are every
day thinking to do service and honour to God, by actions which are a
dishonour and scandal to themselves.

"To be convinced of this, go with me for a moment into the prisons of
the Inquisition.'--(God help my poor brother Tom.)--"Behold Religion,
with Mercy and Justice chained down under her feet,--there sitting
ghastly upon a black tribunal, propped up with racks and instruments
of torment. Hark!--hark! what a piteous groan!'--(Here Trim's face
turned as pale as ashes.)--'See the melancholy wretch who uttered
it'--(Here the tears began to trickle down)--'just brought forth to
undergo the anguish of a mock trial, and endure the utmost pains that
a studied system of cruelty has been able to invent.'--(D--n them all,
quoth Trim, his colour returning into his face as red as blood.)--
'Behold this helpless victim delivered up to his tormentors,--his body
so wasted with sorrow and confinement.'--(Oh! 'tis my brother, cried
poor Trim in a most passionate exclamation, dropping the sermon upon
the ground, and clapping his hands together--I fear 'tis poor Tom.

My father's and my uncle Toby's heart yearned with sympathy for the
poor fellow's distress; even Slop himself acknowledged pity for him.
--Why, Trim, said my father, this is not a history,--'tis a sermon
thou art reading; prithee begin the sentence again.)--
'Behold this
helpless victim delivered up to his tormentors,--his body so wasted
with sorrow and confinement, you will see every nerve and muscle as
it suffers.

"Observe the last movement of that horrid engine!'--(I would rather
face a cannon, quoth Trim, stamping.)--'See what convulsions it has
thrown him into!--Consider the nature of the posture in which he how
lies stretched,--what exquisite tortures he endures by it!'--(I hope
'tis not in Portugal.)--''Tis all nature can bear! Good God! see how
it keeps his weary soul hanging upon his trembling lips!'
(I would
not read another line of it, quoth Trim for all this world;--I fear,
an' please your Honours, all this is in Portugal, where my poor bro-
ther Tom is. I tell thee, Trim, again, quoth my father, 'tis not an
historical account,--'tis a description.--
'Tis only a description,
honest man, quoth Slop, there's not a word of truth in it.--That's
another story, replied my father.
--However, as Trim reads it with so
much concern,--'tis cruelty to force him to go on with it.--Give me
hold of the sermon, Trim,--I'll finish it for thee, and thou may'st
go. I must stay and hear it too, replied Trim, if your Honour will
allow me;--tho' I would not read it myself for a Colonel's pay.--Poor
Trim! quoth my uncle Toby. My father went on.)

"--Consider the nature of the posture in which he now lies stretched,--
what exquisite torture he endures by it!--'Tis all nature can bear! Good
God! See how it keeps
his weary soul hanging upon his trembling lips,--
willing to take its leave,--but not suffered to depart!
--Behold the
unhappy wretch led back to his cell!'
--(Then, thank God, however, quoth
Trim, they have not killed him.)--'See him dragged out of it again to
meet the flames, and the insults in his last agonies, which this principle,--
this principle, that there can be religion without mercy, has prepared for
him.'
--(Then, thank God,--he is dead, quoth Trim,--he is out of his
pain,--and they have done their worst at him.--O Sirs!--Hold your peace,
Trim, said my father, going on with the sermon, lest Trim should incense
Dr. Slop,--we shall never have done at this rate.)


"The surest way to try the merit of any disputed notion is, to trace down
the consequences such a notion has produced, and compare them with the
spirit of Christianity;--'tis the short and decisive rule which our Sav-
iour hath left us, for these and such like cases, and it is worth a thou-
sand arguments--By their fruits ye shall know them.
142

"I will add no farther to the length of this sermon, than by two or three
short and independent rules deducible from it.

"First, Whenever a man talks loudly against religion, always suspect that
it is not his reason, but his passions, which have got the better of his
Creed. A bad life and a good belief are disagreeable and troublesome
neighbours, and where they separate, depend upon it, 'tis for no other
cause but quietness sake.

"Secondly,
When a man, thus represented, tells you in any particular
instance,--That such a thing goes against his conscience,--always believe
he means exactly the same thing, as when he tells you such a thing goes
against his stomach;--a present want of appetite being generally the true
cause of both.


"In a word,--trust that man in nothing, who has not a Conscience in
every thing.

"And, in your own case, remember this plain distinction, a mistake in
which has ruined thousands,--that
your conscience is not a law;--No,
God and reason made the law, and have placed conscience within you to
determine;--not, like an Asiatic Cadi,
143 according to the ebbs and flows of
his own passions,--but like a British judge in this land of liberty and
good sense, who makes no new law, but faithfully declares that law which
he knows already written.'


                  FINIS

Thou hast read the sermon extremely well, Trim, quoth my father.--If
he had spared his comments, replied Dr. Slop,--he would have read it
much better.
I should have read it ten times better, Sir, answered Trim,
but that my heart was so full.--That was the very reason, Trim, replied
my father, which has made thee read the sermon as well as thou hast done;
and if the clergy of our church, continued my father, addressing himself
to Dr. Slop, would take part in what they deliver as deeply as this poor
fellow has done,--as their compositions are fine;--(I deny it, quoth Dr.
Slop)--I maintain it,--that the eloquence of our pulpits, with such
subjects to enflame it, would be a model for the whole world:
--But alas!
continued my father, and I own it, Sir, with sorrow, that, like French
politicians in this respect, what they gain in the cabinet they lose in the
field.--'Twere a pity, quoth my uncle, that this should be lost. I like the
sermon well, replied my father,--'tis dramatick,--and there is something
in that way of writing, when skilfully managed, which catches the atten-
tion.--We preach much in that way with us, said Dr. Slop.--I know that
very well, said my father,--but in a tone and manner which disgusted Dr.
Slop, full as much as his assent, simply, could have pleased him.--But in
this,
added Dr. Slop, a little piqued,--our sermons have greatly the ad-
vantage, that we never introduce any character into them below a patriarch
or a patriarch's wife, or a martyr or a saint.--There are some very bad
characters in this, however, said my father, and I do not think the sermon
a jot the worse for 'em.
--But pray, quoth my uncle Toby,--who's can this
be?--How could it get into my Stevinus? A man must be as great a conjurer
as Stevinus, said my father, to resolve the second question:--
The first,
I think, is not so difficult;--for unless my judgment greatly deceives
me,--I know the author, for 'tis wrote, certainly, by the parson of the
parish.


The similitude of the stile and manner of it, with those my father con-
stantly had heard preached in his parish-church, was the ground of his
conjecture,--proving it as strongly, as an argument a priori
144 could prove
such a thing to a philosophic mind, That it was Yorick's and no one's
else:
--It was proved to be so, a posteriori, the day after, when Yorick
sent a servant to my uncle Toby's house to enquire after it.

It seems that Yorick, who was inquisitive after all kinds of knowledge,
had borrowed Stevinus of my uncle Toby, and had carelesly popped his ser-
mon, as soon as he had made it, into the middle of Stevinus; and by an
act of forgetfulness,
to which he was ever subject, he had sent Stevinus
home, and his sermon to keep him company.

Ill-fated sermon! Thou wast lost, after this recovery of thee, a second
time, dropped thru' an unsuspected fissure in thy master's pocket, down
into a treacherous and a tattered lining,--trod deep into the dirt by the
left hind-foot of his Rosinante inhumanly stepping upon thee as thou
falledst;--buried ten days in the mire,--raised up out of it by a beggar,--
sold for a halfpenny to a parish-clerk,
--transferred to his parson,--lost
for ever to thy own, the remainder of his days,--nor restored to his
restless Manes
145 till this very moment, that I tell the world the story.

Can the reader believe, that this sermon of Yorick's was preached at an
assize, in the cathedral of York, before a thousand witnesses, ready to
give oath of it, by a certain prebendary of that church, and actually
printed by him when he had done,--and within so short a space as two years
and three months after Yorick's death?--Yorick indeed, was never better
served in his life;
--but it was a little hard to maltreat him before, and
plunder him after he was laid in his grave.


However, as the gentleman who did it was in perfect charity with
Yorick,--and, in conscious justice, printed but a few copies to give
away;--and that I am told he could moreover have made as good a one
himself, had he thought fit,--I declare I would not have published this
anecdote to the world;--nor do I publish it with an intent to hurt his
character and advancement in the church;--I leave that to others;--but
I find myself impelled by two reasons, which I cannot withstand.

The first is, That in doing justice, I may give rest to Yorick's ghost;--
which--as the country-people, and some others believe,--still walks.
The second reason is, That, by laying open this story to the world, I
gain an opportunity of informing it,--That in case the character of
parson Yorick, and this sample of his sermons, is liked,--there are
now in the possession of the Shandy family, as many as will make a
handsome volume, at the world's service,--and much good may they
do it.




Volume 2, Chapter XVIII.



OBADIAH GAINED THE TWO CROWNS without dispute;--for he came in jing-
ling, with all the instruments in the green baize bag we spoke of, flung across
his body, just as Corporal Trim went out of the room.

It is now proper, I think, quoth Dr. Slop, (clearing up his looks) as we
are in a condition to be of some service to Mrs. Shandy, to send up stairs
to know how she goes on.

I have ordered, answered my father, the old midwife to come down to
us upon the least difficulty;--
for you must know, Dr. Slop, continued my
father, with a perplexed kind of a smile upon his countenance, that by
express treaty, solemnly ratified between me and my wife, you are no more
than an auxiliary in this affair,--and not so much as that,--unless the
lean old mother of a midwife above stairs cannot do without you.--Women
have their particular fancies, and in points of this nature, continued my
father, where they bear the whole burden, and suffer so much acute pain
for the advantage of our families, and the good of the species,--they claim
a right of deciding, en Souveraines,
146 in whose hands, and in what fashion,
they choose to undergo it.


They are in the right of it,--quoth my uncle Toby. But Sir, replied Dr.
Slop, not taking notice of my uncle Toby's opinion, but turning to my
father,--they had better govern in other points;--and a father of a family,
who wishes its perpetuity, in my opinion, had better exchange this prero-
gative with them, and give up some other rights in lieu of it.--
I know
not, quoth my father, answering a letter too testily, to be quite dispas-
sionate in what he said,--I know not, quoth he, what we have left to give
up, in lieu of who shall bring our children into the world, unless that,
--of who shall beget them.
--One would almost give up any thing, replied
Dr. Slop.--I beg your pardon,--answered my uncle Toby.--Sir, replied Dr.
Slop, it would astonish you to know
what improvements we have made of
late years in all branches of obstetrical knowledge, but particularly in
that one single point of
the safe and expeditious extraction of the foetus,--
which has received such lights, that, for my part (holding up his hand) I
declare I wonder how the world has
--I wish, quoth my uncle Toby, you
had seen what prodigious armies we had in Flanders.



Volume 2, Chapter XIX.



I HAVE DROPPED the curtain over this scene for a minute,--to remind you
of one thing,--and to inform you of another.

What I have to inform you, comes, I own, a little out of its due course;--
for it should have been told a hundred and fifty pages ago, but that I
foresaw then 'twould come in pat hereafter, and be of more advantage
here than elsewhere.--Writers had need look before them, to keep up the
spirit and connection of what they have in hand.


When these two things are done,--the curtain shall be drawn up again,
and my uncle Toby, my father, and Dr. Slop, shall go on with their
discourse, without any more interruption.

First, then, the matter which I have to remind you of, is this;--that
from the specimens of singularity in my father's notions in the point
of Christian-names, and that other previous point thereto,--you was
led, I think, into an opinion,--(and I am sure I said as much) that my
father was a gentleman altogether as odd and whimsical in fifty other
opinions. In truth, there was not a stage in the life of man, from the
very first act of his begetting,--down to the lean and slippered panta-
loon in his second childishness,
147 but he had some favourite notion to
himself, springing out of it, as sceptical, and as far out of the high-way
of thinking, as these two which have been explained.


--Mr. Shandy, my father, Sir, would see nothing in the light in which
others placed it;--he placed things in his own light;--he would weigh
nothing in common scales;--no, he was too refined a researcher to lie
open to so gross an imposition.--To come at the exact weight of things
in the scientific steel-yard, the fulcrum, he would say, should be al-
most invisible, to avoid all friction from popular tenets;--without this
the minutiae of philosophy, which would always turn the balance, will have
no weight at all. Knowledge, like matter, he would affirm, was divisible in
infinitum;
148--that the grains and scruples were as much a part of it, as the
gravitation of the whole world.--In a word, he would say, error was er-
ror,--no matter where it fell,--whether in a fraction,--or a pound,--
'twas alike fatal to truth, and she was kept down at the bottom of her
well, as inevitably by a mistake in the dust of a butterfly's wing,--as
in the disk of the sun, the moon, and all the stars of heaven put together.


He would often lament that it was for want of considering this properly,
and of applying it skilfully to civil matters, as well as to speculative
truths, that so many things in this world were out of joint;--that the po-
litical arch was giving way;--and that the very foundations of our excel-
lent constitution in church and state, were so sapped as estimators had
reported.


You cry out, he would say, we are a ruined, undone people. Why?
he would ask, making use of the sorites or syllogism of Zeno and Chrys-
ippus,
149 without knowing it belonged to them.--Why? why are we a ruined
people?--Because we are corrupted.--Whence is it, dear Sir, that we are
corrupted?--Because we are needy;--our poverty, and not our wills, con-
sent.--And wherefore, he would add, are we needy?--From the neglect,
he would answer, of our pence and our halfpence:--Our bank notes, Sir,
our guineas,--nay our shillings take care of themselves.

'Tis the same, he would say, throughout the whole circle of the scienc-
es;--the great, the established points of them, are not to be broke in
upon.--The laws of nature will defend themselves;--but error--(he would
add, looking earnestly at my mother)--error, Sir, creeps in thro' the
minute holes and small crevices which human nature leaves unguarded.


This turn of thinking in my father, is what I had to remind you of:--
The point you are to be informed of, and which I have reserved for this
place, is as follows.

Amongst the many and excellent reasons, with which my father had
urged my mother to accept of Dr. Slop's assistance preferably to that of
the old woman,--there was one of a very singular nature; which, when he
had done arguing the matter with her as a Christian, and came to argue it
over again with her as a philosopher, he had put his whole strength to,
depending indeed upon it as his sheet-anchor.--It failed him, tho' from
no defect in the argument itself; but that, do what he could, he was not
able for his soul to make her comprehend the drift of it.--Cursed luck!--
said he to himself, one afternoon, as he walked out of the room, after he
had been stating it for an hour and a half to her, to no manner of pur-
pose;--
cursed luck! said he, biting his lip as he shut the door,--for a man
to be master of one of the finest chains of reasoning in nature,--and have
a wife at the same time with such a head-piece, that he cannot hang up a
single inference within side of it, to save his soul from destruction.


This argument, though it was entirely lost upon my mother,--had more
weight with him, than all his other arguments joined together
:--I will
therefore endeavour to do it justice,--and set it forth with all the per-
spicuity I am master of.

My father set out upon the strength of these two following axioms:

First, That an ounce of a man's own wit, was worth a ton of other people's;
and,

Secondly, (Which by the bye, was the ground-work of the first axiom,--
tho' it comes last) That every man's wit must come from every man's own
soul,--and no other body's.

Now,
as it was plain to my father, that all souls were by nature equal,--
and that the great difference between the most acute and the most obtuse
understanding--was from no original sharpness or bluntness of one think-
ing substance above or below another,--but arose merely from the lucky
or unlucky organization of the body, in that part where the soul princi-
pally took up her residence,
--he had made it the subject of his enquiry
to find out the identical place.


Now, from the best accounts he had been able to get of this matter, he
was satisfied it could not be where
Des Cartes 150 had fixed it, upon the
top of the pineal gland of the brain; which, as he philosophized, form-
ed a cushion for her about the size of a marrow pea; tho' to speak the
truth, as so many nerves did terminate all in that one place,--'twas no
bad conjecture;--and my father had certainly fallen with that great phi-
losopher plumb into the centre of the mistake, had it not been for my
uncle Toby, who rescued him out of it, by a story he told him of a Wal-
loon
151 officer at the battle of Landen, who had one part of his brain
shot away by a musketball,--and another part of it taken out after by
a French surgeon; and after all, recovered, and did his duty very well
without it.

If death, said my father, reasoning with himself, is nothing but the
separation of the soul from the body;--and if it is true that people
can walk about and do their business without brains,--then certes the
soul does not inhabit there. Q.E.D.
152

As for that certain, very thin, subtle and very fragrant juice which
Coglionissimo Borri, the great Milaneze physician
153 affirms, in a letter to
Bartholine, to have discovered in the cellulae of the occipital parts of the
cerebellum, and which he likewise affirms to be the principal seat of the
reasonable soul,
(for, you must know, in these latter and more enlightened
ages, there are two souls in every man living,--the one, according to the
great Metheglingius, being called the Animus, the other, the Anima;)--as
for the opinion, I say of Borri,
--my father could never subscribe to it by
any means; the very idea of so noble, so refined, so immaterial, and so
exalted a being as the Anima, or even the Animus, taking up her residence,
and sitting dabbling, like a tad-pole all day long, both summer and winter,
in a puddle,--or in a liquid of any kind, how thick or thin soever, he
would say, shocked his imagination; he would scarce give the doctrine
a hearing.

What, therefore, seemed the least liable to objections of any, was that
the chief sensorium, or head-quarters of the soul, and to which place all
intelligences were referred, and from whence all her mandates were issued,
--was in, or near, the cerebellum,--or rather somewhere about the medulla
oblongata
, wherein it was generally agreed by Dutch anatomists, that all
the minute nerves from all the organs of the seven senses concentered,
like streets and winding alleys, into a square.


So far there was nothing singular in my father's opinion,--he had the
best of philosophers, of all ages and climates, to go along with him.--But
here he took a road of his own, setting up another Shandean hypothesis
upon these corner-stones they had laid for him;--and which said hypothe-
sis equally stood its ground;
whether the subtilty and fineness of the soul
depended upon the temperature and clearness of the said liquor, or of the
finer net-work and texture in the cerebellum itself
; which opinion he
favoured.

He maintained, that next to the due care to be taken in the act of propa-
gation of each individual, which required all the thought in the world, as
it laid the foundation of this incomprehensible contexture, in which wit,
memory, fancy, eloquence, and what is usually meant by the name of
good natural parts
, do consist;--that next to this and his Christian-name,
which were the two original and most efficacious causes of all;--that the
third cause, or rather what logicians call the Causa sina qua non,
154 and
without which all that was done was of no manner of significance,--was
the preservation of this delicate and fine-spun web, from the havock which
was generally made in it by the violent compression and crush which the
head was made to undergo, by the nonsensical method of bringing us into
the world by that foremost.


--This requires explanation.


My father, who dipped into all kinds of books, upon looking into Litho-
paedus Senonesis de Portu difficili
,
155 published by Adrianus Smelvgot,
had found out, tha
t the lax and pliable state of a child's head in part-
urition, the bones of the cranium having no sutures at that time, was
such,--that by force of the woman's efforts, which, in strong labour-
pains, was equal, upon an average, to the weight of 470 pounds avoir-
dupois acting perpendicularly upon it;--it so happened, that in 49 in-
stances out of 50, the said head was compressed and moulded into
the shape of an oblong conical piece of dough, such as a pastry-cook
generally rolls up in order to make a pye of.--Good God! cried my fath-
er, what havock and destruction must this make in the infinitely fine
and tender texture of the cerebellum!--Or if there is such a juice as
Borri pretends--is it not enough to make the clearest liquid in the
world both seculent and mothery?


But how great was his apprehension, when he farther understood, that
this force acting upon the very vertex of the head, not only injured the
brain itself, or cerebrum,--but that it necessarily squeezed and propelled
the cerebrum towards the cerebellum, which was the immediate seat of
the understanding!
--Angels and ministers of grace defend us! cried my
father,--can any soul withstand this shock?--No wonder the intellectual
web is so rent and tattered as we see it; and that so many of our best heads
are no better than a puzzled skein of silk,--all perplexity,--all confusion
within-side.


But when my father read on, and was let into the secret, that when a
child was turned topsy-turvy, which was easy for an operator to do, and
was extracted by the feet;--that instead of the cerebrum being propelled
towards the cerebellum, the cerebellum, on the contrary, was propelled
simply towards the cerebrum, where it could do no manner of hurt:--By
heavens! cried he, the world is in conspiracy to drive out what little wit
God has given us,--and the professors of the obstetric art are listed into
the same conspiracy.--What is it to me which end of my son comes foremost
into the world, provided all goes right after, and his cerebellum escapes
uncrushed?


It is the nature of an hypothesis, when once a man has conceived it, that
it assimilates every thing to itself, as proper nourishment; and, from the
first moment of your begetting it, it generally grows the stronger by every
thing you see, hear, read, or understand. This is of great use.

When my father was gone with this about a month, there was scarce a
phaenomenon of stupidity or of genius, which he could not readily solve
by it;--it accounted for the eldest son being the greatest blockhead in the
family.--Poor devil, he would say,--he made way for the capacity of his
younger brothers.--It unriddled the observations of drivellers and mon-
strous heads
,--shewing a priori, it could not be otherwise,--unless...I
don't know what. It wonderfully explained and accounted for
the acumen
of the Asiatic genius, and that sprightlier turn, and a more penetrating
intuition of minds, in warmer climates; not from the loose and common-
place solution of a clearer sky, and a more perpetual sunshine, &c.--
which for aught he knew, might as well rarefy and dilute the faculties of
the soul into nothing, by one extreme,--as they are condensed in colder
climates by the other;--but he traced the affair up to its spring-head;--
shewed that, in warmer climates, nature had laid a lighter tax upon the
fairest parts of the creation
;--their pleasures more;--the necessity of their
pains less, insomuch that the pressure and resistance upon the vertex was
so slight, that the whole organization of the cerebellum was preserved;--
nay, he did not believe, in natural births, that so much as a single thread
of the net-work was broke or displaced,--so that the soul might just act as
she liked.

When my father had got so far,--what a blaze of light did the accounts of
the Caesarian section,
156 and of the towering geniuses who had come safe into
the world by it, cast upon this hypothesis? Here you see, he would say, there
was no injury done to the sensorium;--no pressure of the head against the
pelvis;--no propulsion of the cerebrum towards the cerebellum, either by
the os pubis on this side, or os coxygis on that;--and pray, what were the
happy consequences? Why, Sir, your Julius Caesar, who gave the operation
a name;--and your Hermes Trismegistus, who was born so before ever the
operation had a name;--your Scipio Africanus; your Manlius Torquatus;
our Edward the Sixth,--who, had he lived, would have done the same honour
to the hypothesis:--These, and many more who figured high in the annals
of fame,--all came side-way, Sir, into the world.


The incision of the abdomen and uterus ran for six weeks together in
my father's head;--he had read, and was satisfied, that wounds in the
epigastrium, and those in the matrix, were not mortal;--so that the belly
of the mother might be opened extremely well to give a passage to the
child.--He mentioned the thing one afternoon to my mother,--merely as a
matter of fact; but seeing her turn as pale as ashes at the very mention
of it, as much as the operation flattered his hopes,--he thought it as
well to say no more of it,--contenting himself with admiring,--what he
thought was to no purpose to propose.


This was my father Mr. Shandy's hypothesis; concerning which I have
only to add, that my brother Bobby did as great honour to it (whatever
he did to the family) as any one of the great heroes we spoke of: For
happening not only to be christened, as I told you, but to be born too,
when my father was at Epsom,--being moreover my mother's first child,
--coming into the world with his head foremost,--and turning out aft-
erwards a lad of wonderful slow parts,--my father spelt all these to-
gether into his opinion: and as he had failed at one end,--he was det-
ermined to try the other.


This was not to be expected from one of the sisterhood, who are not
easily to be put out of their way,--and was therefore one of my father's
great reasons in favour of a man of science, whom he could better deal
with.

Of all men in the world, Dr. Slop was the fittest for my father's pur-
pose;--for though this new-invented forceps was the armour he had proved,
and what he maintained to be the safest instrument of deliverance, yet, it
seems, he had scattered a word or two in his book, in favour of the very
thing which ran in my father's fancy;--tho' not with a view to the soul's
good in extracting by the feet, as was my father's system,--but for rea-
sons merely obstetrical.

This will account for the coalition betwixt my father and Dr. Slop, in
the ensuing discourse, which went a little hard against my uncle Toby.--
In what manner a plain man, with nothing but common sense, could bear
up against two such allies in science,--is hard to conceive.--You may
conjecture upon it, if you please,--and whilst your imagination is in
motion, you may encourage it to go on, and discover by what causes and
effects in nature it could come to pass, that my uncle Toby got his mod-
esty by the wound he received upon his groin.--You may raise a system to
account for the loss of my nose by marriage-articles,--and shew the world
how it could happen, that I should have the misfortune to be called
Tristram, in opposition to my father's hypothesis, and the wish of the
whole family, Godfathers and Godmothers not excepted.--These, with
fifty other points left yet unravelled, you may endeavour to solve if you
have time;--but I tell you beforehand it will be in vain, for not the sage
Alquise, the magician in Don Belianis of Greece,
157 nor the no less famous
Urganda, the sorceress his wife, (were they alive) could pretend to come
within a league of the truth.


The reader will be content to wait for a full explanation of these matters
till the next year,--when a series of things will be laid open which he
little expects.



                BOOK III


Multitudinis imperita non formido judicia; meis tamen, rogo, parcant opusculis--
in quibus fuit propositi semper, a jocis ad seria, a seriis vicissim ad jocos transire.
158

--Joan. Saresberiensis, Episcopus Lugdun.



Volume 3, Chapter I.


--"I WISH, DR. SLOP,' quoth my uncle Toby, (repeating his wish for Dr.
Slop a second time, and with a degree of more zeal and earnestness in his
manner of wishing, than he had wished at first
159)--'I wish, Dr.
Slop,' quoth my uncle Toby, "you had seen what prodigious armies we had
in Flanders
."

My uncle Toby's wish did Dr. Slop a disservice which his heart never
intended any man,--Sir, it confounded him--and thereby putting his
ideas first into confusion, and then to flight, he could not rally them again
for the soul of him.

In all disputes,--male or female,--whether for honour, for profit, or
for love,--it makes no difference in the case;--
nothing is more danger-
ous, Madam, than a wish coming sideways in this unexpected manner upon
a man: the safest way in general to take off the force of the wish, is
for the party wish'd at, instantly to get upon his legs--and wish the wisher
something in return, of pretty near the same value,--so balancing the
account upon the spot, you stand as you were--nay sometimes gain the
advantage of the attack by it.


This will be fully illustrated to the world in my chapter of wishes.--

Dr. Slop did not understand the nature of this defence;--he was puzzled
with it, and it put an entire stop to the dispute for four minutes and a
half;--five had been fatal to it:--my father saw the danger--the dispute
was one of the most interesting disputes in the world,
"Whether the child
of his prayers and endeavours should be born without a head or with
one:'--he waited to the last moment, to allow Dr. Slop, in whose behalf
the wish was made, his right of returning it; but perceiving, I say, that
he was confounded, and continued looking with that perplexed vacuity of
eye which puzzled souls generally stare with--first in my uncle Toby's
face--then in his--then up--then down--then east--east and by east,
and so on,--coasting it along by the plinth of the wainscot till he had got
to the opposite point of the compass
,--and that he had actually begun to
count the brass nails upon the arm of his chair,--my father thought there
was no time to be lost with my uncle Toby, so took up the discourse as
follows.




Volume 3, Chapter II.



"--WHAT PRODIGIOUS ARMIES you had in Flanders!'--

Brother Toby, replied my father, taking his wig from off his head with
his right hand, and with his left pulling out a striped India handkerchief
from his right coat pocket, in order to rub his head,
as he argued the point
with my uncle Toby.--

--Now, in this I think my father was much to blame; and I will give you
my reasons for it.

Matters of no more seeming consequence in themselves than, "Whether
my father should have taken off his wig with his right hand or with his
left
,"--have divided the greatest kingdoms, and made the crowns of the
monarchs who governed them, to totter upon their heads.
--But need I tell
you, Sir, that
the circumstances with which every thing in this world is
begirt, give every thing in this world its size and shape!
--and by tight-
ening it, or relaxing it, this way or that, make the thing to be, what it is--
great--little--good--bad--indifferent or not indifferent, just as the case
happens?

As my father's India handkerchief was in his right coat pocket, he should
by no means have suffered his right hand to have got engaged: on the con-
trary, instead of taking off his wig with it, as he did, he ought to have
committed that entirely to the left; and then, when
the natural exigency
my father was under of rubbing his hea
d, called out for his handkerchief,
he would have had nothing in the world to have done, but to have put his
right hand into his right coat pocket and taken it out;--which
he might
have done without any violence, or the least ungraceful twist in any one
tendon or muscle of his whole body.


In this case,
(unless, indeed, my father had been resolved to make a fool
of himself by holding the wig stiff in his left hand--or by making some
nonsensical angle or other at his elbow-joint, or armpit)--his whole at-
titude had been easy--natural--unforced:
Reynolds160 himself, as great
and gracefully as he paints, might have painted him as he sat.


Now as my father managed this matter,--consider what a devil of a
figure my father made of himself.

In the latter end of Queen Anne's reign, and in the beginning of the
reign of King George the first--'Coat pockets were cut very low down in
the skirt.'--I need say no more--the father of mischief, had he been ham-
mering at it a month, could not have contrived a worse fashion for one in
my father's situation.


Volume 3, Chapter III.



IT WAS NOT AN EASY MATTER in any king's reign (unless you were as lean
a subject as myself) to have forced your hand diagonally, quite across your
whole body, so as to gain the bottom of your opposite coat pocket
.--In
the year one thousand seven hundred and eighteen, when this happened,
it was extremely difficult; so that
when my uncle Toby discovered the
transverse zig-zaggery of my father's approaches towards it
, it instantly
brought into his mind those he had done duty in, before the gate of St.
Nicolas;--the idea of which drew off his attention so entirely from the
subject in debate, that he had got his right hand to the bell to ring up
Trim to go and fetch his map of Namur, and his compasses and sector along
with it, to measure the returning angles of the traverses of that attack,--
but particularly of that one, where he received his wound upon his groin.


My father knit his brows, and as he knit them, all the blood in his body
seemed to rush up into his face--my uncle Toby dismounted immediately.


--I did not apprehend your uncle Toby was o'horseback.--



Volume 3, Chapter IV.



A MAN'S BODY and his mind, with the utmost reverence to both I speak it,
are exactly like a jerkin, and a jerkin's lining;--rumple the one,--you
rumple the other.
There is one certain exception however in this case, and
that is, when you are so fortunate a fellow, as to have had your jerkin made
of gum-taffeta, and the body-lining to it of a sarcenet, or thin persian.
161

Zeno,
162 Cleanthes, Diogenes Babylonius, Dionysius, Heracleotes,
Antipater, Panaetius
, and Possidonius amongst the Greeks;--Cato and
Varro
and Seneca amongst the Romans;--Pantenus and Clemens Alexan-
drinus and Montaigne amongst the Christians; and a score and a half
of good, honest, unthinking Shandean people as ever lived, whose
names I can't recollect,--all pretended that
their jerkins were made
after this fashion,--you might have rumpled and crumpled, and doubled
and creased, and fretted and fridged the outside of them all to pieces;
--in short, you might have played the very devil with them, and at the
same time, not one of the insides of them would have been one button the
worse, for all you had done to them.

I believe in my conscience that mine is made up somewhat after this sort:
--for never poor jerkin has been tickled off at such a rate as it has
been these last nine months together,
163--and yet I declare, the lining to
it,--as far as I am a judge of the matter,--is not a three-penny piece the
worse;--
pell-mell, helter-skelter, ding-dong, cut and thrust, back stroke
and fore stroke, side way and long-way, have they been trimming it for
me:--had there been the least gumminess in my lining,--by heaven! it
had all of it long ago been frayed and fretted to a thread.

--You Messrs. the Monthly Reviewers!--how could you cut and slash
my jerkin as you did?--how did you know but you would cut my lining
too?

Heartily and from my soul, to the protection of that Being who will
injure none of us, do I recommend you and your affairs,--so God bless
you;--only next month, if any one of you should gnash his teeth, and
storm and rage at me, as some of you did last May (in which I remember
the weather was very hot)--don't be exasperated, if I pass it by again
with good temper,--being determined as long as I live or write (which
in my case means the same thing) never to give the honest gentleman a
worse word or a worse wish than my uncle Toby gave the fly which buzz'd
about his nose all dinner-time
,--"Go,--go, poor devil,' quoth he,--"get
thee gone,--why should I hurt thee! This world is surely wide enough to
hold both thee and me.'




Volume 3, Chapter V.



ANY MAN, MADAM, reasoning upwards, and observing the prodigious suffusion
of blood in my father's countenance,--by means of which (as all the blood
in his body seemed to rush into his face, as I told you) he must have
reddened, pictorically and scientifically speaking, six whole tints and
a half, if not a full octave above his natural colour:--any man, Madam,
but my uncle Toby, who had observed this, together with the violent knit-
ting of my father's brows, and the extravagant contortion of his body
during the whole affair,--would have concluded my father in a rage; and
taking that for granted,--had he been a lover of such kind of concord as
arises from two such instruments being put in exact tune,--he would
instantly have skrew'd up his, to the same pitch;--and then the devil and
all had broke loose--the whole piece, Madam, must have been played off
like the sixth of Avison Scarlatti
164--con furia,--like mad.--Grant me pa-
tience!--What has con furia,--con strepito,--or any other hurly burly
whatever to do with harmony?

Any man, I say, Madam, but my uncle Toby, the benignity of whose heart
interpreted every motion of the body in the kindest sense the motion
would admit of, would have concluded my father angry, and blamed him
too. My uncle Toby blamed nothing but the taylor who cut the pockethole;
--so sitting still till my father had got his handkerchief out of it,
and looking all the time up in his face with inexpressible good-will
--
my father, at length, went on as follows.



Volume 3, Chapter VI.



"WHAT PRODIGIOUS ARMIES you had in Flanders!'

--Brother Toby, quoth my father, I do believe thee to be as honest a
man, and with as good and as upright a heart as ever God created;--nor
is it thy fault, if all the children which have been, may, can, shall, will,
or ought to be begotten, come with their heads foremost into the world:--
but believe me, dear Toby, the accidents which unavoidably way-lay them,
not only in the article of our begetting 'em
--though these, in my opin-
ion, are well worth considering,--but the dangers and difficulties our
children are beset with, after they are got forth into the world, are enow--
little need is there to expose them to unnecessary ones in their passage
to it.--Are these dangers, quoth my uncle Toby, laying his hand upon my
father's knee, and looking up seriously in his face for an answer,--are
these dangers greater now o'days, brother, than in times past? Brother Toby,
answered my father, if a child was but fairly begot, and born alive, and
healthy, and the mother did well after it,--our forefathers never looked
farther.--My uncle Toby instantly withdrew his hand from off my father's
knee, reclined his body gently back in his chair, raised his head till he
could just see the cornice
165 of the room, and then directing the buccinatory
muscles along his cheeks, and the orbicular muscles around his lips to do
their duty--he whistled Lillabullero.




Volume 3, Chapter VII.



WHILST MY UNCLE TOBY was whistling Lillabullero to my father,--Dr. Slop
was stamping, and cursing and damning at Obadiah at a most dreadful rate,
--it would have done your heart good, and cured you, Sir, for ever of the
vile sin of swearing
, to have heard him, I am determined therefore to
relate the whole affair to you.

When Dr. Slop's maid delivered the green baize bag with her master's
instruments in it, to Obadiah,
she very sensibly exhorted him to put his
head and one arm through the strings, and ride with it slung across his
body: so undoing the bow-knot, to lengthen the strings for him,
without
any more ado, she helped him on with it. However, as
this, in some mea-
sure, unguarded the mouth of the bag, lest any thing should bolt out in
galloping back
, at the speed Obadiah threatened, they consulted to take it
off again: and
in the great care and caution of their hearts, they had taken
the two strings and tied them close (pursing up the mouth of the bag first)
with half a dozen hard knots, each of which Obadiah, to make all safe,
had twitched and drawn together with all the strength of his body.


This answered all that Obadiah and the maid intended; but was no
remedy against some evils which neither he or she foresaw. The instru-
ments, it seems, as tight as the bag was tied above, had so much room to
play in it, towards the bottom (the shape of the bag being conical) that
Obadiah could not make a trot of it, but with such a terrible jingle, what
with the tire tete, forceps, and squirt, as would have been enough, had
Hymen
166 been taking a jaunt that way, to have frightened him out of the
country; but when Obadiah accelerated his motion, and from a plain trot
assayed to prick his coach-horse into a full gallop--by Heaven! Sir, the
jingle was incredible.


As Obadiah had a wife and three children--
the turpitude of fornication,
and the many other political ill consequences of this jingling, never
once entered his brain
,--he had however his objection, which came home
to himself, and weighed with him, as it has oft-times done with the
greatest patriots.--"The poor fellow, Sir, was not able to hear himself
whistle
."




Volume 3, Chapter VIII.



AS OBADIAH LOVED wind-music preferably to all the instrumental music
he carried with him,--he very considerately set his imagination to work,
to contrive and to invent by what means he should put himself in a con-
dition of enjoying it.

In all distresses (except musical) where small cords are wanted, nothing
is so apt to enter a man's head as his hat-band:--the philosophy of this
is so near the surface--I scorn to enter into it.

As Obadiah's was a mixed case--mark, Sirs,--I say, a mixed case; for it
was obstetrical,--scrip-tical, squirtical, papistical--and as far as the
coachhorse was concerned in it,--caballistical
167--and only partly musical;--
Obadiah made no scruple of availing himself of the first expedient which
offered;
so taking hold of the bag and instruments, and griping them hard
together with one hand, and with the finger and thumb of the other putting
the end of the hat-band betwixt his teeth, and then slipping his hand
down to the middle of it,--
he tied and cross-tied them all fast together
from one end to the other (as you would cord a trunk) with such a multi-
plicity of round-abouts and intricate cross turns, with a hard knot at every
intersection or point where the strings met,--that Dr. Slop must have had
three fifths of Job's patience at least to have unloosed them.--I think in
my conscience, that had Nature been in one of her nimble moods, and in
humour for such a contest--and she and Dr. Slop both fairly started to-
gether--there is no man living which had seen the bag with all that Obadiah
had done to it,--and known likewise the great speed the Goddess can make
when she thinks proper, who would have had the least doubt remaining in
his mind--which of the two would have carried off the prize. My mother,
Madam, had been delivered sooner than the green bag infallibly--at least
by twenty knots
.--Sport of small accidents, Tristram Shandy! that thou art,
and ever will be! had that trial been for thee, and it was fifty to one
but it had,--thy affairs had not been so depress'd--(at least by the
depression of thy nose) as they have been; nor had the fortunes of thy
house and the occasions of making them, which have so often presented
themselves in the course of thy life, to thee, been so often, so vexatiously,
so tamely, so irrecoverably abandoned--as thou hast been forced to leave
them;--but 'tis over,--all but the account of 'em, which cannot be given
to the curious till I am got out into the world.



Volume 3, Chapter IX.



GREAT WITS JUMP: for the moment Dr. Slop cast his eyes upon his bag
(which he had not done till the dispute with my uncle Toby about mid-
wifery put him in mind of it)--the very same thought occurred.--"Tis
God's mercy, quoth he (to himself) that Mrs. Shandy has had so bad a
time of it,--else she might have been brought to bed seven times told,
before one half of these knots could have got untied.--
But here you must
distinguish--the thought floated only in Dr. Slop's mind, without sail or
ballast to it, as a simple proposition; millions of which, as your worship
knows, are every day swimming quietly in the middle of the thin juice of
a man's understanding, without being carried backwards or forwards, till
some little gusts of passion or interest drive them to one side.


A sudden trampling in the room above, near my mother's bed, did the pro-
position the very service I am speaking of. By all that's unfortunate,
quoth Dr. Slop, unless I make haste, the thing will actually befall me as
it is.




Volume 3, Chapter X.




IN THE CASE OF KNOTS,--by which, in the first place,
I would not be
understood to mean slip-knots
168--because in the course of my life and
opinions--my opinions concerning them will come in more properly when
I mention the catastrophe of my great uncle Mr. Hammond Shandy
,--a
little man,--but of high fancy:--he rushed into the duke of Monmouth's
affair:--
nor, secondly, in this place, do I mean that particular species
of knots called bow-knots;--there is so little address, or skill, or pa-
tience required in the unloosing them, that they are below my giving any
opinion at all about them.--But by the knots I am speaking of, may it
please your reverences to believe, that
I mean good, honest, devilish
tight, hard knots, made bona fide, as Obadiah made his;--in which there
is no quibbling provision made by the duplication and return of the two
ends of the strings thro' the annulus or noose made by the second impli-
cation of them--to get them slipp'd and undone by.
--I hope you apprehend
me.

In the case of these knots then, and of the several obstructions, which,
may it please your reverences, such knots cast in our way in getting through
life--every hasty ma
n can whip out his pen-knife and cut through them.--
'Tis wrong. Believe me, Sirs, the most virtuous way, and which both reason
and conscience
dictate--is to take our teeth or our fingers to them.--
Dr. Slop had lost his teeth--his favourite instrument, by extracting in a
wrong direction, or by some misapplication of it, unfortunately slipping,
he had formerly, in a hard labour, knock'd out three of the best of them
with the handle of it:--he tried his fingers--alas; the nails of his fingers
and thumbs were cut close.--The duce take it! I can make nothing of it
either way, cried Dr. Slop.--The trampling over head near my mother's
bed-side increased.--
Pox take the fellow! I shall never get the knots
untied as long as I live.--My mother gave a groan.--Lend me your pen-
knife--I must e'en cut the knots at last--pugh!--psha!--Lord! I have cut
my thumb quite across to the very bone--curse the fellow--if there was
not another man-midwife within fifty miles--I am undone for this bout--
I wish the scoundrel hang'd--I wish he was shot--I wish all the devils in
hell had him for a blockhead!--


My father had a great respect for Obadiah, and could not bear to hear
him disposed of in such a manner--he had moreover some little respect for
himself--and could as ill bear with the indignity offered to himself in it.

Had Dr. Slop cut any part about him, but his thumb--my father had
pass'd it by--his prudence had triumphed: as it was, he was determined to
have his revenge.


Small curses, Dr. Slop, upon great occasions, quoth my father (condoling
with him first upon the accident) are but so much waste of our strength
and soul's health to no manner of purpose.--I own it, replied Dr. Slop.--
They are like sparrow-shot, quoth my uncle Toby (suspending his whistl-
ing) fired against a bastion.--They serve, continued my father, to stir
the humours--but carry off none of their acrimony:--for my own part, I
seldom swear or curse at all--I hold it bad--but if I fall into it by sur-
prize, I generally retain so much presence of mind (right, quoth my uncle
Toby) as to make it answer my purpose--that is, I swear on till I find myself
easy. A wife and a just man however would always endeavour to proportion the
vent given to these humours, not only to the degree of them stirring within
himself--but to the size and ill intent of the offence upon which they are
to fall.--"Injuries come only from the heart,'--quoth my uncle Toby. For
this reason, continued my father, with the most Cervantick
169 gravity, I have
the greatest veneration in the world for that gentleman, who, in distrust
of his own discretion in this point, sat down and composed (that is at his
leisure) fit forms of swearing suitable to all cases, from the lowest to the
highest provocation which could possibly happen to him--which forms
being well considered by him, and such moreover as he could stand to, he
kept them ever by him on the chimney-piece, within his reach, ready for
use.--I never apprehended, replied Dr. Slop, that such a thing was ever
thought of--much less executed. I beg your pardon, answered my father;
I was reading, though not using, one of them to my brother Toby this
morning, whilst he pour'd out the tea--'tis here upon the shelf over my
head;--but if I remember right, 'tis too violent for a cut of the thumb.--
Not at all, quoth Dr. Slop--the devil take the fellow.
--Then, answered
my father, 'Tis much at your service, Dr. Slop--on condition you will
read it aloud;--so rising up and reaching down a form of excommunica-
tion of the church of Rome, a copy of which, my father (who was curious
in his collections) had procured out of the leger-book of the church of
Rochester, writ by Ernulphus the bishop--with a most affected serious-
ness of look and voice, which might have cajoled Ernulphus himself--he
put it into Dr. Slop's hands.--Dr. Slop wrapt his thumb up in the corner
of his handkerchief, and with a wry face, though without any suspicion,
read aloud, as follows--my uncle Toby whistling Lillabullero as loud as he
could all the time.




Textus de Ecclesia Roffensi, per Ernulfum Episcopum.

            CAP XXV

         
Excommunicatio.170

Ex auctoritate Dei omnipotentis, Patris, et Filij, et Spiritus Sancti,
et sanctorum canonum, sanctaeque et entemeratae Virginis Dei genetricis
Mariae
,



Volume 3, Chapter XI.



"BY THE AUTHORITY OF GOD ALMIGHTY, the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost,
and of the holy canons, and of the undefiled Virgin Mary, mother and
patroness of our Saviour.' I think there is no necessity, quoth Dr. Slop,
dropping the paper down to his knee, and addressing himself to my father
--as you have read it over, Sir, so lately, to read it aloud--and as
Captain Shandy seems to have no great inclination to hear it--I may as
well read it to myself. That's contrary to treaty, replied my father:--
besides, there is something so whimsical, especially in the latter part
of it, I should grieve to lose the pleasure of a second reading. Dr. Slop
did not altogether like it,--but my uncle Toby offering at that instant
to give over whistling, and read it himself to them;--Dr. Slop thought
he might as well read it under the cover of my uncle Toby's whistling--
as suffer my uncle Toby to read it alone;--so raising up the paper to
his face, and holding it quite parallel to it, in order to hide his
chagrin--he read it aloud as follows
--my uncle Toby whistling Lilla-
bullero
, though not quite so loud as before.

----Atque omnium coelestium virtutum, angelorum, archangelorum,
thronorum, dominationum, potestatuum, cherubin ac seraphin, & sanctorum
patriarchum, prophetarum, & omnium apolstolorum & evangelistarum, &
sanctorum innocentum, qui in conspectu Agni soli digni inventi sunt canticum
cantare novum, et sanctorum martyrum et sanctorum confessorum, et
sanctarum virginum, atque omnium simul sanctorum et electorum Dei,--

Excommunicamus, et anathematizamus hunc furem, vel hunc s malefactorem,
N.N. et a liminibus sanctae Dei ecclesiae sequestramus, et aeternis
vel suppliciis excruciandus, mancipetur, cum Dathan et Abiram, et cum
his qui dixerunt Domino Deo, Recede a nobis, scientiam viarum tuarum
nolumus: et ficut aqua ignis extinguatur lu-vel eorum cerna ejus in secula
seculorum nisi resque-n n rit, et ad satisfactionem venerit. Amen. o

Maledicat illum Deus Pater qui homi-os nem creavit. Maledicat illum Dei Filius
qui pro homine passus est. Maledicat os illum Spiritus Sanctus qui in baptismo
efos fusus est. Maledicat illum sancta crux, quam Christus pro nostra salute
hostem triumphans ascendit. os

Maledicat illum sancta Dei genetrix et perpetua Virgo Maria. Maledicat illum
sanctus Michael, animarum susceptor sa-os crarum. Maledicant illum omnes
angeli et archangeli, principatus et potestates, omnisque militia coelestis.

Maledicat illum patriarcharum et prophetarum laudabilis numerus. Maledicat
illum sanctus Johannes Praecursor et Baptista Christi, et sanctus Petrus,
et sanctus Paulus, atque sanctus Andreas, omnesque Christi apostoli, simul
et caeteri discipuli, quatuor quoque evangelistae, qui sua praedicatione mundum
universum converte-os runt.

Maledicat illum cuneus martyrum et confessorum mirificus, qui Deo bonis
operibus placitus inventus est. os Maledicant illum sacrarum virginum chori,
quae mundi vana causa honoris Christi respuenda contempserunt. Male-os
dicant illum omnes sancti qui ab initio mundi usque in finem seculi Deo
dilecti inveniuntur.

Maledicant illum coeli et terra, et omnia sancta in eis manentia.
Maledictus sit ubicunque, fuerit, sive in domo, sive in agro, sive in via,
sive in semita, sive in silva, sive in aqua, sive in ecclesia.

Maledictus sit vivendo, moriendo,--manducando, bibendo, esuriendo, sitiendo,
jejunando, dormitando, dormiendo, vigilando, ambulando, stando, sedendo,
jacendo, operando, quiescendo, mingendo, cacando, flebotomando.

Maledictus sit in totis viribus corporis. Maledictus sit intus et exterius.
Maledictus sit in capillis; maledictus n sit in cerebro. Maledictus sit in
vertice, in temporibus, in fronte, in auriculis, in superciliis, in oculis, in genis,
in maxillis, in naribus, in dentibus, mordacibus, in labris sive molibus, in
labiis, in guttere, in humeris, in harnis, in brachiis, in manubus, in digitis, in
pectore, in corde, et in omnibus interioribus stomacho tenus, in renibus, in
inguinibus, in femore, in genitalibus, in coxis, in genubus, in cruribus, in
pedibus, et in unguibus.

Maledictus sit in totis compagibus membrorum, a vertice capitis, usque ad
plantam pedis--non sit in eo sanitas.

Maledicat illum Christus Filius Dei vivi toto suae majestatis imperio----
et insurgat adversus illum coelum cum omnibus virtutibus quae in eo moventur
ad damnandum eum, nisi penituerit et ad satisfactionem venerit. Amen. Fiat,
fiat. Amen.


"By the authority of God Almighty, the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost,
and of the undefiled Virgin Mary, mother and patroness of our Saviour,
and of all the celestial virtues, angels, archangels, thrones, dominions,
powers, cherubins and seraphins, and of all the holy patriarchs, prophets,
and of all the apostles and evangelists, and of the holy innocents, who in
the sight of the Holy Lamb, are found worthy to sing the new song of the
holy martyrs and holy confessors, and of the holy virgins, and of all the
saints together, with the holy and elect of God,--May he' (Obadiah) "be
damn'd' (for tying these knots
) --"We excommunicate, and anathematize
him, and from the thresholds of the holy church of God Almighty we se-
quester him, that he may be tormented, disposed, and delivered over with
Dathan and Abiram, and with those who say unto the Lord God, Depart
from us, we desire none of thy ways. And as fire is quenched with water,
so let the light of him be put out for evermore, unless it shall repent him'
(Obadiah, of the knots which he has tied) "and make satisfaction' (for
them) "Amen."


"May the Father who created man, curse him.--May the Son who suffered
for us curse him.--May the Holy Ghost, who was given to us in baptism,
curse him' (Obadiah)--'May the holy cross which Christ, for our sal-
vation triumphing over his enemies, ascended, curse him.

"May the holy and eternal Virgin Mary, mother of God, curse him.--
May St. Michael, the advocate of holy souls, curse him.--May all the
angels and archangels, principalities and powers, and all the heavenly armies,
curse him.' (Our armies swore terribly in Flanders, cried my uncle Toby,--
but nothing to this.--For my own part I could not have a heart to curse
my dog so.)


"May St. John, the Praecursor, and St. John the Baptist,
171 and St. Peter
and St. Paul, and St. Andrew, and all other Christ's apostles, together
curse him. And may the rest of his disciples and four evangelists, who by
their preaching converted the universal world, and
may the holy and won-
derful company of martyrs and confessors who by their holy works are
found pleasing to God Almighty, curse him' (Obadiah.)

"May the holy choir of the holy virgins, who for the honour of Christ
have despised the things of the world, damn him
--May all the saints,
who from the beginning of the world to everlasting ages are found to be
beloved of God, damn him--
May the heavens and earth, and all the holy
things remaining therein, damn him,' (Obadiah) "or her,' (or whoever else
had a hand in tying these knots.)

"May he (Obadiah) be damn'd wherever he be--whether in the house or the
stables, the garden or the field, or the highway, or in the path, or in
the wood, or in the water, or in the church.--May he be cursed in living,
in dying.' (Here my uncle Toby, taking the advantage of a minim
172 in the
second bar of his tune, kept whistling one continued note to the end of
the sentence.--Dr. Slop, with his division of curses moving under him,
like a running bass all the way.) "May he be cursed in eating and drinking,
in being hungry, in being thirsty, in fasting, in sleeping, in slumbering, in
walking, in standing, in sitting, in lying, in working, in resting, in pissing,
in shitting, and in blood-letting!

"May he' (Obadiah) "be cursed in all the faculties of his body!

"May he be cursed inwardly and outwardly!--May he be cursed in the hair of
his head!--May he be cursed in his brains, and in his vertex,' (that is a
sad curse, quoth my father) "in his temples, in his forehead, in his ears,
in his eye-brows, in his cheeks, in his jaw-bones, in his nostrils, in his
foreteeth and grinders, in his lips, in his throat, in his shoulders, in
his wrists, in his arms, in his hands, in his fingers!

"May he be damn'd in his mouth, in his breast, in his heart and
purtenance, down to the very stomach!

"May he be cursed in his reins, and in his groin,' (God in heaven forbid!
quoth my uncle Toby) "in his thighs, in his genitals,' (my father shook his
head) "and in his hips, and in his knees, his legs, and feet, and toe-nails!

"May he be cursed in all the joints and articulations of the members,
from the top of his head to the sole of his foot! May there be no soundness
in him!

"May the son of the living God, with all the
glory of his Majesty'--
(Here my uncle Toby, throwing back his head, gave a monstrous, long,
loud Whew--w--w--s
omething betwixt the interjectional whistle of Hayday!
and the word itself.----By the golden beard of Jupiter--and of Juno (if
her majesty wore one) and by the beards of the rest of your heathen wor-
ships, which by the bye was no small number, since what with the beards
of your celestial gods, and gods aerial and aquatick--to say nothing of
the beards of towngods and country-gods, or of the celestial goddesses
your wives, or of the infernal goddesses your whores and concubines
(that is in case they wore them)--all which beards, as Varro
173 tells me,
upon his word and honour, when mustered up together, made no less than
thirty thousand effective beards upon the Pagan establishment;--every
beard of which claimed the rights and privileges of being stroken and
sworn by--by all these beards together then--I vow and protest, that
of the two bad cassocks I am worth in the world, I would have given
the better of them, as freely as ever Cid Hamet
174 offered his--to have
stood by, and heard my uncle Toby's accompanyment.


--"curse him!'--continued Dr. Slop,--'and may heaven, with all the
powers which move therein, rise up against him, curse and damn him'
(Obadiah) "unless he repent and make satisfaction! Amen. So be it,--so
be it. Amen.'

I declare, quoth my uncle Toby, my heart would not let me curse the
devil himself with so much bitterness.--He is the father of curses, replied
Dr. Slop.--So am not I, replied my uncle.--But he is cursed, and damn'd
already, to all eternity, replied Dr. Slop.

I am sorry for it, quoth my uncle Toby.


Dr. Slop drew up his mouth, and was just beginning to return my uncle
Toby the compliment of his Whu--u--u--or interjectional whistle--
when the door hastily opening in the next chapter but one--put an end
to the affair.



Volume 3, Chapter XII



NOW DON'T LET US give ourselves a parcel of airs, and pretend that the oaths
we make free with in this land of liberty of ours are our own; and because we
have the spirit to swear them,--imagine that we have had the wit to invent
them too.

I'll undertake this moment to prove it to any man in the world, except
to a connoisseur:--though I declare I object only to a connoisseur in swear-
ing,--as I would do to a connoisseur in painting, &c. &c.
the whole set of
'em are so hung round and befetish'd with the bobs and trinkets of criti-
cism,--or to drop my metaphor, which by the bye is a pity--for I have
fetch'd it as far as from the coast of Guinea;
175--their heads, Sir, are stuck
so full of rules and compasses, and have that eternal propensity to apply
them upon all occasions, that a work of genius had better go to the devil
at once, than stand to be prick'd and tortured to death by 'em.


--And how did Garrick
176 speak the soliloquy last night?--Oh, against all
rule, my lord,--most ungrammatically! betwixt the substantive and the
adjective, which should agree together in number, case, and gender, he
made a breach thus,--stopping, as if the point wanted settling;--and
betwixt the nominative case, which your lordship knows should govern the
verb, he suspended his voice in the epilogue a dozen times three seconds
and three fifths by a stop watch, my lord, each time.--Admirable gram-
marian!--But in suspending his voice--was the sense suspended likewise?
Did no expression of attitude or countenance fill up the chasm?--Was the
eye silent? Did you narrowly look?--I look'd only at the stop-watch, my
lord.--Excellent observer!


And what of this new book the whole world makes such a rout about?--
Oh! 'tis out of all plumb, my lord,--quite an irregular thing!--not
one of the angles at the four corners was a right angle.--I had my
rule and compasses, &c. my lord, in my pocket.--Excellent critick!


--And for the epick poem your lordship bid me look at--upon taking
the length, breadth, height, and depth of it, and trying them at home
upon an exact scale of Bossu's
177--'tis out, my lord, in every one of
its dimensions.--Admirable connoisseur!

--And did you step in, to take a look at the grand picture in your way
back?--'Tis a melancholy daub! my lord; not one principle of the pyr-
amid in any one group!
--and what a price!--for there is nothing of the
colouring of Titian
178--the expression of Rubens--the grace of Raphael--
the purity of Dominichino--the corregiescity of Corregio--the learning
of Poussin--the airs of Guido--the taste of the Carrachis--or the grand
contour of Angelo.--Grant me patience, just Heaven!--Of all the cants
which are canted in this canting world--though the cant of hypocrites
may be the worst--the cant of criticism is the most tormenting!


I would go fifty miles on foot, for I have not a horse worth riding on,
to kiss the hand of that man whose generous heart will give up the reins
of his imagination into his author's hands
--be pleased he knows not
why, and cares not wherefore.

Great Apollo! if thou art in a giving humour--give me--I ask no more,
but one stroke of native humour, with a single spark of thy own fire along
with it--and send Mercury, with the rules and compasses, if he can be
spared, with my compliments to--no matter.


Now to any one else I will undertake to prove, that
all the oaths and
imprecations which we have been puffing off upon the world for these
two hundred and fifty years last past as originals--except St. Paul's
thumb
--God's flesh and God's fish
, which were oaths monarchical,179 and,
considering who made them, not much amiss; and as kings oaths, 'tis not
much matter whether they were fish or flesh;--else I say, there is not
an oath, or at least a curse amongst them, which has not been copied
over and over again out of Ernulphus a thousand times: but, like all
other copies, how infinitely short of the force and spirit of the or-
iginal!--it is thought to be no bad oath--and by itself passes very
well--"G-d damn you.'--Set it beside Ernulphus's--"God almighty the
Father damn you--God the Son damn you--God the Holy Ghost damn you'
--you see 'tis nothing.--
There is an orientality in his, we cannot
rise up to: besides, he is more copious in his invention--possess'd
more of the excellencies of a swearer--had such a thorough knowledge
of the human frame, its membranes, nerves, ligaments, knittings of
the joints, and articulations,--that when Ernulphus cursed--no part
escaped him.--"Tis true there is something of a hardness in his man-
ner--and, as in Michael Angelo, a want of grace--but then there is
such a greatness of gusto!


My father, who generally l
ook'd upon every thing in a light very dif-
ferent from all mankind, would, a
fter all, never allow this to be an
original.--
He considered rather Ernulphus's anathema, as an institute
of swearing, in which, as he suspected, upon the decline of swearing
in some milder pontificate,
Ernulphus, by order of the succeeding pope,
had with great learning and diligence collected together all the laws
of it;--for the same reason that Justinian, in the decline of the
empire, had ordered his chancellor Tribonian to collect the Roman or
civil laws
all together into one code or digest--lest, through the
rust of time--and the fatality of all things committed to oral trad-
ition
--they should be lost to the world for ever.

For this reason my father would oft-times affirm, there was not an oath
from
the great and tremendous oath of William the conqueror (By the
splendour of God) down to the lowest oath of a scavenger (Damn your
eyes)
which was not to be found in Ernulphus.--In short, he would add--
I defy a man to swear out of it.


The hypothesis is, like most of my father's, singular and ingenious too;--
nor have I any objection to it, but that it overturns my own.



Volume 3, Chapter XIII



--BLESS MY SOUL!--my poor mistress is ready to faint--and
her pains
are gone--and the drops are done--and the bottle of julap
180 is broke--and
the nurse has cut her arm--(and I, my thumb, cried Dr. Slop,)
and the child
is where it was, continued Susannah,--and the midwife has fallen back-
wards upon the edge of the fender, and bruised her hip as black as your
hat.--I'll look at it, quoth Dr Slop.--There is no need of that, replied
Susannah
,--you had better look at my mistress--but the midwife would
gladly first give you an account how things are, so desires you would
go up stairs and speak to her this moment.

Human nature is the same in all professions.

The midwife had just before been put over Dr. Slop's head--He had
not digested it.--No, replied Dr. Slop, 'twould be full as proper if the
midwife came down to me.--I like subordination, quoth my uncle Toby,--
and but for it, after the reduction of Lisle, I know not what might have
become of the garrison of Ghent, in the mutiny for bread, in the year
Ten.--Nor, replied Dr. Slop, (parodying my uncle Toby's hobby-horsical
reflection; though full as hobby-horsical himself)--do I know, Captain
Shandy,
what might have become of the garrison above stairs, in the mu-
tiny and confusion I find all things are in at present,
but for the sub-
ordination of fingers and thumbs to...--the application of which, Sir, under
this accident of mine, comes in so a propos, that without it, the cut upon
my thumb might have been felt by the Shandy family, as long as the Shandy
family had a name.




Volume 3, Chapter XIV




LET US GO BACK to the...--in the last chapter.

It is a singular stroke of eloquence
(at least it was so, when eloquence
flourished at Athens and Rome, and would be so now, did orators wear
mantles)
not to mention the name of a thing, when you had the thing
about you in petto,
181 ready to produce, pop, in the place you want it. A
scar, an axe, a sword, a pink'd doublet, a rusty helmet, a pound and a half
of pot-ashes in an urn, or a three-halfpenny pickle pot--but above all, a
tender infant royally accoutred.--Tho' if it was too young, and the o-
ration as long as Tully's second Philippick
182--it must certainly have beshit
the orator's mantle.--And then again, if too old,--it must have been un-
wieldly and incommodious to his action--so as to make him lose by his child
almost as much as he could gain by it.--Otherwise, when a state orator
has hit the precise age to a minute--hid his Bambino in his mantle so
cunningly that no mortal could smell it--and produced it so critically,
that no soul could say, it came in by head and shoulders--Oh Sirs! it has
done wonders--It has open'd the sluices, and turn'd the brains, and shook
the principles, and unhinged the politicks of half a nation.


These feats however are not to be done, except in those states and times,
I say, where orators wore
mantles--and pretty large ones too, my breth-
ren, with
some twenty or five-and-twenty yards of good purple, superfine,
marketable cloth in them--with large flowing folds and doubles
, and in a
great style of design.--All which plainly shews, may it please your wor-
ships, that
the decay of eloquence, and the little good service it does at
present, both within and without doors,
is owing to nothing else in the
world, but short coats, and the disuse of trunk-hose.
183
--We can conceal
nothing under ours, Madam, worth shewing.




Volume 3, Chapter XV




DR. SLOP WAS WITHIN AN ACE of being an exception to all this argumenta-
tion: for happening to have his green baize bag upon his knees, when he
began to parody my uncle Toby--'twas as good as the best mantle in the
world to him: for which purpose,
when he foresaw the sentence would
end in his new-invented forceps, he thrust his hand into the bag in order
to have them ready to clap in
, when your reverences took so much notice
of the...which had he managed--my uncle Toby had certainly been
overthrown:
the sentence and the argument in that case jumping closely
in one point, so like the two lines which form the salient angle of a ra-
velin
,--Dr. Slop would never have given them up;--and my uncle Toby would
as soon have thought of flying, as taking them by force: but
Dr. Slop fumbled
so vilely in pulling them out, it took off the whole effect
, and what was a
ten times worse evil (for they seldom come alone in this life) in pulling
out his forceps,
his forceps unfortunately drew out the squirt along with
it.

When a proposition can be taken in two senses--'tis a law in disputation,
That the respondent may reply to which of the two he please
s, or finds
most convenient for him.--This threw the advantage of the argument quite
on my uncle Toby's side.--"Good God!' cried my uncle Toby,
"are children
brought into the world with a squirt
?'




Volume 3, Chapter XVI




--UPON MY HONOUR, Sir, you have tore every bit of skin quite off the back
of both my hands with your forceps, cried my uncle Toby--and you have
crush'd all my knuckles into the bargain with them to a jelly. 'Tis your
own fault, said Dr. Slop--you should have clinch'd your two fists together
into the form of a child's head as I told you, and sat firm.--I did so,
answered my uncle Toby.--Then the points of my forceps have not been
sufficiently arm'd, or the rivet wants closing
--or else the cut on my thumb
has made me a little aukward--or possibly--
"Tis well, quoth my father,
interrupting the detail of possibilities--that
the experiment was not first
made upon my child's head-piece.--
It would not have been a cherrystone
the worse, answered Dr. Slop.
--I maintain it, said my uncle Toby, it would
have broke the cerebellum (unless indeed the skull had been as hard as a
granado
184) and turn'd it all into a perfect posset.--Pshaw! replied Dr.
Slop, a child's head is naturally as soft as the pap of an apple
;--the
sutures give way--and besides, I could have extracted by the feet after.--
Not you, said she.--I rather wish you would begin that way, quoth my
father.


Pray do, added my uncle Toby.



Volume 3, Chapter XVII



--AND PRAY, GOOD WOMAN, after all, will you take upon you to say, it may
not be the child's hip, as well as the child's head?
--'Tis most certainly
the head, replied the midwife. Because, continued Dr. Slop (turning to my
father) as positive as these old ladies generally are--
'tis a point very
difficult to know--and yet of the greatest consequence to be known;--
because, Sir, if the hip is mistaken for the head--there is a possibility
(if it is a boy) that the forceps....

--What the possibility was, Dr. Slop whispered very low to my father,
and then to my uncle Toby.--There is no such danger, continued he, with
the head.--
No, in truth quoth my father--but when your possibility has
taken place at the hip--you may as well take off the head too
.

--It is morally impossible the reader should understand this--'tis enough
Dr. Slop understood it;--so taking the green baize bag in his hand, with
the help of Obadiah's pumps, he tripp'd pretty nimbly, for a man of his
size, across the room
to the door--and from the door was shewn the way,
by the good old midwife, to my mother's apartments.



Volume 3, Chapter XVIII



IT IS TWO HOURS, and ten minutes--and no more--cried my father, looking
at his watch, since Dr. Slop and Obadiah arrived--and I know not how it
happens, Brother Toby--but to my imagination it seems almost an age.


--Here--pray, Sir, take hold of my cap--nay, take the bell along with
it, and my pantoufles
185 too.

Now, Sir, they are all at your service; and I freely make you a present
of 'em, on condition you give me all your attention to this chapter.

Though my father said, "he knew not how it happen'd,'--yet he knew
very well how it happen'd;--and at the instant he spoke
it, was pre-
determined in his mind to give my uncle Toby a clear account of the
matter by a metaphysical dissertation upon the subject of duration
and its simple modes, in order to shew my uncle Toby by what mecha-
nism and mensurations in the brain it came to pass, that the rapid
succession of their ideas, and the eternal scampering of the dis-
course from one thing to another, since Dr. Slop had come into the
room, had lengthened out so short a period to so inconceivable an
extent.--"I know not how it happens--cried my father,--but it seems
an age.'

--'Tis owing entirely, quoth my uncle Toby, to the succession of our
ideas.

My father, who had an itch, in common with all philosophers, of reason-
ing upon every thing which happened, and accounting for it too--pro-
posed infinite pleasure to himself in this, of the succession of ideas,
and had not the least apprehension of having it snatch'd out of his hands
by my uncle Toby, who (honest man!) generally took every thing as it
happened;--and who, of all things in the world, troubled his brain the
least with abstruse thinking;--the ideas of time and space--or how we
came by those ideas--or of what stuff they were made--or whether they
were born with us--or we picked them up afterwards as we went along--
or whether we did it in frocks--or not till we had got into breeches--with
a thousand other inquiries and disputes about Infinity Prescience, Liberty,
Necessity, and so forth, upon whose desperate and unconquerable theories
so many fine heads have been turned and cracked--never did my uncle Toby's
the least injury at all;
my father knew it--and was no less surprized than
he was disappointed, with my uncle's fortuitous solution.

Do you understand the theory of that affair? replied my father.

Not I, quoth my uncle.

--But you have some ideas, said my father, of what you talk about?

No more than my horse, replied my uncle Toby.

Gracious heaven! cried my father, looking upwards, and clasping his
two hands together--
there is a worth in thy honest ignorance, brother
Toby--'twere almost a pity to exchange it for a knowledge.
--But I'll tell
thee.--

To understand what time is aright, without which we never can comprehend
infinity, insomuch as one is a portion of the other--we ought seriously
to sit down and consider what idea it is we have of duration, so as to
give a satisfactory account how we came by it.--What is that to anybody?
quoth my uncle Toby. (Vide Locke.
186) For if you will turn your eyes
inwards upon your mind
, continued my father, and observe attentively,
you will perceive, brother, that whilst you and I are talking together,
and thinking, and smoking our pipes, or whilst we receive successively
ideas in our minds, we know that we do exist, and so we estimate the
existence, or the continuation of the existence of ourselves, or any
thing else, commensurate to the succession of any ideas in our minds,
the duration of ourselves, or any such other thing co-existing with
our thinking--and so according to that preconceived
--You puzzle me
to death, cried my uncle Toby.

--"Tis owing to this, replied my father, that in our computations of
time, we are so used to minutes, hours, weeks, and months--and of
clocks (I wish there was not a clock in the kingdom) to measure out
their several portions to us, and to those who belong to us--that "twill
be well, if in time to come, the succession of our ideas be of any use
or service to us at all.

Now, whether we observe it or no, continued my father,
in every sound
man's head, there is a regular succession of ideas of on
e sort or other,
which follow each other in train just like--A train of artillery? said my
uncle Toby--A train of a fiddle-stick!--quoth my father--which follow
and succeed one another in our minds at certain distances, just like the
images in the inside of a lanthorn turned round by the heat of a candle.--
I declare, quoth my uncle Toby, mine are more like a smoke-jack
,187--
Then, brother Toby, I have nothing more to say to you upon that subject,
said my father.




Volume 3, Chapter XIX




--WHAT A CONJUNCTURE was here lost!
--My father in one of his best
explanatory moods--
in eager pursuit of a metaphysical point into the
very regions, where clouds and thick darkness would soon have encom-
passed it about;--my uncle Toby in one of the finest dispositions for
it in the world;--his head like a smoke-jack;--the funnel unswept, and
the ideas whirling round and round about in it, all obfuscated and darken-
ed over with fuliginous matter!--By the tomb-stone of Lucian
188--if it is
in being--if not, why then by his ashes! by the ashes of my dear Rabelais,
and dearer Cervantes!--my father and my uncle Toby's discourse upon
Time and Eternity--was a discourse devoutly to be wished for! and the
petulancy of my father's humour, in putting a stop to it as he did, was a
robbery of the Ontologic Treasury of such a jewel, as no coalition of great
occasions and great men are ever likely to restore to it again.




Volume 3, Chapter XX



THO' MY FATHER PERSISTED in not going on with the discourse--yet he
could not get my uncle
Toby's smoke-jack out of his head--piqued as he
was at first with it;--there was something in the comparison
at the bot-
tom, which hit his fancy; for which purpose, resting his elbow upon the
table, and reclining the right side of his head upon the palm of his hand--
but
l
ooking first stedfastly in the fire--he began to commune with him-
self, and philosophize about it: but his spirits being wore out with the
fatig
ues of investigating new tracts, and the constant exertion of his
faculties upon that variety of subjects which had taken their turn in
the discourse--the idea of the smoke jack soon turned all his ideas up-
side down
--so that he fell asleep almost before he knew what he was about.

As for my uncle Toby, his smoke-jack had not made a dozen revolutions,
before he fell asleep also.--Peace be with them both!--
Dr. Slop is
engaged with the midwife and my mother above stairs.--Trim is busy in
turning an old pair of jack-boots into a couple of mortars, to be em-
ployed in the siege of Messina next summer--
and is this instant boring
the touchholes with the point of a hot poker.--All my heroes are off
my hands;--'tis the first time I have had a moment to spare--and I'll
make use of it, and write my preface.




           
The Author's Preface



No, I'll not say a word about it--here it is;--in publishing it--I have
appealed to the world--and to the world I leave it;--it must speak for
itself.

All I know of the matter is--when I sat down, my intent was to write a
good book; and as far as the tenuity of my understanding would hold out
--a wise, aye, and a discreet--taking care only, as I went along, to put
into it all the wit and the judgment (be it more or less) which the great
Author and Bestower of them had thought fit originally to give me--so
that, as your worships see--"tis just as God pleases.

Now, Agalastes
189 (speaking dispraisingly) sayeth, That there may be some
wit in it, for aught he knows--but no judgment at all. And Triptolemus
and Phutatorius agreeing thereto, ask, How is it possible there should? for
that
wit and judgment in this world never go together; inasmuch as they
are two operations differing from each other as wide as east from west--
So, says Locke--so are farting and hickuping
, say I. But in answer to this,
Didius the gre
at church lawyer, in his code de fartendi et illustrandi
fallaciis
, doth maintain and make fully appear,
That an illustration is
no argument--nor do I maintain the wiping of a looking-glass clean to be
a syllogism;--but you all, may it please your worships, see the better
for it--so that the main good these things do is only to clarify the un-
derstanding, previous to the application of the argument itself, in order
to free it from any little motes, or specks of opacular matter, which,
if left swimming therein, might hinder a conception and spoil all.


Now, my dear anti-Shandeans, and thrice able criticks, and fellow-
labourers (for to you I write this Preface)--and
to you, most subtle
statesmen and discreet doctors (do--pull off your beards) renowned for
gravity and wisdom;--Monopolus,
190 my politician--Didius, my counsel; Ky-
sarcius, my friend;--Phutatorius, my guide;--Gastripheres, the preser-
ver of my life; Somnolentius, the balm and repose of it--not forgetting
all others, as well sleeping as waking, ecclesiastical as civil,
whom
for brevity, but out of no resentment to you,
I lump all together.
--Believe me, right worthy,

My most zealous wish and fervent prayer in your behalf, and in my own
too, in case the thing is not done already for us--is,
that the great
gifts and endowments both of wit and judgment, with every thing which
usually goes along with them--such as memory, fancy, genius, eloquence,
quick parts, and what not, may this precious moment, without stint or
measure, let or hindrance, be poured down warm as each of us could bear
it--scum and sediment and all (for I would not have a drop lost) into
the several receptacles, cells, cellules, domiciles, dormitories, re-
fectories, and spare places of our brains--in such sort, that they
might continue to be injected and tunn'd
191 into, according to the true
intent and meaning of my wish, until every vessel of them, both great
and small, be so replenish'd, saturated, and filled up therewith,

that no more, would it save a man's life, could possibly be got either
in or out.

Bless us!--what noble work we should make!--how should I tickle it off!
--and what spirits should I find myself in, to be writing away for such
readers!--and you--just heaven!--with what raptures would you sit and
read--but oh!--'tis too much--I am sick--I faint away deliciously at the
thoughts of it--'tis more than nature can bear!--lay hold of me--I am
giddy--I am stone blind--I'm dying--I am gone.--Help! Help! Help!--
But hold--I grow something better again, for I am beginning to foresee,
when this is over, that as we shall all of us continue to be great wits--
we should never agree amongst ourselves, one day to an end:--there would
be so much satire and sarcasm--scoffing and flouting, with raillying and
reparteeing of it--thrusting and parrying in one corner or another--there
would be nothing but mischief among us--Chaste stars! what biting and
scratching, and what a racket and a clatter we should make, what with
breaking of heads, rapping of knuckles, and hitting of sore places--there
would be no such thing as living for us.


But then again, as we should all of us be men of great judgment, we
should make up mat
ters as fast as ever they went wrong; and though we
should abominate each other ten times worse than so many devils or
devilesses, we should nevertheless, my dear creatures, be all courtesy and
kindness, milk and honey--'twould be a second land of promise--a paradise
upon earth
, if there was such a thing to be had--so that upon the whole
we should have done well enough.

All I fret and fume at, and what most distresses my invention at present,
is how to bring the point itself to bear; for as your worships well know,
that of
these heavenly emanations of wit and judgment, which I have so
bountifully wished both for your worships and myself--there is but a
certain quantum stored up for us all, for the use and behoof of the whole
race of mankind; and such small modicums of 'em are only sent forth into
this wide world, circulating here and there in one bye corner or another--
and in such narrow streams, and at such prodigious intervals from each
other, that one would wonder how it holds out, or could be sufficient for
the wants and emergencies of so many great estates, and populous empires.

Indeed there is one thing to be considered, that in Nova Zembla, North
Lapland, and in all those cold and dreary tracks of the globe, which lie
more directly under the arctick and antartick circles, where the whole
province of a man's concernments lies for near nine months together within
the narrow compass of his cave--where the spirits are compressed almost
to nothing--and where the passions of a man, with every thing which be-
longs to them, are as frigid as the zone itself--there the least quantity
of judgment imaginable does the business--and of wit--there is a total and
an absolute saving--for as not one spark is wanted--so not one spark is
given.
Angels and ministers of grace defend us! what a dismal thing would
it have been to have governed a kingdom, to have fought a battle, or made
a treaty, or run a match, or wrote a book, or got a child, or held a pro-
vincial chapter
192 there, with so plentiful a lack of wit and judgment about
us! For mercy's sake, let us think no more about it, but travel on as fast
as we can southwards into Norway--crossing over Swedeland, if you please,
through the small triangular province of Angermania to the lake of
Bothmia;
coasting along it through east and west Bothnia, down to Carelia,
and so on, through all those states and provinces which border upon the
far side of the Gulf of Finland, and the north-east of the Baltick, up to
Petersbourg, and just stepping into Ingria;--then stretching over directly
from thence through the north parts of the Russian empire--leaving Siberia
a little upon the left hand, till we got into the very heart of Russian
and Asiatick Tartary.

Now through this long tour which I have led you, you observe the good
people are better off by far, than in the polar countries which we have
just left:--for
if you hold your hand over your eyes, and look very at-
tentively, you may perceive some small glimmerings (as it were) of wit,
with a comfortable provision of good plain houshold judgment,
which, taking
the quality and quantity of it together, they make a very good shift with
--and had they more of either the one or the other, it would destroy the
proper balance betwixt them, and I am satisfied moreover they would want
occasions to put them to use.

Now, Sir,
if I conduct you home again into this warmer and more luxuriant
island, where you perceive the spring-tide of our blood and humours
runs high--where we have more ambition, and pride, and envy, and lechery,
and other whoreson passions upon our hands to govern and subject to
reason--the height of our wit, and the depth of our judgment, you see,
are exactly proportioned to the length and breadth of our necessities--
and accordingly we have them sent down amongst us in such a flowing
kind of decent and creditable plenty,
that no one thinks he has any cause
to complain.


It must however be confessed on this head, that,
as our air blows hot
and cold--wet and dry, ten times in a day, we have them in no regular and
settled way;--so that sometimes for near half a century together, there
shall be very little wit or judgment either to be seen or heard of amongst
us:--the small channels of them shall seem quite dried up--then all of a
sudden the sluices shall break out, and take a fit of running again like
fury--you would think they would never stop:--and then it is, that in
writing, and fighting, and twenty other gallant things, we drive all the
world before us.


It is by these observations, and a wary reasoning by analogy in that kind
of argumentative process, which Suidas
193 calls dialectick induction--
that I draw and set up this position as most true and veritable;

That of these two luminaries so much of their irradiations are suffered
from time to time to shine down upon us, as he, whose infinite wisdom
which dispenses every thing in exact weight and measure, knows will just
serve to light us on our way in this night of our obscurity; so that your
reverences and worships now find out, nor is it a moment longer in my
power to conceal it from you, That the fervent wish in your behalf with
which I set out, was no more than the first insinuating How d'ye of a
caressing prefacer, stifling his reader, as a lover sometimes does a coy
mistress, into silence.
For alas! could this effusion of light have been
as easily procured, as the exordium wished it--I tremble to think how
many thousands for it, of benighted travellers (in the learned sciences
at least) must have groped and blundered on in the dark, all the nights
of their lives--running their heads against posts, and knocking out their
brains without ever getting to their journies end;--some falling with
their noses perpendicularly into sinks--others horizontally with their
tails into kennels.
194 Here one half of a learned profession tilting full
but against the other half of it, and then tumbling and rolling one o-
ver the other in the dirt like hogs.--

Here the brethren of another profession, who should have run in oppo-
sition to each other, flying on the contrary like a flock of wild geese,
all in a row the same way.--What confusion!--what mistakes!--fiddlers and
painters judging by their eyes and ears--admirable!--trusting to the pas-
sions excited--in an air sung, or a story painted to the heart--instead
of measuring them by a quadrant.

In the fore-ground of this picture, a statesman turning the political wheel,
like a brute, the wrong way round--against the stream of corruption--by
Heaven!--instead of with it.


In this corner, a son of the divine Esculapius,
195 writing a book against
predestination; perhaps worse--feeling his patient's pulse, instead of his
apothecary's--a brother of the Faculty in the back-ground upon his knees
in tears--drawing the curtains of a mangled victim to beg his forgiveness;
--offering a fee--instead of taking one.

In that spacious Hall, a coalition of the gown,196 from all the bars of it,
driving a damn'd, dirty, vexatious cause before them, with all their might
and main, the wrong way!--kicking it out of the great doors, instead of,
in--and with such fury in their looks, and such a degree of inveteracy in
their manner of kicking it, as if the laws had been originally made for the
peace and preservation of mankind:
--perhaps a more enormous mistake
committed by them still--a litigated point fairly hung up;--for instance,
Whether John o'Nokes his nose could stand in Tom o'Stiles his face, without
a trespass, or not--rashly determined by them in five-and-twenty minutes,
which, with the caut
ious pros and cons required in so intricate a proceed-
ing,
might have taken up as many months--and if carried on upon a military
plan, as your honours know an Action should be, with all the stratagems
practicable therein,--such as feints,--forced marches,--surprizes--am-
buscades--mask-batteries, and a thousand other strokes of generalship,
which consist in catching at all advantages on both sides--might reason-
ably have lasted them as many years, finding food and raiment all that
term for a centumvirate197 of the profession.

As for the Clergy--No--if I say a word against them, I'll be shot.--I
have no desire; and besides, if I had--I durst not for my soul touch upon
the subject--with such weak nerves and spirits, and in the condition I am
in at present, 'twould be as much as my life was worth, to deject and
contrist myself with so bad and melancholy an account
--and therefore
"tis safer to draw a curtain across, and hasten from it, as fast as I can,
to the main and principal point I have undertaken to clear up--and that is,
How it comes to pass, that your men of least wit are reported to be men of
most judgment.--But mark--I say, reported to be--for it is no more, my
dear Sirs, than a report, and which, like twenty others taken up every day
upon trust, I maintain to be a vile and a malicious report into the bargain.


This by the help of the observation already premised, and I hope already
weighed and perpended by your reverences and worships, I shall forthwith
make appear.

I hate set dissertations--and above all things in the world, 'tis one of the
silliest things in one of them, to darken your hypothesis by placing a number
of tall, opake words, one before another, in a right line, betwixt your own
and your reader's conception
--when in all likelihood, if you had looked
about, you might have seen something standing, or hanging up, which
would have cleared the point at once--
'for what hindrance, hurt, or harm
doth the laudable desire of knowledge bring to any man, if even from a
sot, a pot, a fool, a stool, a winter-mittain, a truckle for a pully, the lid
of a goldsmith's crucible, an oil bottle, an old slipper, or a cane chair?'
198
--I am this moment sitting upon one. Will you give me leave to illustrate
this affair of wit and judgment, by the two knobs on the top of the back of
it?--they are fastened on, you see, with two pegs stuck slightly into two
gimlet-holes, and will place what I have to say in so clear a light, as to
let you see through the drift and meaning of my whole preface, as plainly
as if every point and particle of it was made up of sun-beams.


I enter now directly upon the point.

--Here stands wit--and there stands judgment, close beside it, just like
the two knobs I'm speaking of, upon the back of this self-same chair on
which I am sitting.

--You see, they are the highest and most ornamental parts of its frame--
as wit and judgment are of ours--and like them too, indubitably both
made and fitted to go together, in order, as we say in all such cases of
duplicated embellishments--to answer one another.

Now for the sake of an experiment, and for the clearer illustrating this
matter--let us for a moment take off one of these two curious ornaments
(I care not which) from the point or pinnacle of the chair it now stands
on--
nay, don't laugh at it,--but did you ever see, in the whole course of
your lives, such a ridiculous business as this has made of it?--Why, 'tis as
miserable a sight as a sow with one ear; and there is just as much sense and
symmetry in the one as in the other
:
--do--pray, get off your seats only to
take a view of it,--Now would any man who valued his character a straw,
have turned a piece of work out of his hand in such a condition?--nay, lay
your hands upon your hearts, and answer this plain question,
Whether
this one single knob, which now stands here like a blockhead by itself, can
serve any purpose upon earth, but to put one in mind of the want of the
other?--and let me farther ask, in case the chair was your own, if you
would not in your consciences think, rather than be as it is, that it would
be ten times better without any knob at all?

Now these two knobs--or top ornaments of the mind of man, which
crown the whole entablature
--being, as I said, wit and judgment, which
of all others, as I have proved it, are the most needful--the most priz'd--
the most calamitous to be without, and consequently the hardest to come
at--for all these reasons put together,
there is not a mortal among us, so
destitute of a love of good fame or feeding--or so ignorant of what will do
him good therein
--who does not wish and stedfastly resolve in his own
mind, to be, or to be thought at least, master of the one or the other, and
indeed of both of them, if the thing seems any way feasible, or likely to be
brought to pass.


Now your graver gentry having little or no kind of chance in aiming at
the one--unless they laid hold of the other,--pray what do you think
would become of them?--Why, Sirs, in spite of all their gravities, they
must e'en have been contented to have gone with their insides naked--

this was not to be borne, but by an effort of philosophy not to be sup-
posed in the case we are upon--so that no one could well have been angry
with them,
had they been satisfied with what little they could have snatched
up and secreted under their cloaks and great perriwigs, had they not raised
a hue and cry at the same time against the lawful owners.

I need not tell your worships, that this was done with so much cunning
and artifice--that the great Locke, who was seldom outwitted by false
sounds--was nevertheless bubbled here. The cry, it seems, was so deep
and solemn a one, and what with the help of great wigs, grave faces, and
other implements of deceit, was rendered so general a one against the
poor wits in this matter, that the philosopher himself was deceived by it--
it was his glory to free the world from the lumber of a thousand vulgar
errors;--but this was not of the number; so that instead of sitting down
coolly, as such a philosopher should have done, to have examined the
matter of fact before he philosophised upon it--on the contrary he took
the fact for granted, and so joined in with the cry, and halloo'd it
as boisterously
as the rest.

This has been made the Magna Charta of stupidity ever since--but
your reverences plainly see, it has been obtained in such a manner, that
the title to it is not worth a groat:--which by-the-bye is one of the many
and vile impositions which gravity and grave folks have to answer for
hereafter.


As for great wigs, upon which I may be thought to have spoken my
mind too freely--I beg leave to qualify whatever has been unguardedly
said to their dispraise or prejudice, by one general declaration--That I
have no abhorrence whatever, nor do I detest and abjure either great wigs
or long beards, any farther than when I see they are bespoke and let grow
on purpose to carry on this self-same imposture
--for any purpose--peace
be with them!--mark only--I write not for them.




Volume 3, Chapter XXI




EVERY DAY FOR AT LEAST TEN YEARS together did my father resolve to have it
mended--'tis not mended yet;--no family but ours would have borne with it
an hour--and
what is most astonishing, there was not a subject in the world
upon which my father was so eloquent, as upon that of doorhinges.--And yet
at the same time, he was certainly one of the greatest bubbles
199 to them, I
think, that history can produce: his rhetorick and conduct were at perpe-
tual handy-cuffs.--Never did the parlour-door open--but his philosophy or
his principles fell a victim to it;--three drops of oil with a feather, and a
smart stroke of a hammer, had saved his honour for ever.

--Inconsistent soul that man is!--languishing under wounds, which he
has the power to heal!--his whole life a contradiction to his knowledge!--
his reason, that precious gift of God to him--(instead of pouring in oil)
serving but to sharpen his sensibilities--to multiply his pains, and render
him more melancholy and uneasy under them!
--Poor unhappy creature,
that he should do so!--Are not the necessary causes of misery in this life
enow, but he must add voluntary ones to his stock of sorrow;--struggle
against evils which cannot be avoided, and submit to others, which a tenth
part of the trouble they create him would remove from his heart for ever?
By all that is good and virtuous, if there are three drops of oil to be got,
and a hammer to be found within ten miles of Shandy Hall--the parlour
door hinge shall be mended this reign.



Volume 3, Chapter XXII




WHEN CORPORAL TRIM had brought his two mortars to bear, he was deligh-
ted with his handy-work above measure; and knowing what a pleasure it would
be to his master to see them, he was not able to resist the desire he had
of carrying them directly into his parlour.

Now next to the moral lesson I had in view in mentioning the affair of
hinges, I had a speculative consideration arising out of it, and it is
this. Had the parlour door opened and turn'd upon its hinges, as a door
should do--

Or for example, as cleverly as our government has been turning upon its
hinges--(that is, in case things have all along gone well with your wor-
ship,--otherwise I give up my simile)--in this case, I say, there had been
no danger either to master or man, in corporal Trim's peeping in: the
moment he had beheld my father and my uncle Toby fast asleep--
the
respectfulness of his carriage was such, he would have retired as silent
as death, and left them both in their arm-chairs, dreaming as happy as he
had found them: but the thing was, morally speaking, so very impractic-
able, that for the many years in which this hinge was suffered to be out of
order, and amongst the hourly grievances my father submitted to upon its
account--this was one; that he never folded his arms to take his nap after
dinner, but the thoughts of being unavoidably awakened by the first per-
son who should open the door, was always uppermost in his imagination,
and so incessantly stepp'd in betwixt
him and the first balmy presage of
his repose, as to rob him, as he often declared, of the whole sweets of it.

"When things move upon bad hinges, an' please your lordships, how
can it be otherwise?
'


Pray what's the matter? Who is there? cried my father, waking, the mom-
ent the door began to creak.--I wish the smith would give a peep at that
confounded hinge.--'Tis nothing, an please your honour, said Trim, but
two mortars I am bringing in.--They shan't make a clatter with them
here, cried my father hastily.--If Dr. Slop has any drugs to pound, let him
do it in the kitchen.
--May it please your honour, cried Trim, they are two
mortar-pieces for a siege next summer, which I have been making out of a
pair of jack-boots, which Obadiah told me your honour had left off wear-
ing.--
By Heaven! cried my father, springing out of his chair, as he swore--
I have not one appointment belonging to me, which I set so much store
by as I do by these jack-boots--they were our great grandfather's brother
Toby--they were hereditary. Then I fear, quoth my uncle Toby, Trim has
cut off the entail.
200--I have only cut off the tops, an' please your honour,
cried Trim--I hate perpetuities as much as any man alive, cried my father-
--but these jack-boots, continued he (smiling, though very angry at the
same time) have been in the family, brother, ever since the civil wars;--
Sir Roger Shandy wore them at the battle of
Marston-Moor.--I declare I
would not have taken ten pounds for them.
--I'll pay you the money,
brother Shandy, quoth my uncle Toby, looking at the two mortars with
infinite pleasure, and putting his hand into his breeches pocket as he
viewed them--I'll pay you the ten pounds this moment with all my heart
and soul.--

Brother Toby, replied my father, altering his tone, you care not what
money you dissipate and throw away, provided, continued he, 'tis but
upon a Siege.--Haveot one hundred and twenty pounds a year, besides my
half pay? cried my uncle Toby.--What is that--replied my father hast-
ily--to ten pounds for a pair of jack-boots?--twelve guineas for your
pontoons?--half as much for your Dutch draw-bridge?--to say nothing of
the train of little brass artillery you bespoke last week, with twenty
other preparations for the siege of Messina:
believe me, dear brother
Toby, continued my father, taking him kindly by the hand--these mili-
tary operations of yours are above your strength;--you mean well brother
--but
they carry you into greater expences than you were first aware of;
--and take my word, dear Toby,
they will in the end quite ruin your for-
tune, and make a beggar of you.--What signifies it if they do, brother,
replied my Uncle Toby, so long as we know 'tis for the good of the nation?--

My father could not help smiling for his soul--his anger at the worst
was never more than a spark;--and the zeal and simplicity of Trim--and
the generous (though hobby-horsical) gallantry of my uncle Toby, brought
him into perfect good humour with them in an instant.

Generous souls!--God prosper you both
, and your mortar-pieces too!
quoth my father to himself.




Volume 3, Chapter XXIII




ALL IS QUIET AND HUSH, cried my father, at least above stairs--I hear not
one foot stirring.--Prithee Trim, who's in the kitchen? There is no one
soul in the kitchen, answered Trim, making a low bow as he spoke, except
Dr. Slop.--Confusion! cried my father (getting upon his legs a second
time)--not one single thing has gone right this day! had I faith in as-
trology, brother, (which, by the bye, my father had) I would have sworn
some retrograde planet was hanging over this unfortunate house of mine,
and turning every individual thing in it out of its place.--Why, I thought
Dr. Slop had been above stairs with my wife, and so said you.--What can
the fellow be puzzling about in the kitchen!--He is busy, an' please your
honour, replied Trim, in making a bridge.--'Tis very obliging in him,
quoth my uncle Toby:--pray, give my humble service to Dr. Slop, Trim,
and tell him I thank him heartily.

You must know, my uncle Toby mistook the bridge--as widely as my
father mistook the mortars:--but to understand how my uncle Toby could
mistake the bridge--I fear I must give you an exact account of the road
which led to it;--or to drop my metaphor (for there is nothing more dis-
honest in an historian than the use of one)
--in order to conceive the
probability of this error in my uncle Toby aright, I must give you some
account of an adventure of Trim's, though much against my will, I say much
against my will, only because the story, in one sense, is certainly out of
its place here; for
by right it should come in, either amongst the anecd-
otes of my uncle Toby's amours with widow Wadman, in which corporal Trim
was no mean actor--or else in the middle of his and my uncle Toby's camp-
aigns on the bowling-green--for it will do very well in either place;--
but then if I reserve it for either of those parts of my story--I ruin the
story I'm upon;--and if I tell it here--I anticipate matters, and ruin
it there.


--What would your worship have me to do in this case?

--Tell it, Mr. Shandy, by all means.--You are a fool, Tristram, if you
do.

O ye powers! (for powers ye are, and great ones too)--which enable
mortal man to tell a story worth the hearing--that kindly shew him, where
he is to begin it--and where he is to end it--what he is to put into it--
and what he is to leave out--how much of it he is to cast into a shade--
and whereabouts he is to throw his light!--Ye, who preside over this vast
empire of biographical freebooters, and see how many scrapes and plunges
your subjects hourly fall into
;--will you do one thing?

I beg and beseech you (in case you will do nothing better for us) that
wherever in any part of your dominions it so falls out, that three several
roads meet in one point, as they have done just here--that at least you set
up a guide-post in the centre of them, in mere charity, to direct an un-
certain devil which of the three he is to take.




Volume 3, Chapter XXIV




THO' THE SHOCK my uncle Toby received the year after the demolition
of Dunkirk,
201 in his affair with widow Wadman, had fixed him in a resolution
never more to think of the sex--or of aught which belonged to it;--yet
corporal Trim had made no such bargain with himself. Indeed
in my uncle
Toby's case there was a strange and unaccountable concurrence of circu-
mstances, which insensibly drew him in, to lay siege to that fair and strong
citadel.--In Trim's case there was a concurrence of nothing in the world,
but of him and Bridget in the kitchen
;--though in truth, the love and
veneration he bore his master was such, and so fond was he of imitating
him in all he did, that had my uncle Toby employed his time and genius
in tagging of points
202--I am persuaded the honest corporal would have laid
down his arms, and followed his example with pleasure.
When therefore
my uncle Toby sat down before the mistress--corporal Trim incontinently
took ground before the maid.


Now, my dear friend Garrick,
203 whom I have so much cause to esteem and
honour--(why, or wherefore, 'tis no matter)--can it escape your penetra-
tion--I defy it--that so many play-wrights, and opificers of chit-chat have
ever since been working upon Trim's and my uncle Toby's pattern.--I care
not what Aristotle,
204 or Pacuvius, or Bossu, or Ricaboni say--(though
I never read one of them)--
there is not a greater difference between a
single-horse chair and madam Pompadour's vis-a-vis;
205 than betwixt a single
amour, and an amour thus nobly doubled, and going upon all four, prancing
throughout a grand drama--Sir, a simple, single, silly affair of that kind--
is quite lost in five acts
--but that is neither here nor there.


After a series of attacks and repulses in a course of nine months
on my
uncle Toby's quarter, a most minute account of every particular of which
shall be given in its proper place, my uncle Toby, honest man! found it
necessary to draw off his forces and raise the siege somewhat indignantly.
Corporal Trim, as I said, had made no such bargain either with himself--
or with any one else--
the fidelity however of his heart not suffering
him to go into a house which his master had forsaken with disgust--he
contented himself with turning his part of the siege into a blockade;--
that is, he kept others off
;--for though he never after went to the house,
yet he never met Bridget in the village, but he would either nod or wink,
or smile, or look kindly at her--or (as circumstances directed) he would
shake her by the hand--or ask her lovingly how she did--or would give
her a ribbon--and now-and-then, though never but when it could be
done with decorum, would give Bridget a...--


Precisely in this situation, did these things stand for five years; that
is from the demolition of Dunkirk in the year 13, to the latter end of my
uncle Toby's campaign in the year 18, which was about six or seven weeks
before the time I'm speaking of.--
When Trim, as his custom was, after he
had put my uncle Toby to bed, going down one moon-shiny night to see
that every thing was right at his fortifications--in the lane separated from
the bowling-green with flowering shrubs and holly--he espied his Bridget.

As the corporal thought there was nothing in the world so well worth
shewing as the glorious works which he and my uncle Toby had made, Trim
courteously and gallantly took her by the hand, and led her in: this was not
done so privately, but that
the foul-mouth'd trumpet of Fame carried it
from ear to ear
, till at length it reach'd my father's, with this untoward
circumstance along with it, that
my uncle Toby's curious draw-bridge, con-
structed and painted after the Dutch fashion, and which went quite across
the ditch--was broke down, and somehow or other crushed all to pieces
that very night.


My father, as you have observed, had no great esteem for my uncle
Toby's hobby-horse; he thought it the most ridiculous horse that ever
gentleman mounted; and indeed unless my uncle Toby vexed him about
it, could never think of it once, without
smiling at it--so that it could
never get lame or happen any mischance, but it tickled my father's imag-
ination beyond measure;
but this being an accident much more to his
humour than any one which had yet befall'n it, it proved an inexhaustible
fund of entertainment to him--
Well--but dear Toby! my father would
say, do tell me seriously how this affa
ir of the bridge happened.--How
can you teaze me so much about it? my uncle Toby would reply--I have
told it you twenty times, word for word as Trim told it me.--Prithee, how
was it then, corporal? my father would cry, turning to Trim.--
It was a
mere misfortune, an' please your honour;--I was shewing Mrs.
206 Bridget
our fortifications, and in
going too near the edge of the fosse, I un-
fortunately slipp'd in
--Very well, Trim! my father would cry--(smiling
mysteriously, and giving a nod--but without interrupting him)--and being
link'd fast, an' please your honour, arm in arm with Mrs. Bridget, I dragg'd
her after me, by means of which she fell backwards soss against the bridge--
and Trim's foot (my uncle Toby would cry, taking the story out of his
mouth) getting into the cuvette,
207 he tumbled full against the bridge too.--
It was a thousand to one, my uncle Toby would add, that the poor fellow
did not break his leg.--Ay truly, my father would say--a limb is soon
broke, brother Toby, in such encounters.--And so, an' please your honour,
the bridge, which your honour knows was a very slight one, was broke
down betwixt us, and splintered all to pieces.

At other times, but especially when my uncle Toby was so unfortunate
as to say a syllable about cannons, bombs, or petards--my father would
exhaust all the stores of his eloquenc
e (which indeed were very great) in
a panegyric upon the Battering-Rams of the ancients--the Vinea
208 which
Alexander made use of at the siege of Troy.--He would tell my uncle Toby
of the Catapultae of the Syrians, which threw such monstrous stones so
many hundred feet, and shook the strongest bulwarks from their very
foundation:--he would go on and describe the wonderful mechanism of
the Ballista which Marcellinus makes so much rout about!--the terrible
effects of the Pyraboli, which cast fire;--the danger of the Terebra and
Scorpio, which cast javelins.--But what are these, would he say, to the
destructive machinery of corporal Trim?--Believe me, brother Toby, no
bridge, or bastion, or sally-port, that ever was constructed in this
world, can hold out against such artillery.

My uncle Toby would never attempt any defence against the force of
this ridicule, but that of redoubling the vehemence of smoaking his pipe;
in doing which, he raised so dense a vapour one night after supper, that it
set my father, who was a little phthisical, into a suffocating fit of vio-
lent coughing: my uncle Toby leap'd up without feeling the pain upon his
groin--and, with infinite pity, stood beside his brother's chair, tapping his
back with one hand, and holding his head with the other, and from time
to time wiping his eyes with a clean cambrick handkerchief, which he
pulled out of his pocket.--The affectionate and endearing manner in which
my uncle Toby did these little offices--cut my father thro' his reins, for
the pain he had just been giving him.--May my brains be knock'd out
with a battering-ram or a catapulta, I care not which, quoth my father to
himself--if ever I insult this worthy soul more!



Volume 3, Chapter XXV



THE DRAW-BRIDGE being held irreparable, Trim was ordered directly to set
about another--but not upon the same model: for cardinal Alberoni's
209
intrigues at that time being discovered, and my uncle Toby rightly foresee-
ing that a flame would inevitably break out betwixt Spain and the Empire,
and that the operations of the ensuing campaign must in all likelihood be
either in Naples or Sicily--he determined upon an Italian bridge--(my
uncle Toby, by-the-bye, was not far out of his conjectures)--but my fa-
ther, who was infinitely the better politician, and took the lead as far
of my uncle Toby in the cabinet, as my uncle Toby took it of him in the
field--convinced him, that if the king of Spain and the Emperor went
together by the ears, England and France and Holland must, by force of
their pre-engagements, all enter the lists too;--and if so, he would
say, the combatants, brother Toby, as sure as we are alive, will fall
to it again, pellmell, upon the old prize-fighting stage of Flanders;
--then what will you do with your Italian bridge?

--We will go on with it then upon the old model, cried my uncle Toby.

When corporal Trim had about half finished it in that style--
my uncle
Toby found out a capital defect in it, which he had never thoroughly
considered before. It turned, it seems, upon hinges at both ends of it,
opening in the middle, one half of which turning to one side of the fosse,
and the other to the other; the advantage of which was this, that by div-
iding the weight of the bridge into two equal portions, it impowered my
uncle Toby to raise it up or let it down with the end of his crutch, and
with one hand, which, as his garrison was weak, was as much as he could
well spare--but the disadvantages of such a construction were insurmount-
able;--for by this means, he would say, I leave one half of my bridge in
my enemy's possession--and pray of what use is the other?


The natural remedy for this was, no doubt, to have his bridge fast only
at one end with hinges, so that the whole might be lifted up together, and
stand bolt upright--but that was rejected for the reason given above.

For a whole week after he was determined in his mind to have one of
that particular construction which is made to draw back horizontally, to
hinder a passage; and to thrust forwards again to gain a passage--of which
sorts your worship might have seen three famous ones at Spires before its
destruction--and one now at Brisac, if I mistake not;--but my father
advising my uncle Toby, with great earnestness, to have nothing more to
do with thrusting bridges--and my uncle foreseeing moreover that it would
but perpetuate the memory of the Corporal's misfortune--he changed
his mind for that of the marquis d'Hopital's invention, which the younger
Bernouilli has so well and learnedly described, as your worships may see--
Act. Erud. Lips. an. 1695
210--to these a lead weight is an eternal balance,
and keeps watch as well as a couple of centinels, inasmuch as the con-
struction of them was a curve line approximating to a cycloid--if not a
cycloid itself.


My uncle Toby understood the nature of a parabola as well as any man
in England--but was not quite such a master of the cycloid;--he talked
however about it every day--the bridge went not forwards.--We'll ask
somebody about it, cried my uncle Toby to Trim.




Volume 3, Chapter XXVI



WHEN TRIM CAME IN and told my father, that Dr. Slop was in the kitchen,
and busy in making a bridge
--my uncle Toby--the affair of the jackboots
having just then
raised a train of military ideas in his brain--took it
instantly for granted that Dr. Slop was making a model of the marquis
d'Hopital's bridge.--'tis very obliging in him, quoth my uncle Toby;--
pray give my humble service to Dr. Slop, Trim, and tell him I thank him
heartily.


Had my uncle Toby's head been a Savoyard's box,
211 and my father peep-
ing in all the time at one end of it--it could not have given him a more
distinct conception of the operations of my uncle Toby's imagination,
than what he had; so, notwithstanding the catapulta and battering-ram,
and his bitter imprecation about them, he was just beginning to triumph--

When Trim's answer, in an instant, tore the laurel from his brows, and
twisted it to pieces.




Volume 3, Chapter XXVII



--THIS UNFORTUNATE DRAW-BRIDGE of yours, quoth my father--God bless
your honour, cried Trim,
'tis a bridge for master's nose.--In bringing him
into the world with his vile instruments, he has crushed his nose, Susannah
says, as flat as a pancake to his face, and he is making a false bridge with a
piece of cotton and a thin piece of whalebone
out of Susannah's stays, to
raise it up.

--Lead me, brother Toby, cried my father, to my room this instant.



Volume 3, Chapter XXVIII



FROM THE FIRST MOMENT I sat down to write my life for the amusement of
the world, and my opinions for its instruction, has
a cloud insensibly been
gathering over my father.--A tide of little evils and distresses has been
setting in against him.--Not one thing, as he observed himself, has gone
right: and now is the storm thicken'd and going to break, and pour down
full upon his head.

I enter upon this part of my story in the most pensive and melancholy
frame of mind that ever sympathetic breast was touched with.--My nerves
relax as I tell it.--Every line I write, I feel an abatement of the quick-
ness of my pulse, and of that careless alacrity with it
, which every day
of my life prompts me to say and write a thousand things I should not--And
this moment that I last dipp'd my pen into my ink, I could not help taking
notice what
a cautious air of sad composure and solemnity there appear'd in
my manner of doing it.--Lord! how different from the rash jerks and hair-
brain'd squirts thou art wont, Tristram, to transact it with in other humours--
dropping thy pen--spurting thy ink about thy table and thy books
--as if
thy pen and thy ink, thy books and furniture cost thee nothing!




Volume 3, Chapter XXVIX



--I WON'T GO ABOUT to argue the point with you--'tis so--and I am
persuaded of it, madam, as much as can be,
"That both man and woman
bear pain or sorrow (and, for aught I know, pleasure too) best in a
horizontal position.'

The moment my father got up into his chamber, he threw himself pros-
trate across his bed in the wildest disorder imaginable, but at the same
time in the most lamentable attitude of a man borne down with sorrows,
that ever the eye of pity dropp'd a tear for.--The palm of his right hand,
as he fell upon the bed, receiving his forehead, and covering the greatest
part of both his eyes,
gently sunk down with his head (his elbow giving way
backwards) till his nose touch'd the quilt;--his left arm hung insensible
over the side of the bed, his knuckles reclining upon the handle of the
chamber-pot, which peep'd out beyond the valance--his right leg (his left
being drawn up towards his body) hung half over the side of the bed, the
edge of it pressing upon his shin bone--
He felt it not. A fix'd, inflexible
sorrow took possession of every line of his face.--He sigh'd once--heaved
his breast often--but uttered not a word.


An old set-stitch'd chair, valanced and fringed around with party coloured
worsted bobs, stood at the bed's head, opposite to the side where my father's
head reclined.--My uncle Toby sat him down in it.


Before an affliction is digested--consolation ever comes too soon;--and
after it is digested--it comes too late: so that you see, madam, there is
but a mark between these two, as fine almost as a hair, for a comforter to
take aim at:
--my uncle Toby was always either on this side, or on that of
it, and would often say, he believed in his heart he could as soon hit the
longitude;
212 for this reason, when he sat down in the chair, he drew the
curtain a little forwards, and having a tear at every one's service--he
pull'd out a cambrick handkerchief--gave a low sigh--but held his peace
.



Volume 3, Chapter XXX



--"ALL IS NOT GAIN that is got into the purse."--So that notwithstanding
my father had the happiness of reading the oddest books in the universe,
and had moreover, in himself, the oddest way of thinking that ever man in
it was bless'd with, yet it had this drawback upon him after all--that it
laid him open to some of the oddest and most whimsical distresses; of
which this particular one, which he sunk under at present
, is as strong an
example as can be given.

No doubt, the breaking down of the bridge of a child's nose, by the edge
of a pair of forceps--however scientifically applied--
would vex any man
in the world, who was at so much pains in begetting a child, as my father
was--yet it will not account for the extravagance of his affliction, nor
will it justify the un-christian manner he abandoned and surrendered him-
self up to.


To explain this, I must leave him upon the bed for half an hour--and
my uncle Toby in his old fringed chair sitting beside him.



Volume 3, Chapter XXXI



--I THINK IT A VERY UNREASONABLE DEMAND--cried my great-grandfather,
twisting up the paper, and throwing it upon the table
.--By this account,
madam, you have but two thousand pounds fortune, and not a shilling
more--and you insist upon having three hundred pounds a year jointure213
for it.--

--'Because,' replied my great-grandmother, "you have little or no nose,
Sir.'--

Now
before I venture to make use of the word Nose a second time--to
avoid all confusion in what will be said upon it, in this interesting
part of my story, it may not be amiss to explain my own meaning, and
define, with all possible exactness and precision, what I would will-
ingly be understood to mean by the term: being of opinion, that 'tis
owing to the negligence and perverseness of writers in despising
this precaution, and to nothing else--that all the polemical writings
in divinity are not as clear and demonstrative as those upon a Will o'
the Wisp
, or any other sound part of philosophy, and natural pursuit;
in order to which, what have you to do, before you set out, unless you
intend to go puzzling on to the day of judgment--but to give the world
a good definition, and stand to it, of the main word you have most o-
casion for--changing it, Sir, as you would a guinea, into small coin?
--which done--let the father of confusion puzzle you
, if he can; or
put a different idea either into your head, or your reader's head,
if he knows how.

In books of strict morality and close reasoning, such as I am engaged
in--the neglect is inexcusable; and Heaven is witness, how the world
has revenged itself upon me for leaving so many openings to equivocal
strictures--and for depending so much as I have done, all along, upon
the cleanliness of my readers imaginations.

--Here are two senses, cried Eugenius, as we walk'd along, pointing
with the fore finger of his right hand to the word Crevice
, in the one
hundred and seventy-eighth page of the first volume of this book of books,
214--here are two senses--quoth he.--And here are two roads, replied
I, turning short upon him--a dirty and a clean one--which shall we take?
--The clean, by all means, replied Eugenius. Eugenius, said I, stepping
before him, and laying my hand upon his breast--to define--is to distrust
.
--Thus I triumph'd over Eugenius; but I triumph'd over him as I always
do, like a fool.--'Tis my comfort, however, I am not an obstinate one:
therefore

I define a nose as follows--intreating only beforehand, and beseeching
my readers, both male and female, of what age, complexion, and condition
soever, for the love of God and their own souls, to guard against the
temptations and suggestions of the devil, and suffer him by no art or wile
to put any other ideas into their minds, than what I put into my defini-
tion--For by the word Nose, throughout all this long chapter of noses,
and in every other part of my work, where the word Nose occurs--I declare,
by that word I mean a nose, and nothing more, or less.




Volume 3, Chapter XXXII



--"BECAUSE,' quoth my great grandmother, repeating the words again--
'you have little or no nose, Sir.'--

S'death! cried my great-grandfather, clapping his hand upon his nose,--
'tis not so small as that comes to;--'tis a full inch longer than my father's.--
Now, my great-grandfather's nose was for all the world like unto the noses
of all the men, women, and children, whom Pantagruel found dwelling
upon the island of Ennasin.
215--By the way, if you would know the strange
way of getting a-kin amongst so flat-nosed a people--you must read the
book;--find it out yourself, you never can.--

--"Twas shaped, Sir, like an ace of clubs.

--"Tis a full inch, continued my grandfather, pressing up the ridge
of his nose with his finger and thumb; and repeating his assertion--
'tis a full inch longer, madam, than my father's
--You must mean your
uncle's, replied my great-grandmother. --My great-grandfather was
convinced.--He untwisted the paper, and signed the article.



Volume 3, Chapter XXXIII



--WHAT AN UNCONSCIONABLE JOINTURE, my dear, do we pay out of this
small estate of ours, quoth my grandmother to my grandfather.

My father, replied my grandfather, had no more nose, my dear, saving
the mark, than there is upon the back of my hand.


--Now, you must know, that my great-grandmother outlived my grandfa-
ther twelve years; so that my father had the jointure to pay, a hundred
and fifty pounds half-yearly--(on Michaelmas216 and Lady-day,)--during
all that time.

No man discharged pecuniary obligations with a better grace than my
father.--And as far as a hundred pounds went, he would fling it upon the
table, guinea by guinea, with that spirited jerk of an honest welcome,
which generous souls, and generous souls only, are able to fling down
money: but as soon as ever he enter'd upon the odd fifty--he generally
gave a loud Hem! rubb'd the side of his nose leisurely with the flat part
of his fore finger--inserted his hand cautiously betwixt his head and the
cawl of his wig--look'd at both sides of every guinea as he parted with
it--and seldom could get to the end of the fifty pounds, without pulling
out his handkerchief, and wiping his temples.

Defend me, gracious Heaven! from those persecuting spirits who make
no allowances for these workings within us.--Never--O never may I lay
down in their tents, who cannot relax the engine, and feel pity for the
force of education, and the prevalence of opinions long derived from an-
cestors!

For three generations at least this tenet in favour of long noses had
gradually been taking root in our family.--Tradition was all along on its
side, and Interest was every half-year stepping in to strengthen it; so that
the whimsicality of my father's brain was far from having the whole honour
of this, as it had of almost all his other strange notions.--For in a great
measure he might be said to have suck'd this in with his mother's milk. He
did his part however.--If education planted the mistake (in case it was
one) my father watered it, and ripened it to perfection.


He would often declare, in speaking his thoughts upon the subject, that
he did not conceive
how the greatest family in England could stand it out
against an uninterrupted succession of six or seven short noses.
--And for
the contrary reason, he would generally add, That it must be one of the
greatest problems in civil life,
where the same number of long and jolly
noses, following one another in a direct line, did not raise and hoist it up
into the best vacancies in the kingdom
.--He would often boast that the
Shandy family rank'd very high in king Harry the VIIIth's time, but owed
its rise to no state engine--he would say--but to that only;--but that,
like other families, he would add--
it had felt the turn of the wheel, and
had never recovered the blow of my great-grandfather's nose.--It was an
ace of clubs indeed, he would cry, shaking his head--and as vile a one for
an unfortunate family as ever turn'd up trumps.


--Fair and softly, gentle reader!--where is thy fancy carrying thee!--If
there is truth in man, by my great-grandfather's nose, I mean the external
organ of smelling, or that part of man which stands prominent in his
face--and which painters say, in good jolly noses and well-proportioned
faces, should comprehend a full third--that is, measured downwards from
the setting on of the hair.--


--What a life of it has an author, at this pass!



Volume 3, Chapter XXXIV



IT IS A SINGULAR BLESSING, that nature has form'd the mind of man with the
same happy backwardness and renitency against conviction, which is observ-
ed in old dogs--'of not learning new tricks.'

What a shuttlecock of a fellow would the greatest philosopher that ever
existed be whisk'd into at once, did he read such books, and observe such
facts, and think such thoughts, as would eternally be making him change
sides!

Now, my father, as I told you last year, detested all this--He pick'd up
an opinion, Sir, as a man in a state of nature picks up an apple.--It
becomes his own--and if he is a man of spirit, he would lose his life
rather than give it up.

I am aware that Didius, the great civilian,
217 will contest this point; and
cry out against me,
Whence comes this man's right to this apple? ex con-
fesso
, he will say--things were in a state of nature--The apple, is as much
Frank's apple as John's. Pray, Mr. Shandy, what patent has he to shew for
it? and how did it begin to be his? was it, when he set his heart upon it?
or when he gathered it? or when he chew'd it? or when he roasted it? or
when he peel'd, or when he brought it home? or when he digested?--or when
he--?--For 'tis plain, Sir, if the first picking up of the apple, made it
not his--that no subsequent act could.


Brother Didius, Tribonius will answer--(now Tribonius the civilian and
church lawyer's beard being three inches and a half and three eighths longer
than Didius his beard--I'm glad he takes up the cudgels for me, so I give
myself no farther trouble about the answer.)--Brother Didius, Tribonius will
say, it is a decreed case, as you may find it in the fragments of Gregorius
218
and Hermogines's codes, and in all the codes from Justinian's down to the
codes of Louis and Des Eaux--
That the sweat of a man's brows, and the
exsudations of a man's brains, are as much a man's own property as the
breeches upon his backside;--which said exsudations, &c. being dropp'd
upon the said apple by the labour of finding it, and picking it up; and
being moreover indissolubly wasted, and as indissolubly annex'd, by the
picker up, to the thing pick'd up, carried home, roasted, peel'd, eaten,
digested, and so on;--'tis evident that the gatherer of the apple, in so
doing, has mix'd up something which was his own, with the apple which
was not his own, by which means he has acquired a property;
--or, in
other words, the apple is John's apple.

By the same learned chain of reasoning my father stood up for all his
opinions; he had spared no pains in picking them up, and the more they
lay out of the common way, the better still was his title.--No mortal
claimed them; they had cost him moreover as much labour in cooking
and digesting as in the case above, so that they might well and truly be
said to be of his own goods and chattels.--Accordingly he held fast by
'em, both by teeth and claws--would fly to whatever he could lay his
hands on--and, in a word, would intrench and fortify them round with
as many circumvallations and breast-works, as my uncle Toby would a
citadel.

There was one plaguy rub in the way of this--the scarcity of materials
to make any thing of a defence with, in case of a smart attack; inasmuch
as few men of great genius had exercised their parts in writing books upon
the subject of great noses: by the trotting of my lean horse, the thing is
incredible! and I am quite lost in my understanding, when I am considering
what a treasure of precious time and talents together has been wasted
upon worse subjects--and how many millions of books in all languages
and in all possible types and bindings, have been fabricated upon points
not half so much tending to the unity and peace-making of the world.

What was to be had, however, he set the greater store by; and though my
father would oft-times sport with my uncle Toby's library--which, bythe-
bye, was ridiculous enough--yet at the very same time he did it, he
collected every book and treatise which had been systematically wrote
upon noses, with as much care as my honest uncle Toby had done those
upon military architecture.
--'Tis true, a much less table would have held
them--but that was not thy transgression, my dear uncle.--

Here--but why here--rather than in any other part of my story--I am
not able to tell:--but here it is--my heart stops me to pay to thee, my
dear uncle Toby, once for all, the tribute I owe thy goodness.--
Here let
me thrust my chair aside, and kneel down upon the ground, whilst I am
pouring forth the warmest sentiment of love for thee, and veneration for
the excellency of thy character, that ever virtue and nature kindled in a
nephew's bosom.--Peace and comfort rest for evermore upon thy head!--
Thou enviedst no man's comforts--insultedst no man's opinions--Thou
blackenedst no man's character--devouredst no man's bread: gently, with
faithful Trim behind thee, didst thou amble round the little circle of thy
pleasures, jostling no creature in thy way:--for each one's sorrows, thou
hadst a tear,--for each man's need, thou hadst a shilling.

Whilst I am worth one, to pay a weeder--thy path from thy door to thy
bowling-green shall never be grown up.--Whilst there is a rood and a half
of land in the Shandy family, thy fortifications, my dear uncle Toby, shall
never be demolish'd.




Volume 3, Chapter XXXV



MY FATHER'S COLLECTION was not great, but to make amends, it was curi-
ous; and consequently he was some time in making it; he had the great
good fortune hewever, to set off well, in getting Bruscambille's
219 prologue
upon long noses, almost for nothing
--for he gave no more for Bruscambille
than three half-crowns; owing indeed to the strong fancy which the stall-
man saw my father had for the book the moment he laid his hands upon
it.--There are not three Bruscambilles in Christendom--said the stallman,
except what are chain'd up in the libraries of the curious. My father
flung down the money as quick as lightning--took Bruscambille into his
bosom--hied home from Piccadilly to Coleman-street with it, as he would
have hied home with a treasure, without taking his hand once off from
Bruscambille all the way.

To those who do not yet know of which gender Bruscambille is--inasmuch
as a prologue upon long noses might easily be done by either-
-'twill
be no objection against the simile--to say, That when my father got
home, he solaced himself with Bruscambille after the manner in which,
'tis ten to one, your worship solaced yourself with your first mistress--
that is, from morning even unto night: which, by-the-bye, how delightful
soever it may prove to the inamorato--is of little or no entertainment at
all to by-standers.--Take notice, I go no farther with the simile--my fa-
ther's eye was greater than his appetite--his zeal greater than his know-
ledge--he cool'd--his affections became divided
--he got hold of Prignitz220
--purchased Scroderus, Andrea Paraeus, Bouchet's Evening Conferences, and
above all, the great and learned Hafen Slawkenbergius;
of which, as I shall
have much to say by-and-bye--I will say nothing now.



Volume 3, Chapter XXXVI



OF ALL THE TRACTS my father was at the pains to procure and study in
support of his hypothesis, there was not any one wherein he felt a more
cruel disappointment at first, than in the celebrated dialogue between
Pamphagus and Cocles, written by the chaste pen of the great and vener-
able Erasmus, upon the various uses and seasonable applications of long
noses.--
Now don't let Satan, my dear girl, in this chapter, take advantage
of any one spot of rising ground to get astride of your imagination, if you
can any ways help it; or if he is so nimble as to slip on--let me beg of you,
like an unback'd filly, to frisk it, to squirt it, to jump it, to rear it,
to bound it--and to kick it, with long kicks and short kicks, till like
Tickletoby's mare, you break a strap or a crupper, and throw his worship
into the dirt.--You need not kill him.--


--And pray who was Tickletoby's mare?--'tis just as discreditable and
unscholar-like a question, Sir, as to have asked what year (ab. urb. con.
221)
the second Punic war broke out.--Who was Tickletoby's mare!
222--Read,
read, read, read, my unlearned reader! read--or
by the knowledge of the
great saint Paraleipomenon--I tell you before-hand, you had better throw
down the book at once; for without much reading, by which your reverence
knows I mean much knowledge,
you will no more be able to penetrate the
moral of the next marbled page (motley emblem of my work!) than the world
with all its sagacity has been able to unravel the many opinions, trans-
actions, and truths which still lie mystically hid under the dark veil of the
black one.




Volume 3, Chapter XXXVII



"NIHIL ME PAENITET HUJUS NASI,'223 quoth Pamphagus;--that is--'My
nose has been the making of me.'--'Nec est cur poeniteat,' replies Cocles;
that is, "How the duce should such a nose fail?'

The doctrine, you see, was laid down by Erasmus, as my father wished
it, with the utmost plainness; but my father's disappointment was, in
finding nothing more from so able a pen, but the bare fact itself;
without any of that speculative subtilty or ambidexterity of argumen-
tation upon it, which Heaven had bestow'd upon man on purpose to in-
vestigate truth, and fight for her on all sides.--My father pish'd
and pugh'd at first most terribly
--'tis worth something to have a
good name. As the dialogue was of Erasmus, my father soon came
to himself, and
read it over and over again with great application,
studying every word and every syllable of it thro' and thro' in
its most strict and literal interpretation--he could still make
nothing of it, that way.
Mayhap there is more meant, than is said
in it, quoth my father.--Learned men, brother Toby, don't write
dialogues upon long noses for nothing.--
I'll study the mystick and
the allegorick sense--here is some room to turn a man's self in,
brother.


My father read on.--

Now I find it needful to inform your reverences and worships, that
besides the many nautical uses of long noses enumerated by Erasmus,
the dialogist affirmeth that a long nose is not without its domestic
conveniences also; for that in a case of distress--and for want of
a pair of bellows, it will do excellently well, ad ixcitandum focum 224
(to stir up the fire.)

Nature had been prodigal in her gifts to my father beyond measure, and
had sown the seeds of verbal criticism as deep within him, as she had done
the seeds of all other knowledge--so that he had got out his penknife, and
was trying experiments upon the sentence, to see if he could not scratch
some better sense into it.--I've got within a single letter, brother Toby,
cried my father, of Erasmus his mystic meaning.--You are near enough,
brother, replied my uncle, in all conscience.--Pshaw! cried my father,
scratching on--I might as well be seven miles off.--I've done it--said my
father, snapping his fingers--See, my dear brother Toby, how I have
mended the sense.--But you have marr'd a word
, replied my uncle Toby.--
My father put on his spectacles--bit his lip--and tore out the leaf in a
passion.




Volume 3, Chapter XXXVIII



O SLAWKENBERGIUS! thou faithful analyzer of my Disgrazias225--thou sad
foreteller of so many of the whips and short turns which on one stage or
other of my life have come slap upon me from the shortness of my nose,
and no other cause, that I am conscious of.--Tell me, Slawkenbergius!
what secret impulse was it? what intonation of voice? whence came it?
how did it sound in thy ears?--art thou sure thou heard'st it?--which
first cried out to thee--go--go, Slawkenbergius! dedicate the labours
of thy life--neglect thy pastimes--call forth all the powers and fac-
ulties of thy nature--macerate thyself in the service of mankind, and
write a grand Folio for them, upon the subject of their noses.

How the communication was conveyed into Slawkenbergius's sensorium--
so that Slawkenbergius should know whose finger touch'd the key--
and whose hand it was that blew the bellows
--as Hafen Slawkenbergius
has been dead and laid in his grave above fourscore and ten years--we
can only raise conjectures.


Slawkenbergius was play'd upon, for aught I know, like one of Whitefield's
disciples
226--that is, with such a distinct intelligence, Sir, of which of
the two masters it was that had been practising upon his instrument--as
to make all reasoning upon it needless.

--For in the account which Hafen Slawkenbergius gives the world of
his motives and occasions for writing, and spending so many years of his
life upon this one work--
towards the end of his prolegomena, which by-
the-bye should have come first--but the bookbinder has most injudici-
ously placed it betwixt the analytical contents of the book, and the book
itself--he informs his reader, that ever since he had arrived at the age of
discernment, and was able to sit down cooly, and consider within himself
the true state and condition of man, and distinguish the main end and
design of his being;--or--to shorten my translation, for Slawkenbergius's
book is in Latin, and not a little prolix in this passage--ever since I
understood, quoth Slawkenbergius, any thing--or rather what was what--and
could perceive that the point of long noses had been too loosely handled
by all who had gone before
;--have I Slawkenbergius, felt a strong impulse,
with a mighty and unresistible call within me, to gird up myself to this
undertaking.

And to do justice to Slawkenbergius, he has entered the list with a stronger
lance, and taken a much larger career in it than any one man who had ever
entered it before him--and indeed, in many respects, deserves to be ennich'd
as a prototype for all writers, of voluminous works at least, to model
their books by--for
he has taken in, Sir, the whole subject--examined
every part of it dialectically--then brought it into full day; dilucidating it
with all the light which either the collision of his own natural parts could
strike--or the profoundest knowledge of the sciences had impowered him
to cast upon it--collating, collecting, and compiling--begging, borrowing,
and stealing, as he went along, all that had been wrote or wrangled there-
upon in the schools and porticos of the learned: so that Slawkenbergius
his book may properly be considered, not only as a model--but as a thorough-
stitched Digest and regular institute of noses, comprehending in it all
that is or can be needful to be known about them.


For this cause it is that I forbear to speak of so many (otherwise) valu-
able books and treatises of my father's collecting, wrote either, plump upon
noses--or collaterally touching them;--such for instance as Prignitz, now
lying upon the table before me, who
with infinite learning, and from the
most candid and scholar-like examination of above four thousand different
skulls, in upwards of twenty charnel-houses in Silesia, which he had
rummaged--has informed us, that the mensuration and configuration of
the osseous or bony parts of human noses, in any given tract of country,
except Crim Tartary,
227 where they are all crush'd down by the thumb, so
that no judgment can be formed upon them--are much nearer alike, than
the world imagines;--the difference amongst them being, he says, a mere
trifle, not worth taking notice of;--but that the size and jollity of every
individual nose, and by which one nose ranks above another, and bears a
higher price, is owing to the cartilaginous and muscular parts of it, into
whose ducts and sinuses the blood and animal spirits being impell'd and
driven by the warmth and force of the imagination, which is but a step
from it (bating the case of idiots, whom Prignitz, who had lived many
years in Turky, supposes under the more immediate tutelage of Heaven)--
it so happens, and ever must, says Prignitz, that the excellency of the nose
is in a direct arithmetical proportion to the excellency of the wearer's
fancy.

It is for the same reason, that is, because 'tis all comprehended in
Slawkenbergius, that I say nothing likewise of Scroderus (Andrea) who,
all the world knows, set himself to oppugn Prignitz with great violence--
proving it in his own way, first logically, and then by a series of stubborn
facts,
"That so far was Prignitz from the truth, in affirming that the
fancy begat the nose, that on the contrary--the nose begat the fancy.'


--The learned suspected Scroderus of an indecent sophism in this--and
Prignitz cried out aloud in the dispute, that Scroderus had shifted the
idea upon him--but Scroderus went on, maintaining his thesis.

My father was just balancing within himself, which of the two sides he
should take in this affair; when Ambrose Paraeus decided it in a moment,
and by overthrowing the systems, both of Prignitz and Scroderus, drove
my father out of both sides of the controversy at once.

Be witness--

I don't acquaint the learned reader--in saying it, I mention it only to
shew the learned, I know the fact myself--

That this Ambrose Paraeus was chief surgeon and nose-mender to Francis
the ninth of France
, and in high credit with him and the two preceding,
or succeeding kings (I know not which)--and that, except in the slip he
made in his story of Taliacotius's noses,228 and his manner of setting them
on--he was esteemed by the whole college of physicians at that time, as
more knowing in matters of noses, than any one who had ever taken them
in hand.

Now Ambrose Paraeus convinced my father, that the true and efficient
cause of what had engaged so much the attention of the world, and upon
which Prignitz and Scroderus had wasted so much learning and fine parts--
was neither this nor that--but that
the length and goodness of the nose
was owing simply to the softness and flaccidity in the nurse's breast--as
the flatness and shortness of puisne
229 noses was to the firmness and e-
lastic repulsion of the same organ of nutrition in the hale and lively--which,
tho' happy for the woman, was the undoing of the child, inasmuch as his
nose was so snubb'd, so rebuff'd, so rebated, and so refrigerated thereby,
as never to arrive ad mensuram suam legitimam;
230--but that in case of the
flaccidity and softness of the nurse or mother's breast--by sinking into
it, quoth Paraeus, as into so much butter, the nose was comforted, nou-
rish'd, plump'd up, refresh'd, refocillated, and set a growing for ever.

I have but two things to observe of Paraeus; first, That he proves and
explains all this with the utmost chastity and decorum of expression:--
for which may his soul for ever rest in peace!


And, secondly, that besides the systems of Prignitz and Scroderus, which
Ambrose Paraeus his hypothesis effectually overthrew--it overthrew at
the same time the system of peace and harmony of our family
; and for
three days together, not only embroiled matters between my father and
my mother, but turn'd likewise the whole house and every thing in it,
except my uncle Toby, quite upside down.

Such a ridiculous tale of a dispute between a man and his wife, never
surely in any age or country got vent through the key-hole of a streetdoor.

My mother, you must know--but I have fifty things more necessary to
let you know first--I have a hundred difficulties which I have promised
to clear up, and a thousand distresses and domestick misadventures crowd-
ing in upon me thick and threefold, one upon the neck of another.
A cow
broke in (tomorrow morning) to my uncle Toby's fortifications, and eat
up two ratios
231 and a half of dried grass, tearing up the sods with it, which
faced his horn-work and covered way.--Trim insists upon being tried by a
court-martial--the cow to be shot--Slop to be crucifix'd--myself to be
tristram'd and at my very baptism made a martyr of;
--poor unhappy devils
that we all are!--I want swaddling--but there is no time to be lost in
exclamations--I have left my father lying across his bed, and my uncle
Toby in his old fringed chair, sitting beside him, and promised I would
go back to them in half an hour; and five-and-thirty minutes are laps'd
already.--Of all the perplexities a mortal author was ever seen in--this
certainly is the greatest, for I have Hafen Slawkenbergius's folio, Sir,
to finish--a dialogue between my father and my uncle Toby, upon the solu-
tion of Prignitz, Scroderus, Ambrose Paraeus, Panocrates, and Grangousier
232
to relate--a tale out of Slawkenbergius to translate, and all this in five
minutes less than no time at all;--such a head!--would to Heaven my ene-
mies only saw the inside of it!




Volume 3, Chapter XXXIX



THERE WAS NOT ANY ONE SCENE more entertaining in our family--and to do
it justice in this point;--and I here put off my cap and lay it upon the
table close beside my ink-horn, on purpose to make my declaration to the
world concerning this one article the more solemn--that I believe in my
soul (unless my love and partiality to my understanding blinds me) the
hand of the supreme Maker and first Designer of all things never made or
put a family together (in that period at least of it which I have sat down
to write the story of)--where the characters of it were cast or contrasted
with so dramatick a felicity as ours was, for this end; or in which the
capacities of affording such exquisite scenes, and the powers of shifting
them perpetually from morning to night, were lodged and intrusted with
so unlimited a confidence, as in the Shandy Family.

Not any one of these was more diverting, I say, in this whimsical theatre
of ours--than what frequently arose out of this self-same chapter of long
noses--especially when my father's imagination was heated with the enquiry,
and nothing would serve him but to heat my uncle Toby's too.

My uncle Toby would give my father all possible fair play in this attempt;
and with infinite patience would sit smoking his pipe for whole hours to-
gether, whilst my father was practising upon his head, and trying every
accessible avenue to drive Prignitz and Scroderus's solutions into it.


Whether they were above my uncle Toby's reason--or contrary to it--
or that his brain was like damp timber, and no spark could possibly take
hold--or that it was so full of saps, mines, blinds, curtins, and such
military disqualifications to his seeing clearly into Prignitz and Scro-
derus's doctrines--I say not--let schoolmen--scullions, anatomists,
and engineers, fight for it among themselves--


"Twas some misfortune, I make no doubt, in this affair, that my father
had every word of it to translate for the benefit of my uncle Toby, and
render out of Slawkenbergius's Latin, of which, as he was no great master,
his translation was not always of the purest--and generally least so where
'twas most wanted.--This naturally open'd a door to a second misfortune;
--that
in the warmer paroxysms of his zeal to open my uncle Toby's eyes
--my father's ideas ran on as much faster than the translation, as the
translation outmoved my uncle Toby's--neither the one or the other added
much to the perspicuity of my father's lecture.




Volume 3, Chapter XL



THE GIFT OF RATIOCINATION and making syllogisms--I mean in man--for
in superior classes of being, such as angels and spirits--'tis all done, may
it please your worships, as they tell me, by Intuition;--and beings infer-
ior, as your worships all know--syllogize by their noses:
though there is
an island swimming in the sea (though not altogether at its ease) whose
inhabitants, if my intelligence deceives me not, are so wonderfully gifted,
as to syllogize after the same fashion, and oft-times to make very well out
too:--but that's neither here nor there--

The gift of doing it as it should be, amongst us, or--
the great and prin-
cipal act of ratiocination in man, as logicians tell us, is the finding out
the agreement or disagreement of two ideas one with another, by the inter-
vention of a third (called the medius terminus
233); just as a man, as Locke
well observes, by a yard, finds two mens nine-pin-alleys to be of the same
length, which could not be brought together, to measure their equality, by
juxta-position.


Had the same great reasoner looked on, as my father illustrated his sys-
tems of noses, and observed my uncle Toby's deportment--what great at-
tention he gave to every word--and as oft as he took his pipe from his
mouth, with what wonderful seriousness he contemplated the length of
it--surveying it transversely as he held it betwixt his finger and his thumb--
then fore-right--then this way, and then that, in all its possible directions
and fore-shortenings--he would have concluded my uncle Toby had got
hold of the medius terminus, and was syllogizing and measuring with it
the truth of each hypothesis of long noses, in order, as my father laid them
before him. This, by-the-bye, was more than my father wanted--his aim
in all the pains he was at in these philosophick lectures--was to enable my
uncle Toby not to discuss--but comprehend--to hold the grains and
scruples of learning--not to weigh them.--My uncle Toby, as you will
read in the next chapter, did neither the one or the other.




Volume 3, Chapter XLI



"TIS A PITY, cried my father one winter's night, after a three hours painful
translation of Slawkenbergius--
'tis a pity, cried my father, putting my
mother's threadpaper into the book for a mark, as he spoke--
that truth,
brother Toby, should shut herself up in such impregnable fastnesses, and be
so obstinate as not to surrender herself sometimes up upon the closest siege.--

Now it happened then, as indeed it had often done before, that my
uncle Toby's fancy, during the time of my father's explanation of Prignitz
to him--having nothing to stay it there, had taken a short flight to the
bowling-green;--his body might as well have taken a turn there too--so
that with all the semblance of a deep school-man intent upon the medius
terminus
--my uncle Toby was in fact as ignorant of the whole lecture,
and all its pros and cons, as if my father had been translating Hafen
Slawkenbergius from the Latin tongue into the Cherokee. But the word
siege, like a talismanic power, in my father's metaphor, wafting back my
uncle Toby's fancy, quick as a note could follow the touch--he open'd his
ears--and my father observing that he took his pipe out of his mouth,
and shuffled his chair nearer the table, as with a desire to profit--my
father with great pleasure began his sentence again
--changing only the
plan, and dropping the metaphor of the siege of it, to keep clear of some
dangers my father apprehended from it.

"Tis a pity, said my father, that truth can only be on one side, brother
Toby--
considering what ingenuity these learned men have all shewn in
their solutions of noses.--Can noses be dissolved? replied my uncle Toby.


--My father
thrust back his chair--rose up--put on his hat--took four
long strides to the door--jerked it open
--thrust his head half way out--
shut the door again--took no notice of the bad hinge--returned to the
table--
pluck'd my mother's thread-paper out of Slawkenbergius's book--
went hastily to his bureau--walked slowly back--
twisted my mother's
thread-paper about his thumb--unbutton'd his waistcoat--threw my
mother's thread-paper into the fire--bit her sattin pin-cushion in two,
fill'd his mouth with bran--confounded it;--but mark!--the oath of con-
fusion was levell'd at my uncle Toby's brain--which was e'en confused
enough already--the curse came charged only with the bran--the bran,
may it please your honours, was no more than powder to the ball.


'Twas well my father's passions lasted not long; for so long as they did
last, they led him a busy life on't; and it is one of the most unaccount-
able problems that ever I met with in my observations of human nature, that
nothing should prove my father's mettle so much, or make his passions go
off so like gun-powder, as the unexpected strokes his science met with
from the quaint simplicity of my uncle Toby's questions.--Had ten dozen
of hornets stung him behind in so many different places all at one time--
he could not have exerted more mechanical functions in fewer seconds--
or started half so much, as with one single quaere
234 of three words unsea-
sonably popping in full upon him in his hobby-horsical career.

'Twas all one to my uncle Toby--he smoked his pipe on with unvaried
composure--his heart never intended offence to his brother--and as his
head could seldom find out where the sting of it lay--he always gave my
father the credit of cooling by himself
.--He was five minutes and thirty-
five seconds about it in the present case.


By all that's good! said my father, swearing, as he came to himself, and
taking the oath out of Ernulphus's digest of curses--(though to do my
father justice it was a fault (as he told Dr. Slop in the affair of Ernul-
phus) which he as seldom committed as any man upon earth)--By all that's
good and great! brother Toby, said my father, if it was not for the aids of
philosophy, which befriend one so much as they do--you would put a
man beside all temper.--Why, by
the solutions of noses, of which I was
telling you, I meant, as you might have known, had you favoured me with
one grain of attention,
the various accounts which learned men of differ-
ent kinds of knowledge have given the world of the causes of short and
long noses.--There is no cause but one, replied my uncle Toby--why one
man's nose is longer than another's, but because that God pleases to have
it so.
--That is Grangousier's solution, said my father.--"Tis he, contin-
ued my uncle Toby, looking up, and not regarding my father's interruption,
who makes us all, and frames and puts us together in such forms and
proportions, and for such ends, as is agreeable to his infinite wisdom,.--
'Tis a pious account, cried my father, but not philosophical--there is more
religion in it than sound science.
'Twas no inconsistent part of my uncle
Toby's character--that he feared God, and reverenced religion.--So the
moment my father finished his remark--my uncle Toby fell a whistling
Lillabullero with more zeal (though more out of tune) than usual.--


What is become of my wife's thread-paper? 



Volume 3, Chapter XLI



NO MATTER--as an appendage to seamstressy, the thread-paper might be
of some consequence to my mother--of none to my father, as a mark in
Slawkenbergius. Slawkenbergius in every page of him was a rich treasure
of inexhaustible knowledge to my father--he could not open him amiss;
and he would often say in closing the book, that if all the arts and sciences
in the world, with the books which treated of them, were lost--should
the wisdom and policies of governments, he would say, through disuse,
ever happen to be forgot, and all that statesmen had wrote or caused to be
written, upon the strong or the weak sides of courts and kingdoms, should
they be forgot also--and Slawkenbergius only left--
there would be enough
in him in all conscience, he would say, to set the world a-going again. A
treasure therefore was he indeed! an institute of all that was necessary to be
known of noses, and every thing else--at matin, noon, and vespers was
Hafen Slawkenbergius his recreation and delight: 'twas for ever in his
hands--you would have sworn, Sir, it had been a canon's prayer-book--
so worn, so glazed, so contrited and attrited was it with fingers and with
thumbs in all its parts, from one end even unto the other.


I am not such a bigot to Slawkenbergius as my father;--there is a fund in
him, no doubt:
but in my opinion, the best, I don't say the most profitable,
but the most amusing part of Hafen Slawkenbergius, is his tales--and, con-
sidering he was a German, many of them told not without fancy:--these
take up his second book, containing nearly one half of his folio, and are
comprehended in ten decads, each decad containing ten tales--Philosophy
is not built upon tales; and therefore 'twas certainly wrong in Slawkenbergius
to send them into the world by that name!--there are a few of them in his
eighth, ninth, and tenth decads, which I own seem rather playful and sport-
ive, than speculative--but in general they are to be looked upon by the
learned as a detail of so many independent facts, all of them turning round
somehow or other upon the main hinges of his subject, and added to his
work as so many illustrations upon the doctrines of noses.


As we have leisure enough upon our hands--if you give me leave, madam,
I'll tell you the ninth tale of his tenth decad.



                BOOK IV


        SLAWKENBERGIUS’S TALE235


It was one cool refreshing evening, at the close of a very sultry day, in
the latter end of the month of August, when a stranger, mounted upon a dark
mule, with a small cloak-bag behind him, containing a few shirts, a pair of
shoes, and a crimson-sattin pair of breeches, entered the town of Strasburg.

He told the centinel, who questioned him as he entered the gates, that
he had been at the Promontory of Noses
--was going on to Frankfort--
and should be back again at Strasburg that day month, in his way to the
borders of Crim Tartary.

The centinel looked up into the stranger's face--he never saw such a
nose in his life!


--I have made a very good venture of it, quoth the stranger--so slipping
his wrist out of the loop of a black ribbon, to which a short scymetar
was hung, he put his hand into his pocket, and with great courtesy touch-
ing the fore part of his cap with his left hand, as he extended his right
--he put a florin into the centinel's hand, and passed on.


It grieves, me, said the centinel, speaking to a little dwarfish bandy-
legg'd drummer
, that so courteous a soul should have lost his scabbard--
he cannot travel without one to his scymetar, and will not be able to get
a scabbard to fit it in all Strasburg.--I never had one, replied the strang-
er, looking back to the centinel, and putting his hand up to his cap as he
spoke--
I carry it, continued he, thus--holding up his naked scymetar, his
mule moving on slowly all the time--on purpose to defend my nose.

It is well worth it, gentle stranger, replied the centinel.

--'Tis not worth a single stiver,
236 said the bandy-legg'd drummer--'tis a
nose of parchment.

As I am a true catholic--except that it is six times as big--'tis a nose,
said the centinel, like my own.

--I heard it crackle, said the drummer.

By dunder, said the centinel, I saw it bleed.

What a pity, cried the bandy-legg'd drummer, we did not both touch it!


At the very time that this dispute was maintaining by the centinel and
the drummer--was the same point debating betwixt a trumpeter and a
trumpeter's wife, who were just then coming up, and had stopped to see
the stranger pass by.


Benedicity!237--What a nose! 'tis as long, said the trumpeter's wife, as a
trumpet.

And of the same metal said the trumpeter, as you hear by its sneezing.
'Tis as soft as a flute, said she.

--'Tis brass, said the trumpeter.

--'Tis a pudding's end, said his wife.

I tell thee again, said the trumpeter, 'tis a brazen nose,

I'll know the bottom of it, said the trumpeter's wife, for I will touch
it with my finger before I sleep.


The stranger's mule moved on at so slow a rate, that he heard every
word of the dispute, not only betwixt the centinel and the drummer, but
betwixt the trumpeter and trumpeter's wife.

No! said he, dropping his reins upon his mule's neck, and laying both
his hands upon his breast, the one over the other in a saint-like position
(his mule going on easily all the time)
No! said he, looking up--I am not
such a debtor to the world--slandered and disappointed as I have been--
as to give it that conviction--no! said he, my nose shall never be touched
whilst Heaven gives me strength--To do what? said a burgomaster's wife.


The stranger took no notice of the burgomaster's wife--he was making a
vow to Saint Nicolas;
238 which done, having uncrossed his arms with the
same solemnity with which he crossed them, he took up the reins of his
bridle with his left-hand, and putting his right hand into his bosom, with
the scymetar hanging loosely to the wrist of it
, he rode on, as slowly as
one foot of the mule could follow another, thro' the principal streets of
Strasburg, till chance brought him to the great inn in the market-place
over-against the church.

The moment the stranger alighted, he ordered his mule to be led into
the stable, and his cloak-bag to be brought in; then opening, and taking
out of it his
crimson-sattin breeches, with a silver-fringed--(appendage to
them, which I dare not translate)
--he put his breeches, with his fringed
cod-piece
239 on, and forth-with, with his short scymetar in his hand, walked
out to the grand parade.

The stranger had just taken three turns upon the parade, when he perceived
the trumpeter's wife at the opposite side of it--so turning short,
in
pain lest his nose should be attempted
, he instantly went back to his inn--
undressed himself, packed up his crimson-sattin breeches, &c. in his cloak-
bag, and called for his mule.


I am going forwards, said the stranger, for Frankfort--and shall be back
at Strasburg this day month.

I hope, continued the stranger, stroking down the face of his mule with
his left hand as he was going to mount it, that you have been kind to this
faithful slave of mine--it has carried me and my cloak-bag, continued he,
tapping the mule's back, above six hundred leagues.

--'Tis a long journey, Sir, replied the master of the inn--unless a man
has great business.--Tut! tut! said the stranger, I have been at the pro-
montory of Noses; and have got me one of the goodliest, thank Heaven,
that ever fell to a single man's lot.

Whilst the stranger was giving this odd account of himself, the master
of the inn and his wife kept both their eyes fixed full upon the stranger's
nose--
By saint Radagunda,240 said the inn-keeper's wife to herself, there is
more of it than in any dozen of the largest noses put together in all Strasburg!
is it not, said she, whispering her husband in his ear, is it not a noble nose?

'Tis an imposture, my dear, said the master of the inn--'tis a false nose.

'Tis a true nose, said his wife.

'Tis made of fir-tree, said he, I smell the turpentine.--

There's a pimple on it, said she.

'Tis a dead nose, replied the inn-keeper.

'Tis a live nose, and if I am alive myself, said the inn-keeper's, wife, I
will touch it.


I have made a vow to saint Nicolas this day, said the stranger, that my nose
shall not be touched till--Here the stranger suspending his voice, looked
up.-
-Till when? said she hastily.

It never shall be touched, said he, clasping his hands and bringing them
close to his breast,
till that hour--What hour? cried the inn keeper's wife.--
Never!--never! said the stranger,
never till I am got--For Heaven's sake,
into what place?
said she--The stranger rode away without saying a word.

The stranger had not got half a league on his way towards Frankfort
before all the city of Strasburg was in an uproar about his nose.
The
Compline bells
241 were just ringing to call the Strasburgers to their devo-
tions,
and shut up the duties of the day in prayer:--no soul in all Strasburg
heard 'em--the city was like a swarm of bees
--men, women, and children,
(the Compline bells tinkling all the time) flying here and there--in
at one door, out at another--this way and that way--long ways and cross
ways--up one street, down another street--in at this alley, out of that--
did you see it? did you see it? did you see it? O! did you see it?--who
saw it? who did see it? for mercy's sake, who saw it?

Alack o'day! I was at vespers!--I was washing, I was starching, I was
scouring, I was quilting--God help me!ever saw it--I never touch'd it!
--would I had been a centinel, a bandy-legg'd drummer, a trumpeter, a
trumpeter's wife, was the general cry and lamentation in every street
and corner of Strasburg.


Whilst all this confusion and disorder triumphed throughout the great
city of Strasburg, was the courteous stranger going on as gently upon his
mule in his way to Frankfort, as if he had no concern at all in the affair--
talking all the way he rode in broken sentences, sometimes to his mule--
sometimes to himself--sometimes to his Julia.


O Julia, my lovely Julia!--nay I cannot stop to let thee bite that thistle--
that ever the suspected tongue of a rival should have robbed me of enjoy-
ment when I was upon the point of tasting it.--

--Pugh!--'tis nothing but a thistle--never mind it--thou shalt have a
better supper at night.


--Banish'd from my country--my friends--from thee.--

Poor devil, thou'rt sadly tired with thy journey!--come--get on a little
faster--there's nothing in my cloak-bag but two shirts--a crimson-sattin
pair of breeches, and a fringed--Dear Julia!

--But why to Frankfort?--
is it that there is a hand unfelt, which se-
cretly is conducting me through these meanders and unsuspected tracts?


--Stumbling! by saint Nicolas! every step--why at this rate we shall be
all night in getting in--

--To happiness--or am I to be the sport of fortune and slander--destined
to be driven forth unconvicted--unheard--untouch'd--if so, why didot stay
at Strasburg, where justice--but I had sworn! Come, thou shalt drink--to
St. Nicolas--O Julia!--What dost thou prick up thy ears at?--'tis nothing
but a man, &c.


The stranger rode on communing in this manner with his mule and Julia--
till he arrived at his inn, where, as soon as he arrived, he alighted--
saw his mule, as he had promised it, taken good care of--took off his
cloak-bag, with his crimson-sattin breeches, &c. in it--called for an
omelet to his supper, went to his bed about twelve o'clock, and in five
minutes fell fast asleep.

It was about the same hour when the tumult in Strasburg being abated
for that night,--the Strasburgers had all got quietly into their beds--but
not like the stranger, for the rest either of their minds or bodies;
queen
Mab,
242 like an elf as she was, had taken the stranger's nose, and without
reduction of its bulk, had that night been at the pains of slitting and div-
iding it into as many noses of different cuts and fashions, as there were
heads in Strasburg to hold them. The abbess of Quedlingberg,
243 who with
the four great dignitaries of her chapter, the prioress, the deaness, the
subchantress, and senior canonness, had that week come to Strasburg
to consult the university upon a case of conscience relating to their
placketholes--was ill all the night.

The courteous stranger's nose had got perched upon the top of the pineal
gland of her brain, and made such rousing work in the fancies of the
four great dignitaries of her chapter, they could not get a wink of sleep
the whole night thro' for it--there was no keeping a limb still amongst
them--in short, they got up like so many ghosts.

The penitentiaries of the third order of saint Francis--the nuns of mount
Calvary--the Praemonstratenses--the Clunienses
244--the Carthusians,
and all the severer orders of nuns, who lay that night in blankets or
hair-cloth, were still in a worse condition than the abbess of Qued-
lingberg--by tumbling and tossing, and tossing and tumbling from one
side of their beds to the other the whole night long--the several sis-
terhoods had scratch'd and maul'd themselves all to death--they got out
of their beds almost flead
245 alive--every body thought saint Antony had
visited them for probation with his fire
--they had never once, in short,
shut their eyes the whole night long from vespers to matins. The nuns
of saint Ursula acted the wisest--they never attempted to go to bed at
all.

The dean of Strasburg, the prebendaries, the capitulars246 and domiciliars
(capitularly assembled in the morning to consider the case of butter'd buns)
all wished they had followed the nuns of saint Ursula's example.--In the
hurry and confusion every thing had been in the night before, the bakers
had all forgot to lay their leaven--there were no butter'd buns to be had
for breakfast in all Strasburg
--the whole close247 of the cathedral was in
one eternal commotion--such a cause of restlessness and disquietude, and
such a zealous inquiry into that cause of the restlessness, had never hap-
pened in Strasburg, since Martin Luther, with his doctrines, had turned
the city upside down.

If the stranger's nose took this liberty of thrusting himself thus into the
dishes
248 of religious orders, &c. what a carnival did his nose make of it,
in those of the laity!
--'tis more than my pen, worn to the stump as it is,
has power to describe; tho', I acknowledge, (cries Slawkenbergius with
more gaiety of thought than I could have expected from him) that there
is many a good simile now subsisting in the world which might give my
countrymen some idea of it; but at the close of such a folio as this,
wrote for their sakes, and in which I have spent the greatest part of
my life--tho' I own to them the simile is in being, yet would it not
be unreasonable in them to expect I should have either time or inclin-
ation to search for it? Let it suffice to say, that
the riot and disorder it
occasioned in the Strasburgers fantasies was so general--such an over-
powering mastership had it got of all the faculties of the Strasburgers
minds--so many strange things, with equal confidence on all sides, and
with equal eloquence in all places, were spoken and sworn to concerning
it, that turned the whole stream of all discourse and wonder towards it--
every soul, good and bad--rich and poor--learned and unlearned--doctor
and student--mistress and maid--gentle and simple--nun's flesh and woman's
flesh, in Strasburg spent their time in hearing tidings about it--every
eye in Strasburg languished to see it--every finger--every thumb in
Strasburg burned to touch it.


Now what might add, if any thing may be thought necessary to add, to
so vehement a desire--was this, that the centinel, the bandy-legg'd drum-
mer, the trumpeter, the trumpeter's wife, the burgomaster's widow, the
master of the inn, and the master of the inn's wife
, how widely soever they
all differed every one from another in their testimonies and description of
the stranger's nose--they all agreed together in two points--namely, that
he was gone to Frankfort, and would not return to Strasburg till that day
month; and secondly, whether his nose was true or false, that the stranger
himself was one of the most
perfect paragons of beauty--the finest-made
man--the most genteel!
--the most generous of his purse--the most court-
eous in his carriage, that had ever entered the gates of Strasburg--that as
he rode, with scymetar slung loosely to his wrist, thro' the streets--and
walked with his crimson-sattin breeches across the parade--'twas
with so
sweet an air of careless modesty, and so manly withal--as would have put
the heart in jeopardy (had his nose not stood in his way) of every virgin
who had cast her eyes upon him.

I call not upon that heart which is a stranger to the throbs and yearnings
of curiosity, so excited, to justify the abbess of Quedlingberg, the prioress,
the deaness, and sub-chantress, for sending at noon-day for the trumpeter's
wife: she went through the streets of Strasburg with her husband's trumpet
in her hand,--the best apparatus the straitness of the time would allow her,
for the illustration of her theory
--she staid no longer than three days.

The centinel and bandy-legg'd drummer!--nothing on this side of old
Athens could equal them! they read their lectures under the city-gates to
comers and goers, with all the pomp of a Chrysippus249 and a Crantor in
their porticos.

The master of the inn, with his ostler on his left-hand, read his also in
the same stile--under the portico or gateway of his stable-yard--his wife,
hers more privately in a back room: all flocked to their lectures; not
promiscuously--but to this or that, as is ever the way, as faith and cre-
dulity marshal'd them--in a word, each Strasburger came crouding for in-
telligence--and every Strasburger had the intelligence he wanted.

'Tis worth remarking, for the benefit of all demonstrators in natural
philosophy, &c. that as soon as the trumpeter's wife had finished the
abbess of Quedlingberg's
250 private lecture, and had begun to read in public,
which she did upon a stool in the middle of the great parade,--she incom-
moded the other demonstrators mainly, by gaining incontinently the most
fashionable part of the city of Strasburg for her auditory--But when
a demonstrator in philosophy (cries Slawkenbergius) has a trumpet for an
apparatus, pray what rival in science can pretend to be heard besides him?

Whilst the unlearned, thro' these conduits of intelligence, were all bus-
ied in getting down to the bottom of the well, where Truth keeps her little
court--were the learned in their way as busy in pumping her up thro' the
conduits of dialect
251 induction--they concerned themselves not with facts--
they reasoned--


Not one profession had thrown more light upon this subject than the
Faculty
252--had not all their disputes about it run into the affair of Wens
and oedematous swellings
, they could not keep clear of them for their
bloods and souls--the stranger's nose had nothing to do either with wens
or oedematous swellings.

It was demonstrated however very satisfactorily, that such a ponderous
mass of heterogenous matter could not be congested and conglomerated
to the nose, whilst the infant was in Utera,
253 without destroying the statical
balance of the foetus, and throwing it plump upon its head nine months
before the time.--


--The opponents granted the theory--they denied the consequences.

And if a suitable provision of veins, arteries, &c. said they, was not laid
in, for the due nourishment of such a nose, in the very first stamina and
rudiments of its formation, before it came into the world (bating the case
of Wens) it could not regularly grow and be sustained afterwards.


This was all answered by a dissertation upon nutriment, and the effect
which nutriment had in extending the vessels, and in the increase and
prolongation of the muscular parts
to the greatest growth and expansion
imaginable--In the triumph of which theory, they went so far as to af-
firm, that
there was no cause in nature, why a nose might not grow to
the size of the man himself.


The respondents satisfied the world this event could never happen to
them so long as a man had but one stomach and one pair of lungs--
For
the stomach, said they, being the only organ destined for the reception of
food, and turning it into chyle--and the lungs the only engine of sangui-
fication--it could possibly work off no more, than what the appetite
brought it: or admitting the possibility of a man's overloading his sto-
mach, nature had set bounds however to his lungs--the engine was of a
determined size and strength, and could elaborate but a certain quantity
in a given time--that is, it could produce just as much blood as was suf-
ficient for one single man, and no more; so that, if there was as much
nose as man--they proved a mortification must necessarily ensue; and for-
asmuch as there could not be a support for both, that the nose must either
fall off from the man, or the man inevitably fall off from his nose.


Nature accommodates herself to these emergencies, cried the opponents--
else
what do you say to the case of a whole stomach--a whole pair of
lungs, and but half a man, when both his legs have been unfortunately
shot off?

He dies of a plethora,
254 said they--or must spit blood, and in a fortnight
or three weeks go off in a consumption.--

--It happens otherwise--replied the opponents.--


It ought not, said they.


The more curious and intimate inquirers after nature and her doings,
though they went hand in hand a good way together, yet they all divided
about the nose at last, almost as much as the Faculty itself.


They amicably laid it down, that there was a just and geometrical ar-
rangement and proportion of the several parts of the human frame to its
several destinations, offices, and functions, which could not be transgressed
but within certain limits--that nature, though she sported--she sported
within a certain circle;--and they could not agree about the diameter of
it.


The logicians stuck much closer to the point before them than any of
the classes of the literati;--they began and ended with the word Nose; and
had it not been for a petitio principii,
255 which one of the ablest of them
ran his head against in the beginning of the combat, the whole controversy
had been settled at once.

A nose, argued the logician, cannot bleed without blood--and not only
blood--but blood circulating in it to supply the phaenomenon with a
succession of drops--(a stream being but a quicker succession of drops
,
that is included, said he.)--Now death, continued the logician, being
nothing but the stagnation of the blood--

I deny the definition--Death is the separation of the soul from the
body, said his antagonist--Then we don't agree about our weapons, said
the logician--Then there is an end of the dispute, replied the antagonist.

The civilians256 were still more concise: what they offered being more in
the nature of a decree--than a dispute.


Such a monstrous nose, said they, had it been a true nose, could not
possibly have been suffered in civil society--and if false--to impose upon
society with such false signs and tokens, was a still greater violation of
its rights, and must have had still less mercy shewn it.

The only objection to this was, that if it proved any thing, it proved the
stranger's nose was neither true nor false.


This left room for the controversy to go on. It was maintained by the
advocates of the ecclesiastic court, that there was nothing to inhibit a
decree, since the stranger ex mero motu
257 had confessed he had been at
the Promontory of Noses, and had got one of the goodliest, &c. &c.--To
this it was answered, it was impossible there should be such a place as the
Promontory of Noses, and the learned be ignorant where it lay. The com-
missary of the bishop of Strasburg undertook the advocates, explained
this matter in a treatise upon proverbial phrases, shewing them, that the
Promontory of Noses was a mere allegorick expression, importing no more
than that nature had given him a long nose:
in proof of which, with great
learning, he cited the underwritten authorities,258 which had decided the point
incontestably, had it not appeared that a dispute about some franchises
of dean and chapter-lands had been determined by it nineteen years before.

It happened--I must say unluckily for Truth, because they were giving
her a lift another way in so doing; that the two universities of Strasburg--
the Lutheran, founded in the year 1538 by Jacobus Surmis, counsellor of
the senate,--and the Popish, founded by Leopold, arch-duke of Austria,
were, during all this time, employing the whole depth of their knowledge
(except just what the affair of the abbess of Quedlingberg's placket-holes
required)--in determining the point of Martin Luther's damnation.

The Popish doctors had undertaken to demonstrate a priori, that from
the necessary influence of the planets on the twenty-second day of Oct-
ober 1483--when the moon was in the twelfth house, Jupiter, Mars, and
Venus in the third, the Sun, Saturn, and Mercury, all got together in the
fourth--that he must in course, and unavoidably, be a damn'd man--and
that his doctrines, by a direct corollary, must be damn'd doctrines too.


By inspection into his horoscope, where five planets were in coition all
at once with Scorpio
259 (in reading this my father would always shake his
head) in the ninth house, with the Arabians allotted to religion--it appear-
ed that Martin Luther did not care one stiver about the matter--and that
from the horoscope directed to the conjunction of Mars--they made it
plain likewise
he must die cursing and blaspheming--with the blast of which
his soul (being steep'd in guilt) sailed before the wind, in the lake of hell-fire.


The little objection of the Lutheran doctors to this, was, that it must
certainly be the soul of another man, born Oct. 22, 83. which was forced
to sail down before the wind in that manner
--inasmuch as it appeared
from the register of Islaben in the county of Mansfelt, that Luther was not
born in the year 1483, but in 84; and not on the 22d day of October, but
on the 10th of November, the eve of Martinmas day, from whence he had
the name of Martin.

(--I must break off my translation for a moment; for if I did not, I
know I should no more be able to shut my eyes in bed, than the abbess of
Quedlingberg--It is to tell the reader; that my father never read this
passage of Slawkenbergius to my uncle Toby, but with triumph--not over
my uncle Toby, for he never opposed him in it--but over the whole world.
--Now you see, brother Toby, he would say, looking up, "that christian
names are not such indifferent things;'--had Luther here been called by
any other name but Martin, he would have been damn'd to all eternity--
Not that I look upon Martin, he would add, as a good name--far from
it--'tis something better than a neutral, and but a little--yet little
as it is you see it was of some service to him.

My father knew the weakness of this prop to his hypothesis, as well as the
best logician could shew him--yet so strange is the weakness of man at the
same time, as it fell in his way, he could not for his life but make use of it;
and it was certainly for this reason, that though there are many stories in
Hafen Slawkenbergius's Decades full as entertaining as this I am translating,
yet there is not one amongst them which my father read over with half the
delight--it flattered two of his strangest hypotheses together--his Names
and his Noses.--I will be bold to say, he might have read all the books in the
Alexandrian Library,
260 had not fate taken other care of them, and not have
met with a book or passage in one, which hit two such nails as these upon
the head at one stroke.)


The two universities of Strasburg were hard tugging at this affair of
Luther's navigation. The Protestant doctors had demonstrated, that he
had not sailed right before the wind, as the Popish doctors had pretended;
and as every one knew there was no sailing full in the teeth of it--they
were going to settle, in case he had sailed, how many points he was off;
whether Martin had doubled the cape, or had fallen upon a lee-shore; and
no doubt, as it was an enquiry of much edification, at least to those who
understood this sort of Navigation, they had gone on with it in spite of
the size of the stranger's nose, had not the size of the stranger's nose
drawn off the attention of the world from what they were about--it was
their business to follow.

The abbess of Quedlingberg and her four dignitaries was no stop; for the
enormity of the stranger's nose running full as much in their fancies as
their case of conscience--the affair of their placket-holes kept cold
--in
a word, the printers were ordered to distribute their types--all contro-
versies dropp'd.

'Twas a square cap with a silver tassel upon the crown of it261--to a nut-
shell--to have guessed on which side of the nose the two universities
would split.

'Tis above reason, cried the doctors on one side.

'Tis below reason, cried the others.

'Tis faith, cried one.

'Tis a fiddle-stick, said the other.

'Tis possible, cried the one.

'Tis impossible, said the other.


God's power is infinite, cried the Nosarians, he can do any thing.

He can do nothing, replied the Anti-nosarians, which implies contradictions.

He can make matter think, said the Nosarians.

As certainly as you can make a velvet cap out of a sow's ear, replied the
Anti-nosarians.

He cannot make two and two five, replied the Popish doctors.--'Tis
false, said their other opponents.--

Infinite power is infinite power, said the doctors who maintained the
reality of the nose.--It extends only to all possible things, replied the
Lutherans.

By God in heaven, cried the Popish doctors, he can make a nose, if he
thinks fit, as big as the steeple of Strasburg.


Now the steeple of Strasburg being the biggest and the tallest churchste-
eple to be seen in the whole world,
the Anti-nosarians denied that a
nose of 575 geometrical feet in length could be worn, at least by a mid-
dlesiz'd man
--The Popish doctors swore it could--The Lutheran doctors
said No;--it could not.

This at once started a new dispute, which they pursued a great way,
upon
the extent and limitation of the moral and natural attributes of
God--That controversy led them naturally into Thomas Aquinas, and Thomas
Aquinas
262 to the devil.

The stranger's nose was no more heard of in the dispute--it just served
as a frigate to launch them into the gulph of school-divinity--and then
they all sailed before the wind.

Heat is in proportion to the want of true knowledge.


The controversy about the attributes, &c. instead of cooling, on the
contrary had inflamed the Strasburgers imaginations to a most inordinate
degree--The less they understood of the matter the greater was their wonder
about it--they were left in all the distresses of desire unsatisfied--saw
their doctors, the Parchmentarians, the Brassarians, the Turpentarians, on
one side--the Popish doctors on the other, like Pantagruel and his compan-
ions in quest of the oracle of the bottle, all embarked out of sight.
263

--The poor Strasburgers left upon the beach!

--What was to be done?--No delay--the uproar increased--every one
in disorder--the city gates set open.--


Unfortunate Strasbergers! was there in the store-house of nature--was
there in the lumber-rooms of learning--was there in the great arsenal of
chance, one single engine left undrawn forth to torture your curiosities,
and stretch your desires, which was not pointed by the hand of Fate to
play upon your hearts?--I dip not my pen into my ink to excuse the
surrender of yourselves--'tis to write your panegyrick. Shew me a city so
macerated with expectation--who neither eat, or drank, or slept, or prayed,
or hearkened to the calls either of religion or nature, for seven-and-twenty
days together, who could have held out one day longer.


On the twenty-eighth the courteous stranger had promised to return to
Strasburg.

Seven thousand coaches (Slawkenbergius must certainly have made some
mistake in his numeral characters) 7000 coaches--15000 single-horse
chairs--20000 waggons, crowded as full as they could all hold with
sen-
ators, counsellors, syndicks
264--beguines, widows, wives, virgins, canons,
concubines, all in their coaches--The abbess of Quedlingberg, with the
prioress, the deaness and sub-chantress,
leading the procession in one coach,
and the dean of Strasburg, with the four great dignitaries of his chapter,
on her left-hand--the rest following higglety-pigglety as they could; some
on horseback--some on foot--some led--some driven--some down the Rhine--
some this way--some that--all set out at sun-rise to meet the courteous
stranger on the road.

Haste we now towards the catastrophe of my tale
265--I say Catastrophe (cries
Slawkenbergius) inasmuch as a tale, with parts rightly disposed, not
only rejoiceth (gaudet) in the Catastrophe and Peripeitia of a Drama, but
rejoiceth moreover in all the essential and integrant parts of it--it has its
Protasis, Epitasis, Catastasis, its Catastrophe or Peripeitia growing one out
of the other in it, in the order Aristotle first planted them--without which
a tale had better never be told at all, says Slawkenbergius, but be kept to a
man's self.

In all my ten tales, in all my ten decades, have I Slawkenbergius tied
down every tale of them as tightly to this rule, as I have done this of the
stranger and his nose.


--From his first parley with the centinel, to his leaving the city of Stra-
burg, after pulling off his crimson-sattin pair of breeches, is the Protasis
or first entrance--where the characters of the Personae Dramatis are just
touched in, and the subject slightly begun.

The Epitasis, wherein the action is more fully entered upon and heighten-
ed, till it arrives at its state or height called the Catastasis, and which
usually takes up the 2d and 3d act, is included within that busy period of
my tale, betwixt the first night's uproar about the nose, to the conclusion
of the trumpeter's wife's lectures upon it in the middle of the grand par-
ade: and from the first embarking of the learned in the dispute--to the
doctors finally sailing away, and leaving the Strasburgers upon the beach
in distress, is the Catastasis or the ripening of the incidents and passions
for their bursting forth
in the fifth act.

This commences with the setting out of the Strasburgers in the Frankfort
road, and
terminates in unwinding the labyrinth and bringing the hero out
of a state of agitation (as Aristotle calls it) to a state of rest and
quietness.


This, says Hafen Slawkenbergius, constitutes the Catastrophe or
Peripeitia of my tale
--and that is the part of it I am going to relate.

We left the stranger behind the curtain asleep--he enters now upon the
stage.

--What dost thou prick up thy ears at?--'tis nothing but a man upon a
horse--was the last word the stranger uttered to his mule. It was not proper
then to tell the reader, that the mule took his master's word for it; and
without any more ifs or ands, let the traveller and his horse pass by.

The traveller was hastening with all diligence to get to Strasburg that
night. What a fool am I, said the traveller to himself, when he had rode
about a league farther, to think of getting into Strasburg this night.--
Strasburg!--the great Strasburg!--Strasburg, the capital of all Alsatia!
Strasburg, an imperial city! Strasburg, a sovereign state! Strasburg,
garrisoned with five thousand of the best troops in all the world!-
-Alas!
if I was at the gates of Strasburg this moment, I could not gain admittance
into it for a ducat--nay a ducat and half--'tis too much--better go back
to the last inn I have passed--than lie I know not where--or give I know
not what.
The traveller, as he made these reflections in his mind, turned
his horse's head about, and three minutes after the stranger had been con-
ducted into his chamber, he arrived at the same inn.

--We have bacon in the house, said the host, and bread--and till eleven
o'clock this night had three eggs in it--but a stranger, who arrived an
hour ago, has had them dressed into an omelet, and we have nothing.--

Alas! said the traveller, harassed as I am, I want nothing but a bed.--I
have one as soft as is in Alsatia, said the host.

--The stranger, continued he, should have slept in it, for 'tis my best
bed, but upon the score of his nose.--He has got a defluxion, said the
traveller.--Not that I know, cried the host.--But 'tis a camp-bed, and
Jacinta, said he, looking towards the maid, imagined there was not room
in it to turn his nose in.--Why so? cried the traveller, starting back.

--It is so long a nose, replied the host.--The traveller fixed his eyes
upon Jacinta, then upon the ground--kneeled upon his right knee--had
just got his hand laid upon his breast--
Trifle not with my anxiety, said he
rising up again.--'Tis no trifle, said Jacinta, 'tis the most glorious
nose!
--The traveller fell upon his knee again--laid his hand upon his
breast--then, said he, looking up to heaven, thou hast conducted me to
the end of my pilgrimage--'Tis Diego.


The traveller was the brother of the Julia, so often invoked that night by
the stranger as he rode from Strasburg upon his mule; and was come, on
her part, in quest of him. He had accompanied his sister from Valadolid
across the Pyrenean mountains through France, and
had many an entangled
skein to wind off in pursuit of him through the many meanders and abrupt
turnings of a lover's thorny tracks.

--Julia had sunk under it--and had not been able to go a step farther
than to Lyons, where, with the many disquietudes of a tender heart, which
all talk of--but few feel--she sicken'd,
but had just strength to write a
letter to Diego; and having conjured her brother never to see her face till
he had found him out,
and put the letter into his hands, Julia took to her
bed.

Fernandez (for that was her brother's name)--tho' the camp-bed was as soft
as any one in Alsace, yet he could not shut his eyes in it.--As soon as
it was day he rose, and hearing Diego was risen too, he entered his cham-
ber, and discharged his sister's commission.


The letter was as follows:

"Seig.266 Diego,

"Whether my suspicions of your nose were justly excited or not--'tis
not now to inquire
--it is enough I have not had firmness to put them to
farther tryal.

"How could I know so little of myself, when I sent my Duenna to forbid
your coming more under my lattice?
or how could I know so little of you,
Diego, as to imagine you would not have staid one day in Valadolid to
have given ease to my doubts?--Was I to be abandoned, Diego, because I
was deceived? or was it kind to take me at my word, whether my suspicions
were just or no, and leave me, as you did, a prey to much uncertainty and
sorrow?

"In what manner Julia has resented this--my brother, when he puts this
letter into your hands, will tell you; He will tell you
in how few moments
she repented of the rash message she had sent you--in what frantic haste
she flew to her lattice, and how many days and nights together she leaned
immoveably upon her elbow, looking through it
towards the way which
Diego was wont to come.

"He will tell you, when she heard of your departure--
how her spirits
deserted her--how her heart sicken'd--how piteously she mourned--how
low she hung her head. O Diego! how many weary steps has my brother's
pity led me by the hand languishing to trace out yours; how far has desire
carried me beyond strength--and how oft have I fainted by the way, and
sunk into his arms, with only power to cry out--O my Diego!


"If the gentleness of your carriage has not belied your heart, you will
fly to me, almost as fast as you fled from me--haste as you will--you will
arrive but to see me expire.--'Tis a bitter draught, Diego, but oh! 'tis
embittered still more by dying un...--'



She could proceed no farther.

Slawkenbergius supposes the word intended was unconvinced, but her
strength would not enable her to finish her letter.

The heart of the courteous Diego over-flowed as he read the letter--he
ordered his mule forthwith and Fernandez's horse to be saddled; and as no
vent in prose is equal to that of poetry in such conflicts--chance, which as
often directs us to remedies as to diseases, having thrown a piece of char-
coal into the window--Diego availed himself of it, and whilst the hostler
was getting ready his mule, he eased his mind against the wall as follows.

          Ode.
Harsh and untuneful are the notes of love,
Unless my Julia strikes the key,
Her hand alone can touch the part,
Whose dulcet movement charms the heart,
And governs all the man with sympathetick sway.
2d.

O Julia


The lines were very natural--for they were nothing at all to the purpose,
says Slawkenbergius,
and 'tis a pity there were no more of them; but whether
it was that Seig. Diego was slow in composing verses--or the hostler quick
in saddling mules--is not averred;
certain it was, that Diego's mule and
Fernandez's horse were ready at the door of the inn,
before Diego was ready
for his second stanza;
so without staying to finish his ode, they both mounted,
sallied forth
, passed the Rhine, traversed Alsace, shaped their course to-
wards Lyons, and before the Strasburgers and the abbess of Quedlingberg
had set out on their cavalcade, had Fernandez, Diego, and his Julia, crossed
the Pyrenean mountains, and got safe to Valadolid.

'Tis needless to inform the geographical reader, that when Diego was in
Spain, it was not possible to meet the courteous stranger in the Frankfort
road; it is enough to say, that of all restless desires, curiosity being the
strongest--the Strasburgers felt the full force of it; and that for three
days and nights they were tossed to and fro in the Frankfort road, with the
tempestuous fury of this passion, before they could submit to return
home.--When alas! an event was prepared for them, of all other, the most
grievous that could befal a free people.


As this revolution of the Strasburgers affairs is often spoken of, and lit-
tle understood, I will, in ten words, says Slawkenbergius, give the world an
explanation of it, and with it put an end to my tale.

Every body knows of the grand system of Universal Monarchy, wrote by
order of Mons. Colbert, and put in manuscript into the hands of Lewis the
fourteenth, in the year 1664.267

'Tis as well known, that one branch out of many of that system, was the
getting possession of Strasburg, to favour an entrance at all times into
Suabia, in order to disturb the quiet of Germany--and that in consequence
of this plan, Strasburg unhappily fell at length into their hands.
It is the lot of a few to trace out the true springs of this and such like
revolutions--The vulgar look too high for them--Statesmen look too
low--Truth (for once) lies in the middle.

What a fatal thing is the popular pride of a free city! cries one histo-
rian--The Strasburgers deemed it a diminution of their freedom to receive
an imperial garrison--so fell a prey to a French one.

The fate, says another, of the Strasburgers, may be a warning to all free
people to save their money.--They anticipated their revenues--brought
themselves under taxes, exhausted their strength, and in the end became
so weak a people, they had not strength to keep their gates shut, and so
the French pushed them open.

Alas! alas! cries Slawkenbergius, 'twas not the French,--'twas Curiosity
pushed them open--The French indeed, who are ever upon the catch
, when
they saw the Strasburgers, men, women and children, all marched out
to
follow the stranger's nose
--each man followed his own, and marched in.
Trade and manufactures have decayed and gradually grown down ever
since--but not from any cause which commercial heads have assigned;
for it is owing to this only, that
Noses have ever so run in their
heads
, that the Strasburgers could not follow their business.

Alas! alas! cries Slawkenbergius, making an exclamation--it is not the
first--and I fear will not be the last fortress that has been either
won--or lost by Noses.


The End of Slawkenbergius lawkenbergius's Tale.



Volume 4. Chapter 1.



WITH ALL THIS LEARNING upon Noses running perpetually in my father's
fancy--with so many family prejudices--and ten decades of such tales
running on for ever along with them--how was it possible with such
exquisite--was it a true nose?--That a man with such exquisite feelings as
my father had, could bear the shock at all below stairs--or indeed above
stairs, in any other posture, but the very posture I have described?
--Throw yourself down upon the bed, a dozen times--taking care only
to place a looking-glass first in a chair on one side of it, before you do it--
But was the stranger's nose a true nose, or was it a false one?

To tell that before-hand, madam, would be to do injury to one of the
best tales in the Christian-world;
and that is the tenth of the tenth decade,
which immediately follows this.

This tale, cried Slawkenbergius, somewhat exultingly, has been reserved
by me for the concluding tale of my whole work; knowing right well, that
when I shall have told it, and my reader shall have read it thro'--'twould
be even high time for both of us to shut up the book; inasmuch, continues
Slawkenbergius, as I know of no tale which could possibly ever go down
after it.


'Tis a tale indeed!

This sets out with the first interview in the inn at Lyons, when Fernandez
left the courteous stranger and his sister Julia alone in her chamber, and is
over-written.

            The Intricacies
                of
            Diego and Julia.

Heavens! thou art a strange creature, Slawkenbergius! what a whimsical
view of the involutions of the heart of woman hast thou opened!
how this
can ever be translated, and yet if this specimen of Slawkenbergius's tales,
and the exquisitiveness of his moral, should please the world--translated
shall a couple of volumes be.--Else, how this can ever be translated into
good English, I have no sort of conception--There seems in some passages
to want a sixth sense to do it rightly.--
What can he mean by the
lambent pupilability of slow, low, dry chat, five notes below the natural
tone--which you know, madam, is little more than a whisper? The moment
I pronounced the words, I could perceive an attempt towards a
vibration in the strings, about the region of the heart.--The brain made
no acknowledgment.--There's often no good understanding betwixt 'em--

I felt as if I understood it.--I had no ideas.--The movement could not be
without cause.--I'm lost. I can make nothing of it--unless, may it please
your worships,
the voice, in that case being little more than a whisper,
unavoidably forces the eyes to approach not only within six inches of each
other--but to look into the pupils--is not that dangerous?--But it can't
be avoided--for to look up to the cieling, in that case the two chins
unavoidably meet--and to look down into each other's lap, the foreheads
come to immediate contact, which at once puts an end to the conference--
I mean to the sentimental part of it.--What is left, madam, is not
worth stooping for.




Volume 4. Chapter 2.



MY FATHER LAY STRETCHED across the bed as still as if the hand of death
had pushed him down, for a full hour and a half before he began to play upon
the floor with the toe of that foot which hung over the bed-side; my uncle
Toby's heart was a pound lighter for it.--In a few moments, his left-hand,
the knuckles of which had all the time reclined upon the handle of the
chamber-pot, came to its feeling--he thrust it a little more within the
valance--drew up his hand, when he had done, into his bosom--
gave a hem!
My good uncle Toby, with infinite pleasure, answered it; and full gladly
would have ingrafted a sentence of consolation upon the opening it afford-
ed: but having no talents, as I said, that way, and fearing moreover that
he might set out with something which might make a bad matter worse, he
contented himself with resting his chin placidly upon the cross of his
crutch. Now whether the compression shortened my uncle Toby's face into a
more pleasurable oval--or that the philanthropy of his heart, in seeing his
brother beginning to emerge out of the sea of his afflictions, had braced
up his muscles--so that the compression upon his chin only doubled the
benignity which was there before,
is not hard to decide.--My father, in
turning his eyes, was struck with such a gleam of sunshine in his face,
as melted down the sullenness of his grief in a moment.


He broke silence as follows:



Volume 4. Chapter 3.



DID EVER MAN, brother Toby, cried my father, raising himself upon his
elbow, and turning himself round to the opposite side of the bed, where
my uncle Toby was sitting in his old fringed chair, with his chin resting
upon his crutch--did ever a poor unfortunate man, brother Toby, cried
my father, receive so many lashes?--The most I ever saw given, quoth my
uncle Toby (ringing the bell at the bed's head for Trim) was to a grenadier,
I think in Makay's
268 regiment.

--Had my uncle Toby shot a bullet through my father's heart, he could
not have fallen down with his nose upon the quilt more suddenly.


Bless me! said my uncle Toby.



Volume 4. Chapter 4.



WAS IT MACKAY'S REGIMENT, quoth my uncle Toby, where the poor grenadier
was so unmercifully whipp'd at Bruges about the ducats?--
O Christ! he
was innocent! cried Trim, with a deep sigh.--And he was whipp'd, may it
please your honour, almost to death's door.
--They had better have shot
him outright, as he begg'd, and he had gone directly to heaven, for he
was as innocent as your honour.--I thank thee, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby.
--
I never think of his, continued Trim, and my poor brother Tom's misfor-
tunes, for we were all three school-fellows,
but I cry like a coward.--Tears
are no proof of cowardice, Trim.--I drop them oft-times myself, cried my
uncle Toby.--I know your honour does, replied Trim, and so am not ashamed
of it myself.--But to think, may it please your honour, continued Trim, a
tear stealing into the corner of his eye as he spoke--to think of two virtuous
lads with hearts as warm in their bodies, and as honest as God could make
them--the children of honest people, going forth with gallant spirits to
seek their fortunes in the world--and fall into such evils!--poor Tom! to
be tortured upon a rack for nothing--but marrying a Jew's widow who sold
sausages--honest Dick Johnson's soul to be scourged out of his body, for
the ducats another man put into his knapsack!
--O!--these are misfortunes,
cried Trim,--pulling out his handkerchief--these are misfortunes, may it
please your honour, worth lying down and crying over.

--My father could not help blushing.


'Twould be a pity, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, thou shouldst ever feel
sorrow of thy own--thou feelest it so tenderly for others.--
Alack-o-day,
replied the corporal, brightening up his face--your honour knows I have
neither wife or child--I can have no sorrows in this world.--My father
could not help smiling.--As few as any man, Trim, replied my uncle Toby;
nor can I see how a fellow of thy light heart can suffer, but from the
distress of poverty in thy old age
--when thou art passed all services, Trim--
and hast outlived thy friends.--An' please your honour, never fear, replied
Trim, chearily
.--But I would have thee never fear, Trim, replied my uncle
Toby, and therefore, continued my uncle Toby, throwing down his crutch,
and getting up upon his legs as he uttered the word therefore--in
recompence, Trim, of thy long fidelity to me, and that goodness of thy
heart I have had such proofs of--whilst thy master is worth a shilling--
thou shalt never ask elsewhere, Trim, for a penny. Trim attempted to thank
my uncle Toby--but had not power--tears trickled down his cheeks faster
than he could wipe them off--He laid his hands upon his breast--made
a bow to the ground, and shut the door.


--I have left Trim my bowling-green, cried my uncle Toby--My father
smiled.--I have left him moreover a pension, continued my uncle Toby.--
My father looked grave.



Volume 4. Chapter 5.



IS THIS A FIT TIME, said my father to himself, to talk of Pensions and
Grenadiers?



Volume 4. Chapter 6.



WHEN MY UNCLE TOBY first mentioned the grenadier, my father, I said, fell
down with his nose flat to the quilt, and as suddenly as if my uncle Toby
had shot him; but it was not added that
every other limb and member of
my father instantly relapsed with his nose into the same precise attitude
in
which he lay first described; so that when corporal Trim left the room, and
my father found himself disposed to rise off the bed--he had all the little
preparatory movements to run over again, before he could do it.
Attitudes
are nothing, madam--'tis the transition from one attitude to another--
like the preparation and resolution of the discord into harmony, which is
all in all.

For which reason my father played the same jig over again with his toe
upon the floor--pushed the chamber-pot still a little farther within the
valance--gave a hem--raised himself up upon his elbow--and was just
beginning to address himself to my uncle Toby--when recollecting the
unsuccessfulness of his first effort in that attitude--he got upon his legs,
and in making the third turn across the room, he stopped short before my
uncle Toby; and laying the three first fingers of his right-hand in the palm of
his left, and stooping a little,
he addressed himself to my uncle Toby as
follows:



Volume 4. Chapter 7.



WHEN I REFLECT, brother Toby, upon Man; and take a view of that dark
side of him which represents his life as open to so many causes of trouble--
when I consider, brother Toby,
how oft we eat the bread of affliction, and
that we are born to it, as to the portion of our inheritance
--I was born to
nothing, quoth my uncle Toby, interrupting my father--but my commission.
Zooks! said my father, did not my uncle leave you a hundred and twenty
pounds a year?--What could I have done without it? replied my uncle Toby
--That's another concern, said my father testily--But I say Toby,
when
one runs over the catalogue of all the cross-reckonings and sorrowful
Items with which the heart of man is overcharged, 'tis wonderful by
what hidden resources the mind is enabled to stand out, and bear itself
up,
as it does, against the impositions laid upon our nature.--'Tis by
the assistance of Almighty God, cried my uncle Toby, looking up, and
pressing the palms of his hands close together--'tis not from our own
strength, brother Shandy--a sentinel in a wooden sentry-box might as
well pretend to stand it out against a detachment of fifty men.--
We are
upheld by the grace and the assistance of the best of Beings.

--That is cutting the knot, said my father, instead of untying it
,--But
give me leave to lead you, brother Toby, a little deeper into the mystery.


With all my heart, replied my uncle Toby.

My father instantly exchanged the attitude he was in, for that in which
Socrates is so finely painted by Raffael in his school of Athens; which your
connoisseurship knows is so exquisitely imagined, that even the particular
manner of the reasoning of Socrates is expressed by it--for he holds the
fore-finger of his left-hand between the fore-finger and the thumb of his
right, and seems as if he was saying to the libertine he is reclaiming--'You
grant me this--and this: and this, and this, I don't ask of you--they
follow of themselves in course.'

So stood my father, holding fast his fore-finger betwixt his finger and
his thumb, and reasoning with my uncle Toby
as he sat in his old fringed
chair, valanced around with party-coloured worsted bobs--O Garrick!--
what a rich scene of this would thy exquisite powers make! and how gladly
would I write such another to avail myself of thy immortality, and secure
my own behind it.



Volume 4, Chapter 8.



THOUGH MAN IS OF ALL OTHERS the most curious vehicle, said my father,
yet at the same time 'tis of so slight a frame, and so totteringly put
together, that the sudden jerks and hard jostlings it unavoidably meets with
in this rugged journey, would overset and tear it to pieces a dozen times a
day--was it not, brother Toby, that there is a secret spring within us.--
Which spring, said my uncle Toby, I take to be Religion.--Will that set
my child's nose on? cried my father, letting go his finger, and striking one
hand against the other.--It makes every thing straight for us, answered
my uncle Toby.--Figuratively speaking, dear Toby, it may, for aught I
know, said my father; but the spring I am speaking of, is that great and
elastic power within us of counterbalancing evil, which, like a secret
spring in a well-ordered machine, though it can't prevent the shock--at
least it imposes upon our sense of it.


Now, my dear brother, said my father, replacing his fore-finger, as he
was coming closer to the point--
had my child arrived safe into the world,
unmartyr'd in that precious part of him--fanciful and extravagant as I
may appear to the world in my opinion of christian names, and of that
magic bias which good or bad names irresistibly impress upon our char-
acters and conducts--Heaven is witness! that in the warmest transports of
my wishes for the prosperity of my child,ever once wished to crown his
head with more glory and honour than what George or Edward would
have spread around it.

But alas! continued my father, as the greatest evil has befallen him--I
must counteract and undo it with the greatest good.

He shall be christened Trismegistus
, brother.

I wish it may answer--replied my uncle Toby, rising up.




Volume 4. Chapter 9.



WHAT A CHAPTER OF CHANCES, said my father, turning himself about upon
the first landing, as he and my uncle Toby were going down stairs, what a
long chapter of chances do the events of this world lay open to us!
Take
pen and ink in hand, brother Toby, and calculate it fairly--I know no
more of calculation than this balluster, said my uncle Toby (striking short
of it with his crutch, and hitting my father a desperate blow souse upon
his shin-bone)--'Twas a hundred to one-cried my uncle Toby--I thought,
quoth my father, (rubbing his shin) you had known nothing of calculations,
brother Toby.
a mere chance, said my uncle Toby.--Then it adds one to the
chapter--replied my father.

The double success of my father's repartees tickled off the pain of his
shin at once--it was well it so fell out--(chance! again)
--or the world to
this day had never known the subject of my father's calculation--to guess
it--there was no chance--
What a lucky chapter of chances has this turned
out! for it has saved me the trouble of writing one express
, and in truth I
have enough already upon my hands without it.--
Have not I promised
the world a chapter of knots? two chapters upon the right and the wrong
end of a woman?
a chapter upon whiskers? a chapter upon wishes?--a
chapter of noses?--No, I have done that--a chapter upon my uncle Toby's
modesty?
to say nothing of a chapter upon chapters, which I will finish
before I sleep--by my great grandfather's whiskers, I shall never get half
of 'em through this year.

Take pen and ink in hand, and calculate it fairly, brother Toby, said my
father, and it will turn out a million to one, that of all the parts of the
body, the edge of the forceps should have the ill luck just to fall upon and
break down that one part, which should break down the fortunes of our
house with it.

It might have been worse, replied my uncle Toby.--I don't comprehend, said
my father.--Suppose the hip had presented, replied my uncle Toby, as Dr.
Slop foreboded.

My father reflected half a minute--looked down--touched the middle
of his forehead slightly with his finger--

--True, said he.




Volume 4. Chapter 10.



IS IT NOT A SHAME to make two chapters of what passed in going down one
pair of stairs? for we are got no farther yet than to the first landing, and
there are fifteen more steps down to the bottom; and for aught I know, as
my father and my uncle Toby are in a talking humour, there may be as
many chapters as steps:
--let that be as it will, Sir, I can no more help it
than my destiny:--
A sudden impulse comes across me--drop the curtain, Shandy
--I drop it--Strike a line here across the paper, Tristram--I strike it--and
hey for a new chapter.


The deuce of any other rule have I to govern myself by in this affair--
and if I had one--as I do all things out of all rule--
I would twist it and
tear it to pieces, and throw it into the fire when I had done--Am I warm?
I am, and the cause demands it--a pretty story! is a man to follow rules--
or rules to follow him?

Now this, you must know, being my chapter upon chapters, which I
promised to write before I went to sleep, I thought it meet to ease my
conscience entirely before I laid down, by telling the world all I knew
about the matter at once:
Is not this ten times better than to set out
dogmatically with a sententious parade of wisdom, and telling the world a
story of a roasted horse--that chapters relieve the mind--that they assist
--or impose upon the imagination--and that in a work of this dramatic
cast they are as necessary as the shifting of scenes--with fifty other
cold conceits, enough to extinguish the fire which roasted him?--O! but
to understand this, which is a puff at the fire of Diana's temple
--you
must read Longinus--read away--if you are not a jot the wiser by reading
him the first time over--never fear--read him again--Avicenna and Licetus
read Aristotle's metaphysicks forty times through a-piece, and never un-
derstood a single word.--But mark the consequence--Avicenna turned
out a desperate writer at all kinds of writing--for he wrote books de omni
scribili; and for Licetus (Fortunio) though all the world knows he was
born a foetus, Monnoye de l'Academie Francoise.)) of no more than five
inches and a half in length, yet he grew to that astonishing height in
literature, as to write a book with a title as long as himself--the
learned know I mean his Gonopsychanthropologia, upon the origin of the
human soul.

So much for my chapter upon chapters, which I hold to be the best chap-
ter in my whole work; and take my word, whoever reads it, is full as
well employed, as in picking straws.




Volume 4. Chapter 11



WE SHALL BRING ALL THINGS TO RIGHTS, said my father, setting his foot
upon the first step from the landing.--This Trismegistus, continued my
father, drawing his leg back and turning to my uncle Toby--was the greatest
(Toby) of all earthly beings--he was the greatest king--the greatest law-
giver--the greatest philosopher--and the greatest priest--and engineer--

said my uncle Toby.

--In course, said my father.



Volume 4. Chapter 12.



--AND HOW DOES YOUR MISTRESS? cried my father, taking the same step
over again from the landing, and calling to Susannah, whom he saw passing by
the foot of the stairs with a huge pin-cushion in her hand--how does your
mistress? As well, said Susannah, tripping by, but without looking up, as
can be expected.--What a fool am I! said my father, drawing his leg back
again--let things be as they will, brother Toby, 'tis ever the precise
answer--And how is the child, pray?--No answer. And where is Dr. Slop?
added my father, raising his voice aloud, and looking over the ballusters
--Susannah was out of hearing.


Of all the riddles of a married life, said my father, crossing the landing
in order to set his back against the wall, whilst he propounded it to my uncle
Toby--of all the puzzling riddles, said he, in a marriage state,--of which
you may trust me, brother Toby, there are more asses loads than all Job's
stock of asses could have carried--there is not one that has more intricacies
in it than this--that from the very moment the mistress of the house is
brought to bed, every female in it, from my lady's gentlewoman down to the
cinder-wench, becomes an inch taller for it; and give themselves more airs
upon that single inch, than all their other inches put together.


I think rather, replied my uncle Toby, that 'tis we who sink an inch
lower.--If I meet but a woman with child--I do it.--'Tis a heavy tax
upon that half of our fellow-creatures, brother Shandy, said my uncle
Toby--
'Tis a piteous burden upon 'em, continued he, shaking his head--
Yes, yes, 'tis a painful thing--said my father, shaking his head too--but
certainly since shaking of heads came into fashion, never did two heads
shake together, in concert, from two such different springs.


{God bless / Deuce} take 'em all--said my uncle Toby and my father,
each to himself.



Volume 4. Chapter 13.



HOLLA!--YOU, CHAIRMAN!--here's sixpence--do step into that bookseller's
shop, and call me a day-tall critick. I am very willing to give any one of
'em a crown to help me with his tackling, to get my father and my uncle
Toby off the stairs, and to put them to bed.

--'Tis even high time; for except a short nap, which they both got whilst
Trim was boring the jack-boots--and which, by-the-bye, did my father
no sort of good, upon the score of the bad hinge--they have not else shut
their eyes, since nine hours before
the time that doctor Slop was led into
the back parlour in that dirty pickle by Obadiah.

Was every day of my life to be as busy a day as this--and to take up--
Truce.

I will not finish that sentence till I have made an observation upon the
strange state of affairs between the reader and myself, just as things stand
at present--an observation never applicable before to any one biographical
writer since the creation of the world, but to myself--and I believe, will
never hold good to any other, until its final destruction
--and therefore,
for the very novelty of it alone, it must be worth your worships attending
to.

I am this month one whole year older than I was this time twelve-month;
and having got, as you perceive, almost into the middle of my third volume
(According to the preceding Editions.)--and no farther than to my first
day's life--'tis demonstrative that I have three hundred and sixty-four
days more life to write just now, than when I first set out;
so that in-
stead of advancing, as a common writer, in my work with what I have been
doing at it--on the contrary, I am just thrown so many volumes back--
was every day of my life to be as busy a day as this--And why not?--and
the transactions and opinions of it to take up as much description--And
for what reason should they be cut short? as
at this rate I should just
live 364 times faster than I should write--It must follow, an' please
your worships, that the more I write, the more I shall have to write--
and consequently, the more your worships read, the more your worships
will have to read.

Will this be good for your worships eyes?


It will do well for mine; and, was it not that my Opinions will be the
death of me,
I perceive I shall lead a fine life of it out of this self-
same life of mine; or, in other words, shall lead a couple of fine lives
together.


As for the proposal of twelve volumes a year, or a volume a month, it no
way alters my prospect--
write as I will, and rush as I may into the middle
of things, as Horace advises--I shall never overtake myself whipp'd and
driven to the last pinch; at the worst I shall have one day the start of
my pen--and one day is enough for two volumes--and two volumes will be
enough for one year.--

Heaven prosper the manufacturers of paper under this propitious reign,

which is now opened to us--as I trust its providence will prosper every
thing else in it that is taken in hand.

As for the propagation of Geese--I give myself no concern--Nature is
all-bountiful
--I shall never want tools to work with.

--So then, friend! you have got my father and my uncle Toby off the
stairs, and seen them to bed?--And how did you manage it?--You dropp'd
a curtain at the stair-foot
--I thought you had no other way for it--Here's
a crown for your trouble.




Volume 4. Chapter 14.



--THEN REACH ME MY BREECHES off the chair, said my father to Susannah.--
There is not a moment's time to dress you,
Sir, cried Susannah--the child
is as black in the face as my--As your what? said my father, for like all
orators, he was a dear searcher into comparisons
.--Bless, me, Sir, said
Susannah, the child's in a fit.--And where's Mr. Yorick?--Never where he
should be, said Susannah, but his curate's in the dressing-room, with the
child upon his arm, waiting for the name--and my mistress bid me run as
fast as I could to know, as captain Shandy is the godfather, whether it
should not be called after him.

Were one sure, said my father to himself, scratching his eye-brow, that
the child was expiring,
one might as well compliment my brother Toby as
not--and
it would be a pity, in such a case, to throw away so great a name
as Trismegistus upon him
--but he may recover.

No, no,--said my father to Susannah, I'll get up--There is no time,
cried Susannah, the child's as black as my shoe. Trismegistus, said my
father--But stay--thou art a leaky vessel, Susannah, added my father;
canst thou carry Trismegistus in thy head, the length of the gallery
without scattering?--Can I? cried Susannah, shutting the door in a huff.
--If she can, I'll be shot, said my father, bouncing out of bed in the
dark, and groping for his breeches.

Susannah ran with all speed along the gallery.

My father made all possible speed to find his breeches.

Susannah got the start, and kept it--'Tis Tris--something, cried
Susannah--There is no christian-name in the world, said the curate,
beginning with Tris--but Tristram. Then 'tis Tristram-gistus, quoth
Susannah.

--There is no gistus to it, noodle!--'tis my own name, replied the cur-
ate, dipping his hand, as he spoke, into the bason--Tristram! said he,
&c. &c. &c. &c.--so Tristram was I called, and Tristram shall I be to
the day of my death.


My father followed Susannah, with his night-gown across his arm, with
nothing more than his breeches on, fastened through haste with but a
single button, and that button through haste thrust only half into the
button-hole.

--She has not forgot the name, cried my father, half opening the door?--
No, no, said the curate, with a tone of intelligence.--And the child is
better, cried Susannah.--And how does your mistress? As well, said
Susannah, as can be expected.--
Pish! said my father, the button of his
breeches slipping out of the button-hole--So that whether the interjec-
tion was levelled at Susannah, or the button-hole--whether Pish was an
interjection of contempt or an interjection of modesty, is a doubt, and
must be a doubt till I shall have time to write the three following favourite
chapters, that is, my chapter of chamber-maids, my chapter of pishes, and
my chapter of button-holes.


All the light I am able to give the reader at present is this, that the
moment my father cried Pish! he whisk'd himself about--and with his
breeches held up by one hand, and his night-gown thrown across the arm
of the other, he turned along the gallery to bed, something slower than he
came.




Volume 4. Chapter 15.



I WISH I COULD WRITE a chapter upon sleep.

A fitter occasion could never have presented itself, than what this moment
offers, when all the curtains of the family are drawn--
the candles put out
--and no creature's eyes are open but a single one, for the other has been
shut these twenty years, of my mother's nurse.


It is a fine subject.

And yet, as fine as it is, I would undertake to write a dozen chapters
upon button-holes, both quicker and with more fame, than a single chap-
ter upon this.


Button-holes! there is something lively in the very idea of 'em--and
trust me, when I get amongst 'em--You gentry with great beards--look
as grave as you will--I'll make merry work with my button-holes--I shall
have 'em all to myself--'tis a maiden subject--I shall run foul of no man's
wisdom or fine sayings in it.


But for sleep--I know I shall make nothing of it before I begin--I am
no dab at your fine sayings in the first place--and in the next,
I cannot
for my soul set a grave face upon a bad matter, and tell the world--'tis
the refuge of the unfortunate--the enfranchisement of the prisoner--the
downy lap of the hopeless, the weary, and the broken-hearted; nor could I
set out with a lye in my mouth, by affirming, that of all the soft and
delicious functions of our nature, by which the great Author of it, in his
bounty, has been pleased to recompence the sufferings wherewith his jus-
tice and his good pleasure has wearied us--that this is the chiefest (I
know pleasures worth ten of it); or what a happiness it is to man, when the
anxieties and passions of the day are over, and he lies down upon his back,
that his soul shall be so seated within him, that whichever way she turns
her eyes, the heavens shall look calm and sweet above her--no desire--or
fear--or doubt that troubles the air, nor any difficulty past, present, or to
come, that the imagination may not pass over without offence, in that
sweet secession.

"God's blessing,' said Sancho Panca, "be upon the man who first invented
this self-same thing called sleep--it covers a man all over like a cloak."
278
Now there is more to me in this, and it speaks warmer to my heart and
affections, than all the dissertations squeez'd out of the heads of the
learned
together upon the subject.

--Not that I altogether disapprove of what Montaigne advances upon
it--'tis admirable in its way--(I quote by memory.)
279

The world enjoys other pleasures, says he, as they do that of sleep,
without tasting or feeling it as it slips and passes by.--We should study and
ruminate upon it, in order to render proper thanks to him who grants it
to us.--For this end I cause myself to be disturbed in my sleep, that I may
the better and more sensibly relish it.--And yet I see few, says he again,
who live with less sleep, when need requires; my body is capable of a firm,
but not of a violent and sudden agitation--I evade of late all violent
exercises--I am never weary with walking--but from my youth,ever looked
to ride upon pavements. I love to lie hard and alone, and even without my
wife--This last word may stagger the faith of the world
--but remember,
"La Vraisemblance' (as Bayle says in the affair of Liceti) "n'est pas
toujours du Cote de la Verite.'
280 And so much for sleep.



Volume 4. Chapter 16.



IF MY WIFE will but venture him--brother Toby, Trismegistus shall be dress'd
and brought down to us, whilst you and I are getting our breakfasts together.--

--Go, tell Susannah, Obadiah, to step here.

She is run up stairs, answered Obadiah, this very instant, sobbing and
crying, and wringing her hands as if her heart would break.

We shall have a rare month of it
, said my father, turning his head from
Obadiah, and
looking wistfully in my uncle Toby's face for some time--
we shall have a devilish month of it, brother Toby, said my father, setting
his arms a'kimbo, and shaking his head; fire, water, women, wind--brother
Toby!--'Tis some misfortune, quoth my uncle Toby.--That it is, cried
my father--to have so many jarring elements breaking loose, and riding
triumph in every corner of a gentleman's house--Little boots it to the
peace of a family, brother Toby, that you and I possess ourselves, and sit
here silent and unmoved--whilst such a storm is whistling over our
heads.--


--And what's the matter, Susannah? They have called the child Tristram--
and my mistress is just got out of an hysterick fit about it--No!--'tis not
my fault, said Susannah--I told him it was Tristram-gistus.

--Make tea for yourself, brother Toby, said my father,
taking down his
hat--but how different from the sallies and agitations of voice and
members which a common reader would imagine!

--For he spake in the sweetest modulation--and took down his hat
with the genteelest movement of limbs, that ever affliction harmonized
and attuned together.


--Go to the bowling-green for corporal Trim, said my uncle Toby,
speak-
ing to Obadiah, as soon as my father left the room.




Volume 4. Chapter 17.



WHEN THE MISFORTUNE of my Nose fell so heavily upon my father's head;--
the reader remembers that he walked instantly up stairs, and cast himself
down upon his bed; and from hence, unless he has a great insight into
human nature, he will be apt to expect a rotation of the same ascending
and descending movements from him, upon this misfortune of my Name;--
no.

The different weight, dear Sir--nay even the different package of two
vexations of the same weight--makes a very wide difference in our manner
of bearing and getting through with them.
--It is not half an hour ago,
when
(in the great hurry and precipitation of a poor devil's writing for
daily bread) I threw a fair sheet, which I had just finished, and careful-
ly wrote out, slap into the fire, instead of the foul one.

Instantly I snatch'd off my wig, and threw it perpendicularly, with all
imaginable violence, up to the top of the room--indeed I caught it as it
fell--but there was an end of the matter; nor do I think any think else in
Nature would have given such immediate ease: She, dear Goddess, by an
instantaneous impulse, in all provoking cases, determines us to a sally
of this or that member--or else she thrusts us into this or that place,
or posture of body, we know not why--But mark, madam, we live amongst
riddles and mysteries--the most obvious things, which come in our way,
have dark sides, which the quickest sight cannot penetrate into; and even
the clearest and most exalted understandings amongst us find ourselves
puzzled and at a loss in almost every cranny of nature's works
: so that
this, like a thousand other things, falls out for us in a way, which tho'
we cannot reason upon it--yet we find the good of it,
may it please your
reverences and your worships--and that's enough for us.

Now, my father could not lie down with this affliction for his life--nor
could he carry it up stairs like the other--he walked composedly out with
it to the fish-pond.

Had my father leaned his head upon his hand, and reasoned an hour which
way to have gone--reason, with all her force, could not have directed him
to any think like it:
there is something, Sir, in fish-ponds--but what
it is, I leave to system-builders and fish-pond-diggers betwixt 'em to
find out--but there is something, under the first disorderly transport of
the humours, so unaccountably becalming in an orderly and a sober walk
towards one of them,
that I have often wondered that neither Pythagoras,
nor Plato, nor Solon, nor Lycurgus, nor Mahomet, nor any one of your
noted lawgivers, ever gave order about them.
281



Volume 4. Chapter 18.



YOUR HONOUR, said Trim, shutting the parlour-door before he began to
speak, has heard, I imagine, of this unlucky accident--O yes, Trim, said
my uncle Toby, and it gives me great concern.--I am heartily concerned
too, but I hope your honour, replied Trim, will do me the justice to be-
lieve, that it was not in the least owing to me.--To thee--Trim?--cried
my uncle Toby, looking kindly in his face--'twas Susannah's and the curate's
folly betwixt them.--
What business could they have together, an' please
your honour, in the garden?--In the gallery thou meanest, replied my
uncle Toby.

Trim found he was upon a wrong scent, and stopped short with a low
bow--Two misfortunes, quoth the corporal to himself, are twice as many
at least as are needful to be talked over at one time;--the mischief the
cow has done in breaking into the fortifications,
may be told his honour
hereafter.--Trim's casuistry and address, under the cover of his low bow,
prevented all suspicion in my uncle Toby, so he went on with what he had
to say to Trim as follows:

--For my own part, Trim, though I can see little or no difference be-
twixt my nephew's being called Tristram or Trismegistus--yet as the thing
sits so near my brother's heart, Trim--I would freely have given a hundred
pounds rather than it should have happened.--A hundred pounds, an'
please your honour! replied Trim,-
-I would not give a cherry-stone to
boot.--Nor would I, Trim, upon my own account, quoth my uncle Toby--
but my brother, whom there is no arguing with in this case--maintains
that a great deal more depends, Trim, upon christian-names, than what
ignorant people imagine--for he says there never was a great or heroic
action performed since the world began by one called Tristram--nay, he
will have it, Trim, that a man can neither be learned, or wise, or brave.--
'Tis all fancy, an' please your honour--I fought just as well, replied the
corporal, when the regiment called me Trim, as when they called me James
Butler.--And for my own part, said my uncle Toby, though I should blush
to boast of myself, Trim--yet had my name been Alexander,
282 I could have
done no more at Namur than my duty.--Bless your honour! cried Trim,
advancing three steps as he spoke, does a man think of his christian-name
when he goes upon the attack?--Or when he stands in the trench, Trim?
cried my uncle Toby, looking firm.--Or when he enters a breach?
said
Trim, pushing in between two chairs.--Or forces the lines? cried my uncle,
rising up, and pushing his crutch like a pike.--Or facing a platoon? cried
Trim, presenting his stick like a firelock.--Or when he marches up the
glacis? cried my uncle Toby, looking warm and setting his foot upon his




Volume 4 Chapter 19.



MY FATHER WAS RETURNED from his walk to the fish-pond--and opened
the parlour-door in the very height of the attack, just as my uncle
Toby was marching up the glacis--Trim recovered his arms--never was my
uncle Toby caught in riding at such a desperate rate in his life! Alas!
my uncle Toby! had not a weightier matter called forth all the ready e-
loquence of my father--how hadst thou then and thy poor Hobby-Horse too
been insulted!


My father hung up his hat with the same air he took it down; and after
giving a slight look at the disorder of the room,
he took hold of one of the
chairs which had formed the corporal's breach, and placing it over-against
my uncle Toby, he sat down in it, and as soon as the tea-things were taken
away, and the door shut, he broke out in a lamentation as follows:


My Father's Lamentation.

IT IS IN VAIN LONGER, said my father, addressing himself as much to
Ernulphus's curse, which was laid upon the corner of the chimney-piece--
as to my uncle Toby who sat under it--it is in vain longer, said my father,
in the most querulous monotone imaginable, to struggle as I have done
against this most uncomfortable of human persuasions--
I see it plainly,
that either for my own sins, brother Toby, or the sins and follies of the
Shandy family, Heaven has thought fit to draw forth the heaviest of its
artillery against me; and that the prosperity of my child is the point upon
which the whole force of it is directed to play.--Such a thing would batter
the whole universe about our ears, brother Shandy, said my uncle Toby--
if it was so-Unhappy Tristram! child of wrath! child of decrepitude! in-
terruption! mistake! and discontent! What one misfortune or disaster in
the book of embryotic evils, that could unmechanize thy frame, or entangle
thy filaments! which has not fallen upon thy head, or ever thou camest
into the world--what evils in thy passage into it!--what evils since!--
produced into being, in the decline of thy father's days--when the powers
of his imagination and of his body were waxing feeble--when radical heat
and radical moisture,
283 the elements which should have temper'd thine,
were drying up; and nothing left to found thy stamina in, but negations--

'tis pitiful--brother Toby, at the best, and called out for all the little
helps that care and attention on both sides could give it. But how were we
defeated! You know the event, brother Toby--'tis too melancholy a one to
be repeated now--when
the few animal spirits284 I was worth in the world,
and with which memory, fancy, and quick parts should have been convey'd
--were all dispersed, confused, confounded, scattered, and sent to the
devil.--


Here then was the time to have put a stop to this persecution against
him;--and tried an experiment at least--
whether calmness and serenity
of mind in your sister, with a due attention, brother Toby, to her e-
vacuations and repletions--and the rest of her non-naturals,
285 might not,
in a course of nine months gestation, have set all things to rights
.--My
child was bereft of these!
--What a teazing life did she lead herself,
and consequently her foetus too, with that nonsensical anxiety of hers
about lyingin in town? I thought my sister submitted with the greatest
patience, replied my uncle Toby--
I never heard her utter one fretful
word about it.--She fumed inwardly,
cried my father; and that, let me
tell you, brother, was ten times worse for the child--and then! what
battles did she fight with me, and what perpetual storms about the
midwife.--
There she gave vent, said my uncle Toby.--Vent! cried my
father, looking up.


But what was all this, my dear Toby, to the injuries done us by my
child's coming head foremost into the world, when all I wished, in this
general wreck of his frame, was to have saved this little casket unbroke,
unrifled.--

With all my precautions, how was my system turned topside-turvy in
the womb with my child! his head exposed to the hand of violence, and a
pressure of 470 pounds avoirdupois weight acting so perpendicularly upon
its apex--that at this hour 'tis ninety per Cent. insurance, that the fine
net-work of the intellectual web be not rent and torn to a thousand tatters.
--Still we could have done.--Fool, coxcomb, puppy--give him but a
Nose--Cripple, Dwarf, Driveller, Goosecap--(shape him as you will) the
door of fortune stands open--O Licetus! Licetus! had I been blest with a
foetus five inches long and a half, like thee--Fate might have done her
worst.


Still, brother Toby, there was one cast of the dye left for our child
after all--O Tristram! Tristram! Tristram!


We will send for Mr. Yorick, said my uncle Toby.

--You may send for whom you will, replied my father.



Volume 4. Chapter 20.



WHAT A RATE have I gone on at, curvetting and striking it away, two up
and two down for three volumes
(According to the preceding Editions.)
together, without looking once behind, or even on one side of me, to see
whom I trod upon!--I'll tread upon no one--quoth I to myself when I
mounted--I'll take a good rattling gallop; but I'll not hurt the poorest
jack-ass upon the road.--So off I set--up one lane--down another, through
this turnpike--over that, as if the arch-jockey of jockeys had got behind
me.

Now ride at this rate with what good intention and resolution you may--

'tis a million to one you'll do some one a mischief, if not yourself--
He's
flung--he's off--he's lost his hat--he's down--he'll break his neck--
see!--if he has not galloped full among the scaffolding of the undertaking
286
criticks!--he'll knock his brains out against some of their posts--he's
bounced out!--look--he's now riding like a mad-cap full tilt through a
whole crowd of painters, fiddlers, poets, biographers, physicians, lawyers,
logicians, players, school-men, churchmen, statesmen, soldiers, casuists,
connoisseurs, prelates, popes, and engineers.--Don't fear, said I--I'll not
hurt the poorest jack-ass upon the king's highway.--But your horse throws
dirt; see you've splash'd a bishop
287--I hope in God, 'twas only Ernulphus,
said I.--But you have squirted full in the faces of Mess. Le Moyne, De
Romigny, and De Marcilly, doctors of the Sorbonne.--That was last year,
replied I.--But you have trod this moment upon a king.--Kings have
bad times on't, said I, to be trod upon by such people as me.

You have done it, replied my accuser.

I deny it, quoth I, and so have got off, and here am I standing with my
bridle in one hand, and with my cap in the other, to tell my story.
--And
what in it? You shall hear in the next chapter.



Volume 4. Chapter 21.



AS FRANCIS THE FIRST OF FRANCE was one winterly night warming him-
self over the embers of a wood fire, and talking with his first minister of
sundry things for the good of the state
288--It would not be amiss, said
the king, stirring up the embers with his cane, if this good understand-
ing betwixt ourselves and Switzerland was a little strengthened.--There
is no end, Sire, replied the minister, in giving money to these people--
they would swallow up the treasury of France.--Poo! poo! answered the
king--there are more ways, Mons. le Premier, of bribing states, besides
that of giving money--I'll pay Switzerland the honour of standing god-
father for my next child.--Your majesty, said the minister, in so doing,
would have all the grammarians in Europe upon your back;--Switzerland,
as a republic, being a female, can in no construction be godfather.
--
She may be godmother, replied Francis hastily--so announce my intent-
ions by a courier to-morrow morning.

I am astonished, said Francis the First, (that day fortnight) speaking to
his minister as he entered the closet, that we have had no answer from
Switzerland.--Sire, I wait upon you this moment, said Mons. le Premier,
to lay before you my dispatches upon that business.--They take it kindly,
said the king.--They do, Sire, replied the minister, and have the highest
sense of the honour your majesty has done them--
but the republick, as
godmother, claims her right, in this case, of naming the child.


In all reason, quoth the king--she will christen him Francis, or Henry,
or Lewis, or some name that she knows will be agreeable to us. Your maj-
esty is deceived, replied the minister--I have this hour received a dis-
patch from our resident, with the determination of the republic on that
point also.--And what name has the republick fixed upon for the Dauphin?
289
--Shadrach, Mesech, Abed-nego, replied the minister.--By Saint Peter's
girdle, I will have nothing to do with the Swiss, cried Francis the First,
pulling up his breeches and walking hastily across the floor.

Your majesty, replied the minister calmly, cannot bring yourself off.
We'll pay them in money--said the king.

Sire, there are not sixty thousand crowns in the treasury, answered the
minister.--I'll pawn the best jewel in my crown, quoth Francis the First.

Your honour stands pawn'd already in this matter, answered Monsieur
le Premier.


Then, Mons. le Premier, said the king, by...we'll go to war with 'em.



Volume 4. Chapter 22.



ALBEIT, GENTLE READER, I have lusted earnestly, and endeavoured carefully
(according to the measure of such a slender skill as God has vouchsafed
me, and as convenient leisure from other occasions of needful profit and
healthful pastime have permitted)
that these little books which I here put
into thy hands, might stand instead of many bigger books--yet have
I
carried myself towards thee in such fanciful guise of careless disport, that
right sore am I ashamed now to intreat thy lenity seriously--in beseech-
ing thee to believe it of me
, that in the story of my father and his christ-
en-names--I have no thoughts of treading upon Francis the First--nor
in the affair of the nose--upon Francis the Ninth
290--nor in the character
of my uncle Toby--of characterizing the militiating spirits of my country--
the wound upon his groin, is a wound to every comparison of that kind--
nor by Trim--that I meant the duke of Ormond
291--or that my book is
wrote against predestination, or free-will, or taxes--If 'tis wrote against
any thing,--'tis wrote, an' please your worships, against the spleen! in
order, by a more frequent and a more convulsive elevation and depression
of the diaphragm, and the succussations of the intercostal and abdominal
muscles in laughter, to drive the gall and other bitter juices from the
gallbladder, liver, and sweet-bread of his majesty's subjects, with all the
inimicitious passions which belong to them, down into their duodenums.




Volume 4. Chapter 23.



--BUT CAN THE THING BE UNDONE, Yorick? said my father--for in my
opinion, continued he, it cannot. I am a vile canonist, replied Yorick--
but of all evils, holding suspence to be the most tormenting, we shall at
least know the worst of this matter. I hate these great dinners
292--said my
father--The size of the dinner is not the point, answered Yorick--we
want, Mr. Shandy, to dive into the bottom of this doubt, whether the
name can be changed or not--and as the beards of so many commissaries,
officials, advocates, proctors, registers, and of the most eminent of our
school-divines, and others, are all to meet in the middle of one table, and
Didius has so pressingly invited you--who in your distress would miss
such an occasion? All that is requisite, continued Yorick, is to apprize
Didius, and let him manage a conversation after dinner so as to introduce
the subject
.--Then my brother Toby, cried my father, clapping his two
hands together, shall go with us.

--Let my old tye-wig, quoth my uncle Toby, and my laced regimentals,
be hung to the fire all night, Trim.




Volume 4. Chapter 25.



--NO DOUBT, SIR,--there is a whole chapter wanting here--and a chasm
of ten pages made in the book by it--but the book-binder is neither a
fool, or a knave, or a puppy--nor is the book a jot more imperfect (at
least upon that score)--but, on the contrary, the book is more perfect and
complete by wanting the chapter, than having it, as I shall demonstrate to
your reverences in this manner.--I question first, by-the-bye, whether the
same experiment might not be made as successfully upon sundry other
chapters--but there is no end, an' please your reverences, in trying
experiments upon chapters--we have had enough of it--So there's an end of
that matter.



But before I begin my demonstration,
let me only tell you, that the chapter
which I have torn out, and which otherwise you would all have been reading
just now, instead of this
--was the description of my father's, my uncle Toby's,
Trim's, and Obadiah's setting out and journeying to the visitation at....

We'll go in the coach, said my father--Prithee, have the arms been altered,
Obadiah?--It would have made my story much better to have begun with tell-
ing you, that at the time my mother's arms were added to the Shandy's, when
the coach was re-painted upon my father's marriage, it had so fallen out
that the coach-painter, whether by performing all his works with the left
hand, like Turpilius the Roman, or Hans Holbein of Basil--or
whether 'twas
more from the blunder of his head than hand--or whether, lastly, it was
from the sinister turn which every thing relating to our family was apt
to take--it so fell out, however, to our reproach, that instead of the
bend-dexter,
293 which since Harry the Eighth's reign was honestly our due--
a bend-sinister, by some of these fatalities, had been drawn quite across
the field of the Shandy arms. 'Tis scarce credible that the mind of so
wise a man as my father was, could be so much incommoded with so small
a matter. The word coach--let it be whose it would--or coach-man, or
coach-horse, or coach-hire, could never be named in the family, but he
constantly complained of carrying this vile mark of illegitimacy upon
the door of his own;
he never once was able to step into the coach, or
out of it, without turning round to take a view of the arms, and making
a vow at the same time, that it was the last time he would ever set his
foot in it again, till the bend-sinister was taken out--but
like the affair
of the hinge, it was one of the many things which the Destinies had set
down in their books ever to be grumbled at (and in wiser families than
ours)--but never to be mended.

--Has the bend-sinister been brush'd out, I say? said my father.--There
has been nothing brush'd out, Sir, answered Obadiah, but the lining. We'll
go o'horseback, said my father, turning to Yorick--Of all things in the
world, except politicks, the clergy know the least of heraldry, said Yorick.--
No matter for that, cried my father--I should be sorry to appear with a
blot in my escutcheon before them.--Never mind the bend-sinister, said
my uncle Toby, putting on his tye-wig.--
No, indeed, said my father--
you may go with my aunt Dinah to a visitation with a bend-sinister, if you
think fit--My poor uncle Toby blush'd. My father was vexed at himself.--
No--my dear brother Toby, said my father, changing his tone
--but the
damp of the coach-lining about my loins, may give me the sciatica again,
as it did December, January, and February last winter--so if you please
you shall ride my wife's pad
--and as you are to preach, Yorick, you had
better make the best of your way before--and leave me to take care of my
brother Toby, and to follow at our own rates.

Now the chapter I was obliged to tear out, was the description of this
cavalcade
, in which Corporal Trim and Obadiah, upon two coach-horses
a-breast, led the way as slow as a patrole--whilst my uncle Toby, in his
laced regimentals and tye-wig, kept his rank with my father,
in deep roads
and dissertations alternately upon the advantage of learning and arms, as
each could get the start.

--But the painting of this journey, upon reviewing it, appears to be so
much above the stile and manner of any thing else I have been able to
paint in this book, that it could not have remained in it, without depre-
ciating every other scene; and destroying at the same time that necessary
equipoise and balance, (whether of good or bad) betwixt chapter and chapt-
er, from whence the just proportions and harmony of the whole work results.

For my own part, I am but just set up in the business, so know little a-
bout it--but, in my opinion, to write a book is for all the world like
humming a song--be but in tune with yourself, madam, 'tis no matter how
high or how low you take it.

--This is the reason, may it please your reverences, that some of the
lowest and flattest compositions pass off very well--(as Yorick told my
uncle Toby one night) by siege.--My uncle Toby looked brisk at the sound
of the word siege, but could make neither head or tail of it.

I'm to preach at court next Sunday, said Homenas
294--run over my notes--
so
I humm'd over doctor Homenas's notes--the modulation's very well--
'twill do, Homenas, if it holds on at this rate--so on I humm'd--and a
tolerable tune I thought it was; and to this hour, may it please your
reverences, had never found out how low, how flat, how spiritless and
jejune it was, but that all of a sudden, up started an air in the mid-
dle of it, so fine, so rich, so heavenly,--it carried my soul up with
it into the other world
; now had I (as Montaigne complained in a paral-
lel accident
295)--had I found the declivity easy, or the ascent accessible
--certes I had been outwitted.--Your notes, Homenas, I should have said,
are good notes;--but
it was so perpendicular a precipice--so wholly cut
off from the rest of the work, that by the first note I humm'd I found
myself flying into the other world, and from thence discovered the vale
from whence I came, so deep, so low, and dismal, that I shall never have
the heart to descend into it again.

A dwarf who brings a standard along with him to measure his own
size--take my word, is a dwarf in more articles than one
.--And so much
for tearing out of chapters.




Volume 4. Chapter 25.



--SEE IF HE IS NOT CUTTING it into slips, and giving them about him to
light their pipes!
--'Tis abominable, answered Didius; it should not go
unnoticed, said doctor Kysarcius--he was of the Kysarcij of the
Low Countries.

Methinks, said Didius, half rising from his chair, in order to remove a
bottle and a tall decanter, which stood in a direct line betwixt him and
Yorick--
you might have spared this sarcastic stroke, and have hit upon a
more proper place, Mr. Yorick--or at least upon a more proper occasion
to have shewn your contempt of what we have been about: If the sermon
is of no better worth than to light pipes with--'twas certainly, Sir, not
good enough to be preached before so learned a body; and if 'twas good
enough to be preached before so learned a body--'twas certainly Sir, too
good to light their pipes with afterwards.


--I have got him fast hung up, quoth Didius to himself, upon one of
the two horns of my dilemma--let him get off as he can.

I have undergone such unspeakable torments, in bringing forth this
sermon, quoth Yorick, upon this occasion--that I declare, Didius, I would
suffer martyrdom--and if it was possible my horse with me, a thousand
times over, before I would sit down and make such another:
I was deli-
vered of it at the wrong end of me--it came from my head instead of my
heart--and it is for the pain it gave me, both in the writing and preaching
of it, that I revenge myself of it, in this manner--To preach, to shew the
extent of our reading, or the subtleties of our wit--to parade in the eyes of
the vulgar with the beggarly accounts of a little learning, tinsel'd over with
a few words which glitter, but convey little light and less warmth--is a
dishonest use of the poor single half hour in a week which is put into our
hands--'Tis not preaching the gospel--but ourselves--For my own part,
continued Yorick, I had rather direct five words point-blank to the heart.--


As Yorick pronounced the word point-blank, my uncle Toby rose up to
say something upon projectiles--when
a single word and no more uttered
from the opposite side of the table drew every one's ears towards it--a
word of all others in the dictionary the last in that place to be expected--
a word I am ashamed to write--yet must be written--must be read--illegal
--uncanonical--guess ten thousand guesses, multiplied into themselves--
rack--torture your invention for ever
, you're where you was--In short,
I'll tell it in the next chapter.




Volume 4. Chapter 27.



ZOUNDS!296----------------------------------------------
--------Z-----ds! cried Phutatorius, partly to himself--and yet high
enough to be heard--and what seemed odd, 'twas uttered in a construct-
ion of look, and in a tone of voice, somewhat between that of a man in
amazement and one in bodily pain.

One or two who had very nice ears, and could distinguish the expression
and mixture of the two tones as plainly as a third or a fifth, or any
other chord in musick--were the most puzzled and perplexed with it--
the concord was good in itself--but then 'twas quite out of the key, and
no way applicable to the subject started;
--so that with all their know-
ledge, they could not tell what in the world to make of it.


Others who knew nothing of musical expression, and merely lent their
ears to the plain import of the word, imagined that Phutatorius, who was
somewhat of a cholerick spirit, was just going to snatch the cudgels out
of Didius's hands, in order to bemaul Yorick to some purpose--and that
the desperate monosyllable Z...ds was the exordium to an oration, which,
as they judged from the sample, presaged but a rough kind of handling of
him; so that my uncle Toby's good-nature felt a pang for what Yorick was
about to undergo. But seeing Phutatorius stop short, without any attempt
or desire to go on--a third party began to suppose, that it was no more
than an involuntary respiration, casually forming itself into the shape
of a twelve-penny oath
297--without the sin or substance of one.

Others, and especially one or two who sat next him, looked upon it on
the contrary as a real and substantial oath, propensly formed against Yorick,
to whom he was known to bear no good liking--which
said oath, as my father
philosophized upon it, actually lay fretting and fuming at that very time
in the upper regions of Phutatorius's purtenance; and so was naturally,
and according to the due course of things, first squeezed out by the sud-
den influx of blood which was driven into the right ventricle of Phuta-
torius's heart, by the stroke of surprize which so strange a theory of
preaching had excited.


How finely we argue upon mistaken facts!

There was not a soul busied in all these various reasonings upon the
monosyllable which Phutatorius uttered--who did not take this for
granted, proceeding upon it as from an axiom, namely, that Phutatorius's
mind was intent upon the subject of debate which was arising between
Didius and Yorick; and indeed as he looked first towards the one and then
towards the other, with the air of a man listening to what was going
forwards--who would not have thought the same? But the truth was, that
Phutatorius knew not one word or one syllable of what was passing--but
his whole thoughts and attention were taken up with a transaction which
was going forwards at that very instant within the precincts of his own
Galligaskins,
298 and in a part of them, where of all others he stood most
interested to watch accidents: So that notwithstanding he looked with all
the attention in the world, and had gradually skrewed up every nerve and
muscle in his face, to the utmost pitch the instrument would bear, in
order, as it was thought, to give a sharp reply to Yorick, who sat o-
veragainst him--yet, I say, was Yorick never once in any one domicile of
Phutatorius's brain--but the true cause of his exclamation lay at least a
yard below.


This I will endeavour to explain to you with all imaginable decency.

You must be informed then, that Gastripheres,
299 who had taken a turn
into the kitchen a little before dinner, to see how things went on--
observing a wicker-basket of fine chesnuts standing upon the dresser,
had ordered that a hundred or two of them might be roasted and sent
in, as soon as dinner was over--Gastripheres inforcing his orders
about them, that Didius, but Phutatorius especially, were particularly
fond of 'em.

About two minutes before the time that my uncle Toby interrupted
Yorick's harangue--Gastripheres's chesnuts were brought in--and as
Phutatorius's fondness for 'em was uppermost in the waiter's head, he laid
them directly before Phutatorius, wrapt up hot in a clean damask napkin.


Now whether it was physically impossible, with half a dozen hands all
thrust into the napkin at a time--but that some one chesnut, of more life
and rotundity than the rest, must be put in motion--it so fell out, however,
that one was actually sent rolling off the table; and as Phutatorius sat
straddling under--it fell perpendicularly into that particular aperture of
Phutatorius's breeches, for which, to the shame and indelicacy of our
language be it spoke, there is no chaste word throughout all Johnson's
dictionary--let it suffice to say--it was that particular aperture which,
in all good societies, the laws of decorum do strictly require, like the
temple of Janus (in peace at least) to be universally shut up.
300

The neglect of this punctilio in Phutatorius (which by-the-bye should
be a warning to all mankind) had opened a door to this accident.--
Accident I call it, in compliance to a received mode of speaking--but in
no opposition to the opinion either of Acrites or Mythogeras in this mat-
ter; I know they were both prepossessed and fully persuaded of it--and
are so to this hour,
That there was nothing of accident in the whole event--
but that the chesnut's taking that particular course, and in a manner of its
own accord--and then falling with all its heat directly into that one par-
ticular place, and no other--was a real judgment upon Phutatorius for that
filthy and obscene treatise de Concubinis retinendis
, which Phutatorius
had published about twenty years ago--and was that identical week going
to give the world a second edition of.

It is not my business to dip my pen in this controversy--much undoubted-
ly may be wrote on both sides of the question--all that concerns me as
an historian, is to represent the matter of fact, and render it credible
to the reader,
that the hiatus in Phutatorius's breeches was sufficiently
wide to receive the chesnut;--and that the chesnut, somehow or other,
did fall perpendicularly, and piping hot into it, without Phutatorius's
perceiving it, or any one else at that time.

The genial warmth which the chesnut imparted, was not undelectable
for the first twenty or five-and-twenty seconds--and did no more than
gently solicit Phutatorius's attention towards the part:--But the heat
gradually increasing, and in a few seconds more getting beyond the point
of all sober pleasure, and then advancing with all speed into the regions
of pain, the soul of Phutatorius, together with all his ideas, his thoughts,
his attention, his imagination, judgment, resolution, deliberation, ratio-
cination, memory, fancy, with ten battalions of animal spirits, all tumult-
uously crowded down, through different defiles and circuits, to the place
of danger, leaving all his upper regions, as you may imagine, as empty as
my purse.


With the best intelligence which all these messengers could bring him
back, Phutatorius was not able to dive into the secret of what was going
forwards below, nor could he make any kind of conjecture, what the devil
was the matter with it: However, as he knew not what the true cause
might turn out,
he deemed it most prudent in the situation he was in at
present, to bear it, if possible, like a Stoick; which, with the help of some
wry faces and compursions of the mouth, he had certainly accomplished,
had his imagination continued neuter;--but the sallies of the imagination
are ungovernable in things of this kind--a thought instantly darted into
his mind, that tho' the anguish had the sensation of glowing heat--it
might, notwithstanding that, be a bite as well as a burn; and if so, that
possibly a Newt or an Asker, or some such detested reptile, had crept up,
and was fastening his teeth--the horrid idea of which, with a fresh glow
of pain arising that instant from the chesnut, seized Phutatorius with a
sudden panick, and in the first terrifying disorder of the passion, it threw
him
, as it has done the best generals upon earth, quite off his guard:--the
effect of which was this, that
he leapt incontinently up, uttering as he rose
that interjection of surprise so much descanted upon, with the aposiopestic
break after it, marked thus, Z-----ds--which, though not strictly canonical,
was still as little as any man could have said upon the occasion;--and
which, by-the-bye, whether canonical or not, Phutatorius could no more
help than he could the cause of it.


Though this has taken up some time in the narrative, it took up little
more time in the transaction, than just to allow time for Phutatorius to
draw forth the chesnut, and throw it down with violence upon the floor--
and for Yorick to rise from his chair, and pick the chesnut up.


It is curious to observe the triumph of slight incidents over the mind:--
What incredible weight they have in forming and governing our opinions,
both of men and things--that trifles, light as air, shall waft a belief
into the soul, and plant it so immoveably within it--that Euclid's dem-
onstrations, could they be brought to batter it in breach, should not
all have power to overthrow it.

Yorick, I said, picked up the chesnut which Phutatorius's wrath had
flung down--the action was trifling--I am ashamed to account for it--
he did it, for no reason, but that he thought the chesnut not a jot worse
for the adventure--and that he held a good chesnut worth stooping for.--
But this incident, trifling as it was, wrought differently in Phutatorius's
head: He considered this act of Yorick's in getting off his chair and pick-
ing up the chesnut, as a plain acknowledgment in him, that the chesnut was
originally his--and in course, that it must have been the owner of the
chesnut, and no one else, who could have played him such a prank with it:
What greatly confirmed him in this opinion, was this, that the table being
parallelogramical and very narrow, it afforded a fair opportunity for Yorick,
who sat directly over against Phutatorius, of slipping the chesnut in--and
consequently that he did it. The look of something more than suspicion,
which Phutatorius cast full upon Yorick as these thoughts arose, too evi-
dently spoke his opinion--and as Phutatorius was naturally supposed to
know more of the matter than any person besides, his opinion at once
became the general one;--and for a reason very different from any which
have been yet given--in a little time it was put out of all manner of dis-
pute.


When great or unexpected events fall out upon the stage of this sublunary
world--the mind of man, which is an inquisitive kind of a substance, nat-
urally takes a flight behind the scenes to see what is the cause and first
spring of them.
--The search was not long in this instance.

It was well known that Yorick had never a good opinion of the treatise
which Phutatorius had wrote de Concubinis retinendis, as a thing which
he feared had done hurt in the world--and 'twas easily found out,
that
there was a mystical meaning in Yorick's prank--and that his chucking
the chesnut hot into Phutatorius's...--..., was a sarcastical fling at
his book--the doctrines of which, they said, had enflamed many an honest
man in the same place.

This conceit awaken'd Somnolentus--made Agelastes smile--and if you can
recollect the precise look and air of a man's face intent in finding out
a riddle--it threw Gastripheres's into that form--and in short was thought
by many to be a master-stroke of arch-wit.


This, as the reader has seen from one end to the other, was as groundless
as the dreams of philosophy: Yorick, no doubt, as Shakespeare said of his
ancestor--'was a man of jest,' but it was temper'd with something which
withheld him from that, and many other ungracious pranks, of which he
as undeservedly bore the blame;--but it was his misfortune all his life
long to bear the imputation of saying and doing a thousand things, of
which (unless my esteem blinds me) his nature was incapable. All I blame
him for--or rather, all I blame and alternately like him for, was that
singularity of his temper, which would never suffer him to take pains to
set a story right with the world, however in his power. In every ill usage
of that sort, he acted precisely as in the affair of his lean horse--he
could have explained it to his honour, but his spirit was above it; and
besides, he ever looked upon the inventor, the propagator and believer
of an illiberal report alike so injurious to him--he could not stoop to
tell his story to them--and so trusted to time and truth to do it for him.

This heroic cast produced him inconveniences in many respects--in
the present it was followed by the fixed resentment of Phutatorius, who,
as Yorick had just made an end of his chesnut, rose up from his chair a
second time, to let him know it--which indeed he did with a smile; say-
ing only--that he would endeavour not to forget the obligation.

But you must mark and carefully separate and distinguish these two
things in your mind.

--The smile was for the company.

--The threat was for Yorick.




Volume 4. Chapter 28.



--CAN YOU TELL ME, quoth Phutatorius, speaking to Gastripheres who sat
next to him--for one would not apply to a surgeon in so foolish an af-
fair--can you tell me, Gastripheres, what is best to take out the fire?--
Ask Eugenius, said Gastripheres.--That greatly depends, said Eugenius,
pretending ignorance of the adventure, upon the nature of the part--
If it
is a tender part, and a part which can conveniently be wrapt up--It is
both the one and the other, replied Phutatorius, laying his hand as he
spoke, with an emphatical nod of his head, upon the part in question, and
lifting up his right leg at the same time to ease and ventilate it.--If that
is the case, said Eugenius, I would advise you, Phutatorius, not to tamper
with it by any means; but if you will send to the next printer, and trust
your cure to such a simple thing as a soft sheet of paper just come off the
press--you need do nothing more than twist it round.--The damp paper, quoth
Yorick (who sat next to his friend Eugenius) though I know it has a re-
freshing coolness in it--yet I presume is no more than the vehicle--and
that the oil and lamp-black with which the paper is so strongly impreg-
nated, does the business.
--Right, said Eugenius, and is, of any outward
application I would venture to recommend, the most anodyne and safe.

Was it my case, said Gastripheres, as the main thing is the oil and lamp-
black, I should spread them thick upon a rag, and clap it on directly.--
That would make a very devil of it, replied Yorick.--And besides, added
Eugenius, it would not answer the intention, which is the extreme neat-
ness and elegance of the prescription, which the Faculty hold to be half in
half;--
for consider, if the type is a very small one (which it should be) the
sanative particles, which come into contact in this form, have the advan-
tage of being spread so infinitely thin, and with such a mathematical e-
quality (fresh paragraphs and large capitals excepted) as no art or management
of the spatula can come up to.--It falls out very luckily, replied Phutatorius,
that the second edition of my treatise de Concubinis retinendis is at this
instant in the press.
--You may take any leaf of it, said Eugenius--no
matter which.--Provided, quoth Yorick, there is no bawdry in it.--


They are just now, replied Phutatorius, printing off the ninth chapter--
which is the last chapter but one in the book.--Pray what is the title of
that chapter? said Yorick; making a respectful bow to Phutatorius as he
spoke.--I think, answered Phutatorius, 'tis that de re concubinaria.

For Heaven's sake keep out of that chapter, quoth Yorick.

--By all means--added Eugenius.



Volume 4. Chapter 29.



--NOW, QUOTH DIDIUS, rising up, and laying his right hand with his
fingers spread upon his breast--
had such a blunder about a christian-
name happened before the Reformation
--(It happened the day before
yesterday, quoth my uncle Toby to himself)--and when baptism was
administer'd in Latin--('Twas all in English, said my uncle)--many things
might have coincided with it, and
upon the authority of sundry decreed
cases, to have pronounced the baptism null,
with a power of giving the
child a new name--Had a priest, for instance, which was no uncommon
thing, through ignorance of the Latin tongue, baptized a child of Tom
o'Stiles, in nomine patriae & filia & spiritum sanctos--the baptism was
held null.--I beg your pardon, replied Kysarcius--
in that case, as the
mistake was only the terminations, the baptism was valid--and to have
rendered it null, the blunder of the priest should have fallen upon the
first syllable of each noun
--and not, as in your case, upon the last.

My father delighted in subtleties of this kind, and listen'd with infinite
attention.

Gastripheres, for example, continued Kysarcius, baptizes a child of John
Stradling's in Gomine gatris, &c. &c. instead of in Nomine patris, &c.--
Is this a baptism? No--say the ablest canonists; in as much as the radix of
each word is hereby torn up, and the sense and meaning of them removed
and changed quite to another object
; for Gomine does not signify a name,
nor gatris a father.--What do they signify? said my uncle Toby.--Nothing
at all--quoth Yorick.--Ergo, such a baptism is null, said Kysarcius.--
In course, answered Yorick, in a tone two parts jest and one part earnest.--

But in the case cited, continued Kysarcius, where patrim is put for patris,
filia for filii, and so on--
as it is a fault only in the declension, and the
roots of the words continue untouch'd, the inflections of their branches
either this way or that, does not in any sort hinder the baptism, inasmuch
as the same sense continues in the words as before
.--But then, said Didius,
the intention of the priest's pronouncing them grammatically must have
been proved to have gone along with it.--Right, answered Kysarcius; and
of this, brother Didius, we have an instance in a decree of the decretals of
Pope Leo the IIId.--
But my brother's child, cried my uncle Toby, has
nothing to do with the Pope--'tis the plain child of a Protestant gentle-
man
, christen'd Tristram against the wills and wishes both of his father
and mother, and all who are a-kin to it.--

If the wills and wishes, said Kysarcius, interrupting my uncle Toby, of
those only who stand related to Mr. Shandy's child, were to have weight in
this matter,
Mrs. Shandy, of all people, has the least to do in it.--My
uncle Toby lay'd down his pipe, and my father drew his chair still closer
to the table, to hear the conclusion of so strange an introduction.


--It has not only been
a question, Captain Shandy, amongst the (Vide
Swinburn on Testaments, Part 7. para 8.) best lawyers and civilians in this
land, continued Kysarcius,
"Whether the mother be of kin to her child,"--
but,
after much dispassionate enquiry and jactitation of the arguments on
all sides--it has been adjudged for the negative--namely, "That the mother
is not of kin to her child
.
" (Vide Brook Abridg. Tit. Administr. N. 47.) My
father instantly clapp'd his hand upon my uncle Toby's mouth, under colour
of whispering in his ear;--the truth was, he was alarmed for Lillabullero
--and having a great desire to hear more of so curious an argument--he
begg'd my uncle Toby, for heaven's sake, not to disappointed him in it.
--My uncle Toby gave a nod--resumed his pipe, and contenting himself
with whistling Lillabullero inwardly--Kysarcius, Didius, and Tripto-
lemus went on with the discourse as follows:

This determination, continued Kysarcius, how contrary soever it may
seem to run to the stream of vulgar ideas,
yet had reason strongly on its
side; and has been put out of all manner of dispute from the famous case,

known commonly by the name of the Duke of Suffolk's case.--It is cited
in Brook, said Triptolemus--And taken notice of by Lord Coke, added
Didius.--And you may find it in Swinburn on Testaments, said Kysarcius.
The case, Mr. Shandy, was this:

In the reign of Edward the Sixth, Charles duke of Suffolk having issue a
son by one venter, and a daughter by another venter, made his last will,
wherein he devised goods to his son, and died; after whose death the son
died also--but without will, without wife, and without child--his mother
and his sister by the father's side (for she was born of the former venter)
then living. The mother took the administration of her son's goods, ac-
cording to the statute of the 21st of Harry the Eighth, whereby it is en-
acted, That in case any person die intestate the administration of his goods
shall be committed to the next of kin.

The administration being thus (surreptitiously) granted to the mother,
the sister by the father's side commenced a suit before the Ecclesiastical
Judge, alledging, 1st, That she herself was next of kin; and 2dly, That the
mother was not of kin at all to the party deceased;
and therefore prayed
the court, that the administration granted to the mother might be revoked,
and be committed unto her, as next of kin to the deceased, by force of
the said statute.

Hereupon, as it was a great cause, and much depending upon its issue--
and many causes of great property likely to be decided in times to
come, by the precedent to be then made--the most learned, as well in the
laws of this realm, as in the civil law, were consulted together, whether
the mother was of kin to her son, or no.--
Whereunto not only the temporal
lawyers--but the church lawyers--the juris-consulti--the jurisprudentes--
the civilians--the advocates--the commissaries--the judges of the con-
sistory and prerogative courts of Canterbury and York, with the master
of the faculties, were all unanimously of opinion, That the mother was
not of (Mater non numeratur inter consanguineos, Bald. in ult. C. de
Verb. signific.) kin to her child.--

And what said the duchess of Suffolk to it? said my uncle Toby.

The unexpectedness of my uncle Toby's question, confounded Kysarcius
more than the ablest advocate--He stopp'd a full minute
, looking in my
uncle Toby's face without replying--and in that single minute Triptolemus
put by him, and took the lead as follows.

'Tis a ground and principle in the law, said Triptolemus, that things do
not ascend, but descend in it; and I make no doubt 'tis for this cause, that
however true it is, that the child may be of the blood and seed of its par-
ents--that the parents, nevertheless, are not of the blood and seed of it;
inasmuch as the parents are not begot by the child, but the child by the
parents--For so they write, Liberi sunt de sanguine patris & matris, sed
pater & mater non sunt de sanguine liberorum.


--But this, Triptolemus, cried Didius, proves too much--for from this
authority cited it would follow, not only what indeed is granted on all sides,
that the mother is not of kin to her child--but the father likewise.--It is
held, said Triptolemus, the better opinion; because the father, the mother,
and the child, though they be three persons, yet are they but (una caro (Vide
Brook Abridg. tit. Administr. N .47.)) one flesh; and consequently no de-
gree of kindred--or any method of acquiring one in nature.--There you
push the argument again too far, cried Didius--for there is no prohibition
in nature, though there is in the Levitical law--but that a man may beget a
child upon his grandmother--in which case, supposing the issue a daughter,
she would stand in relation both of--But who ever thought, cried
Kysarcius, of laying with his grandmother?--The young gentleman, replied
Yorick, whom Selden speaks of--who not only thought of it, but justified
his intention to his father by the argument drawn from the law of retal-
iation.--"You laid, Sir, with my mother,' said the lad--"why may not I lay
with yours?'--'Tis the Argumentum commune, added Yorick.--'Tis as good,
replied Eugenius, taking down his hat, as they deserve.

The company broke up.



Volume 4. Chapter 30.



--AND PRAY, said my uncle Toby, leaning upon Yorick, as he and my father
were helping him leisurely down the stairs--don't be terrified, madam,
this stair-case conversation is not so long as the last--And pray, Yorick,
said my uncle Toby, which way is this said affair of Tristram at length
settled by these learned men? Very satisfactorily, replied Yorick; no mortal,
Sir, has any concern with it--for Mrs. Shandy the mother is nothing at all
a-kin to him--and as the mother's is the surest side--Mr. Shandy, in course
is still less than nothing--In short, he is not as much a-kin to him, Sir,
as I am.--

--That may well be, said my father, shaking his head.

--Let the learned say what they will, there must certainly, quoth my
uncle Toby, have been some sort of consanguinity betwixt the duchess of
Suffolk and her son.


The vulgar are of the same opinion, quoth Yorick, to this hour.



Volume 4. Chapter 31.



THOUGH MY FATHER was hugely tickled with the subtleties of these learned
discourses--'twas still but like the anointing of a broken bone--The moment
he got home, the weight of his afflictions returned upon him but so much
the heavier, as is ever the case when the staff we lean on slips from
under us.--He became pensive--walked frequently forth to the fishpond--
let down one loop of his hat--sigh'd often--forbore to snap--and, as the
hasty sparks of temper, which occasion snapping, so much assist perspi-
ration and digestion, as Hippocrates tells us--he had certainly fallen
ill with the extinction of them, had not his thoughts been critically
drawn off, and his health rescued by a fresh train of disquietudes left
him
, with a legacy of a thousand pounds, by my aunt Dinah.

My father had scarce read the letter, when taking the thing by the right
end, he instantly began to plague and puzzle his head how to lay it out
mostly to the honour of his family.--A hundred-and-fifty odd projects
took possession of his brains by turns--he would do this, and that and
t'other--He would go to Rome--he would go to law--he would buy
stock--he would buy John Hobson's farm--he would new fore front his
house, and add a new wing to make it even--
There was a fine water-mill
on this side, and he would build a wind-mill on the other side of the river
in full view to answer it--But above all things in the world, he would
inclose the great Ox-moor, and send out my brother Bobby immediately
upon his travels.


But as the sum was finite, and consequently could not do every thing--
and in truth very few of these to any purpose--of all the projects which
offered themselves upon this occasion, the two last seemed to make the
deepest impression; and he would infallibly have determined upon both
at once, but for the small inconvenience hinted at above, which absolutely
put him under a necessity of deciding in favour either of the one or the
other.

This was not altogether so easy to be done; for though 'tis certain my
father had long before set his heart upon this necessary part of my brother's
education, and like a prudent man had actually determined to carry it
into execution, with the first money that returned from the second crea-
tion of actions in the Missisippi-scheme, in which he was an adventurer--
yet
the Ox-moor, which was a fine, large, whinny, undrained, unimproved
common
, belonging to the Shandy-estate, had almost as old a claim upon
him: he had long and affectionately set his heart upon turning it likewise
to some account.

But having never hitherto been pressed with such a conjuncture of things,
as made it necessary to settle either the priority or justice of their
claims--like a wise man he had refrained entering into any nice or crit-
ical examination about them: so that upon the dismission of every other
project at this crisis--the two old projects, the Ox-moor and my Brother,
divided him again;
and so equal a match were they for each other, as to
become the occasion of no small contest in the old gentleman's mind--
which of the two should be set o'going first.

--People may laugh as they will--but the case was this.

It had ever been the custom of the family, and by length of time was
almost become
a matter of common right, that the eldest son of it should
have free ingress, egress, and regress into foreign parts before marriage--
not only for the sake of bettering his own private parts, by the benefit of
exercise and change of so much air--but simply for the mere delectation
of his fancy,
by the feather put into his cap, of having been abroad--
tantum valet, my father would say, quantum sonat.

Now as
this was a reasonable, and in course a most christian indulgence
--to deprive him of it, without why or wherefore--and thereby make an
example of him, as the first Shandy unwhirl'd about Europe in a post-
chaise
, and only because he was a heavy lad--would be using him ten
times worse than a Turk.


On the other hand, the case of the Ox-moor was full as hard.

Exclusive of the original purchase-money, which was eight hundred
pounds--it had cost the family eight hundred pounds more in a law-suit
about fifteen years before--besides the Lord knows what trouble and vexa-
tion.

It had been moreover in possession of the Shandy-family ever since the
middle of the last century; and though it lay full in view before the house,
bounded on one extremity by the water-mill, and on the other by the
projected wind-mill spoken of above--and for all these reasons seemed to
have the fairest title of any part of the estate to the care and protection of
the family--yet
by an unaccountable fatality, common to men, as well as
the ground they tread on--it had all along most shamefully been overlook'd;
and to speak the truth of it, had suffered so much by it, that it would have
made any man's heart have bled (Obadiah said) who understood the value
of the land, to have rode over it, and only seen the condition it was in.


However, as neither the purchasing this tract of ground--nor indeed the
placing of it where it lay, were either of them, properly speaking, of my
father's doing--he had never thought himself any way concerned in the
affair--till the fifteen years before, when the breaking out of that cursed
law-suit mentioned above (and which had arose about its boundaries)--
which being altogether my father's own act and deed, it naturally awaken-
ed every other argument in its favour, and upon summing them all up
together, he saw, not merely in interest, but in honour, he was bound to
do something for it--and that now or never was the time.

I think there must certainly have been a mixture of ill-luck in it, that
the reasons on both sides should happen to be so equally balanced by each
other; for though
my father weigh'd them in all humours and conditions--
spent many an anxious hour in the most profound and abstracted medita-
tion upon what was best to be done--reading books of farming one day--
books of travels another--laying aside all passion whatever--viewing the
arguments on both sides in all their lights and circumstances
--communing
every day with my uncle Toby--arguing with Yorick, and talking over the
whole affair of the Ox-moor with Obadiah--yet nothing in all that time
appeared so strongly in behalf of the one, which was not either strictly
applicable to the other, or at least so far counterbalanced by some con-
sideration of equal weight, as to keep the scales even.


For to be sure, with proper helps, in the hands of some people, tho' the
Ox-moor would undoubtedly have made a different appearance in the world
from what it did, or ever could do in the condition it lay--yet every
tittle of this was true, with regard to my brother Bobby--let Obadiah say
what he would.--


In point of interest--the contest, I own, at first sight, did not appear
so undecisive betwixt them; for whenever my father took pen and ink in
hand, and set about calculating the simple expence of paring and burn-
ing, and fencing in the Ox-moor, &c. &c.--with the certain profit it
would bring him in return--the latter turned out so prodigiously in his
way of working the account, that you would have sworn the Ox-moor would
have carried all before it. For it was plain he should reap a hundred
lasts of rape, at twenty pounds a last, the very first year--
besides an
excellent crop of wheat the year following--and the year after that, to
speak within bounds, a hundred--but in all likelihood, a hundred and fif-
ty--if not two hundred quarters of pease and beans--besides potatoes without
end.--But then, to think he was all this while breeding up my brother,
like a hog to eat them--knocked all on the head again, and generally left
the old gentleman in such a state of suspense--that, as he often declared
to my uncle Toby--he knew no more than his heels what to do.

No body, but he who has felt it, can conceive what a plaguing thing it is
to have a man's mind torn asunder by two projects of equal strength, both
obstinately pulling in a contrary direction at the same time: for to say
nothing of the havock, which by a certain consequence is unavoidably
made by it all over the finer system of the nerves, which you know convey
the animal spirits and more subtle juices from the heart to the head, and
so on--it is not to be told in what a degree such a wayward kind of fric-
tion works upon the more gross and solid parts, wasting the fat and im-
pairing the strength of a man every time as it goes backwards and forwards.


My father had certainly sunk under this evil, as certainly as he had done
under that of my Christian Name--had he not been rescued out of it, as
he was out of that, by a fresh evil--the misfortune of my brother Bobby's
death.

What is the life of man! Is it not to shift from side to side?--from sor-
row to sorrow?--to button up one cause of vexation--and unbutton another?




Volume 4. Chapter 32.



FROM THIS MOMENT I am to be considered as heir-apparent to the Shandy
family--and
it is from this point properly, that the story of my Life and
my Opinions sets out. With all my hurry and precipitation, I have but
been clearing the ground to raise the building--and such a building do I
foresee it will turn out, as never was planned, and as never was executed
since Adam. In less than five minutes I shall have thrown my pen into the
fire, and the little drop of thick ink which is left remaining at the bottom
of my ink-horn, after it--I have but half a score things to do in the time--
I have a thing to name--a thing to lament--a thing to hope--a thing to
promise, and a thing to threaten--I have a thing to suppose--a thing to
declare--a thing to conceal--a thing to choose, and a thing to pray for.-
-
This chapter, therefore, I name the chapter of Things--and my next chapter
to it, that is, the first chapter of my next volume, if I live, shall be my
chapter upon Whiskers, in order to keep up some sort of connection in
my works.

The thing I lament is, that things have crowded in so thick upon me,
that I have not been able to get into that part of my work, towards which
I have all the way looked forwards, with so much earnest desire; and that
is
the Campaigns, but especially the amours of my uncle Toby, the events
of which are of so singular a nature, and so Cervantick a cast, that if I
can so manage it, as to convey but the same impressions to every other brain,
which the occurrences themselves excite in my own--I will answer for it
the book shall make its way in the world, much better than its master has
done before it.--Oh Tristram! Tristram! can this but be once brought about
--the credit, which will attend thee as an author, shall counterbalance
the many evils will have befallen thee as a man--thou wilt feast upon
the one--when thou hast lost all sense and remembrance of the other!--

No wonder I itch so much as I do, to get at these amours--They are the
choicest morsel of my whole story! and when I do get at 'em--assure
yourselves, good folks--(nor do I value whose squeamish stomach takes
offence at it) I shall not be at all nice in the choice of my words!--and
that's the thing I have to declare.--I shall never get all through in five
minutes, that I fear--and the thing I hope is, that your worships and
reverences are not offended--if you are, depend upon't I'll give you some-
thing, my good gentry, next year to be offended at--that's my dear Jenny's
way--but who my Jenny is--and which is the right and which the wrong end
of a woman, is the thing to be concealed
--it shall be told you in the next
chapter but one to my chapter of Button-holes--and not one chapter before.

And now that you have just got to the end of these (According to the
preceding Editions.) three volumes--the thing I have to ask is, how you
feel your heads? my own akes dismally!--as for your healths, I know, they
are much better.--
True Shandeism, think what you will against it, opens
the heart and lungs, and like all those affections which partake of its
nature, it forces the blood and other vital fluids of the body to run freely
through its channels, makes the wheel of life run long and cheerfully round.


Was I left, like Sancho Panca, to choose my kingdom, it should not be
maritime--or a kingdom of blacks to make a penny of;--no, it should be
a kingdom of hearty laughing subjects: And as the bilious and more sat-
urnine passions, by creating disorders in the blood and humours, have as
bad an influence, I see, upon the body politick as body natural--and as
nothing but a habit of virtue can fully govern those passions, and subject
them to reason--I should add to my prayer--that God would give my
subjects grace to be as Wise as they were Merry; and then should I be the
happiest monarch, and they are the happiest people under heaven.


And so with this moral for the present, may it please your worships and
your reverences, I take my leave of you till this time twelve-month, when,
(unless this vile cough kills me in the mean time) I'll have another pluck
at your beards, and lay open a story to the world you little dream of.





                Volume V



Dixero si quid forte jocosius, hoc mihi juris
Cum venia dabis.--Hor.

--Si quis calumnietur levius esse quam decet theologum, aut mordacius
quam deceat Christianum--non Ego, sed Democritus dixit.--Erasmus.



To the Right Honorable

John,

Lord Viscount Spencer.



My Lord,

I Humbly beg leave to offer you these two Volumes (Volumes V.
and VI. in the first Edition.); they are the best my talents, with such
bad health as I have, could produce:--had Providence granted me a
larger stock of either, they had been a much more proper present to
your Lordship.

I beg your Lordship will forgive me, if, at the same time I dedicate
this work to you, I join Lady Spencer, in the liberty I take of in-
scribing the story of Le Fever to her name; for which I have no other
motive, which my heart has informed me of, but that the story is a
humane one.

I am,
My Lord,
Your Lordship's
Most devoted
And most humble Servant,
Laur. Sterne.



Volume 5. Chapter 1.



IF IT HAD NOT BEEN for those two mettlesome tits, and that madcap of a
postillion who drove them from Stilton to Stamford, the thought had
never entered my head. He flew like lightning--there was a slope of three
miles and a half--we scarce touched the ground--the motion was most rapid
--most impetuous--'twas communicated to my brain--my heart partook of it
--'By the great God of day,' said I, looking towards the sun, and thrust-
ing my arm out of the fore-window of the chaise, as I made my vow, "I
will lock up my study-door the moment I get home, and throw the key of
it ninety feet below the surface of the earth, into the draw-well at
the back of my house.'

The London waggon confirmed me in my resolution; it hung tottering upon
the hill, scarce progressive, drag'd--drag'd up by eight heavy beasts--
'by main strength!--quoth I, nodding--but your betters draw the same
way--and something of every body's!--O rare!'

Tell me, ye learned, shall we for ever be adding so much to the bulk--so
little to the stock?

Shall we for ever make new books, as apothecaries make new mixtures, by
pouring only out of one vessel into another?

Are we for ever to be twisting, and untwisting the same rope? for ever in
the same track--for ever at the same pace?


Shall we be destined to the days of eternity, on holy-days, as well as
working-days, to be shewing the relicks of learning, as monks do the relicks
of their saints--without working one--one single miracle with them?

Who made Man, with powers which dart him from earth to heaven in
a moment--that great, that most excellent, and most noble creature of
the world--the miracle of nature, as Zoroaster in his book (Greek) called
him--the Shekinah of the divine presence, as Chrysostom--the image of
God, as Moses--the ray of divinity, as Plato--the marvel of marvels, as
Aristotle--to go sneaking on at this pitiful--pimping--pettifogging rate?


I scorn to be as abusive as Horace upon the occasion--but if there is no
catachresis in the wish, and no sin in it,
I wish from my soul, that every
imitator in Great Britain, France, and Ireland, had the farcy for his pains;
and that there was a good farcical house, large enough to hold--aye--and
sublimate them, shag rag and bob-tail, male and female, all together:
and
this leads me to the affair of Whiskers--but, by what chain of ideas--I
leave as a legacy in mort-main to Prudes and Tartufs, to enjoy and make
the most of.


             Upon Whiskers.

I'm sorry I made it--'twas as inconsiderate a promise as ever entered a man's
head--
A chapter upon whiskers! alas! the world will not bear it--'tis a deli-
cate world--but I knew not of what mettle it was made
--nor had I ever seen
the under-written fragment; otherwise, as surely as noses are noses, and
whiskers are whiskers still (let the world say what it will to the contrary);
so surely would I have steered clear of this dangerous chapter.


             The Fragment.

*     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *

*     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *

* *--You are half asleep, my good lady, said the old gentleman, taking
hold of the old lady's hand, and giving it a gentle squeeze, as he pro-
nounced the word Whiskers--shall we change the subject? By no means,
replied the old lady--I like your account of those matters; so throwing a
thin gauze handkerchief over her head,
and leaning it back upon the chair
with her face turned towards him, and advancing her two feet as she re-
clined herself--I desire, continued she, you will go on.

The old gentleman went on as follows:--Whiskers! cried the queen of
Navarre, dropping her knotting ball, as La Fosseuse uttered the word--
Whiskers, madam, said La Fosseuse, pinning the ball to the queen's apron,
and making a courtesy as she repeated it.


La Fosseuse's voice was naturally soft and low, yet 'twas an articulate
voice: and every letter of the word Whiskers fell distinctly upon the queen
of Navarre's ear--Whiskers! cried the queen, laying a greater stress upon
the word, and as if she had still distrusted her ears--Whiskers! replied La
Fosseuse, repeating the word a third time--There is not a cavalier, madam,
of his age in Navarre, continued the maid of honour, pressing the page's
interest upon the queen, that has so gallant a pair--Of what? cried Mar-
garet, smiling--Of whiskers, said La Fosseuse, with infinite modesty.


The word Whiskers still stood its ground, and continued to be made
use of in most of the best companies throughout the little kingdom of
Navarre, notwithstanding the indiscreet use which La Fosseuse had made
of it: the truth was, La Fosseuse had pronounced the word, not only be-
fore the queen, but upon sundry other occasions at court,
with an accent
which always implied something of a mystery
--And as the court of Margaret,
as all the world knows, was at that time a mixture of gallantry and de-
votion--and whiskers being as applicable to the one, as the other, the
word naturally stood its ground--it gained full as much as it lost; that
is, the clergy were for it--the laity were against it--and for the women,--
they were divided.


The excellency of the figure and mien of the young Sieur De Croix, was
at that time beginning to draw the attention of the maids of honour to-
wards the terrace before the palace gate, where the guard was mounted.
The lady De Baussiere fell deeply in love with him,--La Battarelle did the
same--it was the finest weather for it,
that ever was remembered in
Navarre--La Guyol, La Maronette, La Sabatiere, fell in love with the Sieur
De Croix also--La Rebours and La Fosseuse knew better--De Croix had
failed in an attempt to recommend himself to La Rebours; and La Rebours
and La Fosseuse were inseparable.

The queen of Navarre was sitting with her ladies in the painted bow-
window, facing the gate of the second court, as De Croix passed through
it--He is handsome, said the Lady Baussiere--He has a good mien, said
La Battarelle--
He is finely shaped, said La Guyol--I never saw an officer
of the horse-guards in my life, said La Maronette, with two such legs--Or
who stood so well upon them, said La Sabatiere--But he has no whiskers,
cried La Fosseuse--Not a pile, said La Rebours
.

The queen went directly to her oratory, musing all the way, as she walked
through the gallery, upon the subject; turning it this way and that way in
her fancy--Ave Maria!--what can La-Fosseuse mean? said she, kneeling down
upon the cushion.


La Guyol, La Battarelle, La Maronette, La Sabatiere, retired instantly to
their chambers--Whiskers! said all four of them to themselves, as they
bolted their doors on the inside.

The Lady Carnavallette was counting her beads with both hands, unsus-
pected, under her farthingal--from St. Antony down to St. Ursula
inclusive, not a saint passed through her fingers without whiskers; St.
Francis, St. Dominick, St. Bennet, St. Basil, St. Bridget, had all whiskers
.

The Lady Baussiere had got into a wilderness of conceits, with moralizing
too intricately upon La Fosseuse's text
--She mounted her palfrey, her
page followed her--the host passed by--the Lady Baussiere rode on.

One denier, cried the order of mercy--one single denier, in behalf of a
thousand patient captives, whose eyes look towards heaven and you for
their redemption.


--The Lady Baussiere rode on.

Pity the unhappy, said a devout, venerable, hoary-headed man, meekly
holding up a box, begirt with iron, in his withered hands--I beg for the
unfortunate--good my Lady, 'tis for a prison--for an hospital--'tis for an
old man--a poor man undone by shipwreck, by suretyship, by fire--I call
God and all his angels to witness--'tis to clothe the naked--to feed the
hungry--'tis to comfort the sick and the broken-hearted.


The Lady Baussiere rode on.

A decayed kinsman bowed himself to the ground.

--The Lady Baussiere rode on.

He ran begging bare-headed on one side of her palfrey, conjuring her by
the former bonds of friendship, alliance, consanguinity, &c.--Cousin,
aunt, sister, mother,--for virtue's sake, for your own, for mine, for Christ's
sake,
remember me--pity me.

--The Lady Baussiere rode on.

Take hold of my whiskers, said the Lady Baussiere--The page took
hold of her palfrey. She dismounted at the end of the terrace.

There are some trains of certain ideas which leave prints of themselves
about our eyes and eye-brows; and there is a consciousness of it, some-
where about the heart, which serves but to make these etchings the
stronger--we see, spell, and put them together without a dictionary.


Ha, ha! he, hee! cried La Guyol and La Sabatiere, looking close at each
other's prints--Ho, ho! cried La Battarelle and Maronette, doing the
same:--Whist! cried one--ft, ft,--said a second--hush, quoth a third--
poo, poo, replied a fourth--gramercy! cried the Lady Carnavallette;--
'twas she who bewhisker'd St. Bridget.

La Fosseuse drew her bodkin from the knot of her hair, and having
traced the outline of a small whisker, with the blunt end of it, upon one
side of her upper lip, put in into La Rebours' hand
--La Rebours shook
her head.

The Lady Baussiere coughed thrice into the inside of her muff--La
Guyol smiled--Fy, said the Lady Baussiere.
The queen of Navarre touched
her eye with the tip of her fore-finger--as much as to say, I understand
you all.


'Twas plain to the whole court the word was ruined: La Fosseuse had
given it a wound, and it was not the better for passing through all these
defiles--It made a faint stand, however, for a few months, by the expi-
ration of which, the Sieur De Croix, finding it high time to leave Navarre
for want of whiskers--the word in course became indecent, and (after a
few efforts) absolutely unfit for use.


The best word, in the best language of the best world, must have suffer-
ed under such combinations.--The curate of d'Estella wrote a book against
them, setting forth the dangers of accessory ideas, and warning the
Navarois against them.

Does not all the world know, said the curate d'Estella at the conclusion
of his work, that Noses ran the same fate some centuries ago in most parts
of Europe, which Whiskers have now done in the kingdom of Navarre?--
The evil indeed spread no farther then--but have not beds and bolsters,
and night-caps and chamber-pots stood upon the brink of destruction
ever since? Are not trouse, and placket-holes, and pump-handles--and
spigots and faucets, in danger still from the same association?--Chastity,
by nature, the gentlest of all affections--give it but its head--'tis like a
ramping and a roaring lion.

The drift of the curate d'Estella's argument was not understood.--They
ran the scent the wrong way.--The world bridled his ass at the tail.--And
when the extremes of DELICACY, and the beginnings of CONCUPISCENCE,
hold their next provincial chapter together, they may decree that bawdy
also.




Volume 5. Chapter 2.



WHEN MY FATHER RECEIVED the letter which brought him the melancholy
account of my brother Bobby's death, he was busy calculating the expence
of his riding post from Calais to Paris, and so on to Lyons.

'Twas a most inauspicious journey; my father having had every foot of it
to travel over again, and his calculation to begin afresh, when he had
almost got to the end of it, by
Obadiah's opening the door to acquaint
him the family was out of yeast
--and to ask whether he might not take
the great coach-horse early in the morning and ride in search of some.--
With all my heart, Obadiah, said my father (pursuing his journey)--take
the coach-horse, and welcome.--
But he wants a shoe, poor creature! said
Obadiah.--Poor creature! said my uncle Toby, vibrating the note back
again, like a string in unison.
Then ride the Scotch horse, quoth my father
hastily.--He cannot bear a saddle upon his back, quoth Obadiah, for the
whole world.--
The devil's in that horse; then take Patriot, cried my fa-
ther, and shut the door.--Patriot is sold, said Obadiah. Here's for you!
cried my father,
making a pause, and looking in my uncle Toby's face, as if
the thing had not been a matter of fact.--Your worship ordered me to sell
him last April, said Obadiah.--
Then go on foot for your pains, cried my
father--I had much rather walk than ride, said Obadiah, shutting the
door.

What plagues, cried my father, going on with his calculation.

--But the waters are out, said Obadiah,--opening the door again.


Till that moment, my father, who had a map of Sanson's, and a book of
the post-roads before him, had kept his hand upon the head of his compass-
es, with one foot of them fixed upon Nevers, the last stage he had paid
for--purposing to go on from that point with his journey and calculation,
as soon as Obadiah quitted the room: but
this second attack of Obadiah's,
in opening the door and laying the whole country under water, was too
much.--He let go his compasses--or rather with a mixed motion between
accident and anger, he threw them upon the table;
and then there was
nothing for him to do, but to return back to Calais (like many others)
as wise as he had set out.


When the letter was brought into the parlour, which contained the news
of my brother's death, my father had got forwards again upon his journey
to within a stride of the compasses of the very same stage of Nevers.--By
your leave, Mons. Sanson, cried my father, striking the point of his
compasses through Nevers into the table
--and nodding to my uncle Toby to
see what was in the letter--twice of one night, is too much for an English
gentleman and his son, Mons. Sanson, to be turned back from so lousy a
town as Nevers--What think'st thou, Toby? added my father in a sprightly
tone.--Unless it be a garrison town, said my uncle Toby--for then--I
shall be a fool, said my father, smiling to himself, as long as I live.

--So giving a second nod--and keeping his compasses still upon Nevers with
one hand, and holding his book of the post-roads in the other--half cal-
culating and half listening, he leaned forwards upon the table with both
elbows, as my uncle Toby hummed over the letter.
-----  -----  -----  -----  -----  -----  -----  -----
-----  -----  -----  -----  -----  -----  -----  -----
-----  -----  -----  -----  -----  -----  -----  -----
----- ----- -----he's gone! said my uncle Toby--Where--Who? cried
my father.--My nephew, said my uncle Toby.--What--without leave--without
money--without governor? cried my father in amazement. No:--
he is
dead, my dear brother, quoth my uncle Toby.--Without being ill? cried
my father again.--I dare say not, said my uncle Toby, in a low voice, and
fetching a deep sigh from the bottom of his heart, he has been ill enough,
poor lad! I'll answer for him--for he is dead.

When Agrippina was told of her son's death, Tacitus informs us, that,
not being able to moderate the violence of her passions, she abruptly broke
off her work--My father stuck his compasses into Nevers, but so much
the faster.--What contrarieties! his, indeed, was matter of calculation!--

Agrippina's must have been quite a different affair; who else could pretend
to reason from history?


How my father went on, in my opinion, deserves a chapter to itself.--



Volume 5. Chapter 3.



------AND A CHAPTER IT SHALL HAVE, and a devil of a one too--so look
to yourselves.

'Tis either
Plato, or Plutarch, or Seneca, or Xenophon, or Epictetus, or
Theophrastus, or Lucian--or some one perhaps of later date--either
Cardan, or Budaeus, or Petrarch, or Stella--or possibly it may be some
divine or father of the church, St. Austin, or St. Cyprian, or Barnard, who
affirms that it is an irresistible and natural passion to weep for the loss of
our friends or children--and Seneca (I'm positive) tells us somewhere,
that such griefs evacuate themselves best by that particular channel
--And
accordingly we find, that David wept for his son Absalom--Adrian for
his Antinous--Niobe for her children, and that Apollodorus and Crito
both shed tears for Socrates before his death.

My father managed his affliction otherwise; and indeed differently from
most men either ancient or modern; for
he neither wept it away, as the
Hebrews and the Romans--or slept it off, as the Laplanders--or hanged
it, as the English, or drowned it, as the Germans,--nor did he curse it, or
damn it, or excommunicate it, or rhyme it
, or lillabullero it.--

--He got rid of it, however.


Will your worships give me leave to squeeze in a story between these
two pages?

When Tully was bereft of his dear daughter Tullia, at first he laid it to his
heart,--he listened to the voice of nature, and modulated his own unto
it.--O my Tullia! my daughter! my child!--still, still, still,--'twas O my
Tullia!--my Tullia! Methinks I see my Tullia, I hear my Tullia, I talk with
my Tullia.--But as soon as he began to look into the stores of philosophy,
and consider how many excellent things might be said upon the occasion--
no body upon earth can conceive, says the great orator, how happy, how
joyful it made me.


My father was as proud of his eloquence as Marcus Tullius Cicero could
be for his life, and, for aught I am convinced of to the contrary at present,
with as much reason:
it was indeed his strength--and his weakness too.--
His strength--for he was by nature eloquent; and his weakness--for he was
hourly a dupe to it; and, provided an occasion in life would but permit him
to shew his talents, or say either a wise thing, a witty, or a shrewd one--
(bating the case of a systematic misfortune)--he had all he wanted.--A
blessing which tied up my father's tongue, and a misfortune which let it
loose with a good grace, were pretty equal: sometimes, indeed, the misfor-
tune was the better of the two; for instance, where the pleasure of the
harangue was as ten, and the pain of the misfortune but as five--my father
gained half in half, and consequently was as well again off, as if it had
never befallen him.


This clue will unravel what otherwise would seem very inconsistent in
my father's domestic character; and it is this, that, in the provocations
arising from the neglects and blunders of servants, or other mishaps un-
avoidable in a family, his anger, or rather the duration of it, eternally
ran counter to all conjecture.

My father had a favourite little mare, which he had consigned over to a
most beautiful Arabian horse, in order to have a pad out of her for his own
riding: he was sanguine in all his projects; so talked about his pad every
day with as absolute a security, as if it had been reared, broke,--and bridled
and saddled at his door ready for mounting.
By some neglect or other in
Obadiah, it so fell out, that my father's expectations were answered with
nothing better than a mule, and as ugly a beast of the kind as ever was
produced.


My mother and my uncle Toby expected my father would be the death
of Obadiah--and that there never would be an end of the disaster--See
here! you rascal, cried my father, pointing to the mule, what you have
done!--It was not me, said Obadiah.--How do I know that? replied my
father.

Triumph swam in my father's eyes, at the repartee--the Attic salt brought
water into them
--and so Obadiah heard no more about it.

Now let us go back to my brother's death.

Philosophy has a fine saying for every thing.--For Death it has an entire
set; the misery was, they all at once rushed into my father's head, that
'twas difficult to string them together, so as to make any thing of a con-
sistent show out of them.--He took them as they came.

"'Tis an inevitable chance--the first statute in Magna Charta--it is an
everlasting act of parliament, my dear brother,--All must die.

"If my son could not have died, it had been matter of wonder,--not that
he is dead.

"Monarchs and princes dance in the same ring with us.

"--To die, is the great debt and tribute due unto nature: tombs and
monuments, which should perpetuate our memories, pay it themselves;
and the proudest pyramid of them all, which wealth and science have
erected, has lost its apex, and stands obtruncated in the traveller's
horizon.'
(My father found he got great ease, and went on)--'Kingdoms and
provinces, and towns and cities, have they not their periods? and when
those principles and powers, which at first cemented and put them toge-
ther, have performed their several evolutions, they fall back.'--Brother
Shandy, said my uncle Toby, laying down his pipe at the word evolutions
--Revolutions, I meant, quoth my father,--by heaven! I meant revolutions,
brother Toby--evolutions is nonsense.--'Tis not nonsense--said my uncle
Toby.--But is it not nonsense to break the thread of such a discourse
upon such an occasion? cried my father--do not--dear Toby, continued he,
taking him by the hand, do not--do not, I beseech thee, interrupt me at
this crisis.--My uncle Toby put his pipe into his mouth.

"Where is Troy and Mycenae, and Thebes and Delos, and Persepolis and
Agrigentum?'--continued my father, taking up his book of post-roads,
which he had laid down.--'What is become, brother Toby, of Nineveh
and Babylon, of Cizicum and Mitylenae? The fairest towns that ever the
sun rose upon, are now no more; the names only are left, and those (for
many of them are wrong spelt) are falling themselves by piece-meals to
decay, and in length of time will be forgotten, and involved with every
thing in a perpetual night:
the world itself, brother Toby, must--must
come to an end.

"Returning out of Asia, when I sailed from Aegina towards Megara,'
(when can this have been? thought my uncle Toby,) " I began to view the
country round about. Aegina was behind me, Megara was before, Pyraeus
on the right hand, Corinth on the left.--What flourishing towns now
prostrate upon the earth! Alas! alas! said I to myself, that man should
disturb his soul for the loss of a child, when so much as this lies awfully
buried in his presence--Remember, said I to myself again--remember
thou art a man.'--


Now my uncle Toby knew not that this last paragraph was an extract of
Servius Sulpicius's consolatory letter to Tully.--He
had as little skill,
honest man, in the fragments, as he had in the whole pieces of antiquity
.--
And as my father, whilst he was concerned in the Turkey trade, had been
three or four different times in the Levant, in one of which he had stayed
a whole year and an half at Zant, my uncle
Toby naturally concluded,
that, in some one of these periods, he had taken a trip across the Archi-
pelago into Asia; and that all this sailing affair with Aegina behind, and
Megara before, and Pyraeus on the right hand, &c. &c. was nothing more
than the true course of my father's voyage and reflections.--'Twas cer-
tainly in his manner, and
many an undertaking critic would have built
two stories higher upon worse foundations.--And pray, brother, quoth
my uncle Toby, laying the end of his pipe upon my father's hand in a
kindly way of interruption--but waiting till he finished the account--
what year of our Lord was this?--'Twas no year of our Lord, replied my
father.--That's impossible, cried my uncle Toby.--Simpleton! said my
father,--'twas forty years before Christ was born.

My uncle Toby had but two things for it; either to suppose his brother
to be the wandering Jew, or that his misfortunes had disordered his brain.--
'May the Lord God of heaven and earth protect him and restore him!' said
my uncle Toby, praying silently for my father, and with tears in his eyes.

--My father placed the tears to a proper account, and went on with his
harangue with great spirit.


"There is not such great odds, brother Toby, betwixt good and evil, as
the world imagines'--(this way of setting off, by the bye, was not likely to
cure my uncle Toby's suspicions).--
"Labour, sorrow, grief, sickness, want,
and woe, are the sauces of life.'--Much good may do them--said my uncle
Toby to himself.--

"My son is dead!--so much the better;--'tis a shame in such a tempest
to have but one anchor.

"But he is gone for ever from us!--be it so. He is got from under the
hands of his barber before he was bald--he is but risen from a feast before
he was surfeited--from a banquet before he had got drunken.

"The Thracians wept when a child was born,'--(and we were very near
it, quoth my uncle Toby,)--'and feasted and made merry when a man
went out of the world; and with reason.--Death opens the gate of fame,
and shuts the gate of envy after it,--it unlooses the chain of the captive,
and puts the bondsman's task into another man's hands.

"Shew me the man, who knows what life is, who dreads it, and I'll shew
thee a prisoner who dreads his liberty.'

Is it not better, my dear brother Toby, (for mark--our appetites are but
diseases,)--is it not better not to hunger at all, than to eat?--not to
thirst, than to take physic to cure it?

Is it not better to be freed from cares and agues, from love and melan-
choly, and the other hot and cold fits of life, than, like a galled trav-
-eller, who comes weary to his inn, to be bound to begin his journey afresh?
There is no terrour, brother Toby, in its looks, but what it borrows from
groans and convulsions--and the blowing of noses and the wiping away
of tears with the bottoms of curtains, in a dying man's room.--Strip it of
these, what is it?--'Tis better in battle than in bed, said my uncle Toby.--
Take away its hearses, its mutes, and its mourning,--its plumes, scutcheons,
and other mechanic aids--What is it?--Better in battle!
continued my
father, smiling, for he had absolutely forgot my brother Bobby--'tis ter-
rible no way--for consider, brother Toby,--
when we are--death is not;--
and when death is--we are not.
My uncle Toby laid down his pipe to
consider the proposition; my father's eloquence was too rapid to stay for
any man--away it went,--and hurried my uncle Toby's ideas along with
it.--

For this reason, continued my father, 'tis worthy to recollect, how little
alteration, in great men, the approaches of death have made.--Vespasian
died in a jest upon his close-stool--Galba with a sentence--Septimus
Severus in a dispatch--Tiberius in dissimulation, and Caesar Augustus in
a compliment.--I hope 'twas a sincere one--quoth my uncle Toby.

--'Twas to his wife,--said my father.





Volume 5 Chapter 4.



--AND LASTLY--for all the choice anecdotes which history can produce of
this matter, continued my father,--this, like the gilded dome which cov-
ers in the fabric--crowns all.--


'Tis of Cornelius Gallus, the praetor--which, I dare say, brother Toby,
you have read.--I dare say I have not, replied my uncle.--He died, said
my father as...--And if it was with his wife, said my uncle Toby--there
could be no hurt in it.-- That's more than I know--replied my father.



Volume 5 Chapter 5.



MY MOTHER was going very gingerly in the dark along the passage which
led to the parlour, as my uncle Toby pronounced
the word wife.--'Tis a
shrill penetrating sound of itself
, and Obadiah had helped it by leaving
the door a little a-jar, so that my mother heard enough of it to imagine
herself the subject of the conversation; so
laying the edge of her finger
across her two lips--holding in her breath, and bending her head
a little
downwards, with a twist of her neck--(not towards the door, but from it,
by which means her ear was brought to the chink)--
she listened with all
her powers:--the listening slave, with the Goddess of Silence at his back,
could not have given a finer thought for an intaglio.


In this attitude I am determined to let her stand for five minutes:
till I
bring up the affairs of the kitchen (as Rapin does those of the church) to
the same period.



Volume 5 Chapter 6.



THOUGH IN ONE SENSE, our family was certainly a simple machine, as it
consisted of a few wheels; yet there was thus much to be said for it, that
these wheels were set in motion by so many different springs, and acted
one upon the other from such a variety of strange principles and impulses
--that though it was a simple machine, it had all the honour and advan-
tages of a complex one,--and a number of as odd movements within it, as
ever were beheld in the inside of a Dutch silk-mill.

Amongst these there was one, I am going to speak of, in which, perhaps,
it was not altogether so singular, as in many others; and it was this, that
whatever motion, debate, harangue, dialogue, project, or dissertation, was
going forwards in the parlour, there was generally another at the same
time, and upon the same subject, running parallel along with it in the
kitchen.


Now to bring this about, whenever an extraordinary message, or letter,
was delivered in the parlour--or
a discourse suspended till a servant went
out--or the lines of discontent were observed to hang upon the brows of
my father or mother--or, in short, when any thing was supposed to be
upon the tapis worth knowing or listening to, 'twas the rule to leave the
door, not absolutely shut, but somewhat a-jar--as it stands just now,--
which, under covert of the bad hinge, (and that possibly might be one of
the many reasons why it was never mended,) it was not difficult to man-
age; by which means, in all these cases, a passage was generally left, not
indeed as wide as the Dardanelles, but wide enough, for all that, to carry
on as much of this windward trade, as was sufficient to save my father the
trouble of governing his house;
--my mother at this moment stands profit-
ing by it.--Obadiah did the same thing, as soon as he had left the letter
upon the table which brought the news of my brother's death, so that
before my father had well got over his surprise, and entered upon his
harangue,--had Trim got upon his legs, to speak his sentiments upon the
subject.

A curious observer of nature, had he been worth the inventory of all
Job's stock--though by the bye, your curious observers are seldom worth
a groat--would have given the half of it, to have heard
Corporal Trim and
my father, two orators so contrasted by nature and education, haranguing
over the same bier.

My father--a man of deep reading--prompt memory--with Cato, and Seneca,
and Epictetus, at his fingers ends.--

The corporal--with nothing--to remember--of no deeper reading than his
muster-roll--or greater names at his fingers end, than the contents of
it.

The one proceeding from period to period, by metaphor and allusion,
and striking the fancy as he went along (as men of wit and fancy do) with
the entertainment and pleasantry of his pictures and images.

The other, without wit or antithesis, or point, or turn, this way or that;
but leaving the images on one side, and the picture on the other, going
straight forwards as nature could lead him, to the heart. O Trim! would to
heaven thou had'st a better historian!--would!--thy historian had a bet-
ter pair of breeches!--O ye critics! will nothing melt you?




Volume 5 Chapter 7.



--MY YOUNG MASTER in London is dead? said Obadiah.----A green sattin
night-gown of my mother's, which had been twice scoured, was the first idea
which Obadiah's exclamation brought into Susannah's head.--Well might Locke
write a chapter upon the imperfections of words.
--Then, quoth Susannah, we
must all go into mourning.--But note a second time:
the word mourning, not-
withstanding Susannah made use of it herself--
failed also of doing its of-
fice; it excited not one single idea, tinged either with grey or black,--
all was green.--The green sattin night-gown hung there still.

--O! 'twill be the death of my poor mistress, cried Susannah.--
My mother's
whole wardrobe followed.--What a procession! her red damask,--her orange
tawney,--her white and yellow lutestrings,--her brown taffata,--her bone
-laced caps, her bed-gowns, and comfortable underpetticoats.--Not a rag
was left behind
.--'No,--she will never look up again,' said Susannah.

We had a fat, foolish scullion--my father, I think, kept her for her
simplicity;--she had been all autumn struggling with a dropsy.--He is
dead, said Obadiah,--he is certainly dead!--So am not I, said the foolish
scullion.

--Here is sad news, Trim, cried Susannah, wiping her eyes as Trim stepp'd
into the kitchen,--master Bobby is dead and buried--the funeral was an
interpolation of Susannah's--we shall have all to go into mourning, said
Susannah.

I hope not, said Trim.--You hope not! cried Susannah earnestly.--
The
mourning ran not in Trim's head, whatever it did in Susannah's
.--I hope--
said Trim, explaining himself, I hope in God the news is not true. I heard
the letter read with my own ears, answered Obadiah; and we shall have a
terrible piece of work of it in stubbing the ox-moor.--Oh! he's dead, said
Susannah.--As sure, said the scullion, as I'm alive.

I lament for him from my heart and my soul, said Trim, fetching a sigh.--
Poor creature!--poor boy!--poor gentleman!

--He was alive last Whitsontide! said the coachman.--Whitsontide!
alas! cried Trim, extending his right arm, and falling instantly into the
same attitude in which he read the sermon,--what is Whitsontide, Jonathan
(for that was the coachman's name), or Shrovetide, or any tide or time
past, to this?
Are we not here now, continued the corporal (striking the
end of his stick perpendicularly upon the floor, so as to give an idea of
health and stability)--and are we not--(dropping his hat upon the ground)
gone! in a moment!--'Twas infinitely striking! Susannah burst into a flood
of tears.--We are not stocks and stones.--Jonathan, Obadiah, the cookmaid,
all melted.--The foolish fat scullion herself, who was scouring a fish-
kettle upon her knees, was rous'd with it.--The whole kitchen crowded
about the corporal.


Now, as I perceive plainly, that the preservation of our constitution in
church and state,--and possibly the preservation of the whole world--or
what is the same thing, the distribution and balance of its property and
power, may in time to come depend greatly upon the right understanding
of this stroke of the corporal's eloquence-
-I do demand your attention--
your worships and reverences, for any ten pages together, take them where
you will in any other part of the work, shall sleep for it at your ease.


I said, "we were not stocks and stones'--'tis very well. I should have
added,
nor are we angels, I wish we were,--but men clothed with bodies,
and governed by our imaginations;--and what a junketing piece of work
of it there is, betwixt these and our seven senses,
especially some of
them, for my own part, I own it, I am ashamed to confess. Let it suffice
to affirm, that
of all the senses, the eye (for I absolutely deny the
touch, though most of your Barbati, I know, are for it) has the quick-
est commerce with the soul,--gives a smarter stroke, and leaves some-
thing more inexpressible upon the fancy, than words can either convey
--or sometimes get rid of.


--I've gone a little about--no matter, 'tis for health--let us only carry
it back in our mind to the mortality of Trim's hat
--'Are we not here now,--
and gone in a moment?'--There was nothing in the sentence--'twas one
of your self-evident truths we have the advantage of hearing every day;
and if Trim had not trusted more to his hat than his head--he made
nothing at all of it.

--"Are we not here now;' continued the corporal, "and are we not'--
(dropping his hat plumb upon the ground--and pausing, before he pro-
nounced the word)--
'gone! in a moment?' The descent of the hat was as
if a heavy lump of clay had been kneaded into the crown of it.--Nothing
could have expressed the sentiment of mortality, of which it was the type
and fore-runner, like it,--his hand seemed to vanish from under it,--it
fell dead,--the corporal's eye fixed upon it, as upon a corpse,--and
Susannah burst into a flood of tears.

Now--Ten thousand, and ten thousand times ten thousand (for matter
and motion are infinite) are the ways by which a hat may be dropped
upon the ground, without any effect.--Had he flung it, or thrown it, or
cast it, or skimmed it, or squirted it, or let it slip or fall in any
possible direction under heaven,--or in the best direction that could
be given to it,--had he dropped it like a goose--like a puppy--like
an ass--or in doing it, or even after he had done, had he looked like
a fool--like a ninny--like a nincompoop--it had fail'd, and the effect
upon the heart had been lost.

Ye who govern this mighty world and its mighty concerns with the en-
gines of eloquence,--who heat it, and cool it, and melt it, and mollify
it,--and then harden it again to your purpose--

Ye who wind and turn the passions with this great windlass, and, having
done it, lead the owners of them, whither ye think meet.

Ye, lastly, who drive--and why not, Ye also who are driven, like turkeys
to market with a stick and a red clout--meditate--meditate, I beseech
you, upon Trim's hat.




Volume 5 Chapter 8.



STAY--I have a small account to settle with the reader before Trim can go
on with his harangue.--It shall be done in two minutes.

Amongst many other book-debts, all of which I shall discharge in due
time,--
I own myself a debtor to the world for two items,--a chapter
upon chamber-maids and button-holes, which, in the former part of my
work, I promised and fully intended to pay off this year: but some of your
worships and reverences telling me, that the two subjects, especially so
connected together, might endanger the morals of the world
,--I pray the
chapter upon chamber-maids and button-holes may be forgiven me,--
and that they will accept of the last chapter in lieu of it; which is nothing,
an't please your reverences, but a chapter of chamber-maids, green gowns,
and old hats.


Trim took his hat off the ground,--put it upon his head,--and then
went on with his oration upon death, in manner and form following.



Volume 5 Chapter 9.



--TO US, Jonathan, who know not what want or care is--who live here in
the service of two of the best of masters--(bating in my own case his
majesty King William the Third, whom I had the honour to serve both in
Ireland and Flanders)--I own it, that from Whitsontide to within three
weeks of Christmas,--
'tis not long--'tis like nothing;--but to those,
Jonathan, who know what death is, and what havock and destruction he
can make, before a man can well wheel about--'tis like a whole age
.--O
Jonathan! 'twould make a good-natured man's heart bleed, to consider,
continued the corporal (standing perpendicularly),
how low many a brave
and upright fellow has been laid since that time!
--And trust me, Susy,
added the corporal, turning to
Susannah, whose eyes were swimming in
water,--before that time comes round again,--many a bright eye will be
dim
.--Susannah placed it to the right side of the page--she wept--but
she court'sied too.--
Are we not, continued Trim, looking still at
Susannah--are we not like a flower of the field--a tear of pride stole in
betwixt every two tears of humiliation--else no tongue could have des-
cribed Susannah's affliction--is not all flesh grass?--Tis clay,--'tis
dirt.--They all looked directly at the scullion,--the scullion had just
been scouring a fish-kettle.--It was not fair.

----What is the finest face that ever man looked at!--I could hear Trim
talk so for ever, cried Susannah,--what is it! (Susannah laid her hand
upon Trim's shoulder)--but corruption?--Susannah took it off.

Now I love you for this--and 'tis this delicious mixture within you which
makes you dear creatures what you are--and he who hates you for it--all I
can say of the matter is--That he has either a pumpkin for his head--or a
pippin for his heart,--and whenever he is dissected 'twill be found so.




Volume 5 Chapter 10.



WHETHER SUSANNAH, by taking her hand too suddenly from off the cor-
poral's shoulder (by the whisking about of her passions)--broke a little
the chain of his reflexions--

Or whether the corporal began to be suspicious, he had got into the
doctor's quarters, and was talking more like the chaplain than himself--

Or whether...

Or whether--for in all such cases a man of invention and parts may
with pleasure fill a couple of pages with suppositions
--which of all
these was the cause, let the curious physiologist, or the curious any
body determine--'tis certain, at least, the corporal went on thus with
his harangue.

For my own part, I declare it, that out of doors,
I value not death at
all:--not this...added the corporal, snapping his fingers,
--but with an
air which no one but the corporal could have given to the sentiment.--In
battle, I value death not this...and let him not take me cowardly, like
poor Joe Gibbins, in scouring his gun.--
What is he? A pull of a trigger--
a push of a bayonet an inch this way or that
--makes the difference.--
Look along the line--to the right--see! Jack's down! well,--'tis worth a
regiment of horse to him.--No--'tis Dick. Then Jack's no worse.--Never
mind which,--we pass on,--
in hot pursuit the wound itself which brings
him is not felt,--the best way is to stand up to him,--the man who flies,
is in ten times more danger than the man who marches up into his jaws.--
I've look'd him, added the corporal, an hundred times in the face,--and
know what he is.--He's nothing, Obadiah, at all in the field.--But he's
very frightful in a house, quoth Obadiah.--I never mind it myself, said
Jonathan, upon a coach-box.--It must, in my opinion, be most natural in
bed, replied Susannah
.--And could I escape him by creeping into the
worst calf's skin that ever was made into a knapsack, I would do it there--
said Trim--but that is nature.

--Nature is nature, said Jonathan.--And that is the reason, cried
Susannah, I so much pity my mistress.--She will never get the better of
it.--Now I pity the captain the most of any one in the family, answered
Trim.--
Madam will get ease of heart in weeping,--and the Squire in talk-
ing about it,--but my poor master will keep it all in silence to himself.--
I shall hear him sigh in his bed for a whole month together, as he did for
lieutenant Le Fever. An' please your honour, do not sigh so piteously, I
would say to him as I laid besides him. I cannot help it, Trim, my master
would say,--'tis so melancholy an accident--I cannot get it off my heart.--
Your honour fears not death yourself.--I hope, Trim, I fear nothing, he
would say, but the doing a wrong thing
.--Well, he would add, whatever
betides, I will take care of Le Fever's boy.--And with that, like a quieting
draught, his honour would fall asleep.

I like to hear Trim's stories about the captain, said Susannah.--He is a
kindly-hearted gentleman, said Obadiah, as ever lived.--Aye, and as brave
a one too, said the corporal, as ever stept before a platoon.--There never
was a better officer in the king's army,--or a better man in God's world;
for he would march up to the mouth of a cannon, though he saw the
lighted match at the very touch-hole,--and yet, for all that, he has a heart
as soft as a child for other people.--He would not hurt a chicken.--
I
would sooner, quoth Jonathan, drive such a gentleman for seven pounds a
year--than some for eight.--Thank thee, Jonathan! for thy twenty shill-
ings,--as much, Jonathan, said the corporal, shaking him by the hand, as
if thou hadst put the money into my own pocket.
--I would serve him to
the day of my death out of love. He is a friend and a brother to me,--and
could I be sure my poor brother Tom was dead,--continued the corporal,
taking out his handkerchief,--was I worth ten thousand pounds, I would
leave every shilling of it to the captain.--Trim could not refrain from
tears at this testamentary proof he gave of his affection to his master.
--The whole kitchen was affected
.--Do tell us the story of the poor lieu-
tenant, said Susannah.--With all my heart, answered the corporal.

Susannah, the cook, Jonathan, Obadiah, and corporal Trim, formed a
circle about the fire; and as soon as the scullion had shut the kitchen
door,--the corporal begun.



Volume 5. Chapter 11.



I AM A TURK if I had not as much forgot my mother, as if Nature had
plaistered me up, and set me down naked upon the banks of the river
Nile, without one.
--Your most obedient servant, Madam--I've cost you
a great deal of trouble,--I wish it may answer;--but you have left a crack
in my back,--and here's a great piece fallen off here before,--and what
must I do with this foot?--I shall never reach England with it.

For my own part, I never wonder at any thing;--and so often has my
judgment deceived me in my life, that I always suspect it, right or wrong,--
at least
I am seldom hot upon cold subjects. For all this, I reverence truth
as much as any body; and when it has slipped us, if a man will but take me
by the hand, and go quietly and search for it, as for a thing we have both
lost, and can neither of us do well without,--I'll go to the world's end
with him:--But I hate disputes,--and therefore (bating religious points,
or such as touch society) I would almost subscribe to any thing which
does not choak me in the first passage, rather than be drawn into one--
But I cannot bear suffocation,--and bad smells worst of all
.--For which
reasons, I resolved from the beginning,
That if ever the army of martyrs
was to be augmented,--or a new one raised,--I would have no hand in it,
one way or t'other.




Volume 5. Chapter 12.



--BUT TO RETURN to my mother.

My uncle Toby's opinion, Madam, "that there could be no harm in
Cornelius Gallus, the Roman praetor's lying with his wife;'--or rather the
last word of that opinion,--(for it was all my mother heard of it) caught
hold of her by the weak part of the whole sex:--You shall not mistake me,--
I mean her curiosity
,--she instantly concluded herself the subject of the
conversation, and with that prepossession upon her fancy, you will readily
conceive every word my father said, was accommodated either to herself, or
her family concerns.

--Pray, Madam, in what street does the lady live, who would not have
done the same?

From the strange mode of Cornelius's death, my father had made a
transition to that of Socrates, and was giving my uncle Toby an abstract
of his pleading before his judges;--'twas irresistible:--not the oration of
Socrates,--but my father's temptation to it.--He had wrote the Life of
Socrates (This book my father would never consent to publish; 'tis in
manuscript, with some other tracts of his, in the family, all, or most of
which will be printed in due time.) himself the year before he left off
trade, which, I fear, was the means of hastening him out of it;--
so that no
one was able to set out with so full a sail, and in so swelling a tide of heroic
loftiness upon the occasion, as my father was. Not a period in Socrates's
oration, which closed with a shorter word than transmigration, or anni-
hilation
,--or a worse thought in the middle of it than to be--or not to
be,--the entering upon a new and untried state of things,--or, upon a
long, a profound and peaceful sleep, without dreams, without disturb-
ance?
--That we and our children were born to die,--but neither of us
born to be slaves.--No--there I mistake; that was part of Eleazer's or-
ation, as recorded by Josephus (de Bell. Judaic)--Eleazer owns he had it
from the philosophers of India; in all likelihood Alexander the Great, in
his irruption into India, after he had over-run Persia, amongst the many
things he stole,--stole that sentiment also; by which means it was carried,
if not all the way by himself (for we all know he died at Babylon), at least
by some of his maroders, into Greece,--from Greece it got to Rome,--
from Rome to France,--and from France to England:--So things come
round.--

By land carriage, I can conceive no other way.--


By water the sentiment might easily have come down the Ganges into
the Sinus Gangeticus, or Bay of Bengal, and so into the Indian Sea; and
following the course of trade (the way from India by the Cape of Good
Hope being then unknown), might be carried with other drugs and spices
up the Red Sea to Joddah, the port of Mekka, or else to Tor or Sues, towns
at the bottom of the gulf; and from thence by karrawans to Coptos, but
three days journey distant, so down the Nile directly to Alexandria, where
the Sentiment would be landed at the very foot of the great stair-case of
the Alexandrian library,--and from that store-house it would be fetched.--
Bless me! what a trade was driven by the learned in those days!



Volume 5. Chapter 13.



--NOW MY FATHER HAD A WAY, a little like that of Job's (in case there
ever was such a man
--if not, there's an end of the matter.--

Though, by the bye, because your learned men find some difficulty in
fixing the precise aera in which so great a man lived;--whether, for in-
stance, before or after the patriarchs, &c
.--to vote, therefore, that he
never lived at all, is a little cruel,--'tis not doing as they would be
done by,--happen that as it may)--My father, I say, had a way, when things
went extremely wrong with him, especially upon the first sally of his im-
patience,--of wondering why he was begot,--wishing himself dead;--some-
times worse:
--And when the provocation ran high, and grief touched his
lips with more than ordinary powers--Sir, you scarce could have distin-
guished him from Socrates himself.--
Every word would breathe the senti-
ments of a soul disdaining life, and careless about all its issues;
for
which reason, though my mother was a woman of no deep reading, yet the
abstract of Socrates's oration, which my father was giving my uncle Toby,
was not altogether new to her.--She listened to it with composed intell-
igence, and would have done so to the end of the chapter, had not
my
father plunged (which he had no occasion to have done) into that part of
the pleading where the great philosopher reckons up his connections, his
alliances, and children; but renounces a security to be so won by working
upon the passions of his judges.--'I have friends--I have relations,--I
have three desolate children,'--says Socrates.--


--Then, cried my mother, opening the door,--you have one more, Mr.
Shandy, than I know of.


By heaven! I have one less,--said my father, getting up and walking out
of the room.



Volume 5. Chapter 14.



--THEY ARE SOCRATES'S CHILDREN, said my uncle Toby. He has been dead
a hundred years ago, replied my mother.

My uncle Toby was no chronologer--so not caring to advance one step
but upon safe ground, he laid down his pipe deliberately upon the table,
and rising up, and taking my mother most kindly by the hand,
without
saying another word, either good or bad, to her, he led her out after my
father, that he might finish the ecclaircissement himself.




Volume 5. Chapter 15.



HAD THIS VOLUME BEEN A FARCE, which, unless every one's life and
opinions are to be looked upon as a farce as well as mine, I see no
reason to suppose--the last chapter, Sir, had finished the first act
of it, and then this chapter must have set off thus.

Ptr...r...r...ing--twing--twang--prut--trut--'tis a cursed bad
fiddle.--Do you know whether my fiddle's in tune or no?--trut...prut
… --They should be fifths.--'Tis wickedly strung--tr...a.e.i.o.u.-
twang.--The bridge is a mile too high, and the sound post absolutely
down,--else--trut...prut--hark! tis not so bad a tone.--Diddle diddle,
diddle diddle, diddle diddle, dum. There is nothing in playing before
good judges,--but there's a man there--no--not him with the bundle
under his arm--the grave man in black.--'Sdeath! not the gentleman
with the sword on.--Sir, I had rather play a Caprichio to Calliope herself,
than draw my bow across my fiddle before that very man; and yet I'll stake
my Cremona to a Jew's trump, which is the greatest musical odds that ever
were laid, that I will this moment stop three hundred and fifty leagues out
of tune upon my fiddle, without punishing one single nerve that belongs
to him--Twaddle diddle, tweddle diddle,--twiddle diddle,--twoddle
diddle,--twuddle diddle,--prut trut--krish--krash--krush.--I've undone
you, Sir,--but you see he's no worse,--and was Apollo to take his
fiddle after me, he can make him no better.

Diddle diddle, diddle diddle, diddle diddle--hum--dum--drum.
--Your worships and your reverences love music--and God has made
you all with good ears--and some of you play delightfully yourselves--
trut-prut,--prut-trut.

O! there is--whom I could sit and hear whole days,--whose talents lie
in making what he fiddles to be felt,--who inspires me with his joys and
hopes, and puts the most hidden springs of my heart into motion.
--If
you would borrow five guineas of me, Sir,--which is generally ten guineas
more than I have to spare--or you Messrs. Apothecary and Taylor, want
your bills paying,--that's your time.



Volume 5. Chapter 16.



THE FIRST THING which entered my father's head, after affairs were a little
settled in the family, and Susanna had got possession of my mother's green
sattin night-gown,--was to
sit down coolly, after the example of Xenophon,
and write a TRISTRA-paedia, or system of education for me; collecting first
for that purpose his own scattered thoughts, counsels, and notions; and
binding them together, so as to form an Institute for the government of
my childhood and adolescence. I was my father's last stake--he had lost
my brother Bobby entirely,--he had lost, by his own computation, full
three-fourths of me--that is, he had been unfortunate in his three first
great casts for me--my geniture, nose, and name
,--there was but this one
left; and accordingly my father gave himsewolf up to it with as much devo-
tion as ever my uncle Toby had done to his doctrine of projectils.--The
difference between them was, that my uncle Toby drew his whole knowledge
of projectils from Nicholas Tartaglia--
My father spun his, every thread
of it, out of his own brain,--or reeled and cross-twisted what all other
spinners and spinsters had spun before him, that 'twas pretty near the
same torture to him.

In about three years, or something more, my father had got advanced
almost into the middle of his work.--Like all other writers, he met with
disappointments.--
He imagined he should be able to bring whatever he
had to say, into so small a compass, that when it was finished and bound,
it might be rolled up in my mother's hussive.--Matter grows under our
hands.
--Let no man say,--'Come--I'll write a duodecimo.'

My father gave himself up to it, however, with the most painful diligence,
proceeding step by step in every line, with the same kind of caution and
circumspection (though I cannot say upon quite so religious a principle)
as was used by John de la Casse, the lord archbishop of Benevento,
in compassing his Galatea; in which his Grace of Benevento spent near
forty years of his life; and when the thing came out, it was not of above
half the size or the thickness of a Rider's Almanack.--How the holy man
managed the affair, unless he spent the greatest part of his time in comb-
ing his whiskers, or playing at primero with his chaplain,--would pose
any mortal not let into the true secret;
--and therefore 'tis worth ex-
plaining to the world, was it only for the encouragement of those few
in it, who write not so much to be fed--as to be famous.


I own had John de la Casse, the archbishop of Benevento, for whose
memory (notwithstanding his Galatea,) I retain the highest veneration,--
had he been, Sir, a slender clerk--of dull wit--slow parts--costive head,
and so forth,--he and his Galatea might have jogged on together to the
age of Methuselah for me
,--the phaenomenon had not been worth a par-
enthesis.--

But the reverse of this was the truth: John de la Casse was a genius of
fine parts and fertile fancy; and yet with all these great advantages of
nature, which should have pricked him forwards with his Galatea,
he lay
under an impuissance
at the same time of advancing above a line and a
half in the compass of a whole summer's day: this disability in his Grace
arose from an opinion he was afflicted with,--which opinion was this,--
viz. that
whenever a Christian was writing a book (not for his private
amusement, but) where his intent and purpose was, bona fide, to print
and publish it to the world, his first thoughts were always the temptations
of the evil one
.--This was the state of ordinary writers: but when a per-
sonage of venerable character and high station, either in church or state,
once turned author,--
he maintained, that from the very moment he took
pen in hand--all the devils in hell broke out of their holes to cajole him.--
'Twas Term-time with them,--every thought, first and last, was captious;--
how specious and good soever,--'twas all one;--in whatever form or colour
it presented itself to the imagination,--'twas still a stroke of one or other
of 'em levell'd at him, and was to be fenced off.--So that the life of a
writer, whatever he might fancy to the contrary, was not so much a state of
composition, as a state of warfare; and his probation in it, precisely that of
any other man militant upon earth,--both depending alike, not half so
much upon the degrees of his wit--as his Resistance.


My father was hugely pleased with this theory of John de la Casse, archbi-
shop of Benevento; and (had it not cramped him a little in his creed) I
believe would have given ten of the best acres in the Shandy estate, to have
been the broacher of it.--How far my father actually believed in the devil,
will be seen, when I come to speak of my father's religious notions, in the
progress of this work: 'tis enough to say here, as he could not have the
honour of it, in the literal sense of the doctrine--he took up with the
allegory of it; and would often say, especially when his pen was a little
retrograde, there was as much good meaning, truth, and knowledge,
couched under the veil of John de la Casse's parabolical representation,--
as was to be found in any one poetic fiction or mystic record of anti-
quity.--
Prejudice of education, he would say, is the devil,--and the
multitudes of them which we suck in with our mother's milk--are the devil
and all.--We are haunted with them, brother Toby, in all our lucubrations
and researches; and was a man fool enough to submit tamely to what they
obtruded upon him,--what would his book be? Nothing,--he would add,
throwing his pen away with a vengeance,--nothing but a farrago of the
clack of nurses, and of the nonsense of the old women (of both sexes)
throughout the kingdom.


This is the best account I am determined to give of the slow progress my
father made in his Tristra-paedia; at which (as I said) he was three years,
and something more, indefatigably at work, and, at last, had scarce complet-
ed, by this own reckoning, one half of his undertaking: the misfortune
was, that I was all that time totally neglected and abandoned to my mother;
and what was almost as bad,
by the very delay, the first part of the work,
upon which my father had spent the most of his pains, was rendered
entirely useless,--every day a page or two became of no consequence.--

--Certainly it was ordained as a scourge upon the pride of human wisdom,
That the wisest of us all should thus outwit ourselves, and eternally
forego our purposes in the intemperate act of pursuing them.


In short my father was so long in all his acts of resistance,--or in other
words,--he advanced so very slow with his work, and I began to live and
get forwards at such a rate, that if an event had not happened,--which,
when we get to it, if it can be told with decency, shall not be concealed a
moment from the reader--I verily believe, I had put by my father, and left
him drawing a sundial, for no better purpose than to be buried under
ground.




Volume 5. Chapter 17.



--'TWAS NOTHING,--I did not lose two drops of blood by it--'twas not
worth calling in a surgeon, had he lived next door to us--thousands suffer
by choice, what I did by accident.--Doctor Slop made ten times more of it,
than there was occasion:--
some men rise, by the art of hanging great weights
upon small wires,--and I am this day (August the 10th, 1761) paying part
of the price of this man's reputation.
--O 'twould provoke a stone, to see
how things are carried on in this world!--The chamber-maid had left no
....... ... under the bed:--Cannot you contrive, master, quoth Susannah,
lifting up the sash with one hand,
as she spoke, and helping me up into the
window-seat with the other,--cannot you manage, my dear, for a single
time, to .... ... .. ... ......?

I was five years old.--Susannah did not consider that nothing was well
hung in our family,--so slap came the sash down like lightning upon
us;--Nothing is left,--cried Susannah,
--nothing is left--for me, but to
run my country.--

My uncle Toby's house was a much kinder sanctuary; and so Susannah
fled to it.




Volume 5. Chapter 18.



WHEN SUSANNAH told the corporal the misadventure of the sash, with all
the circumstances which attended
the murder of me,--(as she called it,)--
the blood forsook his cheeks,--all accessaries in murder being principals
,--
Trim's conscience told him he was as much to blame as Susannah,--and if
the doctrine had been true, my uncle Toby had as much of the bloodshed
to answer for to heaven, as either of 'em;--so that neither reason or
instinct, separate or together, could possibly have guided Susannah's
steps to so proper an asylum. It is in
vain to leave this to the Reader's
imagination:--to form any kind of hypothesis that will render these pro-
positions feasible, he must cudgel his brains sore
,--and to do it without
,--he must have such brains as no reader ever had before him.--Why should
I put them either to trial or to torture?
'Tis my own affair: I'll explain
it myself.



Volume 5. Chapter 19.



'TIS A PITY, TRIM, said my uncle Toby, resting with his hand upon the
corporal's shoulder, as they both stood surveying their works,--that we
have not a couple of field-pieces to mount in the gorge of that new re-
doubt;--'twould secure the lines all along there, and make the attack on
that side quite complete:--get me a couple cast, Trim.

Your honour shall have them, replied Trim, before tomorrow morning.

It was the joy of Trim's heart, nor was his fertile head ever at a loss
for expedients in doing it, to supply my uncle Toby in his campaigns, with
whatever his fancy called for; had it been his last crown, he would have
sate down and hammered it into a paderero, to have prevented a single
wish in his master. The corporal had already,--what with cutting off the
ends of my uncle Toby's spouts--hacking and chiseling up the sides of his
leaden gutters,--melting down his pewter shaving-bason,--and going at
last, like Lewis the Fourteenth, on to the top of the church, for spare ends,

&c.--he had that very campaign brought no less than eight new battering
cannons, besides three demi-culverins, into the field; my uncle Toby's
demand for two more pieces for the redoubt, had set the corporal at work
again; and
no better resource offering, he had taken the two leaden weights
from the nursery window: and as the sash pullies, when the lead was gone,
were of no kind of use, he had taken them away also
, to make a couple of
wheels for one of their carriages.


He had dismantled every sash-window in my uncle Toby's house long
before, in the very same way,--though not always in the same order; for
sometimes the pullies have been wanted, and not the lead,--so then he
began with the pullies,--and the pullies being picked out, then the lead
became useless,--and so the lead went to pot too.

--A great Moral might be picked handsomely out of this, but I have
not time
--'tis enough to say, wherever the demolition began, 'twas equally
fatal to the sash window.




Volume 5. Chapter 20.



THE CORPORAL had not taken his measures so badly in this stroke of
artilleryship, but that he might have kept the matter entirely to himself,
and left Susannah to have sustained the whole weight of the attack, as she
could;--true courage is not content with coming off so.--The corporal,
whether as general or comptroller of the train,--'twas no matter,--had
done that, without which, as he imagined, the misfortune could never
have happened,--at least in Susannah's hands;--How would your honours
have behaved?--He determined at once, not to take shelter behind
Susannah,--but to give it; and with this resolution upon his mind, he
marched upright into the parlour, to lay the whole manoeuvre before my
uncle Toby.


My uncle Toby had just then been giving Yorick an account of the Battle
of Steenkirk, and of the strange conduct of count Solmes in ordering the
foot to halt, and the horse to march where it could not act; which was
directly contrary to the king's commands, and proved the loss of the day.
There are incidents in some families so pat to the purpose of what is
going to follow,--they are scarce exceeded by the invention of a dramatic
writer;--I mean of ancient days.--

Trim, by the help of his fore-finger, laid flat upon the table, and the
edge of his hand striking across it at right angles, made a shift to tell his
story so, that priests and virgins might have listened to it;
--and the story
being told,--the dialogue went on as follows.



Volume 5. Chapter 21.



--I WOULD BE PICQUETTED TO DEATH, cried the corporal, as he concluded
Susannah's story, before I would suffer the woman to come to any harm,--
'twas my fault, an' please your honour,--not her's.

Corporal Trim, replied my uncle Toby, putting on his hat which lay
upon the table,--if any thing can be said to be a fault, when the service
absolutely requires it should be done,--'tis I certainly who deserve the
blame,--you obeyed your orders.

Had count Solmes, Trim, done the same at the battle of Steenkirk, said
Yorick, drolling a little upon the corporal, who had been run over by a
dragoon in the retreat,--he had saved thee;--Saved! cried Trim, inter-
rupting Yorick, and finishing the sentence for him after his own fashion,
--he had saved five battalions, an' please your reverence, every soul of
them:
--there was Cutt's,--continued the corporal, clapping the forefing-
er of his right hand upon the thumb of his left, and counting round his
hand,--there was Cutt's,--Mackay's,--Angus's,--Graham's,--and Leven's,
all cut to pieces;--and so had the English life-guards too, had it not been
for some regiments upon the right, who marched up boldly to their relief,
and received the enemy's fire in their faces, before any one of their own
platoons discharged a musket,--they'll go to heaven for it,--added Trim.--
Trim is right, said my uncle Toby, nodding to Yorick,--he's perfectly right.
What signified his marching the horse, continued the corporal, where the
ground was so strait, that the French had such a nation of hedges, and
copses, and ditches, and fell'd trees laid this way and that to cover them
(as they always have).--Count Solmes should have sent us,--we would have
fired muzzle to muzzle with them for their lives.--There was nothing to
be done for the horse:--he had his foot shot off however for his pains,
continued the corporal, the very next campaign at Landen.--Poor Trim
got his wound there, quoth my uncle Toby.--'Twas owing, an' please your
honour, entirely to count Solmes,--had he drubbed them soundly at
Steenkirk, they would not have fought us at Landen.--Possibly not,--
Trim, said my uncle Toby;--though if they have the advantage of a wood,
or you give them a moment's time to intrench themselves,
they are a na-
tion which will pop and pop for ever at you.--There is no way but to
march coolly up to them,--receive their fire, and fall in upon them,
pellmell--Ding dong, added Trim.--Horse and foot, said my uncle Toby.--
Helter Skelter, said Trim.--Right and left, cried my uncle Toby.--Blood
an' ounds, shouted the corporal;--the battle raged,--Yorick drew his chair
a little to one side for safety, and after a moment's pause, my uncle Toby
sinking his voice a note,--resumed the discourse as follows.




Volume 5. Chapter 22.



KING WILLIAM, said my uncle Toby, addressing himself to Yorick, was so
terribly provoked at count Solmes for disobeying his orders, that he would
not suffer him to come into his presence for many months after.--I fear,
answered Yorick, the squire will be as much provoked at the corporal, as
the King at the count.--But 'twould be singularly hard in this case, con-
tinued be, if corporal Trim, who has behaved so diametrically opposite to
count Solmes, should have the fate to be rewarded with the same disgrace:
--too oft in this world, do things take that train.--I would spring a
mine, cried my uncle Toby, rising up,--and blow up my fortifications,
and my house with them, and we would perish under their ruins, ere I
would stand by and see it.
--Trim directed a slight,--but a grateful bow
towards his master,--and so the chapter ends.



Volume 5. Chapter 23.



--THEN, YORICK, replied my uncle Toby, you and I will lead the way
abreast,--and do you, corporal, follow a few paces behind us.--And
Susannah, an' please your honour, said Trim, shall be put in the rear.--
'Twas an excellent disposition,--and in this order, without either drums
beating, or colours flying, they marched slowly from my uncle Toby's house
to Shandy-hall.

--I wish, said Trim, as they entered the door,--instead of the sash
weights, I had cut off the church spout, as I once thought to have done.--
You have cut off spouts enow, replied Yorick.




Volume 5. Chapter 24.



AS MANY PICTURES as have been given of my father, how like him soever in
different airs and attitudes,--not one, or all of them, can ever help the
reader to any kind of preconception of how my father would think, speak,
or act, upon any untried occasion or occurrence of life.--
There was that
infinitude of oddities in him, and of chances along with it, by which
handle he would take a thing,--it baffled, Sir, all calculations.--The truth
was, his road lay so very far on one side, from that wherein most men
travelled,--that every object before him presented a face and section of
itself to his eye, altogether different from the plan and elevation of it seen
by the rest of mankind.--In other words, 'twas a different object
, and in
course was differently considered:

This is the true reason, that my dear Jenny and I, as well as all the world
besides us, have such eternal squabbles about nothing.--She looks at her
outside,--I, at her in.... How is it possible we should agree about her
value?



Volume 5. Chapter 25.



'Tis a point settled,--and I mention it for the comfort of Confucius, (Mr
Shandy is supposed to mean..., Esq; member for...,--and not the Chinese
Legislator.) who is apt to get entangled in telling a plain story--that
provided he keeps along the line of his story,--he may go backwards and
forwards as he will,--'tis still held to be no digression.

This being premised, I take the benefit of the act of going backwards
myself.




Volume 5. Chapter 26.



FIFTY THOUSAND PANNIER loads of devils--(not of the Archbishop of
Benevento's--I mean of Rabelais's devils), with their tails chopped off by
their rumps, could not have made so diabolical a scream of it, as I did--
when the accident befel me:
it summoned up my mother instantly into
the nursery,--so that Susannah had but just time to make her escape down
the back stairs, as my mother came up the fore.

Now, though I was old enough to have told the story myself,--and
young enough, I hope, to have done it without malignity; yet Susannah,
in passing by the kitchen, for fear of accidents, had left it in short-hand
with the cook--the cook had told it with a commentary to Jonathan, and
Jonathan to Obadiah; so that by the time my father had rung the bell half
a dozen times, to know what was the matter above,--was Obadiah enabled
to give him a particular account of it, just as it had happened.--I
thought as much, said my father, tucking up his night-gown;--and so
walked up stairs.

One would imagine from this--(though for my own part I somewhat
question it)--that my father, before that time, had actually wrote that
remarkable character in the Tristra-paedia, which to me is the most
original and entertaining one in the whole book;--and that is the chapter
upon sash-windows, with
a bitter Philippick at the end of it, upon the
forgetfulness of chamber-maids.--I have but two reasons for thinking
otherwise.


First, Had the matter been taken into consideration, before the event
happened, my father certainly would have nailed up the sash window for
good an' all;--which, considering with what difficulty he composed
books,--he might have done with ten times less trouble, than he could
have wrote the chapter: this argument I foresee holds good against his
writing a chapter, even after the event; but 'tis obviated under the second
reason, which I have the honour to offer to the world in support of my
opinion, that my father did not write the chapter upon sash-windows and
chamber-pots, at the time supposed,--and it is this.

--That, in order to render the Tristra-paedia complete,--I wrote the
chapter myself.




Volume 5. Chapter 27.



MY FATHER PUT ON HIS SPECTACLES--looked,--took them off,--put them
into the case--all in less than a statutable minute; and without opening
his lips, turned about and walked precipitately down stairs: my mother
imagined he had stepped down for lint and basilicon; but seeing him
return with a couple of folios under his arm, and Obadiah following him
with a large reading-desk, she took it for granted 'twas an herbal
, and so
drew him a chair to the bedside, that he might consult upon the case at his
ease.

--If it be but right done,--said my father, turning to the Section--de
sede vel subjecto circumcisionis
,--for he had brought up Spenser de
Legibus Hebraeorum Ritualibus
--and Maimonides, in order to confront
and examine us altogether.--

--If it be but right done, quoth he:--only tell us, cried my mother,
interrupting him, what herbs?
--For that, replied my father, you must
send for Dr. Slop.

My mother went down, and my father went on, reading the section as
follows,
*     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *
*     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *
* --Very well,--said my father, *     *     *     *     *     *
*     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *
*     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *     *
*     *     *--nay, if it has that convenience--and so without stop-
ping a moment to settle it first in his mind, whether the Jews had it
from the Egyptians, or the Egyptians from the Jews,--he rose up, and
rubbing his forehead two or three times across with the palm of his
hand, in the manner we rub out the footsteps of care, when evil has
trod lighter upon us than we foreboded
,--he shut the book, and walked
down stairs.--Nay, said he, mentioning the name of a different great
nation upon every step as he set his foot upon it--if the Egyptians,
--the Syrians,--the Phoenicians,--the Arabians,--the Cappadocians,--
if the Colchi, and Troglodytes did it--if Solon and Pythagoras sub-
mitted,--what is Tristram?--Who am I, that I should fret or fume one
moment about the matter?




Volume 5. Chapter 28.



DEAR YORICK, said my father smiling (for Yorick had broke his rank with
my uncle Toby in coming through the narrow entry, and so had stept first
into the parlour)--this Tristram of ours, I find, comes very hardly by all
his religious rites.--Never was the son of Jew, Christian, Turk, or Infidel
initiated into them in so oblique and slovenly a manner.--But he is no
worse, I trust, said Yorick.--There has been certainly, continued my fa-
ther, the deuce and all to do in some part or other of the ecliptic, when
this offspring of mine was formed.--That, you are a better judge of than
I, replied Yorick.--
Astrologers, quoth my father, know better than us
both:--the trine and sextil aspects have jumped awry,--or the opposite of
their ascendents have not hit it, as they should,--or the lords of the
genitures (as they call them) have been at bo-peep
,--or something has
been wrong above, or below with us.

'Tis possible, answered Yorick.--But is the child, cried my uncle Toby,
the worse?--
The Troglodytes say not, replied my father. And your
theologists, Yorick, tell us--Theologically? said Yorick,--or speaking
after the manner of apothecaries? (footnote in Greek Philo.)--statesmen?
(footnote in Greek)--or washer-women?
(footnote in Greek Bochart.)
--I'm not sure, replied my father,--but they tell us, brother Toby, he's
the better for it.--Provided, said Yorick, you travel him into Egypt.--Of
that, answered my father, he will have the advantage, when he sees the
Pyramids.--


Now every word of this, quoth my uncle Toby, is Arabic to me.--I
wish, said Yorick, 'twas so, to half the world.

--Ilus, (footnote in Greek Sanchuniatho.) continued my father, circum-
cised his whole army one morning.--Not without a court martial? cried my
uncle Toby.--Though the learned, continued he, taking no notice of my
uncle Toby's remark, but turning to Yorick,--are greatly divided still
who Ilus was;--some say Saturn;--some the Supreme Being;--
others, no more than a brigadier general under Pharaoh-neco.--Let him
be who he will, said my uncle Toby, I know not by what article of war he
could justify it.


The controvertists, answered my father, assign two-and-twenty different
reasons for it:
--others, indeed, who have drawn their pens on the
opposite side of the question, have shewn the world the futility of the
greatest part of them.--
But then again, our best polemic divines--I wish
there was not a polemic divine, said Yorick, in the kingdom;--one ounce
of practical divinity--is worth a painted ship-load of all their reverences
have imported these fifty years.--Pray, Mr. Yorick, quoth my uncle Toby,--
do tell me what a polemic divine is?
--The best description, captain Shandy,
I have ever read, is of a couple of 'em, replied Yorick, in the account of
the battle fought single hands betwixt Gymnast and captain Tripet; which I
have in my pocket.--I beg I may hear it, quoth my uncle Toby earnestly.--
You shall, said Yorick.--And as the corporal is waiting for me at the door,--
and I know the description of a battle will do the poor fellow more good
than his supper,--I beg, brother, you'll give him leave to come in.--With
all my soul, said my father.--Trim came in, erect and happy as an emperor;
and having shut the door, Yorick took a book from his right-hand coat-pocket,
and read, or pretended to read, as follows.




Volume 5. Chapter 29.



--"which words being heard by all the soldiers which were there, divers of
them being inwardly terrified, did shrink back and make room for the assail-
ant: all this did Gymnast very well remark and consider; and therefore,
making as if he would have alighted from off his horse, as he was poising
himself on the mounting side, he most nimbly (with his short sword by this
thigh) shifting his feet in the stirrup, and performing the stirrup-leather
feat, whereby, after the inclining of his body downwards, he forthwith
launched himself aloft into the air,
and placed both his feet together upon
the saddle, standing upright, with his back turned towards his horse's head,--

Now, (said he) my case goes forward. Then suddenly in the same posture
wherein he was, he fetched a gambol upon one foot, and turning to the left-
hand, failed not to carry his body perfectly round, just into his former
position, without missing one jot.--Ha! said Tripet, I will not do that at
this time,--and not without cause. Well, said Gymnast, I have failed,--
I will
undo this leap; then with a marvellous strength and agility, turning towards
the right-hand, he fetched another frisking gambol as before; which done,
he set his right hand thumb upon the bow of the saddle, raised himself up,
and sprung into the air, poising and upholding his whole weight upon the
muscle and nerve of the said thumb, and so turned and whirled himself
about three times: at the fourth, reversing his body, and overturning it
upside down, and foreside back, without touching any thing, he brought
himself betwixt the horse's two ears,
and then giving himself a jerking
swing, he seated himself upon the crupper--'


(This can't be fighting, said my uncle Toby.--The corporal shook his
head at it.--Have patience, said Yorick.)

"Then (Tripet) pass'd his right leg over his saddle, and placed himself
en croup.--But, said he, 'twere better for me to get into the saddle;
then putting the thumbs of both hands upon the crupper before him, and
there-upon leaning himself, as upon the only supporters of his body,
he
incontinently turned heels over head in the air, and strait found himself
betwixt the bow of the saddle in a tolerable seat; then springing into
the air with a summerset, he turned him about like a wind-mill, and made
above a hundred frisks, turns, and demi-pommadas.'--Good God! cried
Trim, losing all patience,--one home thrust of a bayonet is worth it all.
--

I think so too, replied Yorick.--

I am of a contrary opinion, quoth my father.



Volume 5. Chapter 30.



--NO,--I THINK I have advanced nothing, replied my father, making an-
swer to a question which Yorick had taken the liberty to put to him,--I
have advanced nothing in the Tristra-paedia, but what is as clear as any
one proposition in Euclid
.--Reach me, Trim, that book from off the
scrutoir:--it has oft-times been in my mind, continued my father, to have
read it over both to you, Yorick, and to my brother Toby, and I think it a
little unfriendly in myself, in not having done it long ago
:--shall we have
a short chapter or two now,--and a chapter or two hereafter, as occasions
serve; and so on, till we get through the whole? My uncle Toby and Yorick
made the obeisance which was proper; and the corporal, though he was
not included in the compliment, laid his hand upon his breast, and made
his bow at the same time.--The company smiled. Trim, quoth my father,
has paid the full price for staying out the entertainment.--He did not
seem to relish the play, replied Yorick.--'Twas a Tom-fool-battle, an' please
your reverence, of captain Tripet's and that other officer, making so many
summersets, as they advanced;--the French come on capering now and
then in that way,--but not quite so much.

My uncle Toby never felt the consciousness of his existence with more
complacency than what the corporal's, and his own reflections, made him
do at that moment;--he lighted his pipe
,--Yorick drew his chair closer to
the table,--Trim snuff'd the candle,--my father stirr'd up the fire,
--took
up the book,--cough'd twice, and begun.



Volume 5. Chapter 31.



THE FIRST THIRTY PAGES, said my father, turning over the leaves,--are a
little dry; and as they are not closely connected with the subject,--for
the present we'll pass them by: 'tis a prefatory introduction, continued my
father, or an introductory preface (for I am not determined which name
to give it) upon political or civil government; the foundation of which
being laid in the first conjunction betwixt male and female, for procre-
ation of the species--I was insensibly led into it.--'Twas natural, said
Yorick.

The original of society, continued my father, I'm satisfied is, what Poli-
tian tells us, i. e. merely conjugal; and nothing more than the getting
together of one man and one woman;--to which, (according to Hesiod) the
philosopher adds a servant:--but supposing in the first beginning there
were no men servants born--he lays the foundation of it, in a man,--a wo-
man--and a bull.--I believe 'tis an ox, quoth Yorick, quoting the passage
(Greek)--A bull must have given more trouble than his head was worth.--
But there is a better reason still, said my father (dipping his pen into
his ink); for the ox being the most patient of animals, and the most useful
withal in tilling the ground for their nourishment,--was the properest
instrument, and emblem too, for the new joined couple, that the creation
could have associated with them.--And there is a stronger reason, added
my uncle Toby, than them all for the ox.--My father had not power to take
his pen out of his ink-horn, till he had heard my uncle Toby's reason.
--For when the ground was tilled, said my uncle Toby, and made worth in-
closing, then they began to secure it by walls and ditches, which was the
origin of fortification.
--True, true, dear Toby, cried my father, striking
out the bull, and putting the ox in his place.


My father gave Trim a nod, to snuff the candle, and resumed his discourse.

--I enter upon this speculation, said my father carelessly, and half shut-
ting the book, as he went on, merely to shew the foundation of the natural
relation between a father and his child; the right and jurisdiction over
whom he acquires these several ways--

1st, by marriage.
2d, by adoption.
3d, by legitimation.

And 4th, by procreation; all which I consider in their order.

I lay a slight stress upon one of them, replied Yorick--the act, especially
where it ends there, in my opinion lays as little obligation upon the child,
as it conveys power to the father.--You are wrong,--said my father argutely,
and for this plain reason....--I own, added my father, that
the offspring,
upon this account, is not so under the power and jurisdiction of the
mother.--But the reason, replied Yorick, equally holds good for her.--
She is under authority herself, said my father:--and besides, continued
my father, nodding his head, and laying his finger upon the side of his
nose, as he assigned his reason,--she is not the principal agent,
Yorick.--
In what, quoth my uncle Toby? stopping his pipe.--Though by all means,
added my father (not attending to my uncle Toby),
"The son ought to pay
her respect
,"
as you may read, Yorick, at large in the first book of the
Institutes of Justinian, at the eleventh title and the tenth section.--I can
read it as well, replied Yorick, in the Catechism.



Volume 5. Chapter 32.



Trim can repeat every word of it by heart, quoth my uncle Toby.--Pugh!
said my father, not caring to be interrupted with Trim's saying his Cat-
echism. He can, upon my honour, replied my uncle Toby.--Ask him, Mr.
Yorick, any question you please.--

--The fifth Commandment, Trim,--said Yorick, speaking mildly, and
with a gentle nod, as to a modest Catechumen. The corporal stood silent.
--You don't ask him right, said my uncle Toby, raising his voice, and
giving it rapidly like the word of command:--The fifth--cried my uncle
Toby.--I must begin with the first, an' please your honour, said the cor-
poral.--

--Yorick could not forbear smiling.--Your reverence does not consider,
said the corporal, shouldering his stick like a musket, and marching into
the middle of the room, to illustrate his position,--that 'tis exactly the
same thing, as doing one's exercise in the field.--

"Join your right-hand to your firelock,' cried the corporal, giving the
word of command, and performing the motion.--

"Poise your firelock,' cried the corporal, doing the duty still both of
adjutant and private man.

"Rest your firelock;'--one motion, an' please your reverence, you see
leads into another.--If his honour will begin but with the first--

The First--cried my uncle Toby, setting his hand upon his side--....

The Second--cried my uncle Toby, waving his tobacco-pipe, as he would
have done his sword at the head of a regiment.--The corporal went through
his manual with exactness; and having honoured his father and mother,
made a low bow, and fell back to the side of the room.


Every thing in this world, said my father, is big with jest, and has wit
in it, and instruction too,--if we can but find it out.

--Here is the scaffold work of Instruction, its true point of folly,
without the Building behind it.

--Here is the glass for pedagogues, preceptors, tutors, governors,
gerund-grinders, and bear-leaders to view themselves in, in their
true dimensions.--

Oh! there is a husk and shell, Yorick, which grows up with learning,
which their unskilfulness knows not how to fling away!

--SCIENES MAY BE LEARNED BY ROTE, BUT WISDOM NOT.

Yorick thought my father inspired.--I will enter into obligations this
moment, said my father, to lay out all my aunt Dinah's legacy in chari-
table uses (of which, by the bye, my father had no high opinion), if the
corporal has any one determinate idea annexed to any one word he has
repeated.--Prithee, Trim, quoth my father, turning round to him,--What
dost thou mean, by "honouring thy father and mother?'

Allowing them, an' please your honour, three halfpence a day out of my
pay, when they grow old.--And didst thou do that, Trim? said Yorick.--
He did indeed, replied my uncle Toby.--Then, Trim, said Yorick, spring-
ing out of his chair, and taking the corporal by the hand, thou art the
best commentator upon that part of the Decalogue; and I honour thee more
for it, corporal Trim, than if thou hadst had a hand in the Talmud itself.




Volume 5. Chapter 33.



O BLESSED HEALTH! cried my father, making an exclamation, as he turned
over the leaves to the next chapter, thou art before all gold and treasure;
'tis thou who enlargest the soul,--and openest all its powers to receive
instruction and to relish virtue.
--He that has thee, has little more to wish
for;--and he that is so wretched as to want thee,--wants every thing with
thee.


I have concentrated all that can be said upon this important head, said
my father, into a very little room, therefore we'll read the chapter quite
through.

My father read as follows:

"The whole secret of health depending upon the due contention for
mastery betwixt the radical heat and the radical moisture'
--You have proved
that matter of fact, I suppose, above, said Yorick. Sufficiently, replied my
father.

In saying this, my father shut the book,--not as if he resolved to read
no more of it, for he kept his fore-finger in the chapter:--nor pettishly,--
for he shut the book slowly; his thumb resting, when he had done it, upon
the upper-side of the cover, as his three fingers supported the lower side of
it, without the least compressive violence.--

I have demonstrated the truth of that point, quoth my father, nodding
to Yorick, most sufficiently in the preceding chapter.


Now could the man in the moon be told, that a man in the earth had
wrote a chapter, sufficiently demonstrating, That the secret of all health
depended upon the due contention for mastery betwixt the radical heat
and the radical moisture,--and that he had managed the point so well,
that there was not one single word wet or dry upon radical heat or radical
moisture, throughout the whole chapter,--or a single syllable in it, pro or
con, directly or indirectly, upon the contention betwixt these two powers
in any part of the animal oeconomy--

"O thou eternal Maker of all beings!'--he would cry, striking his breast
with his right hand (in case he had one)--'Thou whose power and goodness
can enlarge the faculties of thy creatures to this infinite degree of
excellence and perfection,--What have we Moonites done?
'



Volume 5. Chapter 34.



WITH TWO STROKES, the one at Hippocrates, the other at Lord Verulam,
did my father achieve it.


The stroke at the prince of physicians, with which he began, was no
more than a short insult upon his sorrowful complaint of the Ars longa,--
and Vita brevis.--Life short, cried my father,--and the art of healing
tedious! And who are we to thank for both the one and the other, but the
ignorance of quacks themselves,--and the stage-loads of chymical nostrums,
and peripatetic lumber, with which, in all ages, they have first flatter'd
the world, and at last deceived it?

--O my lord Verulam! cried my father, turning from Hippocrates, and
making his second stroke at him, as the principal of nostrum-mongers,
and the fittest to be made an example of to the rest,--What shall I say to
thee, my great lord Verulam? What shall I say to thy internal spirit,--thy
opium, thy salt-petre,--thy greasy unctions,--thy daily purges,--thy
nightly clysters, and succedaneums?

--My father was never at a loss what to say to any man, upon any subject;
and had the least occasion for the exordium of any man breathing:
how he
dealt with his lordship's opinion,--you shall see;--but when--I know not:
--we must first see what his lordship's opinion was.




Volume 5. Chapter 35.



"THE TWO GREAT CAUSES, which conspire with each other to shorten life,
says lord Verulam, are first--

"The internal spirit, which like a gentle flame wastes the body down to
death:--And secondly, the external air, that parches the body up to ashes:--
which two enemies attacking us on both sides of our bodies together, at
length destroy our organs, and render them unfit to carry on the functions
of life.'

This being the state of the case, the road to longevity was plain; nothing
more being required, says his lordship, but to repair the waste committed
by the internal spirit, by making the substance of it more thick and dense,
by a regular course of opiates on one side, and by refrigerating the heat of
it on the other, by three grains and a half of salt-petre every morning
before you got up.--

Still this frame of ours was left exposed to the inimical assaults of the
air without;--but this was fenced off again by a course of greasy unctions,
which so fully saturated the pores of the skin, that no spicula could en-
ter;--nor could any one get out.--This put a stop to all perspiration,
sensible and insensible, which being the cause of so many scurvy distempers
--a course of clysters was requisite to carry off redundant humours,--and
render the system complete.


What my father had to say to my lord of Verulam's opiates, his saltpetre,
and greasy unctions and clysters, you shall read,--but not to-day--or to-
morrow: time presses upon me,--my reader is impatient--I must get forwards
--You shall read the chapter at your leisure (if you chuse it), as soon as
ever the Tristra-paedia is published.--

Sufficeth it, at present to say, my father levelled the hypothesis with the
ground, and in doing that, the learned know, he built up and established
his own.--



Volume 5. Chapter 36.



THE WHOLE SECRET OF HEALTH
, said my father, beginning the sentence
again, depending evidently upon the due contention betwixt the radical heat
and radical moisture within us;--
the least imaginable skill had been sufficient
to have maintained it, had not the school-men confounded the task,
merely
(as Van Helmont, the famous chymist, has proved) by all along
mistaking
the radical moisture for the tallow and fat of animal bodies.

Now the radical moisture is not the tallow or fat of animals, but an oily
and balsamous substance; for the fat and tallow, as also the phlegm or
watery parts, are cold; whereas the oily and balsamous parts are of a lively
heat and spirit,
which accounts for the observation of Aristotle, "Quod
omne animal post coitum est triste.'

Now it is certain, that
the radical heat lives in the radical moisture, but
whether vice versa, is a doubt: however, when the one decays, the other
decays also; and then is produced, either an unnatural heat, which causes
an unnatural dryness--or an unnatural moisture, which causes dropsies.--
So that if a child, as he grows up, can but be taught to avoid running into
fire or water
, as either of "em threaten his destruction,--'twill be all that is
needful to be done upon that head.--




Volume 5. Chapter 37.




THE DESCRIPTION of the siege of Jericho itself, could not have engaged the
attention of my uncle Toby more powerfully than the last chapter;--his
eyes were fixed upon my father throughout it;--he never mentioned radical
heat and radical moisture, but my uncle Toby took his pipe out of his
mouth, and shook his head; and
as soon as the chapter was finished, he
beckoned to the corporal to come close to his chair, to ask him the fol-
lowing question,--aside.--.... It was at the siege of Limerick, an' please
your honour, replied the corporal, making a bow.


The poor fellow and I, quoth my uncle Toby, addressing himself to my
father, were scarce able to crawl out of our tents, at the time the siege
of Limerick was raised, upon the very account you mention.--
Now what
can have got into that precious noddle of thine, my dear brother Toby?
cried my father, mentally.--By Heaven! continued he, communing still
with himself, it would puzzle an Oedipus to bring it in point.--


I believe, an' please your honour, quoth the corporal, that
if it had not
been for the quantity of brandy we set fire to every night, and the claret
and cinnamon
with which I plyed your honour off;--And the geneva,
Trim, added my uncle Toby , which did us more good than all--I verily
believe, continued the corporal,
we had both, an' please your honour, left
our lives in the trenches, and been buried in them too.--The noblest
grave, corporal! cried my uncle Toby, his eyes sparkling as he spoke, that a
soldier could wish to lie down in.--But a pitiful death for him! an' please
your honour, replied the corporal.


All this was as much Arabick to my father, as the rites of the Colchi and
Troglodites had been before to my uncle Toby
; my father could not determine
whether he was to frown or to smile.


My uncle Toby, turning to Yorick, resumed the case at Limerick, more
intelligibly than he had begun it,--and so settled the point for my father
at once.



Volume 5. Chapter 38.



IT WAS UNDOUBTEDLY, said my uncle Toby,
a great happiness for myself
and the corporal, that we had all along a burning fever, attended with a most
raging thirst, during the whole five-and-twenty days the flux was upon us
in the camp; otherwise what my brother calls the radical moisture, must,
as I conceive it, inevitably have got the better.--My father drew in his
lungs top-full of air, and looking up, blew it forth again, as slowly as he
possibly could.--

--It was Heaven's mercy to us, continued my uncle Toby, which put it
into the corporal's head to maintain that due contention betwixt the rad-
ical heat and the radical moisture, by reinforceing the fever, as he did all
along, with hot wine and spices; whereby the corporal kept up (as it were)
a continual firing, so that the radical heat stood its ground from the be-
ginning to the end, and was a fair match for the moisture, terrible as it
was.--Upon my honour, added my uncle Toby, you might have heard the
contention within our bodies,
brother Shandy, twenty toises.--If there
was no firing, said Yorick.

Well--said my father, with a full aspiration, and pausing a while after
the word
--Was I a judge, and the laws of the country which made me one
permitted it, I would condemn some of the worst malefactors, provided
they had had their clergy...--Yorick, foreseeing the sentence was likely
to end with no sort of mercy, laid his hand upon my father's breast, and
begged he would respite it for a few minutes, till he asked the corporal a
question.--Prithee, Trim, said Yorick, without staying for my father's
leave,--tell us honestly--what is thy opinion concerning this self-same
radical heat and radical moisture?

With humble submission to his honour's better judgment, quoth the
corporal, making a bow to my uncle Toby--Speak thy opinion freely,
corporal, said my uncle Toby.--
The poor fellow is my servant,--not my
slave,--added my uncle Toby, turning to my father.--

The corporal put his hat under his left arm, and with his stick hanging
upon the wrist of it, by a black thong split into a tassel about the knot,
he marched up to the ground where he had performed his catechism; then
touching his under-jaw with the thumb and fingers of his right hand be-
fore he opened his mouth,
--he delivered his notion thus.



Volume 5. Chapter 39.



JUST AS THE CORPORAL was humming, to begin--in waddled Dr. Slop.--
'Tis not two-pence matter--the corporal shall go on in the next chapter,
let who will come in.--

Well, my good doctor, cried my father sportively, for the transitions of
his passions were unaccountably sudden,--and what has this whelp of
mine to say to the matter?

Had my father been asking after the amputation of the tail of a puppydog
--he could not have done it in a more careless air:
the system which Dr.
Slop had laid down, to treat the accident by, no way allowed of such a
mode of enquiry.--He sat down.

Pray, Sir, quoth my uncle Toby, in a manner which could not go unanswer-
ed,--in what condition is the boy?--'Twill end in a phimosis, replied
Dr. Slop.

I am no wiser than I was, quoth my uncle Toby--returning his pipe
into his mouth.
--Then let the corporal go on, said my father, with his
medical lecture.--The corporal made a bow to his old friend, Dr. Slop,
and then delivered his opinion concerning radical heat and radical
moisture, in the following words.



Volume 5. Chapter 40.



THE CITY OF LIMERICK, the siege of which was begun under his majesty
king William himself, the year after I went into the army--lies, an'
please your honours,
in the middle of a devilish wet, swampy country.
--'Tis quite surrounded, said my uncle Toby, with the Shannon, and is,
by its situation, one of the strongest fortified places in Ireland.--

I think this is a new fashion, quoth Dr. Slop, of beginning a medical
lecture.--'Tis all true, answered Trim.--Then
I wish the faculty would
follow the cut of it,
said Yorick.--'Tis all cut through, an' please your
reverence, said the corporal, with drains and bogs; and besides, there was
such a quantity of rain fell during the siege, the whole country was like a
puddle,--'twas that, and nothing else, which brought on the flux
, and
which had like to have killed both his honour and myself; now there was
no such thing, after the first ten days, continued the corporal, for a soldier
to lie dry in his tent, without cutting a ditch round it, to draw off the
water;--nor was that enough, for those who could afford it, as his honour
could, without setting fire every night to a pewter dish full of brandy,
which took off the damp of the air, and made the inside of the tent as
warm as a stove.--


And what conclusion dost thou draw, corporal Trim, cried my father,
from all these premises?

I infer, an' please your worship, replied Trim, that the radical moisture
is nothing in the world but ditch-water--and that the radical heat, of those
who can go to the expence of it, is burnt brandy,--the radical heat and
moisture of a private man, an' please your honour, is nothing but ditch-
water--and a dram of geneva--and give us but enough of it, with a pipe
of tobacco, to give us spirits, and drive away the vapours--we know not
what it is to fear death.

I am at a loss, Captain Shandy, quoth Doctor Slop, to determine in
which branch of learning your servant shines most, whether in physiology
or divinity.
--Slop had not forgot Trim's comment upon the sermon.--

It is but an hour ago, replied Yorick, since the corporal was examined in
the latter, and passed muster with great honour.--

The radical heat and moisture, quoth Doctor Slop, turning to my father,
you must know, is the basis and foundation of our being--as the root of
a tree is the source and principle of its vegetation.--It is inherent
in the seeds of all animals, and may be preserved sundry ways, but prin-
cipally in my opinion by consubstantials, impriments, and occludents.--
Now this poor fellow, continued Dr. Slop, pointing to the corporal, has
had the misfortune to have heard some superficial empiric discourse upon
this nice point.
--That he has,--said my father.--Very likely, said my
uncle.--I'm sure of it--quoth Yorick.--




Volume 5. Chapter 41.



DOCTOR SLOP being called out to look at a cataplasm he had ordered, it
gave my father an opportunity of going on with another chapter in the
Tristra-paedia.--Come! cheer up, my lads; I'll shew you land--for when
we have tugged through that chapter, the book shall not be opened again
this twelve-month.--Huzza!-
-



Volume 5. Chapter 42.



--FIVE YEARS with a bib under his chin;

Four years in travelling from Christ-cross-row to Malachi;

A year and a half in learning to write his own name;

Seven long years and more (Greek)-ing it, at Greek and Latin;

Four years at his probations and his negations--the fine statue still
lying in the middle of the marble block,--and nothing done, but his tools
sharpened to hew it out!--'Tis a piteous delay!--Was not the great Julius
Scaliger
within an ace of never getting his tools sharpened at all?
--
Fortyfour years old was he before he could manage his Greek;--and Peter
Damianus, lord bishop of Ostia, as all the world knows, could not so
much as read, when he was of man's estate.--And Baldus himself, as emi-
nent as he turned out after, entered upon the law so late in life, that
every body imagined he intended to be an advocate in the other world: no
wonder, when Eudamidas, the son of Archidamas, heard Xenocrates at sev-
enty-five disputing about wisdom, that he asked gravely,--If the old man
be yet disputing and enquiring concerning wisdom,--what time will he
have to make use of it
?

Yorick listened to my father with great attention;
there was a seasoning
of wisdom unaccountably mixed up with his strangest whims, and he had
sometimes such illuminations in the darkest of his eclipses
, as almost
atoned for them:--be wary, Sir, when you imitate him.

I am convinced, Yorick, continued my father, half reading and half dis-
coursing, that
there is a North-west passage to the intellectual world; and
that the soul of man has shorter ways of going to work, in furnishing itself
with knowledge and instruction, than we generally take with it.--But,
alack! all fields have not a river or a spring running besides them;--every
child, Yorick, has not a parent to point it out.

--The whole entirely depends, added my father, in a low voice, upon
the auxiliary verbs, Mr. Yorick.


Had Yorick trod upon Virgil's snake, he could not have looked more sur-
prised.--I am surprised too, cried my father, observing it,--and
I reckon
it as one of the greatest calamities which ever befel the republic of let-
ters, That those who have been entrusted with the education of our children,
and whose business it was to open their minds, and stock them early with
ideas, in order to set the imagination loose upon them, have made so little
use of the auxiliary verbs in doing it, as they have done
--So that, except
Raymond Lullius, and the elder Pelegrini, the last of which arrived to such
perfection in the use of "em, with his topics, that, in a few lessons, he
could teach a young gentleman to discourse with plausibility upon any
subject, pro and con, and to say and write all that could be spoken or
written concerning it, without blotting a word, to the admiration of all
who beheld him
.--I should be glad, said Yorick, interrupting my father,
to be made to comprehend this matter. You shall, said my father.

The highest stretch of improvement a single word is capable of, is a high
metaphor,--for which, in my opinion, the idea is generally the worse, and
not the better;--but be that as it may,--when the mind has done that
with it--there is an end,--the mind and the idea are at rest,
--until a
second idea enters;--and so on.


Now the use of the Auxiliaries is, at once to set the soul a-going by
herself upon the materials as they are brought her; and by the versability
of this great engine, round which they are twisted, to open new tracts of
enquiry, and make every idea engender millions.


You excite my curiosity greatly, said Yorick.

For my own part, quoth my uncle Toby, I have given it up.--The Danes,
an' please your honour, quoth the corporal, who were on the left at the
siege of Limerick, were all auxiliaries.--And very good ones, said my uncle
Toby.--But the auxiliaries, Trim, my brother is talking about,--I conceive
to be different things.----


----You do? said my father, rising up.



Volume 5. Chapter 43.



MY FATHER TOOK a single turn across the room, then sat down, and fin-
ished the chapter.

The verbs auxiliary we are concerned in here, continued my father, are,
am; was; have; had; do; did; make; made; suffer; shall; should; will; would;
can; could; owe; ought; used
; or is wont.--And these varied with tenses,
present, past, future, and conjugated with the verb see,--or with these
questions added to them;--Is it? Was it? Will it be? Would it be? May it
be? Might it be?
And these again put negatively, Is it not? Was it not?
Ought it not?
--Or affirmatively,--It is; It was; It ought to be. Or chron-
ologically,--Has it been always? Lately? How long ago?--Or hypothetically,
--If it was? If it was not? What would follow?--If the French should beat
the English? If the Sun go out of the Zodiac?

Now, by the right use and application of these, continued my father, in
which a child's memory should be exercised, there is no one idea can enter
his brain, how barren soever, but a magazine of conceptions and conclu-
sions may be drawn forth from it.
--Didst thou ever see a white bear?
cried my father, turning his head round to Trim, who stood at the back of
his chair:--No, an' please your honour, replied the corporal.--But thou
couldst discourse about one, Trim, said my father, in case of need?--How
is it possible, brother, quoth my uncle Toby, if the corporal never saw
one?--'Tis the fact I want, replied my father,--and the possibility of it
is as follows.


A White Bear! Very well. Have I ever seen one? Might I ever have seen one?
Am I ever to see one? Ought I ever to have seen one? Or can I ever see
one?

Would I had seen a white bear! (for how can I imagine it?)

If I should see a white bear, what should I say? If I should never see a
white bear, what then?

If I never have, can, must, or shall see a white bear alive; have I ever
seen the skin of one? Did I ever see one painted?--described? Have I never
dreamed of one?

Did my father, mother, uncle, aunt, brothers or sisters, ever see a white
bear? What would they give? How would they behave? How would the
white bear have behaved? Is he wild? Tame? Terrible? Rough? Smooth?

--Is the white bear worth seeing?--

--Is there no sin in it?--

Is it better than a Black One?




             Volume VI



Volume 6. Chapter 1.



--WE'LL NOT STOP TWO MOMENTS, my dear Sir,--only, as we have got
through these five volumes (In the first edition, the sixth volume began
with this chapter.), (do, Sir, sit down upon a set--they are better than
nothing) let us just look back upon the country we have pass'd through.--

--What a wilderness has it been! and what a mercy that we have not
both of us been lost, or devoured by wild beasts in it!

Did you think the world itself, Sir, had contained such a number of Jack
Asses?--How they view'd and review'd us as we passed over the rivulet at
the bottom of that little valley!--and when we climbed over that hill, and
were just getting out of sight--good God! what a braying did they all set
up together!

--Prithee, shepherd! who keeps all those Jack Asses?....

--Heaven be their comforter--What! are they never curried?--Are they never
taken in in winter?--Bray bray--bray. Bray on,--the world is deeply your
debtor;--louder still--that's nothing:--in good sooth, you are ill-used:--
Was I a Jack Asse, I solemnly declare, I would bray in G-sol-re-ut from
morning, even unto night.




Volume 6. Chapter 2.



WHEN MY FATHER had danced his white bear backwards and forwards
through half a dozen pages
, he closed the book for good an' all,--and in a
kind of triumph redelivered it into Trim's hand, with a nod to lay it upon
the "scrutoire, where he found it.--
Tristram, said he, shall be made to
conjugate every word in the dictionary, backwards and forwards the same
way;--every word, Yorick, by this means, you see, is converted into a
thesis or an hypothesis;--every thesis and hypothesis have an off-spring
of propositions;--and each proposition has its own consequences and
conclusions; every one of which leads the mind on again, into fresh tracks
of enquiries and doubtings.--The force of this engine, added my father, is
incredible in opening a child's head.--'Tis enough, brother Shandy, cried
my uncle Toby, to burst it into a thousand splinters.--


I presume, said Yorick, smiling,--it must be owing to this,--(for let log-
icians say what they will, it is not to be accounted for sufficiently from
the bare use of the ten predicaments
)--That the famous Vincent Quirino,
amongst the many other astonishing feats of his childhood, of which the
Cardinal Bembo has given the world so exact a story,--should be
able to
paste up in the public schools at Rome, so early as in the eighth year of
his age, no less than four thousand five hundred and fifty different theses,
upon the most abstruse points of the most abstruse theology;--and to de-
fend and maintain them in such sort, as to cramp and dumbfound his oppo-
nents.--What is that, cried my father, to what is told us of Alphonsus
Tostatus, who, almost in his nurse's arms, learned all the sciences and
liberal arts without being taught any one of them?
--What shall we say of
the great Piereskius?--That's the very man, cried my uncle Toby, I once
told you of, brother Shandy, who walked a matter of five hundred miles,
reckoning from Paris to Shevling, and from Shevling back again, merely
to see Stevinus's flying chariot.--He was a very great man! added my uncle
Toby (meaning Stevinus)--He was so, brother Toby, said my father (meaning
Piereskius)--and had
multiplied his ideas so fast, and increased his
knowledge to such a prodigious stock, that, if we may give credit to an
anecdote concerning him, which we cannot withhold here, without shaking
the authority of all anecdotes whatever
--at seven years of age, his
father committed entirely to his care the education of his younger brother,
a boy of five years old,--with the sole management of all his concerns.--
Was the father as wise as the son? quoth my uncle Toby:--I should think
not, said Yorick:--But what are these, continued my father--(breaking
out in a kind of enthusiasm)--what are these, to those prodigies of
childhood in Grotius, Scioppius, Heinsius, Politian, Pascal, Joseph
Scaliger, Ferdinand de Cordoue, and others--some of which
left off their
substantial forms at nine years old, or sooner, and went on reasoning
without them;--others went through their classics at seven;--wrote trag-
edies at eight;--Ferdinand de Cordoue was so wise at nine,--'twas thought
the Devil was in him;--and at Venice gave such proofs of his knowledge and
goodness, that the monks imagined he was Antichrist, or nothing
.--Others
were masters of fourteen languages at ten,--finished the course of their
rhetoric, poetry, logic, and ethics, at eleven,--put forth their commen-
taries upon Servius and Martianus Capella at twelve,--and at thirteen
received their degrees in philosophy, laws, and divinity:--but you forget
the great Lipsius, quoth Yorick,
who composed a work the day he was born:--
They should have wiped it up, said my uncle Toby, and said no more about
it.




Volume 6. Chapter 3



WHEN THE CATAPLASM was ready, a scruple of decorum had unseasonably
rose up in Susannah's conscience
, about holding the candle, whilst Slop
tied it on; Slop had not treated Susannah's distemper with anodynes,--
and so a quarrel had ensued betwixt them.

--Oh! oh!--said Slop,
casting a glance of undue freedom in Susannah's
face
, as she declined the office;--then, I think I know you, madam--You
know me, Sir! cried Susannah fastidiously, and with a toss of her head,
levelled evidently, not at his profession, but at the doctor himself,--you
know me! cried Susannah again.--
Doctor Slop clapped his finger and his
thumb instantly upon his nostrils;--Susannah's spleen was ready to burst
at it;--'Tis false, said Susannah.--Come, come, Mrs. Modesty, said Slop,
not a little elated with the success of his last thrust,--If you won't hold
the candle, and look--you may hold it and shut your eyes:--That's one of
your popish shifts
, cried Susannah:--'Tis better, said Slop, with a nod,
than no shift at all, young woman;--I defy you, Sir, cried Susannah, pull-
ing her shift sleeve below her elbow.

It was almost impossible for two persons to assist each other in a surg-
ical case with a more splenetic cordiality.


Slop snatched up the cataplasm--Susannah snatched up the candle;--

A little this way, said Slop; Susannah looking one way, and rowing another,
instantly set fire to Slop's wig, which being somewhat bushy and unctuous
withal, was burnt out before it was well kindled.--You impudent whore!
cried Slop,--(for what is passion, but a wild beast?)--you impudent whore,
cried Slop, getting upright, with the cataplasm in his hand;--I never
was the destruction of any body's nose, said Susannah,--which is more
than you can say:--Is it? cried Slop, throwing the cataplasm in her
face;
--Yes, it is, cried Susannah, returning the compliment with what
was left in the pan.




Volume 6. Chapter 4.



DOCTOR SLOP AND SUSANNAH filed cross-bills against each other in the
parlour; which done, as the cataplasm had failed, they retired into the
kitchen to prepare a fomentation for me;
--and whilst that was doing, my
father determined the point as you will read.



Volume 6. Chapter 5.



YOU SEE 'TIS HIGH TIME, said my father, addressing himself equally to my
uncle Toby and Yorick, to take this young creature out of these women's
hands, and put him into those of a private governor. Marcus Antoninus
provided fourteen governors all at once to superintend his son Commodus's
education,--and in six weeks he cashiered five of them;--I know very
well, continued my father, that Commodus's mother was in love with a
gladiator at the time of her conception, which accounts for a great many
of Commodus's cruelties when he became emperor;--but still I am of
opinion, that those five whom Antoninus dismissed, did Commodus's
temper, in that short time, more hurt than the other nine were able to
rectify all their lives long.


Now as I consider the person who is to be about my son, as the mirror
in which he is to view himself from morning to night, by which he is to
adjust his looks, his carriage, and perhaps the inmost sentiments of his
heart;--I would have one, Yorick, if possible, polished at all points, fit
for my child to look into.--This is very good sense, quoth my uncle Toby
to himself.

--There is, continued my father, a certain mien and motion of the
body and all its parts, both in acting and speaking, which argues a man
well within; and I am not at all surprised that Gregory of Nazianzum,
upon observing the hasty and untoward gestures of Julian, should foretel
he would one day become an apostate;
--or that St. Ambrose should turn
his Amanuensis out of doors, because of an indecent motion of his head,
which went backwards and forwards like a flail;--or that Democritus
should conceive Protagoras to be a scholar, from seeing him bind up a
faggot, and thrusting, as he did it, the small twigs inwards.--
There are
a thousand unnoticed openings, continued my father, which let a penetra-
ting eye at once into a man's soul;
and I maintain it, added he, that a
man of sense does not lay down his hat in coming into a room,--or take
it up in going out of it, but something escapes, which discovers him.


It is for these reasons, continued my father, that the governor I make
choice of shall neither (Vid. Pellegrina.) lisp, or squint, or wink, or talk
loud, or look fierce, or foolish;--or bite his lips, or grind his teeth, or
speak through his nose, or pick it, or blow it with his fingers.--

He shall neither walk fast,--or slow, or fold his arms,--for that is
laziness;--or hang them down,--for that is folly; or hide them in his
pocket, for that is nonsense.--

He shall neither strike, or pinch, or tickle--or bite, or cut his nails,
or hawk, or spit, or snift, or drum with his feet or fingers in company;
--nor (according to Erasmus) shall he speak to any one in making water,
--nor shall he point to carrion or excrement.--Now this is all nonsense
again, quoth my uncle Toby to himself.--

I will have him, continued my father, cheerful, facete, jovial; at the
same time, prudent, attentive to business, vigilant, acute, argute, in-
ventive, quick in resolving doubts and speculative questions;--he shall
be wise, and judicious, and learned:--And why not humble, and moderate,
and gentletempered, and good? said Yorick:--And why not, cried my uncle
Toby, free, and generous, and bountiful, and brave?
--He shall, my dear Toby,
replied my father, getting up and shaking him by his hand.--Then, brother
Shandy, answered my uncle Toby, raising himself off the chair, and laying
down his pipe to take hold of my father's other hand,--I humbly beg I
may recommend poor Le Fever's son to you;--
a tear of joy of the first
water sparkled in my uncle Toby's eye, and another, the fellow to it, in the
corporal's, as the proposition was made;
--you will see why when you read
Le Fever's story:--fool that I was! nor can I recollect (nor perhaps you)
without turning back to the place, what it was that hindered me from
letting the corporal tell it in his own words;
--but the occasion is lost,--I
must tell it now in my own.



Volume 6. Chapter 6.


The Story of Le Fever.


IT WAS SOME TIME in the summer of that year in which Dendermond was
taken by the allies,--which was about seven years before my father came
into the country,--and about as many, after the time, that my uncle Toby
and Trim had privately decamped from my father's house in town, in
order to lay some of the finest sieges to some of the finest fortified
cities in Europe--when my uncle Toby was one evening getting his supper,
with Trim sitting behind him at a small sideboard,--I say, sitting--for
in consideration of the corporal's lame knee (which sometimes gave him
exquisite pain)--when my uncle Toby dined or supped alone, he would never
suffer the corporal to stand; and the poor fellow's veneration for his
master was such, that, with a proper artillery, my uncle Toby could have
taken Dendermond itself, with less trouble than he was able to gain this
point over him; for many a time when
my uncle Toby supposed the corporal's
leg was at rest, he would look back, and detect him standing behind him
with the most dutiful respect: this bred more little squabbles betwixt them,
than all other causes for five-and-twenty years together--But this is nei-
ther here nor there--why do I mention it?--Ask my pen,--it governs
me,--I govern not it.


He was one evening sitting thus at his supper, when the landlord of a little
inn in the village came into the parlour, with an empty phial in his hand, to
beg a glass or two of sack;
'Tis for a poor gentleman,--I think, of the army,
said the landlord, who has been taken ill at my house four days ago, and has
never held up his head since, or had a desire to taste any thing, till just now,
that he has a fancy for a glass of sack and a thin toast,
--I think, says he,
taking his hand from his forehead, it would comfort me.--

--If I could neither beg, borrow, or buy such a thing--added the landlord,
--I would almost steal it for the poor gentleman, he is so ill.--I hope
in God he will still mend, continued he,--we are all of us concerned for
him.

Thou art a good-natured soul, I will answer for thee
, cried my uncle
Toby; and thou shalt drink the poor gentleman's health in a glass of sack
thyself,--and take a couple of bottles with my service, and tell him he is
heartily welcome to them, and to a dozen more if they will do him good.

Though I am persuaded, said my uncle Toby, as the landlord shut the
door, he is a very compassionate fellow--Trim,--yet I cannot help enter-
taining a high opinion of his guest too; there must be something more
than common in him, that in so short a time should win so much upon
the affections of his host;--And of his whole family, added the corporal,
for they are all concerned for him,
.--Step after him, said my uncle Toby,--
do Trim,--and ask if he knows his name.


--I have quite forgot it truly, said the landlord, coming back into the
parlour with the corporal,--but I can ask his son again:--Has he a son
with him then? said my uncle Toby.--A boy, replied the landlord, of about
eleven or twelve years of age;--
but the poor creature has tasted almost as
little as his father; he does nothing but mourn and lament for him night
and day
:--He has not stirred from the bed-side these two days.

My uncle Toby laid down his knife and fork, and thrust his plate from
before him, as the landlord gave him the account; and Trim, without be-
ing ordered, took away, without saying one word, and in a few minutes
after brought him his pipe and tobacco.


--Stay in the room a little, said my uncle Toby.

Trim!--said my uncle Toby, after he lighted his pipe, and smoak'd about
a dozen whiffs
.--Trim came in front of his master, and made his bow;--
my uncle Toby smoak'd on, and said no more.--Corporal! said my uncle
Toby--the corporal made his bow.--My uncle Toby proceeded no farther,
but finished his pipe.

Trim! said my uncle Toby, I have a project in my head, as it is a bad
night, of wrapping myself up warm in my roquelaure, and paying a visit
to this poor gentleman.--Your honour's roquelaure, replied the corporal,
has not once been had on, since the night before your honour received
your wound, when we mounted guard in the trenches before the gate of
St. Nicholas;--and besides, it is so cold and rainy a night, that what with
the roquelaure, and what with the weather, 'twill be enough to give your
honour your death, and bring on your honour's torment in your groin. I
fear so, replied my uncle Toby; but I am not at rest in my mind,
Trim,
since the account the landlord has given me.--I wish I had not known so
much of this affair,--added my uncle Toby,--or that I had known more
of it:--How shall we manage it? Leave it, an't please your honour, to me,
quoth the corporal;--I'll take my hat and stick and go to the house and
reconnoitre, and act accordingly; and I will bring your honour a full ac-
count in an hour.
--Thou shalt go, Trim, said my uncle Toby, and here's a
shilling for thee to drink with his servant.--I shall get it all out of him,
said the corporal, shutting the door.

My uncle Toby filled his second pipe; and had it not been, that he now
and then wandered from the point, with considering whether it was not
full as well to have the curtain of the tennaile a straight line, as a crooked
one,--he might be said to have thought of nothing else but poor Le Fever
and his boy the whole time he smoaked it.




Volume 6. Chapter 7.


The Story of Le Fever Continued.


IT WAS NOT TILL my uncle Toby had knocked the ashes out of his third
pipe, that corporal Trim returned from the inn, and gave him the follow-
ing account.

I despaired, at first, said the corporal, of being able to bring back your
honour any kind of intelligence concerning the poor sick lieutenant--Is
he in the army, then? said my uncle Toby--He is, said the corporal--And
in what regiment? said my uncle Toby--I'll tell your honour, replied the
corporal, every thing straight forwards, as I learnt it.--Then, Trim, I'll
fill another pipe, said my uncle Toby, and not interrupt thee till thou hast
done; so sit down at thy ease, Trim, in the window-seat, and begin thy
story again. The corporal made his old bow, which generally spoke as
plain as a bow could speak it--Your honour is good
:--And having done
that, he sat down, as he was ordered,--and begun the story to my uncle
Toby over again in pretty near the same words.

I despaired at first, said the corporal, of being able to bring back any
intelligence to your honour, about the lieutenant and his son; for when I
asked where his servant was, from whom I made myself sure of knowing
every thing which was proper to be asked,--That's a right distinction,
Trim, said my uncle Toby--I was answered, an' please your honour, that
he had no servant with him;--that he had come to the inn with hired
horses, which, upon finding himself unable to proceed (to join, I suppose,
the regiment), he had dismissed the morning after he came.--If I get
better, my dear, said he, as he gave his purse to his son to pay the man,--
we can hire horses from hence.--But alas! the poor gentleman will never
get from hence, said the landlady to me,--for I heard the death-watch all
night long;--and when he dies, the youth, his son, will certainly die with
him; for he is broken-hearted already.


I was hearing this account, continued the corporal, when the youth
came into the kitchen, to order the thin toast the landlord spoke of;--but
I will do it for my father myself, said the youth.--Pray let my save you the
trouble, young gentleman, said I, taking up a fork for the purpose, and
offering him my chair to sit down upon by the fire, whilst I did it.--I
believe, Sir, said he, very modestly, I can please him best myself.--
I am
sure, said I, his honour will not like the toast the worse for being toasted
by an old soldier.--The youth took hold of my hand, and instantly burst
into tears.--Poor youth! said my uncle Toby,--he has been bred up from
an infant in the army, and the name of a soldier, Trim, sounded in his ears
like the name of a friend
;--I wish I had him here.

--I never, in the longest march, said the corporal, had so great a mind
to my dinner, as I had to cry with him for company:
--What could be the
matter with me, an' please your honour? Nothing in the world, Trim, said
my uncle Toby, blowing his nose,--but that thou art a good-natured fellow.


When I gave him the toast, continued the corporal, I thought it was
proper to tell him I was captain Shandy's servant, and that your honour
(though a stranger) was extremely concerned for his father;--and that if
there was any thing in your house or cellar--(And thou might'st have
added my purse too, said my uncle Toby),--he was heartily welcome to
it:--He made a very low bow (which was meant to your honour), but no
answer--for his heart was full--so he went up stairs with the toast;--I
warrant you, my dear, said I, as I opened the kitchen-door, your father
will be well again.--Mr. Yorick's curate was smoking a pipe by the kitchen
fire,--but said not a word good or bad to comfort the youth.--I thought
it wrong; added the corporal--I think so too, said my uncle Toby.

When the lieutenant had taken his glass of sack and toast, he felt himself
a little revived,
and sent down into the kitchen, to let me know, that in
about ten minutes he should be glad if I would step up stairs.--I believe,
said the landlord, he is going to say his prayers,--for there was a book laid
upon the chair by his bed-side, and as I shut the door, I saw his son take
up a cushion.--

I thought, said the curate, that you gentlemen of the army, Mr. Trim,
never said your prayers at all.--I heard the poor gentleman say his prayers
last night, said the landlady, very devoutly, and with my own ears, or I
could not have believed it.--Are you sure of it? replied the curate.
--A
soldier, an' please your reverence, said I, prays as often (of his own accord)
as a parson;--and when he is fighting for his king, and for his own life,
and for his honour too, he has the most reason to pray to God of any one
in the whole world--'Twas well said of thee, Trim, said my uncle Toby.--
But when a soldier, said I, an' please your reverence, has been standing for
twelve hours together in the trenches, up to his knees in cold water,--or
engaged, said I, for months together in long and dangerous marches;--
harassed, perhaps, in his rear to-day;--harassing others to-morrow;--de-
tached here;--countermanded there;--resting this night out upon his
arms;--beat up in his shirt the next;--benumbed in his joints;--perhaps
without straw in his tent to kneel on;--must say his prayers how and
when he can.--I believe, said I,--for I was piqued, quoth the corporal,
for the reputation of the army,--I believe, an' please your reverence, said
I, that when a soldier gets time to pray,--he prays as heartily as a par-
son,--though not with all his fuss and hypocrisy.--Thou shouldst not
have said that, Trim, said my uncle Toby,--for God only knows who is a
hypocrite, and who is not:--At the great and general review of us all,
corporal, at the day of judgment (and not till then)
--it will be seen who
has done their duties in this world,--and who has not; and we shall be
advanced, Trim, accordingly.--I hope we shall, said Trim.--It is in the
Scripture, said my uncle Toby; and I will shew it thee to-morrow:--In the
mean time we may depend upon it, Trim, for our comfort, said my uncle
Toby, that
God Almighty is so good and just a governor of the world, that
if we have but done our duties in it,--it will never be enquired into,
whether we have done them in a red coat or a black one:
--I hope not, said
the corporal--But go on, Trim, said my uncle Toby, with thy story.

When I went up, continued the corporal, into the lieutenant's room, which
I did not do till the expiration of the ten minutes,--he was lying in
his bed with his head raised upon his hand, with his elbow upon the
pillow, and a clean white cambrick handkerchief beside it:--The youth
was just stooping down to take up the cushion, upon which I supposed he
had been kneeling,--the book was laid upon the bed,--and, as he rose, in
taking up the cushion with one hand, he reached out his other to take it
away at the same time.--Let it remain there, my dear, said the lieutenant.

He did not offer to speak to me, till I had walked up close to his bed-
side:--If you are captain Shandy's servant, said he, you must present my
thanks to your master, with my little boy's thanks along with them, for his
courtesy to me;--if he was of Levens's--said the lieutenant.--I told him
your honour was--Then, said he, I served three campaigns with him in
Flanders, and remember him,--but 'tis most likely, as I had not the honour
of any acquaintance with him, that he knows nothing of me.--You will
tell him, however, that the person his good-nature has laid under obli-
gations to him, is one Le Fever, a lieutenant in Angus's--but he knows me
not,--said he, a second time, musing;--possibly he may my story--added
he--pray tell the captain,
I was the ensign at Breda, whose wife was most
unfortunately killed with a musket-shot, as she lay in my arms in my
tent.--I remember the story, an't please your honour, said I, very well.--
Do you so? said he, wiping his eyes with his handkerchief--then well may
I.--In saying this, he drew a little ring out of his bosom, which seemed
tied with a black ribband about his neck, and kiss'd it twice--Here, Billy,
said he,--the boy flew across the room to the bed-side,--and falling down
upon his knee, took the ring in his hand, and kissed it too,--then kissed
his father, and sat down upon the bed and wept.


I wish, said my uncle Toby, with a deep sigh,--I wish, Trim, I was asleep.

Your honour, replied the corporal, is too much concerned;--shall I pour
your honour out a glass of sack to your pipe?--Do, Trim, said my uncle
Toby.

I remember, said my uncle Toby, sighing again, the story of the ensign
and his wife, with a circumstance his modesty omitted;--and particularly
well that he, as well as she, upon some account or other (I forget what)
was universally pitied by the whole regiment;--but finish the story thou
art upon:--'Tis finished already, said the corporal,--for I could stay no
longer,--so wished his honour a good night; young Le Fever rose from off
the bed, and saw me to the bottom of the stairs; and as we went down
together, told me, they had come from Ireland, and were on their route to
join the regiment in Flanders.--But alas! said the corporal,--the lieutenant's
last day's march is over.--Then what is to become of his poor boy? cried
my uncle Toby.




Volume 6. Chapter 8.


The Story of Le Fever Continued. er Continued.


IT WAS TO MY UNCLE TOBY'S eternal honour,--though I tell it only for the
sake of
those, who, when coop'd in betwixt a natural and a positive law,
know not, for their souls, which way in the world to turn themselves
--
That notwithstanding my uncle Toby was warmly engaged at that time in
carrying on the siege of Dendermond, parallel with the allies, who pressed
theirs on so vigorously, that they scarce allowed him time to get his din-
ner--that nevertheless
he gave up Dendermond, though he had already
made a lodgment upon the counterscarp;--and bent his whole thoughts
towards the private distresses at the inn
; and except that he ordered the
garden gate to be bolted up, by which he might be said to have turned the
siege of Dendermond into a blockade,--he left Dendermond to itself--to
be relieved or not by the French king, as the French king thought good; and
only considered how he himself should relieve the poor lieutenant and his
son.

--
That kind Being, who is a friend to the friendless, shall recompence
thee for this.


Thou hast left this matter short, said my uncle Toby to the corporal, as
he was putting him to bed,--and I will
tell thee in what, Trim.--In the
first place, when thou madest an offer of my services to Le Fever,--as
sickness and travelling are both expensive, and thou knowest he was but a
poor lieutenant, with a son to subsist as well as himself out of his pay,--
that thou didst not make an offer to him of my purse; because, had he
stood in need, thou knowest, Trim, he had been as welcome to it as myself.
--Your honour knows, said the corporal, I had no orders;--True, quoth
my uncle Toby,--thou didst very right, Trim, as a soldier,--but certainly
very wrong as a man.

In the second place, for which, indeed, thou hast the same excuse, con-
tinued my uncle Toby,--when thou offeredst him whatever was in my
house,--thou shouldst have offered him my house too:--A sick brother
officer should have the best quarters, Trim, and if we had him with us,--
we could tend and look to him:--Thou art an excellent nurse thyself,
Trim,--and what with thy care of him, and the old woman's and his boy's,
and mine together, we might recruit him again at once, and set him upon
his legs.--

--In a fortnight or three weeks, added my uncle Toby, smiling,--he
might march.--He will never march; an' please your honour, in this world,
said the corporal:--He will march; said my uncle Toby, rising up from the
side of the bed, with one shoe off:--An' please your honour, said the
corporal, he will never march but to his grave:--He shall march, cried
my uncle Toby, marching the foot which had a shoe on, though without
advanceing an inch,--he shall march to his regiment.--
He cannot stand
it, said the corporal;--He shall be supported, said my uncle Toby;--He'll
drop at last, said the corporal, and what will become of his boy?--He shall
not drop, said my uncle Toby, firmly.--A-well-o'day,--do what we can
for him, said Trim, maintaining his point,--the poor soul will die:--He
shall not die, by G.., cried my uncle Toby.

--The Accusing Spirit, which flew up to heaven's chancery with the
oath, blush'd as he gave it in;--and the Recording Angel, as he wrote
it down, dropp'd a tear upon the word, and blotted it out for ever.




Volume 6. Chapter 9.



--MY UNCLE TOBY went to his bureau,--put his purse into his breeches
pocket, and having ordered the corporal to go early in the morning for
a physician,--he went to bed, and fell asleep.



Volume 6. Chapter 10.


The Story of Le Fever Continued. er Continued.


THE SUN LOOKED BRIGHT the morning after, to every eye in the village but
Le Fever's and his afflicted son's; the hand of death pressed heavy upon his
eye-lids,--and hardly could the wheel at the cistern turn round its circle
,--
when my uncle Toby, who had rose up an hour before his wonted time,
entered the lieutenant's room, and without preface or apology, sat himself
down upon the chair by the bed-side, and, independently of all modes
and customs, opened the curtain in the manner an old friend and brother
officer would have done it, and asked him how he did,--how he had
rested in the night,--what was his complaint,--where was his pain,--
and what he could do to help him:--and without giving him time to
answer any one of the enquiries, went on, and told him of the little plan
which he had been concerting with the corporal the night before for him.--

--You shall go home directly, Le Fever, said my uncle Toby, to my
house,--and we'll send for a doctor to see what's the matter,--and we'll
have an apothecary,--and the corporal shall be your nurse;--and I'll be
your servant, Le Fever.


There was a frankness in my uncle Toby,--not the effect of familiarity,
--but the cause of it,--which let you at once into his soul, and shewed
you the goodness of his nature; to this there was something in his looks,
and voice, and manner, superadded, which eternally beckoned to the unfor-
tunate to come and take shelter under him, so that before my uncle
Toby had half finished the kind offers he was making to the father, had
the son insensibly pressed up close to his knees, and had taken hold of the
breast of his coat, and was pulling it towards him.--The blood and spirits
of Le Fever, which were waxing cold and slow within him, and were retreat-
ing to their last citadel, the heart--rallied back,--the film forsook his
eyes for a moment,--he looked up wishfully in my uncle Toby's face,--
then cast a look upon his boy,--and that ligament, fine as it was,--was
never broken.--

Nature instantly ebb'd again,--the film returned to its place,--the pulse
fluttered--stopp'd--went on--throbb'd--stopp'd again--moved--stopp'd--
shall I go on?--No.




Volume 6. Chapter 11.



I AM SO IMPATIENT to return to my own story, that what remains of young
Le Fever's, that is, from this turn of his fortune, to the time my uncle Toby
recommended him for my preceptor, shall be told in a very few words in
the next chapter.--All that is necessary to be added to this chapter is as
follows.--

That my uncle Toby, with young Le Fever in his hand, attended the
poor lieutenant, as chief mourners, to his grave.

That the governor of Dendermond paid his obsequies all military honours,
--and that Yorick, not to be behind-hand--paid him all ecclesiastic--for
he buried him in his chancel:--And it appears likewise, he preached a
funeral sermon over him--I say it appears,--for it was Yorick's custom,
which I suppose a general one with those of his profession, on the
first leaf of every sermon which he composed, to chronicle down the time,
the place, and the occasion of its being preached: to this, he was ever
wont to add some short comment or stricture upon the sermon itself, seldom,
indeed, much to its credit:--For instance,
This sermon upon the Jewish
dispensation--I don't like it at all;--Though I own there is a world of
Water-Landish knowledge in it;--but 'tis all tritical, and most tritically
put together.--This is but a flimsy kind of a composition;
what was in my
head when I made it?


--N.B. The excellency of this text is, that it will suit any sermon,--and
of this sermon,--that it will suit any text.--

--For this sermon I shall be hanged,--for I have stolen the greatest part
of it. Doctor Paidagunes found me out. Set a thief to catch a thief
.--

On the back of half a dozen I find written, So, so, and no more--and
upon a couple Moderato; by which, as far as one may gather from Altieri's
Italian
dictionary,--
but mostly from the authority of a piece of green
whipcord, which seemed to have been the unravelling of Yorick's whiplash,
with which he has left us the two sermons marked Moderato, and the half
dozen of So, so, tied fast together in one bundle by themselves,--one may
safely suppose he meant pretty near the same thing.


There is but one difficulty in the way of this conjecture, which is this,
that
the moderato's are five times better than the so, so's;--show ten times
more knowledge of the human heart;--have seventy times more wit and spirit
in them;--(and, to rise properly in my climax)--discovered a thousand times
more genius;--and to crown all, are infinitely more entertaining than those
tied up with them
:--for which reason, whene'er Yorick's dramatic sermons
are offered to the world, though I shall admit but one out of the whole
number of the so, so's, I shall, nevertheless, adventure to print the
two moderato's without any sort of scruple.

What Yorick could mean by the words lentamente,--tenute,--grave,--
and sometimes adagio,--as applied to theological compositions, and with
which he has characterised some of these sermons, I dare not venture to
guess.--I am more puzzled still upon finding a l'octava alta! upon one;--
Con strepito upon the back of another;--Siciliana upon a third;--Alla
capella upon a fourth;--Con l'arco upon this;--Senza l'arco upon that.--
All I know is, that they are musical terms, and have a meaning;--and
as
he was a musical man, I will make no doubt, but that by some quaint
application of such metaphors to the compositions in hand, they impressed
very distinct ideas of their several characters upon his fancy,
--whatever
they may do upon that of others.


Amongst these, there is that particular sermon which has unaccountably led
me into this digression--The funeral sermon upon poor Le Fever, wrote out
very fairly, as if from a hasty copy.--I take notice of it the more, be-
cause it seems to have been
his favourite composition--It is upon morta-
lity; and is tied length-ways and cross-ways with a yarn thrum, and
then rolled up and twisted round with a half-sheet of dirty blue paper,
which seems to have been once the cast cover of a general review, which to
this day smells horribly of horse drugs.
--Whether these marks of humilia-
tion were designed,--I something doubt;--because at the end of the
sermon (and not at the beginning of it)--very different from his way of
treating the rest, he had wrote--

Bravo!

--Though not very offensively,--for it is at two inches, at least, and a
half's distance from, and below the concluding line of the sermon, at the
very extremity of the page, and in that right hand corner of it, which, you
know, is generally covered with your thumb; and, to do it justice,
it is
wrote besides with a crow's quill so faintly in a small Italian hand, as scarce
to solicit the eye towards the place, whether your thumb is there or not,--
so that from the manner of it, it stands half excused; and being wrote
moreover with very pale ink, diluted almost to nothing,--'tis more like a
ritratto of the shadow of vanity, than of Vanity herself--of the two; re-
sembling rather a faint thought of transient applause, secretly stirring up
in the heart of the composer; than a gross mark of it, coarsely obtruded
upon the world.


With all these extenuations, I am aware, that in publishing this, I do no
service to Yorick's character as a modest man;--but all men have their
failings! and what lessens this still farther, and almost wipes it away, is
this; that the word was struck through sometime afterwards (as appears from a
different tint of the ink) with a line quite across it in this manner, BRAVO
(crossed out)--as if he had retracted, or was ashamed of the opinion he
had once entertained of it.


These short characters of his sermons were always written, excepting in
this one instance, upon the first leaf of his sermon, which served as a cover
to it; and usually upon the inside of it, which was turned towards the text;--
but at the end of his discourse, where, perhaps, he had five or six pages, and
sometimes, perhaps, a whole score to turn himself in,--
he took a large cir-
cuit, and, indeed, a much more mettlesome one;--as if he had snatched the
occasion of unlacing himself with a few more frolicksome strokes at vice,
than the straitness of the pulpit allowed.--These, though hussar-like, they
skirmish lightly and out of all order, are still auxiliaries on the side of
virtue;--tell me then, Mynheer Vander Blonederdondergewdenstronke, why
they should not be printed together?




Volume 6. Chapter 12.



WHEN MY UNCLE TOBY had turned every thing into money, and settled all
accounts betwixt the agent of the regiment and Le Fever, and betwixt Le
Fever and all mankind,--there remained nothing more in my uncle Toby's
hands, than an old regimental coat and a sword; so that my uncle Toby
found little or no opposition from the world in taking administration. The
coat my uncle Toby gave the corporal;--Wear it, Trim, said my uncle Toby,
as long as it will hold together, for the sake of the poor lieutenant--And
this,--said my uncle Toby, taking up the sword in his hand, and drawing it
out of the scabbard as he spoke--and this, Le Fever, I'll save for thee,--'tis
all the fortune, continued my uncle Toby, hanging it up upon a crook, and
pointing to it,--'tis all the fortune, my dear Le Fever, which God has left
thee; but if he has given thee a heart to fight thy way with it in the world,--
and thou doest it like a man of honour,--'tis enough for us.

As soon as
my uncle Toby had laid a foundation, and taught him to
inscribe a regular polygon in a circle
, he sent him to a public school,
where, excepting Whitsontide and Christmas, at which times the corporal
was punctually dispatched for him,--he remained to the spring of the
year, seventeen; when the stories of the emperor's sending his army into
Hungary against the Turks,
kindling a spark of fire in his bosom, he left
his Greek and Latin without leave, and throwing himself upon his knees
before my uncle Toby, begged his father's sword, and my uncle Toby's
leave along with it, to go and try his fortune under Eugene.--Twice did
my uncle Toby forget his wound and cry out, Le Fever! I will go with thee,
and thou shalt fight beside me--And twice he laid his hand upon his
groin, and hung down his head in sorrow and disconsolation.--


My uncle Toby took down the sword from the crook, where it had hung
untouched ever since the lieutenant's death, and delivered it to the cor-
poral to brighten up;--and having detained Le Fever a single fortnight to
equip him, and contract for his passage to Leghorn,--he put the sword
into his hand.--
If thou art brave, Le Fever, said my uncle Toby, this will
not fail thee,--but Fortune, said he (musing a little),--Fortune may--
And if she does,--added my uncle Toby, embracing him, come back again
to me, Le Fever, and we will shape thee another course.

The greatest injury could not have oppressed the heart of Le Fever more
than my uncle Toby's paternal kindness;--he parted from my uncle Toby,
as the best of sons from the best of fathers--both dropped tears--and as
my uncle Toby gave him his last kiss, he slipped sixty guineas, tied up in
an old purse of his father's, in which was his mother's ring, into his hand,--
and bid God bless him.




Volume 6. Chapter 13.



LE FEVER GOT UP TO the Imperial army just time enough to try what metal
his sword was made of, at the defeat of the Turks before Belgrade; but a
series of unmerited mischances had pursued him from that moment, and
trod close upon his heels for four years together after; he had withstood
these buffetings to the last, till sickness overtook him
at Marseilles, from
whence he wrote my uncle Toby word, he had lost his time, his services,
his health, and, in short, every thing but his sword;--and was waiting for
the first ship to return back to him.

As this letter came to hand about six weeks before Susannah's accident,
Le Fever was hourly expected; and was uppermost in my uncle Toby's
mind all the time my father was giving him and Yorick a description of
what kind of a person he would chuse for a preceptor to me: but as my
uncle Toby thought my father at first somewhat fanciful in the accomp-
lishments he required, he forbore mentioning Le Fever's name,--till
the
character, by Yorick's interposition, ending unexpectedly, in one, who
should be gentle-tempered, and generous, and good, it impressed the i-
mage of Le Fever, and his interest, upon my uncle Toby so forcibly
, he rose
instantly off his chair; and laying down his pipe, in order to take hold of
both my father's hands--I beg, brother Shandy, said my uncle Toby, I
may recommend poor Le Fever's son to you--I beseech you do, added
Yorick--He has a good heart, said my uncle Toby--And a brave one too,
an' please your honour, said the corporal.

--
The best hearts, Trim, are ever the bravest, replied my uncle Toby.--
And the greatest cowards, an' please your honour, in our regiment, were
the greatest rascals
in it.--There was serjeant Kumber, and ensign--
--We'll talk of them, said my father, another time.



Volume 6. Chapter 14.



WHAT A JOVIAL and a merry world would this be, may it please your wor-
ships, but for that inextricable labyrinth of debts, cares, woes, want,
grief, discontent, melancholy, large jointures, impositions, and lies!


Doctor Slop, like a son of a w..., as my father called him for it,--to
exalt himself,--debased me to death,--and made ten thousand times more
of Susannah's accident, than there was any grounds for; so that in a week's
time, or less, it was in every body's mouth, That poor Master Shandy...
entirely.--And Fame, who loves to double every thing,--in three days
more, had sworn, positively she saw it,--and all the world, as usual, gave
credit to her evidence--'That the nursery window had not only...;--but
that...'s also.'

Could the world have been sued like a Body-Corporate,--my father
had brought an action upon the case, and trounced it sufficiently; but to
fall foul of individuals about it--as every soul who had mentioned the
affair, did it with the greatest pity imaginable;--'twas like flying in the
very face of his best friends:--And yet to acquiesce under the report, in
silence--was to acknowledge it openly,--at least in the opinion of one
half of the world; and to make a bustle again, in contradicting it,--was to
confirm it as strongly in the opinion of the other half.--


--Was ever poor devil of a country gentleman so hampered? said my
father.


I would shew him publickly, said my uncle Toby, at the market cross.
--'Twill have no effect, said my father.



Volume 6. Chapter 15.



--I'LL PUT HIM, however, into breeches, said my father,--let the world say
what it will.



Volume 6. Chapter 16.



THERE ARE A THOUSAND RESOLUTIONS, Sir, both in church and state, as
well as in matters, Madam, of a more private concern;--which, though they
have
carried all the appearance in the world of being taken, and entered
upon in a hasty, hare-brained, and unadvised manner
, were, notwithstanding
this, (and could you or I have got into the cabinet, or stood behind the
curtain, we should have found it was so)
weighed, poized, and perpended--
argued upon--canvassed through--entered into, and examined on all sides
with so much coolness, that the Goddess of Coolness herself (I do not
take upon me to prove her existence) could neither have wished it, or
done it better.


Of the number of these was
my father's resolution of putting me into
breeches; which, though determined at once,--in a kind of huff, and a
defiance of all mankind, had, nevertheless, been pro'd and conn'd, and
judicially talked over betwixt him and my mother about a month before,
in two several beds of justice
, which my father had held for that purpose.
I shall explain the nature of these beds of justice in my next chapter; and
in the chapter following that, you shall step with me, Madam, behind the
curtain, only to hear in what kind of manner my father and my mother
debated between themselves, this affair of the breeches,--from which you
may form an idea, how they debated all lesser matters.




Volume 6. Chapter 17.



THE ANCIENT GOTHS of Germany, who (the learned Cluverius is positive)
were first seated in the country between the Vistula and the Oder, and
who afterwards incorporated the Herculi, the Bugians, and some other
Vandallick clans to 'em--
had all of them a wise custom of debating every
thing of importance to their state, twice, that is,--once drunk, and once
sober:--Drunk--that their councils might not want vigour;--and sober--
that they might not want discretion.


Now my father being entirely a water-drinker,--was a long time gravelled
almost to death
, in turning this as much to his advantage, as he did
every other thing which the ancients did or said; and it was not till the
seventh year of his marriage,
after a thousand fruitless experiments and
devices, that he hit upon an expedient which answered the purpose;--and
that was, when any difficult and momentous point was to be settled in the
family, which required great sobriety, and great spirit too
, in its deter-
mination,--he fixed and set apart the first Sunday night in the month, and
the Saturday night which immediately preceded it, to argue it over, in bed
with my mother: By which contrivance, if you consider, Sir, with yourself,
….
These my father, humorously enough, called his beds of justice;--for
from the two different counsels taken in these two different humours, a
middle one was generally found out which touched the point of wisdom
as well, as if he had got drunk and sober a hundred times.


I must not be made a secret of to the world, that this answers full as well
in literary discussions, as either in military or conjugal; but it is not every
author that can try the experiment as the Goths and Vandals did it--or, if
he can, may it be always for his body's health; and to do it, as my father
did it,--am I sure it would be always for his soul's.


My way is this:--

In all nice and ticklish discussions,--(of which, heaven knows, there are
but too many in my book)--where I find I cannot take a step without the
danger of having either their worships or their reverences upon my back--
I write one-half full,--and t'other fasting;--or write it all full,--and
correct it fasting;--or write it fasting,--and correct it full, for they
all come to the same thing:
--So that with a less variation from my father's
plan, than my father's from the Gothick--I feel myself upon a par with him
in his first bed of justice,--and no way inferior to him in his second.--
These different and almost irreconcileable effects, flow uniformly from
the wise and wonderful mechanism of nature,--of which,--be her's the
honour.--All that we can do, is to turn and work the machine to the
improvement and better manufactory of the arts and sciences.--

Now, when I write full,--I write as if I was never to write fasting again
as long as I live;--that is, I write free from the cares as well as the
terrors of the world.--I count not the number of my scars,--nor does my fancy
go forth into dark entries and bye-corners to ante-date my stabs.
--In a word,
my pen takes its course; and I write on as much from the fulness of my
heart, as my stomach.--

But when, an' please your honours, I indite fasting, 'tis a different history.

--I pay the world all possible attention and respect,--and
have as great a
share (whilst it lasts) of that under strapping virtue of discretion as
the best of you.
--So that betwixt both, I write a careless kind of a civil,
nonsensical, good-humoured Shandean book, which will do all your hearts
good--

--And all your heads too,--provided you understand it.




Volume 6. Chapter 17.



WE SHOULD BEGIN, said my father, turning himself half round in bed, and
shifting his pillow a little towards my mother's, as he opened the debate--
We should begin to think, Mrs. Shandy, of putting this boy into breeches.--


We should so,--said my mother.--We defer it, my dear, quoth my father,
shamefully.

--I think we do, Mr. Shandy,--said my mother.

--Not but the child looks extremely well, said my father, in his vests
and tunicks.--

--He does look very well in them,--replied my mother.--

--And for that reason it would be almost a sin, added my father, to take
him out of 'em.--

--It would so,--said my mother:--
But indeed he is growing a very tall
lad,--rejoined my father.

--He is very tall for his age, indeed,--said my mother.--


--I can not (making two syllables of it) imagine, quoth my father, who
the deuce he takes after.--

I cannot conceive, for my life, said my mother.--

Humph!--said my father.

(The dialogue ceased for a moment.)

--I am very short myself,--continued my father gravely.

You are very short, Mr. Shandy,--said my mother.

Humph! quoth my father to himself, a second time: in muttering which,
he plucked his pillow a little further from my mother's,--and turning
about again, there was an end of the debate for three minutes and a half.

--When he gets these breeches made, cried my father in a higher tone,
he'll look like a beast in 'em.


He will be very awkward in them at first, replied my mother.

--And 'twill be lucky, if that's the worst on't, added my father.

It will be very lucky, answered my mother.

I suppose, replied my father,--making some pause first,--he'll be
exactly like other people's children.--

Exactly, said my mother.--

--Though I shall be sorry for that, added my father: and so the debate
stopp'd again.--

--They should be of leather, said my father, turning him about again.--

They will last him, said my mother, the longest.

But he can have no linings to 'em, replied my father.--

He cannot, said my mother.


'Twere better to have them of fustian, quoth my father.

Nothing can be better, quoth my mother.--

--Except dimity,--replied my father:--'Tis best of all,--replied my
mother.

--One must not give him his death, however,--interrupted my father.
By no means, said my mother:--and so the dialogue stood still again.
I am resolved, however, quoth my father, breaking silence the fourth
time, he shall have no pockets in them.--


--There is no occasion for any, said my mother.--

I mean in his coat and waistcoat,--cried my father.

--I mean so too,--replied my mother.

--Though if he gets a gig or top--Poor souls! it is a crown and a sceptre
to them
,--they should have where to secure it.--

Order it as you please, Mr. Shandy, replied my mother.--

--
But don't you think it right? added my father, pressing the point
home to her.

Perfectly, said my mother, if it pleases you, Mr. Shandy.--

--There's for you! cried my father, losing his temper--Pleases me!--
You never will distinguish, Mrs. Shandy, nor shall I ever teach you to do
it, betwixt a point of pleasure and a point of convenience.--This was on
the Sunday night:--and further this chapter sayeth not.




Volume 6. Chapter 19.



AFTER MY FATHER had debated the affair of the breeches with my mother,--
he consulted Albertus Rubenius upon it; and Albertus Rubenius used my
father ten times worse in the consultation (if possible) than even my
father had used my mother: For as Rubenius had wrote a quarto express, De
re Vestiaria Veterum,--it was Rubenius's business to have given my father
some lights.--On the contrary,
my father might as well have thought of
extracting the seven cardinal virtues out of a long beard,--as of extract-
ing a single word out of Rubenius upon the subject.


Upon every other article of ancient dress, Rubenius was very communica-
tive to my father;--gave him a full satisfactory account of


The Toga, or loose gown.
The Chlamys.
The Ephod.
The Tunica, or Jacket.
The Synthesis.
The Paenula.
The Lacema, with its Cucullus.
The Paludamentum.
The Praetexta.
The Sagum, or soldier's jerkin.

The Trabea: of which, according to Suetonius, there was three kinds.--

--But what are all these to the breeches? said my father.

Rubenius threw him down upon the counter all kinds of shoes which
had been in fashion with the Romans.--
There was,

The open shoe.
The close shoe.
The slip shoe.
The wooden shoe.
The soc.
The buskin.

And The military shoe with hobnails in it, which Juvenal takes notice of.

There were, The clogs.
The pattins.
The pantoufles.
The brogues.
The sandals, with latchets to them.
There was,
The felt shoe.
The linen shoe.
The laced shoe.
The braided shoe.
The calceus incisus.
And The calceus rostratus.


Rubenius shewed my father how well they all fitted,--in what manner they
laced on,--with what points, straps, thongs, latchets, ribbands, jaggs,
and ends.--


--But I want to be informed about the breeches, said my father.

Albertus Rubenius informed my father that the Romans manufactured
stuffs of various fabrics,--some plain,--some striped,--others diapered
throughout the whole contexture of the wool, with silk and gold--
That
linen did not begin to be in common use till towards the declension of
the empire, when the Egyptians coming to settle amongst them, brought it
into vogue.


--That persons of quality and fortune distinguished themselves by the
fineness and whiteness of their clothes; which colour (next to purple, which
was appropriated to the great offices) they most affected, and wore on
their birth-days and public rejoicings.--That it appeared from the best
historians of those times, that they frequently sent their clothes to the
fuller, to be clean'd and whitened:--but that the inferior people, to avoid
that expence, generally wore brown clothes, and of a something coarser
texture,--till towards the beginning of Augustus's reign, when the slave
dressed like his master, and almost every distinction of habiliment was
lost, but the Latus Clavus.


And what was the Latus Clavus? said my father.

Rubenius told him, that
the point was still litigating amongst the learned:--
That Egnatius, Sigonius, Bossius Ticinensis, Bayfius Budaeus, Salmasius,
Lipsius, Lazius, Isaac Casaubon, and Joseph Scaliger, all differed from each
other,--and he from them: That some took it to be the button,--some the
coat itself,--others only the colour of it;--That the great Bayfuis in his
Wardrobe of the Ancients, chap. 12--honestly said, he knew not what it
was,--whether a tibula,--a stud,--a button,--a loop,--a buckle,--or clasps
and keepers.--

--My father lost the horse, but not the saddle--They are hooks and
eyes, said my father--and with hooks and eyes he ordered my breeches to
be made.




Volume 6. Chapter 20.



WE ARE NOW going to enter upon a new scene of events.--

--Leave we then the breeches in the taylor's hands, with my father standing
over him with his cane, reading him as he sat at work a lecture upon the
latus clavus, and pointing to the precise part of the waistband, where
he was determined to have it sewed on.--

Leave we my mother--(truest of all the Poco-curante's of her sex!)--
careless about it, as about every thing else in the world which concerned
her;--that is,--indifferent whether it was done this way or that,--provided
it was but done at all.--

Leave we Slop likewise to the full profits of all my dishonours.--

Leave we poor Le Fever to recover, and get home from Marseilles as he
can.--And last of all,--because the hardest of all--


Let us leave, if possible, myself:--But 'tis impossible,--I must go along
with you to the end of the work.




Volume 6. Chapter 21.



IF THE READER has not a clear conception of the rood and the half of ground
which lay at the bottom of my uncle Toby's kitchen-garden, and which
was the scene of so many of his delicious hours,--the fault is not in me,--
but in his imagination;--for I am sure I gave him so minute a description,
I was almost ashamed of it.


When Fate was looking forwards one afternoon, into the great transactions
of future times,--and recollected for what purposes this little plot,
by a decree fast bound down in iron, had been destined,--she gave a nod
to Nature,--'twas enough--Nature threw half a spade full of her kindliest
compost upon it, with just so much clay in it, as to retain the forms of
angles and indentings,--and so little of it too, as not to cling to the spade,
and render works of so much glory, nasty in foul weather.


My uncle Toby came down, as the reader has been informed, with plans along
with him, of almost every fortified town in Italy and Flanders; so let the
duke of Marlborough, or the allies, have set down before what town they
pleased, my uncle Toby was prepared for them.

His way, which was the simplest one in the world, was this; as soon as
ever a town was invested
--(but sooner when the design was known) to
take the plan of it (let it be what town it would), and
enlarge it upon a
scale to the exact size of his bowling-green; upon the surface of which, by
means of a large role of packthread, and a number of small piquets driven
into the ground, at the several angles and redans, he transferred the lines
from his paper; then taking the profile of the place, with its works, to
determine the depths and slopes of the ditches,--the talus of the glacis,
and the precise height of the several banquets, parapets, &c.--he set the
corporal to work--and sweetly went it on:--The nature of the soil,--the
nature of the work itself,--and above all, the good-nature of my uncle
Toby sitting by from morning to night, and chatting kindly with the cor-
poral upon past-done deeds,--left Labour little else but the ceremony of
the name.

When the place was finished in this manner, and put into a proper posture
of defence,--it was invested,--and my uncle Toby and the corporal began to
run their first parallel.--I beg I may not be interrupted in my story, by
being told, That the first parallel should be at least three hundred
toises distant from the main body of the place,--and that I have not left
a single inch for it;--for
my uncle Toby took the liberty of incroaching
upon his kitchen-garden, for the sake of enlarging his works on the bowl-
ing-green, and for that reason generally ran his first and second parallels
betwixt two rows of his cabbages and his cauliflowers;
the conveniences
and inconveniences of which will be considered at large in the history of
my uncle Toby's and the corporal's campaigns, of which, this I'm now writ-
ing is but a sketch, and will be finished, if I conjecture right, in three
pages (but there is no guessing)--The campaigns themselves will take up
as many books; and therefore
I apprehend it would be hanging too great a
weight of one kind of matter in so flimsy a performance as this, to rhap-
sodize them, as I once intended, into the body of the work
--surely they had
better be printed apart,--we'll consider the affair--so take the following
sketch of them in the mean time.




Volume 6. Chapter 22.



WHEN THE TOWN, with its works, was finished, my uncle Toby and the
corporal began to run their first parallel--not at random, or any how--
but from the same points and distances the allies had begun to run theirs;
and regulating their approaches and attacks,
by the accounts my uncle
Toby received from the daily papers,--they went on, during the whole
siege, step by step with the allies.

When the duke of Marlborough made a lodgment,--my uncle Toby
made a lodgment too.--And when the face of a bastion was battered down,
or a defence ruined,--the corporal took his mattock and did as much,--
and so on;--gaining ground, and making themselves masters of the works
one after another, till the town fell into their hands.


To one who took pleasure in the happy state of others,--there could
not have been a greater sight in world, than on a post morning, in which
a practicable breach had been made by the duke of Marlborough, in the
main body of the place,--to have stood behind the horn-beam hedge,
and observed the spirit with which my uncle Toby, with Trim behind him,
sallied forth;--the one with the Gazette in his hand,--the other with a
spade on his shoulder to execute the contents.--What an honest triumph
in my uncle Toby's looks as he marched up to the ramparts! What intense
pleasure swimming in his eye as he stood over the corporal, reading the
paragraph ten times over to him, as he was at work, lest, peradventure, he
should make the breach an inch too wide,--or leave it an inch too narrow.
--But when the chamade was beat, and the corporal helped my uncle
up it, and followed with the colours in his hand, to fix them upon the
ramparts--Heaven! Earth! Sea!--but what avails apostrophes?--with all
your elements, wet or dry, ye never compounded so intoxicating a draught.

In this track of happiness for many years, without one interruption to
it, except now and then when the wind continued to blow due west for a
week or ten days together, which detained the Flanders mail, and kept
them so long in torture,--but still 'twas the torture of the happy--In this
track, I say, did my uncle Toby and Trim move for many years, every year
of which, and sometimes every month, from the invention of either the
one or the other of them, adding some new conceit or quirk of improve-
ment to their operations, which always opened fresh springs of delight
in carrying them on.


The first year's campaign was carried on from beginning to end, in the
plain and simple method I've related.

In the second year, in which my uncle Toby took Liege and Ruremond,
he thought he might afford the expence of four handsome draw-bridges;
of two of which I have given an exact description in the former part of my
work.

At the latter end of the same year he added a couple of gates with port-
cullises:--These last were converted afterwards into orgues, as the better
thing; and during the winter of the same year, my uncle Toby, instead of a
new suit of clothes, which he always had at Christmas, treated himself with
a handsome sentry-box, to stand at the corner of the bowling-green, betwixt
which point and the foot of the glacis, there was left a little kind of an
esplanade for him and the corporal to confer and hold councils of war upon.
--The sentry-box was in case of rain.

All these were painted white three times over the ensuing spring, which
enabled my uncle Toby to take the field with great splendour.

My father would often say to Yorick, that
if any mortal in the whole
universe had done such a thing except his brother Toby, it would have been
looked upon by the world as one of the most refined satires upon the parade
and prancing manner in which Lewis XIV. from the beginning of the war,
but particularly that very year, had taken the field--But 'tis not my brother
Toby's nature, kind soul! my father would add, to insult any one.


--But let us go on.



Volume 6 Chapter 23.



I MUST OBSERVE, that although in the first year's campaign, the word town
is often mentioned,--yet there was no town at that time within the poly-
gon; that addition was not made till the summer following the spring in
which the bridges and sentry-box were painted, which was the third year
of my uncle Toby's campaigns,--when upon his taking Amberg, Bonn,
and Rhinberg, and Huy and Limbourg, one after another, a thought came
into the corporal's head, that to talk of taking so many towns, without one
Town to shew for it,--was a very nonsensical way of going to work, and
so proposed to my uncle Toby, that they should have a little model of a
town built for them,--to be run up together of slit deals, and then painted,
and clapped within the interior polygon to serve for all.


My uncle Toby felt the good of the project instantly, and instantly agreed
to it, but with the addition of two singular improvements, of which he
was almost as proud as if he had been the original inventor of the project
itself.

The one was, to have the town built exactly in the style of those of
which it was most likely to be the representative:--with grated windows,
and the gable ends of the houses, facing the streets, &c. &c.--as those in
Ghent and Bruges, and the rest of the towns in Brabant and Flanders.

The other was,
not to have the houses run up together, as the corporal
proposed, but to have every house independent, to hook on, or off, so as
to form into the plan of whatever town they pleased. This was put directly
into hand, and many and many a look of mutual congratulation was exchang-
ed between my uncle Toby and the corporal, as the carpenter did the work.

--It answered prodigiously the next summer--the town was a perfect
Proteus
--It was Landen, and Trerebach, and Santvliet, and Drusen, and
Hagenau,--and then it was Ostend and Menin, and Aeth and Dendermond.

--Surely never did any Town act so many parts, since Sodom and
Gomorrah
, as my uncle Toby's town did.

In the fourth year,
my uncle Toby thinking a town looked foolishly
without a church, added a very fine one with a steeple.--Trim was for
having bells in it;--my uncle Toby said, the metal had better be cast into
cannon.


This led the way the next campaign for half a dozen brass field-pieces,
to be planted three and three on each side of my uncle Toby's sentry-box;
and in a short time, these led the way for a train of somewhat larger,--and
so on--(as must always be the case in hobby-horsical affairs) from pieces
of half an inch bore, till it came at last to my father's jack boots.
The next year, which was that in which Lisle was besieged, and at the
close of which both Ghent and Bruges fell into our hands,--
my uncle
Toby was sadly put to it for proper ammunition;--I say proper ammuni-
tion--because his great artillery would not bear powder; and 'twas well
for the Shandy family they would not--For so full were the papers, from
the beginning to the end of the siege, of the incessant firings kept up by
the besiegers,--and so heated was my uncle Toby's imagination with the
accounts of them, that he had infallibly shot away all his estate.

Something therefore was wanting as a succedaneum, especially in one
or two of the more violent paroxysms of the siege, to keep up something
like a continual firing in the imagination,--and this something, the cor-
poral, whose principal strength lay in invention, supplied by an entire
new system of battering of his own,--without which, this had been object-
ed to by military critics, to the end of the world, as one of the great
desiderata of my uncle Toby's apparatus.


This will not be explained the worse, for setting off, as I generally do, at
a little distance from the subject.




Volume 6 Chapter 24



WITH TWO OR THREE OTHER TRINKETS, small in themselves, but of great
regard, which poor Tom, the corporal's unfortunate brother, had sent him
over, with the account of his marriage with the Jew's widow--there was
A Montero-cap and two Turkish tobacco-pipes.

The Montero-cap I shall describe by and bye.--
The Turkish tobaccopipes
had nothing particular in them, they were fitted up and ornamented as
usual, with flexible tubes of Morocco leather and gold wire, and mounted
at their ends, the one of them with ivory,--the other with black ebony,
tipp'd with silver.

My father, who saw all things in lights different from the rest of the
world, would say to the corporal, that he ought to look upon these two
presents more as tokens of his brother's nicety, than his affection.--Tom
did not care, Trim, he would say, to put on the cap, or to smoke in the
tobacco-pipe of a Jew
.--God bless your honour, the corporal would say
(giving a strong reason to the contrary)--how can that be?

The Montero-cap was scarlet, of a superfine Spanish cloth, dyed in grain,
and mounted all round with fur, except about four inches in the front,
which was faced with a light blue, slightly embroidered,--and seemed to
have been the property of a Portuguese quarter-master, not of foot, but of
horse, as the word denotes.

The corporal was not a little proud of it, as well for its own sake, as the
sake of the giver, so seldom or never put it on but upon Gala-days; and yet
never was a Montero-cap put to so many uses; for in all controverted
points, whether military or culinary, provided the corporal was sure he
was in the right,--it was either his oath,--his wager,--or his gift.

--'Twas his gift in the present case.

I'll be bound, said the corporal, speaking to himself, to give away my
Montero-cap to the first beggar who comes to the door, if I do not man-
age this matter to his honour's satisfaction.


The completion was no further off, than the very next morning; which
was that of the storm of the counterscarp betwixt the Lower Deule, to the
right, and the gate St. Andrew,--and on the left, between St. Magdalen's
and the river.

As this was the most memorable attack in the whole war,--the most
gallant and obstinate on both sides,--and I must add the most bloody
too, for it cost the allies themselves that morning above eleven hundred
men,--my uncle Toby prepared himself for it with a more than ordinary
solemnity.

The eve which preceded, as my uncle Toby went to bed, he ordered his
ramallie wig, which had laid inside out for many years in the corner of an
old campaigning trunk, which stood by his bedside, to be taken out and
laid upon the lid of it, ready for the morning;--and the very first thing he
did in his shirt, when he had stepped out of bed, my uncle Toby, after he
had turned the rough side outwards,--put it on:--This done, he proceeded
next to his breeches, and having buttoned the waist-band, he forthwith
buckled on his sword-belt, and had got his sword half way in,--when he
considered he should want shaving, and that it would be very inconveni-
ent doing it with his sword on,--so took it off:--In essaying to put
on his regimental coat and waistcoat, my uncle Toby found the same
objection in his wig,--so that went off too:
--So that what with one
thing and what with another, as always falls out when a man is in the
most haste,--'twas ten o'clock, which was half an hour later than his
usual time, before my uncle Toby sallied out.



Volume 6 Chapter 25.



MY UNCLE TOBY had scarce turned the corner of his yew hedge, which
separated his kitchen-garden from his bowling-green, when he perceived
the corporal had begun the attack without him.--

Let me stop and give you a picture of the corporal's apparatus; and of
the corporal himself in the height of his attack, just as it struck my
uncle Toby, as he turned towards the sentry-box, where the corporal was
at work,--for in nature there is not such another,--nor can any combi-
nation of all that is grotesque and whimsical in her works produce its
equal.

The corporal-
-

--Tread lightly on his ashes, ye men of genius,--for he was your kinsman:

Weed his grave clean, ye men of goodness,--for he was your brother.--

Oh corporal! had I thee, but now,--now, that I am able to give thee a
dinner and protection,--how would I cherish thee! thou should'st wear
thy Montero-cap every hour of the day, and every day of the week.--and
when it was worn out, I would purchase thee a couple like it:--But alas!
alas! alas! now that I can do this in spite of their reverences--the occasion
is lost--for thou art gone;--
thy genius fled up to the stars from whence it
came;--and that warm heart of thine, with all its generous and open vessels,
compressed into a clod of the valley!

--But what--what is this, to that future and dreaded page, where I
look towards the velvet pall, decorated with the military ensigns of thy
master--the first--the foremost of created beings;--where, I shall see thee,
faithful servant! laying his sword and scabbard with a trembling hand
across his coffin, and then returning pale as ashes to the door, to take his
mourning horse by the bridle, to follow his hearse, as he directed thee;--
where--all my father's systems shall be baffled by his sorrows; and, in
spite of his philosophy, I shall behold him, as he inspects the lackered
plate, twice taking his spectacles from off his nose, to wipe away the dew
which nature has shed upon them--When I see him cast in the rosemary
with an air of disconsolation, which cries through my ears,--O Toby! in
what corner of the world shall I seek thy fellow?

--Gracious powers! which erst have opened the lips of the dumb in his
distress, and made the tongue of the stammerer speak plain--when I shall
arrive at this dreaded page, deal not with me, then, with a stinted hand.




Volume 6, Chapter 26.



THE CORPORAL, who the night before had resolved in his mind to supply
the grand desideratum, of keeping up something like an incessant firing
upon the enemy during the heat of the attack,--had no further idea in his
fancy at that time, than a contrivance of smoking tobacco against the
town, out of one of my uncle Toby's six field-pieces, which were planted
on each side of his sentry-box; the means of effecting which occurring to
his fancy at the same time, though he had pledged his cap, he thought it in
no danger from the miscarriage of his projects.


Upon turning it this way, and that, a little in his mind, he soon began to
find out, that by means of his two Turkish tobacco-pipes, with the supple-
ment of three smaller tubes of wash-leather at each of their lower ends, to
be tagg'd by the same number of tin-pipes fitted to the touch-holes, and
sealed with clay next the cannon, and then tied hermetically with waxed
silk at their several insertions into the Morocco tube,--he should be able
to fire the six field-pieces all together, and with the same ease as to fire
one.--

--Let no man say from what taggs and jaggs hints may not be cut out
for the advancement of human knowledge. Let no man, who has read my
father's first and second beds of justice, ever rise up and say again, from
collision of what kinds of bodies light may or may not be struck out, to
carry the arts and sciences up to perfection.--Heaven! thou knowest how
I love them;--thou knowest the secrets of my heart, and that I would this
moment give my shirt--Thou art a fool, Shandy, says Eugenius, for thou
hast but a dozen in the world,--and 'twill break thy set.--

No matter for that, Eugenius; I would give the shirt off my back to be
burnt into tinder, were it only to satisfy one feverish enquirer, how many
sparks at one good stroke, a good flint and steel could strike into the tail of
it.--Think ye not that in striking these in,--he might, per-adventure,
strike something out? as sure as a gun.--


--But this project, by the bye.

The corporal sat up the best part of the night, in bringing his to perfect-
ion; and having made a sufficient proof of his cannon, with charging them
to the top with tobacco,--he went with contentment to bed.




Volume 6, Chapter 27.



THE CORPORAL had slipped out about ten minutes before my uncle Toby,
in order to fix his apparatus, and just give the enemy a shot or two before
my uncle Toby came.

He had drawn the six field-pieces for this end, all close up together in
front of my uncle Toby's sentry-box, leaving only an interval of about a
yard and a half betwixt the three, on the right and left, for the convenience
of charging, &c.--and the sake possibly of two batteries, which he might
think double the honour of one.

In the rear and facing this opening, with his back to the door of the
sentry-box, for fear of being flanked, had the corporal wisely taken his
post:--He held the ivory pipe, appertaining to the battery on the right,
betwixt the finger and thumb of his right hand,--and the ebony pipe
tipp'd with silver, which appertained to the battery on the left, betwixt the
finger and thumb of the other--and with his right knee fixed firm upon
the ground, as if in the front rank of his platoon, was the corporal, with
his Montero-cap upon his head, furiously playing off his two cross bat-
teries at the same time against the counter-guard, which faced the
counterscarp, where the attack was to be made that morning.
His first
intention, as I said, was no more than giving the enemy a single puff or
two;--but the pleasure of the puffs, as well as the puffing, had insensibly
got hold of the corporal, and drawn him on from puff to puff, into the
very height of the attack
, by the time my uncle Toby joined him.

'Twas well for my father, that my uncle Toby had not his will to make
that day.




Volume 6, Chapter 28.



MY UNCLE TOBY took the ivory pipe out of the corporal's hand,--looked
at it for half a minute, and returned it.

In less than two minutes, my uncle Toby took the pipe from the corporal
again, and raised it half way to his mouth--then hastily gave it back a
second time.

The corporal redoubled the attack,--my uncle Toby smiled,--then
looked grave,--then smiled for a moment,--then looked serious for a
long time;--Give me hold of the ivory pipe, Trim, said my uncle Toby--
my uncle Toby put it to his lips,--drew it back directly,--gave a peep over
the horn-beam hedge;--never did my uncle Toby's mouth water so much
for a pipe in his life.
--My uncle Toby retired into the sentry-box with the
pipe in his hand.--

--Dear uncle Toby! don't go into the sentry-box with the pipe,--there's
no trusting a man's self with such a thing in such a corner.




Volume 6, Chapter 29.



I BEG THE READER will assist me here, to wheel off my uncle Toby's ord-
nance behind the scenes,--to remove his sentry-box, and clear the theatre,
if possible, of horn-works and half moons, and get the rest of his
military apparatus out of the way;--that done, my dear friend Garrick,
we'll snuff the candles bright,--sweep the stage with a new broom,--
draw up the curtain, and exhibit my uncle Toby dressed in a new character,
throughout which the world can have no idea how he will act: and yet,
if pity be a-kin to love,--and bravery no alien to it, you have seen enough
of my uncle Toby in these, to trace these family likenesses, betwixt the two
passions (in case there is one) to your heart's content.

Vain science! thou assistest us in no case of this kind--and thou puzzlest
us in every one.

There was, Madam, in my uncle Toby, a singleness of heart which misled
him so far out of the little serpentine tracks in which things of this
nature usually go on; you can--you can have no conception of it: with
this, there was a plainness and simplicity of thinking, with such an
unmistrusting ignorance of the plies and foldings of the heart of woman;--
and so naked and defenceless did he stand before you, (when a siege was
out of his head,) that you might have stood behind any one of your
serpentine walks, and shot my uncle Toby ten times in a day, through his
liver, if nine times in a day, Madam, had not served your purpose
.

With all this, Madam,--and what confounded every thing as much on
the other hand, my uncle Toby had
that unparalleled modesty of nature I
once told you of, and which, by the bye, stood eternal sentry upon his
feelings, that you might as soon--But where am I going? these reflections
crowd in upon me ten pages at least too soon, and take up that time,
which I ought to bestow upon facts.




Volume 6, Chapter 30.



OF the few legitimate sons of Adam whose breasts never felt what the
sting of love was,--(maintaining first, all mysogynists to be
bastards,)--the greatest heroes of ancient and modern story have carried
off amongst them nine parts in ten of the honour;
and I wish for their
sakes I had the key of my study, out of my draw-well, only for five
minutes, to tell you their names--recollect them I cannot--so be content
to accept of these, for the present, in their stead.

There was the great king Aldrovandus, and Bosphorus, and
Cappadocius, and Dardanus, and Pontus, and Asius,--to say
nothing of the iron-hearted Charles the XIIth, whom the Countess of
K***** herself could make nothing of.--There was Babylonicus, and
Mediterraneus, and Polixenes, and Persicus, and Prusicus, not
one of whom (except Cappadocius and Pontus, who were both a little
suspected)
ever once bowed down his breast to the goddess--The truth
is, they had all of them something else to do--and so had my uncle
Toby--till Fate--till Fate I say, envying his name the glory of being
handed down to posterity with Aldrovandus's and the rest,--she basely
patched up the peace of Utrecht.


--Believe me, Sirs, 'twas the worst deed she did that year.




Volume 6, Chapter 31.



AMONGST the many ill consequences of the treaty of Utrecht, it
was within a point of giving my uncle Toby a surfeit of sieges; and
though he recovered his appetite afterwards
, yet Calais itself left
not a deeper scar in Mary's heart, than Utrecht upon my uncle
Toby's. To the end of his life he never could hear Utrecht mention-
ed upon any account whatever,--or so much as read an article of
news extracted out of the Utrecht Gazette, without fetching a sigh,
as if his heart would break in twain.

My father, who was a great MOTIVE-MONGER, and consequently a very
dangerous person for a man to sit by, either laughing or crying,--for he
generally knew your motive for doing both
, much better than you knew it
yourself--would always console my uncle Toby upon these occasions, in
a way, which shewed plainly, he imagined my uncle Toby grieved for
nothing in the whole affair, so much as the loss of his hobby-horse.
---Never mind, brother Toby, he would say,--by God's blessing we
shall have another war break out again some of these days; and
when it does,--the belligerent powers, if they would hang them-
selves, cannot keep us out of play.--
I defy 'em, my dear Toby, he
would add, to take countries without taking towns,--or towns without
sieges.


My uncle Toby never took this back-stroke of my father's at his
hobby-horse kindly.--
He thought the stroke ungenerous; and the more
so, because in striking the horse he hit the rider too, and in the most
dishonourable part a blow could fall
; so that upon these occasions, he
always laid down his pipe upon the table
with more fire to defend
himself than common.


I told the reader, this time two years, that my uncle Toby was not
eloquent; and in the very same page gave an instance to the
contrary:--I repeat the observation, and a fact which contradicts it
again.--
He was not eloquent,--it was not easy to my uncle Toby to make
long harangues,--and he hated florid ones; but there were occasions
where the stream overflowed the man,
and ran so counter to its usual
course, that in some parts my uncle Toby, for a time, was at least
equal to Tertullus--but in others, in my own opinion, infinitely
above him.

My father was so highly pleased with one of these apologetical orations
of my uncle Toby's, which he had delivered one evening before him and
Yorick, that he wrote it down before he went to bed.


I have had the good fortune to meet with it amongst my father's papers,
with here and there an insertion of his own, betwixt two crooks, thus
[  ], and is endorsed,

MY BROTHER TOBY'S JUSTIFICATION OF HIS OWN PRINCIPLES AND
CONDUCT IN WISHING TO CONTINUE THE WAR.

I may safely say, I have read over this apologetical oration of my
uncle Toby's a hundred times, and think it so fine a model of
defence,--and shews so sweet a temperament of gallantry and good
principles in him, that I give it the world, word for word

(interlineations and all), as I find it.



Volume 6, Chapter 32.



MY UNCLE TOBY'S APOLOGETICAL ORATION

I AM not insensible, brother Shandy, that when a man whose profession
is arms, wishes, as I have done, for war,--it has an ill aspect to the
world;--and that, how just and right soever his motives the intentions
may be,--he stands in an uneasy posture in vindicating himself
from
private views in doing it.

For this cause, if a soldier is a prudent man, which he may be without
being a jot the less brave, he will be sure not to utter his wish in
the hearing of an enemy; for say what he will, an enemy will not
believe him.--He will be cautious of doing it even to a friend,--lest he
may suffer in his esteem:
--But if his heart is overcharged, and a
secret sigh for arms must have its vent, he will reserve it for the ear
of a brother, who knows his character to the bottom, and what his true
notions, dispositions, and principles of honour are: What, I hope, I
have been in all these, brother Shandy, would be unbecoming in me to
say:--much worse, I know, have I been than I ought,--and something
worse, perhaps, than I think: But such as I am, you, my dear brother
Shandy, who have sucked the same breasts with me,--and with whom I
have been brought up from my cradle,--and from whose knowledge, from
the first hours of our boyish pastimes, down to this, I have concealed
no one action of my life, and scarce a thought in it
--Such as I am,
brother, you must by this time know me, with all my vices, and with all
my weaknesses too, whether of my age, my temper, my passions, or my
understanding.


Tell me then, my dear brother Shandy, upon which of them it is, that
when I condemned the peace of Utrecht, and grieved the war was not
carried on with vigour a little longer, you should think your brother
did it upon unworthy views; or that in wishing for war, he should be
bad enough to wish more of his fellow-creatures slain,--more slaves
made, and more families driven from their peaceful habitations, merely
for his own pleasure:--Tell me, brother Shandy, upon what one deed of
mine do you ground it?
[The devil a deed do I know of, dear Toby,
but one for a hundred pounds, which I lent thee to carry on these
cursed sieges
.]

If, when I was a school-boy, I could not hear a drum beat, but my heart
beat with it--was it my fault?--Did I plant the propensity there?--Did I
sound the alarm within, or Nature?


When Guy, Earl of Warwick, and Parismus and Parismenus, and
Valentine and Orson, and the Seven Champions of England, were
handed around the school,--were they not all purchased with my own
pocket-money? Was that selfish, brother Shandy? When we read over the
siege of Troy, which lasted ten years and eight months,--though with
such a train of artillery as we had at Namur, the town might have
been carried in a week--was I not as much concerned for the destruction
of the Greeks and Trojans as any boy of the whole school?
Had I not
three strokes of a ferula given me, two on my right hand, and one on my
left, for calling Helena a bitch for it? Did any one of you shed more
tears for Hector? And when king Priam came to the camp to beg his
body, and returned weeping back to Troy without it,--you know,
brother, I could not eat my dinner.--

--Did that bespeak me cruel? Or because, brother Shandy, my blood
flew out into the camp, and my heart panted for war,--was it a proof it
could not ache for the distresses of war too?


O brother! 'tis one thing for a soldier to gather laurels,--and 'tis
another to scatter cypress.
--[Who told thee, my dear Toby, that
cypress was used by the antients on mournful occasions?
]

--'Tis one thing, brother Shandy, for a soldier to hazard his own
life--to leap first down into the trench, where he is sure to be cut in
pieces:--'Tis one thing, from public spirit and a thirst of glory, to
enter the breach the first man,--to stand in the foremost rank, and
march bravely on with drums and trumpets, and colours flying about his
ears:--'Tis one thing, I say, brother Shandy, to do this,--and 'tis
another thing to reflect on the miseries of war;--to view the
desolations of whole countries, and consider the intolerable fatigues
and hardships which the soldier himself, the instrument who works them,
is forced (for sixpence a day, if he can get it) to undergo.

Need I be told, dear Yorick, as I was by you, in Le Fever's funeral
sermon, That so soft and gentle a creature, born to love, to mercy,
and kindness, as man is, was not shaped for this?
--But why did you not
add, Yorick,--if not by NATURE--that he is so by NECESSITY?--
For what
is war? what is it, Yorick, when fought as ours has been, upon
principles of liberty, and upon principles of honour--what is it,
but the getting together of quiet and harmless people, with their
swords in their hands, to keep the ambitious and the turbulent within
bounds? And heaven is my witness, brother Shandy, that the pleasure I
have taken in these things,--and that infinite delight, in particular,
which has attended my sieges in my bowling-green, has arose within me,
and I hope in the corporal too, from the consciousness we both had,
that in carrying them on, we were answering the great ends of our
creation.




Volume 6, Chapter 33.



I TOLD the Christian reader--I say Christian--hoping he is one--and if
he is not, I am sorry for it
--and only beg he will consider the matter
with himself, and not lay the blame entirely upon this book--

I told him, Sir--for in good truth,
when a man is telling a story in
the strange way I do mine, he is obliged continually to be going
backwards and forwards to keep all tight together in the reader's
fancy--which, for my own part, if I did not take heed to do more than
at first, there is so much unfixed and equivocal matter starting up,
with so many breaks and gaps in it,--and so little service do the stars
afford, which, nevertheless, I hang up in some of the darkest passages,
knowing that the world is apt to lose its way, with all the lights the
sun itself at noon-day can give it--and now you see, I am lost
myself!--

--But 'tis my father's fault; and whenever my brains come to be
dissected, you will perceive, without spectacles, that he has left a
large uneven thread, as you sometimes see in an unsaleable piece of
cambrick, running along the whole length of the web, and so untowardly,
you cannot so much as cut out a * *, (here I hang up a couple of lights
again)
--or a fillet, or a thumb-stall, but it is seen or felt.--

Quanto id diligentias in liberis procreandis cavendum, sayeth
Cardan
. All which being considered, and that you see 'tis morally
impracticable for me to wind this round to where I set out--

I begin the chapter over again.



Volume 6, Chapter 34.



I TOLD the Christian reader in the beginning of the chapter which
preceded my uncle Toby's apologetical oration,--though in a different
trope from what I should make use of now,
That the peace of Utrecht
was within an ace of creating the same shyness betwixt my uncle Toby
and his hobby-horse, as it did betwixt the queen and the rest of the
confederating powers.

There is an indignant way in which a man sometimes dismounts his horse,
which, as good as says to him, “I'll go afoot, Sir, all the days of my
life before I would ride a single mile upon your back again.” Now my
uncle Toby could not be said to dismount his horse in this manner;
for in strictness of language, he could not be said to dismount his
horse at all--his horse rather flung him--and somewhat viciously,
which made my uncle Toby take it ten times more unkindly.
Let this
matter be settled by state-jockies as they like.--It created, I say, a
sort of shyness betwixt my uncle Toby and his hobby-horse.--He had no
occasion for him from the month of March to November, which was the
summer after the articles were signed, except it was now and then to
take a short ride out, just to see that the fortifications and harbour
of Dunkirk were demolished, according to stipulation.


The French were so backwards all that summer in setting about that
affair, and Monsieur Tugghe, the deputy from the magistrates of
Dunkirk, presented so many affecting petitions to the queen,--beseech-
ing her majesty to cause only her thunderbolts to fall upon the martial
works, which might have incurred her displeasure,--but to spare--to
spare the mole, for the mole's sake; which, in its naked situation,
could be no more than an object of pity
--and the queen (who was but
a woman) being of a pitiful disposition,--and her ministers also, they
not wishing in their hearts to have the town dismantled, for these
private reasons, * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * ; so that the whole
went heavily on with my uncle Toby; insomuch, that it was not within
three full months, after he and the corporal had constructed the town,
and put it in a condition to be destroyed, that the several command-
ants, commissaries, deputies, negociators, and intendants, would
permit him to set about it.--Fatal interval of inactivity!

The corporal was for beginning the demolition, by making a breach in
the ramparts, or main fortifications of the town--No,--that will never
do, corporal, said my uncle Toby, for in going that way to work with
the town, the English garrison will not be safe in it an hour;
because
if the French are treacherous--They are as treacherous as
devils, an' please your honour, said the corporal--It gives me concern
always when I hear it, Trim, said my uncle Toby;--for they don't
want personal bravery; and if a breach is made in the ramparts, they
may enter it, and make themselves masters of the place when they
please:--Let them enter it, said the corporal, lifting up his pioneer's
spade in both his hands, as if he was going to lay about him with
it,--let them enter, an' please your honour, if they dare.--In cases
like this, corporal, said my uncle Toby, slipping his right hand down
to the middle of his cane, and holding it afterwards truncheon-wise
with his fore-finger extended,--'tis no part of the consideration of a
commandant, what the enemy dare,--or what they dare not do; he must act
with prudence.
We will begin with the outworks both towards the sea and
the land, and particularly with fort Louis, the most distant of them
all, and demolish it first,--and the rest, one by one, both on our right
and left, as we retreat towards the town;--then we'll demolish the
mole,--next fill up the harbour,--then retire into the citadel, and blow
it up into the air:
and having done that, corporal, we'll embark for
England.--We are there, quoth the corporal, recollecting
himself--Very true, said my uncle Toby--looking at the church.



Volume 6, Chapter 35.



A DELUSIVE, delicious consultation or two of this kind, betwixt my
uncle Toby and Trim, upon the demolition of Dunkirk,--for a moment
rallied back the ideas of those pleasures, which were slipping from
under him:--still--still all went on heavily--the magic left the mind
the weaker--STILLNESS, with SILENCE at her back, entered the solitary
parlour, and drew their gauzy mantle over my uncle Toby's head;--and
LISTLESSNESS, with her lax fibre and undirected eye, sat quietly down
beside him in his arm-chair.--No longer Amberg and Rhinberg, and
Limbourg, and Huy, and Bonn, in one year,--and the prospect of
Landen, and Trerebach, and Drusen, and Dendermond, the
next,--hurried on the blood:--No longer did saps, and mines, and blinds,
and gabions, and palisadoes, keep out this fair enemy of man's
repose:--No more could my uncle Toby, after passing the French
lines, as he eat his egg at supper, from thence break into the heart of
France,--cross over the Oyes, and with all Picardie open behind
him, march up to the gates of Paris, and fall asleep with nothing but
ideas of glory:--No more was he to dream, he had fixed the royal
standard upon the tower of the Bastile, and awake with it streaming
in his head.

--Softer visions,--gentler vibrations stole sweetly in upon his
slumbers;--the trumpet of war fell out of his hands,--he took up the
lute, sweet instrument! of all others the most delicate! the most
difficult!--how wilt thou touch it, my dear uncle Toby?




Volume 6, Chapter 36.



NOW, because I have once or twice said, in my inconsiderate way of
talking
, That I was confident the following memoirs of my uncle
Toby's courtship of widow Wadman, whenever I got time to write
them, would turn out one of the most complete systems, both of the
elementary and practical part of love and love-making, that ever was
addressed to the world--are you to imagine from thence, that I shall
set out with a description of what love is? whether part God and part
Devil, as Plotinus will have it--

--Or by a more critical equation, and supposing the whole of love to
be as ten--to determine with Ficinus, “How many parts of it--the
one,--and how many the other
;”--or whether it is all of it one great
Devil
, from head to tail, as Plato has taken upon him to pronounce;
concerning which conceit of his
, I shall not offer my opinion:--but my
opinion of Plato is this; that he appears, from this instance, to
have been a man of much the same temper and way of reasoning with
doctor Baynyard, who being a great enemy to blisters, as imagining
that half a dozen of 'em at once, would draw a man as surely to his
grave, as a herse and six--rashly concluded, that the Devil himself was
nothing in the world, but one great bouncing Cantharidis.--

I have nothing to say to people who allow themselves this monstrous
liberty in arguing,
but what Nazianzen cried out (that is, polemically)
to Philagrius--



when you philosophize about it in your moods and passions.


Nor is it to be imagined, for the same reason,
I should stop to
inquire, whether love is a disease,--or embroil myself with Rhasis
and Dioscorides, whether the seat of it is in the brain or
liver;--because this would lead me on, to an examination of the two very
opposite manners, in which patients have been treated--the one, of
Aœtius, who always begun with a cooling clyster of hempseed and
bruised cucumbers;--and followed on with thin potations of water-lilies
and purslane--to which he added a pinch of snuff, of the herb
Hanea;--and where Aœtius durst venture it,--his topaz-ring.

--The other, that of Gordonius, who (in his cap. 15. de Amore)
directs they should be thrashed, “ad putorem usque,”--till they stink
again.


These are disquisitions which my father, who had laid in a great stock
of knowledge of this kind, will be very busy with in the progress of my
uncle Toby's affairs: I must anticipate thus much, That from his
theories of love, (with which, by the way, he contrived to crucify my
uncle Toby's mind, almost as much as his amours themselves,)--he took
a single step into practice;--and by means of a camphorated cerecloth,
which he found means to impose upon the taylor for buckram, whilst he
was making my uncle Toby a new pair of breeches, he produced
Gordonius's effect upon my uncle Toby without the disgrace.

What changes this produced, will be read in its proper place: all that
is needful to be added to the anecdote, is this--That whatever effect
it had upon my uncle Toby,
--it had a vile effect upon the house;--and
if my uncle Toby had not smoaked it down as he did, it might have had
a vile effect upon my father too.




Volume 6, Chapter 37.



--'TWILL come out of itself by and bye.--All I contend for is, that I
am not obliged to set out with a definition of what love is; and so
long as I can go on with my story intelligibly, with the help of the
word itself, without any other idea to it, than what I have in common
with the rest of the world
, why should I differ from it a moment before
the time?--
When I can get on no further,--and find myself entangled on
all sides of this mystic labyrinth,--my Opinion will then come in, in
course,--and lead me out.


At present, I hope I shall be sufficiently understood, in telling the
reader, my uncle Toby fell in love:

--Not that the phrase is at all to my liking: for to say a man is
fallen in love,--or that he is deeply in love,--or up to the ears in
love,--and sometimes even over head and ears in it,--carries an
idiomatical kind of implication, that love is a thing below a
man:--
this is recurring again to Plato's opinion, which, with all his
divinityship,--I hold to be damnable and heretical:--and so much for
that.


Let love therefore be what it will,--my uncle Toby fell into it.

--And possibly, gentle reader, with such a temptation--so wouldst thou:
For never did thy eyes behold, or thy concupiscence covet any thing in
this world, more concupiscible than widow Wadman.




Volume 6, Chapter 38.



TO conceive this right,--call for pen and ink--here's paper ready to your
hand.--Sit down,
Sir, paint her to your own mind--as like your mistress
as you can--as unlike your wife as your conscience will let you--'tis
all one to me--please but your own fancy in it.

--Was ever any thing in Nature so sweet!--so exquisite!


--Then, dear Sir, how could my uncle Toby resist it?

Thrice happy book! thou wilt have one page, at least, within thy
covers, which MALICE will not blacken, and which IGNORANCE cannot
misrepresent.




Volume 6, Chapter 39.



AS Susannah was informed by an express from Mrs. Bridget, of my
uncle Toby's falling in love with her mistress fifteen days before it
happened,--the contents of which express, Susannah communicated to my
mother the next day,--it has just given me an opportunity of entering
upon my uncle Toby's amours a fortnight before their existence.

I have an article of news to tell you, Mr. Shandy, quoth my mother,
which will surprise you greatly.--

Now my father was then holding one of his second beds of justice, and
was musing within himself about the hardships of matrimony, as my
mother broke silence.--

“--My brother Toby, quoth she, is going to be married to Mrs.
Wadman.”


--Then he will never, quoth my father, be able to lie diagonally in his
bed again as long as he lives.

It was a consuming vexation to my father, that my mother never asked
the meaning of a thing she did not understand.

--That she is not a woman of science, my father would say--is her
misfortune--but she might ask a question.--

My mother never did.--In short, she went out of the world at last
without knowing whether it turned round, or stood still.--My father
had officiously told her above a thousand times which way it was,--but
she always forgot.

For these reasons, a discourse seldom went on much further betwixt
them, than a proposition,--a reply, and a rejoinder; at the end of
which, it generally took breath for a few minutes
(as in the affair of
the breeches), and then went on again.

If he marries, 'twill be the worse for us,--quoth my mother.

Not a cherry-stone, said my father,--he may as well batter away his
means upon that, as any thing else,

--To be sure, said my mother: so here ended the proposition--the
reply,--and the rejoinder, I told you of.

It will be some amusement to him, too,--said my father.


A very great one, answered my mother, if he should have children.--

--Lord have mercy upon me,--said my father to himself--* * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *



Volume 6, Chapter 40



I AM now beginning to get fairly into my work; and by the help of a
vegetable diet, with a few of the cold seeds, I make no doubt but I
shall be able to go on with my uncle Toby's story, and my own, in a
tolerable straight line. Now,




These were the four lines I moved in through my first, second, third,
and fourth volumes[32]--In the fifth volume I have been very good,--the
precise line I have described in it being this:



By which it appears, that except at the curve, marked A. where I took a
trip to Navarre,--and the indented curve B. which is the short airing
when I was there with the Lady Baussiere and her page,--I have not
taken the least frisk of a digression, till John de la Casse's devils
led me the round you see marked D.--for as for c c c c c they are
nothing but parentheses, and the common ins and outs incident to the
lives of the greatest ministers of state; and when compared with what
men have done,--or with my own transgressions at the letters A B D--they
vanish into nothing.


In this last volume I have done better still--for from the end of Le
Fever's episode, to the beginning of my uncle Toby's campaigns,--I
have scarce stepped a yard out of my way.

If I mend at this rate, it is not impossible--by the good leave of his
grace of Benevento's devils--but I may arrive hereafter at the
excellency of going on even thus:


-----------------------------

which is a line drawn as straight as I could draw it, by a writing-
master's ruler (borrowed for that purpose), turning neither to
the right hand or to the left.

This right line,--the path-way for Christians to walk in! say
divines--

--The emblem of moral rectitude! says Cicero--

--The best line! say cabbage planters--is the shortest line, says
Archimedes, which can be drawn from one given point to another.--


I wish your ladyships would lay this matter to heart, in your next
birth-day suits!

--What a journey!

Pray can you tell me,--that is, without anger, before I write my chapter
upon straight lines--by what mistake--who told them so--or how it has
come to pass, that your men of wit and genius have all along confounded
this line, with the line of GRAVITATION?




             Volume VII



Volume 7. Chapter 1.



NO--I think, I said, I would write two volumes every year, provided the
vile cough which then tormented me
, and which to this hour I dread
worse than the devil, would but give me leave--and in another place--(but
where, I can't recollect now)
speaking of my book as a machine, and
laying my pen and ruler down cross-wise upon the table
, in order to
gain the greater credit to it--I swore it should be kept a going at that
rate these forty years, if it pleased but the fountain of life to bless
me so long with health and good spirits.

Now as for my spirits, little have I to lay to their charge--nay so very
little (unless the mounting me upon a long stick and playing the fool
with me nineteen hours out of the twenty-four, be accusations) that on
the contrary, I have much--much to thank 'em for: cheerily have ye made
me tread the path of life with all the burthens of it (except its cares)
upon my back; in no one moment of my existence, that I remember,
have ye once deserted me, or tinged the objects which came in my way,
either with sable, or with a sickly green; in dangers ye gilded my horizon
with hope, and when DEATH himself knocked at my door--ye bad him
come again; and in so gay a tone of careless indifference, did ye do
it, that he doubted of his commission--

“--There must certainly be some mistake in this matter,” quoth he.

Now there is nothing in this world I abominate worse, than to be
interrupted in a story--and I was that moment telling Eugenius a most
tawdry one in my way, of a nun who fancied herself a shell-fish, and of
a monk damn'd for eating a muscle,
and was shewing him the grounds
and justice of the procedure--


“--Did ever so grave a personage get into so vile a scrape?” quoth
Death.
Thou hast had a narrow escape, Tristram, said Eugenius,
taking hold of my hand as I finished my story--

But there is no living, Eugenius, replied I, at this rate; for as this
son of a whore
has found out my lodgings--


--You call him rightly, said Eugenius,--for by sin, we are told, he
enter'd the world--I care not which way he enter'd, quoth I, provided
he be not in such a hurry to take me out with him--for I have forty
volumes to write, and forty thousand things to say and do which no body
in the world will say and do for me, except thyself; and as thou seest
he has got me by the throat (for Eugenius could scarce hear me speak
across the table), and that I am no match for him in the open field,
had I not better, whilst these few scatter'd spirits remain, and these
two spider legs of mine (holding one of them up to him) are able to
support me--had I not better, Eugenius, fly for my life?
'Tis my
advice, my dear Tristram, said Eugenius--
Then by heaven! I will lead
him a dance he little thinks of
--for I will gallop, quoth I, without
looking once behind me, to the banks of the Garonne; and
if I hear
him clattering at my heels--I'll scamper away to mount Vesuvius--from
thence to Joppa, and from Joppa to the world's end; where, if he
follows me, I pray God he may break his neck--

--He runs more risk there, said Eugenius, than thou.

Eugenius's wit and affection brought blood into the cheek from whence
it had been some months banish'd--'twas a vile moment to bid adieu in;

he led me to my chaise--Allons! said I; the post-boy gave a crack
with his whip--off I went like a cannon, and in half a dozen bounds got
into Dover.




Volume 7, Chapter 2



NOW hang it! quoth I, as I look'd towards the French coast--a man
should know something of his own country too, before he goes
abroad--and I never gave a peep into Rochester church, or took notice
of the dock of Chatham, or visited St. Thomas at Canterbury,
though they all three laid in my way--

--But mine, indeed, is a particular case--

So without arguing the matter further with Thomas o'Becket, or any
one else--I skip'd into the boat, and in five minutes
we got under sail,
and scudded away like the wind.


Pray, captain, quoth I, as I was going down into the cabin,
is a man
never overtaken by Death in this passage?

Why, there is not time for a man to be sick in it, replied he--What
a cursed lyar! for I am sick as a horse, quoth I, already--what a
brain!--upside down!--hey-day! the cells are broke loose one into
another, and the blood, and the lymph, and the nervous juices, with the
fix'd and volatile salts, are all jumbled into one mass--good G--! every
thing turns round in it like a thousand whirlpools--I'd give a shilling
to know if I shan't write the clearer for it--

Sick! sick! sick! sick!--

--When shall we get to land? captain--they have hearts like stones--O
I am deadly sick!--reach me that thing, boy--'tis the most discomfiting
sickness--I wish I was at the bottom--Madam! how is it with you? Undone!
undone! un--O! undone! sir--What the first time?--No, 'tis the second,
third, sixth, tenth time, sir,--hey-day!--what a trampling over
head!--hollo! cabin boy! what's the matter?

The wind chopp'd about! s'Death--then I shall meet him full in the face.

What luck!--'tis chopp'd about again, master--O the devil chop it--


Captain, quoth she, for heaven's sake, let us get ashore.




Volume 7, Chapter 3



IT is a great inconvenience to a man in a haste, that there are three
distinct roads between Calais and Paris, in behalf of which there
is so much to be said by the several deputies from the towns which lie
along them, that half a day is easily lost in settling which you'll
take.

First, the road by Lisle and Arras, which is the most about--but
most interesting, and instructing.

The second, that by Amiens, which you may go, if you would see
Chantilly--

And that by Beauvais, which you may go, if you will.

For this reason a great many chuse to go by Beauvais.



Volume 7, Chapter 4



“NOW before I quit Calais,” a travel-writer would say, “it would not
be amiss to give some account of “it.”--
Now I think it very much
amiss--that a man cannot go quietly through a town and let it alone,
when it does not meddle with him, but that he must be turning about
and drawing his pen at every kennel he crosses over, merely o' my
conscience for the sake of drawing it; because, if we may judge from
what has been wrote of these things, by all who have wrote and
gallop'd
--or who have gallop'd and wrote, which is a different way
still; or who, for more expedition than the rest, have wrote-galloping,
which is the way I do at present--from the great Addison, who did it
with his satchel of school books hanging at his a--, and galling his
beast's crupper at every stroke--there is not a gallopper of us all who
might not have gone on ambling quietly in his own ground (in case he
had any), and have wrote all he had to write, dry-shod, as well as not.


For my own part, as heaven is my judge, and to which I shall ever make
my last appeal--I know no more of Calais (except the little my barber
told me of it as he was whetting his razor) than I do this moment of
Grand Cairo; for it was dusky in the evening when I landed, and dark
as pitch in the morning when I set out, and yet by merely knowing what
is what, and by drawing this from that in one part of the town, and by
spelling and putting this and that together in another--I would lay any
travelling odds, that I this moment write a chapter upon Calais as
long as my arm;
and with so distinct and satisfactory a detail of every
item, which is worth a stranger's curiosity in the town--that you would
take me for the town-clerk of Calais itself--and where, sir, would be
the wonder? was not Democritus, who laughed ten times more than
I--town-clerk of Abdera? and was not (I forget his name) who had more
discretion than us both, town-clerk of Ephesus?--it should be penn'd
moreover, sir, with so much knowledge and good sense, and truth, and
precision--


--Nay--if you don't believe me, you may read the chapter for your pains.




Volume 7, Chapter 5



CALAIS, Calatium, Calusium, Calesium.

This town, if we may trust its archives, the authority of which I see
no reason to call in question in this place--was once no more than a
small village belonging to one of the first Counts de Guignes; and as
it boasts at present of no less than fourteen thousand inhabitants,
exclusive of four hundred and twenty distinct families in the basse
ville, or suburbs-
-it must have grown up by little and little, I suppose,
to its present size.


Though there are four convents, there is but one parochial church
in the whole town;
I had not an opportunity of taking its exact di-
mensions, but it is pretty easy to make a tolerable conjecture of
'em--for as there are fourteen thousand inhabitants in the town, if
the church holds them all it must be considerably large--and if it will
not--'tis a very great pity they have not another
--it is built in form
of a cross, and dedicated to the Virgin Mary; the steeple, which has a
spire to it, is placed in the middle of the church, and stands upon
four pillars elegant and light enough, but sufficiently strong at the
same time--it is decorated with eleven altars, most of which are ra-
ther fine than beautiful. The great altar is a master-piece in its kind;
'tis of white marble, and, as I was told, near sixty feet high--
had it
been much higher, it had been as high as mount Calvary itself--
therefore, I suppose it must be high enough in all conscience.


There was nothing struck me more than the great Square; tho' I can-
not say 'tis either well paved or well built; but 'tis in the heart of the
town, and most of the streets, especially those in that quarter, all
terminate in it; could there have been a fountain in all Calais, which
it seems there cannot, as such an object would have been a great
ornament, it is not to be doubted, but that the inhabitants would have
had it in the very centre of this square,--not that it is properly a
square,--because 'tis forty feet longer from east to west, than from
north to south; so that the French in general have more reason on
their side in calling them Places than Squares, which, strictly
speaking, to be sure, they are not.

The town-house seems to be but a sorry building, and not to be kept in
the best repair; otherwise it had been a second great ornament to this
place;
it answers however its destination, and serves very well for the
reception of the magistrates, who assemble in it from time to time; so
that 'tis presumable, justice is regularly distributed.


I have heard much of it, but there is nothing at all curious in the
Courgain; 'tis a distinct quarter of the town, inhabited solely by
sailors and fishermen; it consists of a number of small streets, neatly
built and mostly of brick;
'tis extremely populous, but as that may be
accounted for, from the principles of their diet,
--there is nothing
curious in that neither.--A traveller may see it to satisfy himself--he
must not omit however taking notice of La Tour de Guet, upon any
account; 'tis so called from its particular destination, because in war
it serves to discover and give notice of the enemies which approach the
place, either by sea or land;--but
'tis monstrous high, and catches the
eye so continually, you cannot avoid taking notice of it if you would.


It was a singular disappointment to me, that I could not have
permission to take an exact survey of the fortifications, which are the
strongest in the world,
and which, from first to last, that is, for the
time they were set about by Philip of France, Count of Bologne,
to the present war, wherein many reparations were made, have cost (as I
learned afterwards from an engineer in Gascony)--above a hundred
millions of livres. It is very remarkable, that at the Tete de Grave-
lenes, and where the town is naturally the weakest, they have expend-
ed the most money; so that the outworks stretch a great way into
the campaign, and consequently occupy a large tract of ground--How-
ever, after all that is said and done, it must be acknowledged that
Calais was never upon any account so considerable from itself, as
from its situation, and that easy entrance which it gave our ancestors,
upon all occasions, into France: it was not without its inconveniences
also; being no less troublesome to the English in those times, than
Dunkirk has been to us, in ours; so that it was deservedly looked upon
as the key to both kingdoms, which no doubt is the reason that there
have arisen so many contentions who should keep it: of these, the
siege of Calais, or rather the blockade (for it was shut up both by land
and sea), was the most memorable, as
it with-stood the efforts of
Edward the Third a whole year, and was not terminated at last but by
famine and extreme misery; the gallantry of Eustace de St. Pierre,
who first offered himself a victim for his fellow-citizens, has rank'd
his name with heroes.
As it will not take up above fifty pages, it would
be injustice to the reader, not to give him a minute account of that
romantic transaction, as well as of the siege itself, in Rapin's own
words:




Volume 7, Chapter 6



--BUT courage! gentle reader!--I scorn it--'tis enough to have thee in
my power--but to make use of the advantage which the fortune of the pen
has now gained over thee, would be too much--No--! by that all-powerful
fire which warms the visionary brain, and lights the spirits through
unworldly tracts! ere I would force a helpless creature upon this hard
service, and make thee pay, poor soul! for fifty pages, which I have no
right to sell thee,--naked as I am, I would browse upon the mountains,
and smile that the north wind brought me neither my tent or my supper.


--So put on, my brave boy! and make the best of thy way to Boulogne.



Volume 7, Chapter 7



--BOULOGNE!--hah!--so we are all got together--debtors and sinners
before heaven; a jolly set of us--but I can't stay and quaff it off with
you--I'm pursued myself like a hundred devils, and shall be overtaken,
before I can well change horses:--for heaven's sake, make haste
--'Tis
for high-treason, quoth a very little man, whispering as low as he
could to a very tall man, that stood next him--Or else for murder;
quoth the tall man--Well thrown, Size-ace! quoth I. No; quoth a
third, the gentleman has been committing----

Ah! ma chere fille! said I, as she tripp'd by from her matins--you
look as rosy as the morning (for the sun was rising, and it made the
compliment the more gracious)
--No; it can't be that, quoth a
fourth--(she made a curt'sy to me--I kiss'd my hand) 'tis debt,
continued he: 'Tis certainly for debt; quoth a fifth; I would not pay
that gentleman's debts, quoth Ace, for a thousand pounds; nor would
I, quoth Size, for six times the sum--Well thrown, Size-ace, again!
quoth I;--but
I have no debt but the debt of NATURE, and I want but
patience of her, and I will pay her every farthing I owe her--How can
you be so hard-hearted, Madam, to arrest a poor traveller going along
without molestation to any one upon his lawful occasions? do stop that
death-looking, long-striding scoundrel of a scare-sinner, who is post-
ing after me
--he never would have followed me but for you--if it be
but for a stage or two, just to give me start of him, I beseech you,
madam--do, dear lady--


--Now, in troth, 'tis a great pity, quoth mine Irish host, that all
this good courtship should be lost; for the young gentlewoman has been
after going out of hearing of it all along.--

--Simpleton! quoth I.

--So you have nothing else in Boulogne worth seeing?

--By Jasus! there is the finest SEMINARY for the HUMANITIES--


--There cannot be a finer; quoth I.



Volume 7, Chapter 8



WHEN the precipitancy of a man's wishes hurries on his ideas ninety
times faster than the vehicle he rides in--woe be to truth! and woe be
to the vehicle and its tackling (let 'em be made of what stuff you
will) upon which he breathes forth the disappointment of his soul!


As I never give general characters either of men or things in choler,
the most haste the worse speed,” was all the reflection I made upon
the affair, the first time it happen'd;--the second, third, fourth, and
fifth time, I confined it respectively to those times, and accordingly
blamed only the second, third, fourth, and fifth post-boy for it,
without carrying my reflections further; but the event continuing to
befal me from the fifth, to the sixth, seventh, eighth, ninth, and
tenth time, and without one exception, I then could not avoid making a
national reflection of it, which I do in these words;


That something is always wrong in a French post-chaise, upon first
setting out.


Or the proposition may stand thus:

A French postilion has always to alight before he has got three
hundred yards out of town.


What's wrong now?--Diable!--a rope's broke!--a knot has slipt!--a
staple's drawn!--a bolt's to whittle!--a tag, a rag, a jag, a strap, a
buckle, or a buckle's tongue, want altering.


Now true as all this is, I never think myself impowered to excom-
municate thereupon either the post-chaise, or its driver--nor do I
take it into my head to swear by the living G--, I would rather go
a-foot ten thousand times--or that I will be damn'd, if ever I get into
another--but I take the matter coolly before me, and consider, that
some tag, or rag, or jag, or bolt, or buckle, or buckle's tongue, will
ever be a wanting or want altering, travel where I will--so I never
chaff, but take the good and the bad as they fall in my road, and get
on:--Do so, my lad! said I;
he had lost five minutes already, in
alighting in order to get at a luncheon of black bread, which he had
cramm'd into the chaise-pocket, and was remounted, and going leisurely
on, to relish it the better
.--Get on, my lad, said I, briskly--but in
the most persuasive tone imaginable, for I jingled a four-and-twenty
sous piece against the glass, taking care to hold the flat side towards
him, as he look'd back: the dog grinn'd intelligence from his right ear
to his left, and behind his sooty muzzle discovered such a pearly row
of teeth, that Sovereignty would have pawn'd her jewels for them.
Just heaven! {What masticators!--/What bread!--}


and so as he finished the last mouthful of it, we entered the town of
Montreuil.



Volume 7, Chapter 9



THERE is not a town in all France which, in my opinion, looks better
in the map, than MONTREUIL;--I own, it does not look so well in the
book of post-roads; but when you come to see it--to be sure it looks
most pitifully.

There is one thing, however, in it at present very handsome; and that
is, the inn-keeper's daughter
: She has been eighteen months at
Amiens, and six at Paris, in going through her classes; so
knits,
and sews, and dances, and does the little coquetries very well.--


--
A slut! in running them over within these five minutes that I have
stood looking at her,
she has let fall at least a dozen loops in a
white thread stocking--yes, yes--I see, you cunning gipsy!
--'tis long and
taper--you need not pin it to your knee--and that 'tis your own--and fits
you exactly.--

--That Nature should have told this creature a word about a statue's
thumb!

--But as this sample is worth all their thumbs--besides, I have her
thumbs and fingers in at the bargain, if they can be any guide to
me,--and as Janatone withal (for that is her name) stands so well for
a drawing--
may I never draw more, or rather may I draw like a
draught-horse, by main strength all the days of my life,--if I do not
draw her in all her proportions, and with as determined a pencil, as if
I had her in the wettest drapery.--


--But your worships chuse rather that I give you the length, breadth,
and perpendicular height of the great parish-church, or drawing of the
façade of the abbey of Saint Austreberte which has been transported
from Artois hither--every thing is just I suppose as the masons and
carpenters left them,--and if the belief in Christ continues so long,
will be so these fifty years to come--so your worships and reverences
may all measure them at your leisures--but he who measures thee,
Janatone, must do it now--thou carriest the principles of change
within thy frame; and considering the chances of a transitory life, I
would not answer for thee a moment; ere twice twelve months are passed
and gone, thou mayest grow out like a pumpkin, and lose thy shapes--or
thou mayest go off like a flower, and lose thy beauty--nay, thou mayest
go off like a hussy--and lose thyself.
--I would not answer for my aunt
Dinah, was she alive--'faith, scarce for her picture--were it but
painted by Reynolds--

But if I go on with my drawing, after naming that son of Apollo, I'll
be shot--

So you must e'en be content with the original; which, if the evening is
fine in passing thro' Montreuil, you will see at your chaise-door, as
you change horses:
but unless you have as bad a reason for haste as I
have--you had better stop:--She has a little of the devote: but that,
sir, is a terce to a nine in your favour--

--L-- help me! I could not count a single point: so had been piqued and
repiqued, and capotted to the devil.




Volume 7, Chapter 10



ALL which being considered, and that Death moreover might be much
nearer me than I imagined--I wish I was at Abbeville, quoth I, were
it only to see how they card and spin--so off we set.

de Montreuil a Nampont - poste et demi
de Nampont a Bernay - - - - - - poste
de Bernay a Nouvion - - - - - poste
de Nouvion a ABBEVILLE poste
--but the carders and spinners were all gone to bed.



Volume 7, Chapter 11



WHAT a vast advantage is travelling! only it heats one; but there is a
remedy for that, which you may pick out of the next chapter.



Volume 7, Chapter 12



WAS I in a condition to stipulate with Death, as I am this moment
with my apothecary, how and where I will take his clyster--I should
certainly declare against submitting to it before my friends; and
therefore I never seriously think upon the mode and manner of this
great catastrophe, which generally takes up and torments my thoughts as
much as the catastrophe itself; but
I constantly draw the curtain
across it with this wish, that the Disposer of all things may so order
it
, that it happen not to me in my own house--but rather in some decent
inn--at home, I know it,--
the concern of my friends, and the last
services of wiping my brows, and smoothing my pillow, which the
quivering hand of pale affection shall pay me, will so crucify my soul,
that I shall die of a distemper which my physician is not aware of: but
in an inn, the few cold offices I wanted, would be purchased with a few
guineas, and paid me with an undisturbed, but punctual attention
--but
mark. This inn should not be the inn at Abbeville--if there was not
another inn in the universe, I would strike that inn out of the
capitulation: so


Let the horses be in the chaise exactly by four in the morning--Yes, by
four, Sir,--or by Genevieve! I'll raise a clatter in the house shall
wake the dead.



Volume 7, Chapter 13



“MAKE them like unto a wheel,” is a bitter sarcasm, as all the
learned know, against the grand tour, and that restless spirit for
making it, which David prophetically foresaw would haunt the children
of men in the latter days;
and therefore, as thinketh the great bishop
Hall, 'tis one of the severest imprecations which David ever
utter'd against the enemies of the Lord
--and, as if he had said, “I wish
them no worse luck than always to be rolling about.”--So much motion,
continues he (for he was very corpulent)--is so much unquietness; and so
much of rest, by the same analogy, is so much of heaven.

Now, I (being very thin) think differently; and that so much of motion,
is so much of life, and so much of joy--and that to stand still, or get
on but slowly, is death and the devil--

Hollo! Ho!--the whole world's asleep!--bring out the horses--grease the
wheels--tie on the mail--and drive a nail into that moulding--I'll not
lose a moment--


Now the wheel we are talking of, and whereinto (but not whereunto,
for that would make an Ixion's wheel of it) he curseth his enemies,
according to the bishop's habit of body, should certainly be a post-
chaise wheel, whether they were set up in Palestine at that time or
not--and
my wheel, for the contrary reasons, must as certainly be a
cart-wheel groaning round its revolution once in an age; and of which
sort, were I to turn commentator, I should make no scruple to affirm,
they had great store in that hilly country.

I love the Pythagoreans (much more than ever I dare tell my dear
Jenny) for their

--[their] getting out of the body, in order to think well.” No man
thinks right, whilst he is in it; blinded as he must be, with his congenial
humours, and drawn differently aside, as the bishop and myself have
been, with too lax or too tense a fibre--REASON is, half of it, SENSE;
and the measure of heaven itself is but the measure of our present
appetites and concoctions.--


--But which of the two, in the present case, do you think to be mostly
in the wrong?


You, certainly: quoth she, to disturb a whole family so early.



Volume 7, Chapter 14



--But she did not know I was under a vow not to shave my beard till
I got to Paris;--yet
I hate to make mysteries of nothing;--'tis the
cold cautiousness of one of those little souls from which Lessius
(lib. 13. de moribus divinis, cap. 24.) hath made his estimate, where-
in he setteth forth, That one Dutch mile, cubically multiplied, will
allow room enough, and to spare, for eight hundred thousand millions,
which he supposes to be as great a number of souls (counting from
the fall of Adam) as can possibly be damn'd to the end of the world.

From what he has made this second estimate--unless from the parental
goodness of God--I don't know--I am much more at a loss what could
be in Franciscus Ribbera's head, who pretends that no less a space
than one of two hundred Italian miles multiplied into itself, will be
sufficient to hold the like number--he certainly must have gone upon
some of the old Roman souls, of which he had read, without reflecting
how much, by a gradual and most tabid decline, in the course of eight-
een hundred years, they must unavoidably have shrunk so as to have
come, when he wrote, almost to nothing.


In Lessius's time, who seems the cooler man, they were as little as
can be imagined--

--We find them less now--


And next winter we shall find them less again; so that if we go on from
little to less, and from less to nothing, I hesitate not one moment to
affirm, that in half a century at this rate, we shall have no souls at
all; which being the period beyond which I doubt likewise of the
existence of the Christian faith, 'twill be one advantage that both of
'em will be exactly worn out together.

Blessed Jupiter! and blessed every other heathen god and goddess!
for now ye will all come into play again, and with Priapus at your
tails--what jovial times!--but where am I? and into what a delicious
riot of things am I rushing? I--I who must be cut short in the midst
of my days, and taste no more of 'em than what I borrow from my
imagination--peace to thee, generous fool! and let me go on.




Volume 7, Chapter 15



--“So hating, I say, to make mysteries of nothing”--I intrusted it
with the post-boy, as soon as ever I got off the stones; he gave a
crack with his whip to balance the compliment; and with the thill-horse
trotting, and a sort of an up and a down of the other, we danced it
along to Ailly au clochers, famed in days of yore for the finest chimes
in the world; but we danced through it without music--the chimes
being greatly out of order--(as in truth they were through all
France).


And so making all possible speed, from

Ailly au clochers, I got to Hixcourt,
from Hixcourt I got to Pequignay, and
from Pequignay, I got to AMIENS,

concerning which town I have nothing to inform you, but what I have
informed you once before--and that was--that Janatone went there to
school.



Volume 7, Chapter 16



IN the whole catalogue of those whiffling vexations which come puffing
across a man's canvass, there is not one of a more teasing and
tormenting nature, than this particular one which I am going to
describe
--and for which (unless you travel with an avance-courier,
which numbers do in order to prevent it)--there is no help: and it is
this.

That
be you in never so kindly a propensity to sleep--though you are
passing perhaps through the finest country--upon the best roads, and in
the easiest carriage for doing it in the world--nay, was you sure you
could sleep fifty miles straight forwards, without once opening your
eyes
--nay, what is more, was you as demonstratively satisfied as you can
be of any truth in Euclid, that you should upon all accounts be full
as well asleep as awake--nay, perhaps better--Yet the incessant returns
of paying for the horses at every stage,--with the necessity thereupon
of putting your hand into your pocket, and counting out from thence
three livres fifteen sous (sous by sous), puts an end to so much of the
project, that you cannot execute above six miles of it (or supposing it
is a post and a half, that is but nine)--were it to save your soul from
destruction.

--I'll be even with 'em, quoth I, for I'll put the precise sum into a
piece of paper, and hold it ready in my hand all the way: “Now I shall
have nothing to do,” said I (composing myself to rest), “but to drop
this gently into the post-boy's hat, and not say a word.”
--Then there
wants two sous more to drink--or there is a twelve sous piece of
Louis XIV. which will not pass--or a livre and some odd liards to be
brought over from the last stage, which Monsieur had forgot; which
altercations (as a man cannot dispute very well asleep) rouse him:
still is sweet sleep retrievable; and still might the flesh weigh down
the spirit, and recover itself of these blows--but then, by heaven! you
have paid but for a single post--whereas 'tis a post and a half; and
this obliges you to pull out your book of post-roads, the print of
which is so very small, it forces you to open your eyes, whether you
will or no:
Then Monsieur le Curé offers you a pinch of snuff--or a
poor soldier shews you his leg--or a shaveling his box--or t
he
priestesse of the cistern will water your wheels--they do not want
it--but she swears by her priesthood (throwing it back) that they
do:--then you have all these points to argue, or consider over in your
mind; in doing of which, the rational powers get so thoroughly
awakened--you may get 'em to sleep again as you can.


It was entirely owing to one of these misfortunes, or I had pass'd
clean by the stables of Chantilly--


--But the postillion first affirming, and then persisting in it to my
face, that there was no mark upon the two sous piece,
I open'd my eyes
to be convinced--and seeing the mark upon it as plain as my nose--I
leap'd out of the chaise in a passion, and so saw every thing at
Chantilly in spite
.--I tried it but for three posts and a half, but
believe 'tis the best principle in the world to travel speedily upon;
for as few objects look very inviting in that mood--you have little or
nothing to stop you; by which means it was that I passed through St.
Dennis, without turning my head so much as on one side towards the
Abby--

--Richness of their treasury! stuff and nonsense!--bating their jewels,
which are all false, I would not give three sous for any one thing in
it, but Jaidas's lantern--nor for that either, only as it grows dark,
it might be of use.




Volume 7, Chapter 17



CRACK, crack--crack, crack--crack, crack--so this is Paris! quoth I
(continuing in the same mood)--and this is Paris!--humph!
--Paris!
cried I, repeating the name the third time--

The first, the finest, the most brilliant--

The streets however are nasty.

But it looks, I suppose, better than it smells
--crack, crack--crack,
crack--what a fuss thou makest!--as if it concerned the good people
to be informed, that a man with pale face and clad in black, had the
honour to be driven into Paris at nine o'clock at night, by a postillion
in a tawny yellow jerkin, turned up with red calamanco
--crack, crack
--crack, crack--crack, crack,--I wish thy whip--

--But 'tis the spirit of thy nation; so
crack--crack on.

Ha!--and no one gives the wall!--but in the SCHOOL of URBANITY herself,
if the walls are besh-t--how can you do otherwise?


And prithee when do they light the lamps? What?--never in the summer
months!--Ho! 'tis the time of sallads.--O rare! sallad and soup--soup
and sallad--sallad and soup, encore--

--'Tis too much for sinners.

Now I cannot bear the barbarity of it; how can that unconscionable
coachman talk so much bawdy to that lean horse?
don't you see, friend,
the streets are so villanously narrow, that there is not room in all
Paris to turn a wheelbarrow? In the grandest city of the whole world,
it would not have been amiss, if they had been left a thought wider;
nay, were it only so much in every single street, as that a man might
know (was it only for satisfaction) on which side of it he was walking.


One--two--three--four--five--six--seven--eight--nine--ten.--
Ten cooks shops! and twice the number of barbers! and all within
three minutes driving! one would think that all the cooks in the world,
on some great merry-meeting with the barbers, by joint consent had
said--Come, let us all go live at Paris: the French love good eating--
they are all gourmands--we shall rank high; if their god is their belly
--their cooks must be gentlemen: and forasmuch as the periwig make-
th the man, and the periwig-maker maketh the periwig--ergo, would
the barbers say, we shall rank higher still--we shall be above you all

--we shall be Capitouls[34] at least--pardi! we shall all wear swords
--

--And so, one would swear, (that is, by candle-light,--but there is no
depending upon it,) they continued to do, to this day.




Volume 7, Chapter 18



THE French are certainly misunderstood:--but whether the fault is
theirs, in not sufficiently explaining themselves; or speaking with
that exact limitation and precision which one would expect on a point
of such importance, and which, moreover, is so likely to be contested
by us--or whether the fault may not be altogether on our side, in not
understanding their language always so critically as to know “what they
would be at”--I shall not decide; but 'tis evident to me, when they
affirm, “That they who have seen Paris, have seen every thing,”
they must mean to speak of those who have seen it by day-light.

As for candle-light--I give it up--I have said before, there was no
depending upon it--and I repeat it again; but
not because the lights
and shades are too sharp--or the tints confounded--or that there is
neither beauty or keeping, &c. . . . for that's not truth--but it is an
uncertain light in this respect, That in all the five hundred grand
Hotels, which they number up to you in Paris--and the five hundred
good things, at a modest computation (for 'tis only allowing one good
thing to a Hotel), which by candle-light are best to be seen, felt,
heard, and understood (which, by the bye, is a quotation from
Lilly)--the devil a one of us out of fifty, can get our heads fairly
thrust in amongst them.


This is no part of the French computation: 'tis simply this,

That by the last survey taken in the year one thousand seven hundred
and sixteen, since which time there have been considerable
augmentations,
Paris doth contain nine hundred streets; (viz)

In the quarter called the City--there are
fifty-three streets.

In St. James of the Shambles,
fifty-five streets.

In St. Oportune, thirty-four streets.

In the quarter of the Louvre,
twenty-five streets.

In the Palace Royal, or St. Honorius,
forty-nine streets.

In Mont. Martyr, forty-one streets.

In St. Eustace, twenty-nine streets.

In the Halles, twenty-seven streets.

In St. Dennis, fifty-five streets.

In St. Martin, fifty-four streets.

In St. Paul, or the Mortellerie,
twenty-seven streets.

The Greve, thirty-eight streets.

In St. Avoy, or the Verrerie,
nineteen streets.

In the Marais, or the Temple,
fifty-two streets.

In St. Antony's, sixty-eight streets.

In the Place Maubert, eighty-one streets.

In St. Bennet, sixty streets.

In St. Andrews de Arcs, fifty-one streets.

In the quarter of the Luxembourg,
sixty-two streets.

And in that of St. Germain, fifty-five streets, into any of which you
may walk; and that when you have seen them with all that belongs to
them, fairly by day-light--their gates, their bridges, their squares,
their statues - - - and have crusaded it moreover, through all their
parish-churches, by no means omitting St. Roche and Sulpice - - -
and to crown all, have taken a walk to the four palaces, which you may
see, either with or without the statues and pictures, just as you
chuse--

--Then you will have seen--

--but 'tis what no one needeth to tell you, for you will read of it
yourself upon the portico of the Louvre, in these words,

EARTH NO SUCH FOLKS!--NO FOLKS E'ER SUCH A TOWN
AS PARIS IS!--SING, DERRY, DERRY, DOWN.

The French have a gay way of treating every thing that is Great;
and that is all can be said upon it.




Volume 7, Chapter 19



IN mentioning the word gay (as in the close of the last chapter) it
puts one (i.e. an author) in mind of the word spleen
--especially if
he has any thing to say upon it: not that by any analysis--or that
from
any table of interest or genealogy, there appears much more ground of
alliance betwixt them, than betwixt light and darkness, or any two of
the most unfriendly opposites in nature--only 'tis an undercraft of
authors to keep up a good understanding amongst words, as politicians
do amongst men
--not knowing how near they may be under a necessity of
placing them to each other--which point being now gain'd, and that I
may place mine exactly to my mind, I write it down here--

S P L E E N

This, upon leaving Chantilly, I declared to be the best principle in
the world to travel speedily upon; but I gave it only as matter of
opinion. I still continue in the same sentiments--only I had not then
experience enough of its working to add this, that though you do get on
at a tearing rate, yet you get on but uneasily to yourself at the same
time; for which reason I here quit it entirely, and for ever, and 'tis
heartily at any one's service--
it has spoiled me the digestion of a good
supper, and brought on a bilious diarrhœa
, which has brought me back
again to my first principle on which I set out--and with which I shall
now scamper it away to the banks of the Garonne--

--No;--I cannot stop a moment to give you the character of the
people--their genius-- their manners--their customs--their laws--their
religion--their government-- their manufactures--their commerce--their
finances, with all the resources and hidden springs which sustain them:
qualified as I may be, by spending three days and two nights amongst
them, and during all that time making these things the entire subject
of my enquiries and reflections--

Still--still I must away--the roads are paved--the posts are short--the
days are long--'tis no more than noon--I shall be at Fontainebleau
before the king--

--Was he going there? not that I know--



Volume 7, Chapter 20



NOW I hate to hear a person, especially if he be a traveller,
complain
that we do not get on so fast in France as we do in England;
whereas we get on much faster, consideratis considerandis; thereby
always meaning, that if you weigh their vehicles with the mountains of
baggage which you lay both before and behind upon them--and then

consider their puny horses, with the very little they give them--'tis a
wonder they get on at all: their suffering is most unchristian, and
'tis evident thereupon to me, that a French post-horse would not know
what in the world to do, was it not for the two words * * * * * * and *
* * * * * in which there is as much sustenance, as if you give him a
peck of corn: now as these words cost nothing, I long from my soul to
tell the reader what they are; but here is the question--they must be
told him plainly, and with the most distinct articulation, or it will
answer no end--and yet to do it in that plain way--though their
reverences may laugh at it in the bed-chamber--full well I wot, they
will abuse it in the parlour: for which cause, I have been volving and
revolving in my fancy some time, but to no purpose, by what clean
device or facette contrivance I might so modulate them, that whilst I
satisfy that ear which the reader chuses to lend me--I might not
dissatisfy the other which he keeps to himself.

--My ink burns my finger to try--and when I have--'twill have a worse
consequence--It will burn (I fear) my paper.


--No;--I dare not--

But if you wish to know how the abbess of Andouillets and a novice
of her convent got over the difficulty (only first wishing myself all
imaginable success)--I'll tell you without the least scruple.




Volume 7, Chapter 21



THE abbess of Andouillets, which if you look into the large set of
provincial maps now publishing at Paris, you will find situated
amongst the hills which divide Burgundy from Savoy,
being in danger
of an Anchylosis or stiff joint (the sinovia of her knee becoming
hard by long matins)
, and having tried every remedy--first, prayers
and thanksgiving; then
invocations to all the saints in heaven
promiscuously--then particularly to every saint who had ever had a
stiff leg before her--then touching it with all the reliques of the
convent, principally with the thigh-bone of the man of Lystra, who
had been impotent from his youth--then wrapping it up in her veil
when she went to bed--then cross-wise her rosary--then bringing
in to her aid the secular arm, and anointing it with oils and hot fat of
animals--then treating it with emollient and resolving fomentations--
then with poultices of marsh-mallows, mallows, bonus Henricus, white
lillies and fenugreek--then taking the woods, I mean the smoak of 'em,
holding her scapulary across her lap--then decoctions of wild chicory,
water-cresses, chervil, sweet cecily and cochlearia
--and nothing all
this while answering, was prevailed on at last to try the hot-baths of
Bourbon--so having first obtained leave of the visitor-general to take
care of her existence--she ordered all to be got ready for her journey:
a novice of the convent of about seventeen, who had been troubled
with a whitloe in her middle finger, by sticking it constantly into the
abbess's cast poultices, &c.--had gained such an interest, that over-
looking a sciatical old nun, who might have been set up for ever by the
hot-baths of Bourbon, Margarita, the little novice, was elected as the
companion of the journey.


An old calesh, belonging to the abbesse, lined with green frize, was
ordered to be drawn out into the sun--the gardener of the convent being
chosen muleteer, led out the two old mules, to clip the hair from the
rump- ends of their tails, whilst
a couple of lay-sisters were busied,
the one in darning the lining, and the other in sewing on the shreds of
yellow binding, which the teeth of time had unravelled--the under-
gardener dress'd the muleteer's hat in hot wine-lees--and a taylor
sat musically at it, in a shed over-against the convent, in assorting
four dozen of bells for the harness, whistling to each bell,
as he tied
it on with a thong.--


--The carpenter and the smith of Andouillets held a council of
wheels; and by seven, the morning after, all look'd spruce, and was
ready at the gate of the convent for the hot-baths of Bourbon--
two rows of the unfortunate stood ready there an hour before.

The abbess of Andouillets, supported by Margarita the novice,
advanced slowly to the calesh,
both clad in white, with their black
rosaries hanging at their breasts--

--There was a simple solemnity in the contrast: they entered the
calesh; the nuns in the same uniform, sweet emblem of innocence, each
occupied a window, and as the abbess and Margarita look'd up--each
(the sciatical poor nun excepted)--each stream'd out the end of her veil
in the air--then kiss'd the lilly hand which let it go: the good abbess
and Margarita laid their hands saint-wise upon their breasts--look'd
up to heaven--then to them--and look'd “God bless you, dear sisters.”

I declare I am interested in this story, and wish I had been there.


The gardener, whom I shall now call the muleteer, was a little, hearty,
broad-set, good-natured, chattering, toping kind of a fellow, who
troubled his head very little with the hows and whens of life; so
had mortgaged a month of his conventical wages in a borrachio, or
leathern cask of wine, which he had disposed behind the calesh, with a
large russet-coloured riding-coat over it, to guard it from the sun;

and as the weather was hot, and he not a niggard of his labours, walk-
ing ten times more than he rode--he found more occasions than those
of nature, to fall back to the rear of his carriage; till by frequent com-
ing and going, it had so happen'd, that all his wine had leak'd out at the
legal vent of the borrachio, before one half of the journey was finish'd.

Man is a creature born to habitudes. The day had been sultry--the
evening was delicious--the wine was generous--the Burgundian hill on
which it grew was steep--a little tempting bush over the door of a cool
cottage at the foot of it, hung vibrating in full harmony with the passions
--a gentle air rustled distinctly through the leaves--“Come--come,
thirsty muleteer,--come in.”


--The muleteer was a son of Adam, I need not say a word more. He gave
the mules, each of 'em, a sound lash, and looking in the abbess's and
Margarita's faces (as he did it)--as much as to say “here I am”--he
gave a second good crack--as much as to say to his mules, “get on”
--so slinking behind, he enter'd the little inn at the foot of the hill.

The muleteer, as I told you, was a little, joyous, chirping fellow, who
thought not of to-morrow, nor of what had gone before, or what was to
follow it, provided he got but his scantling of Burgundy
, and a little
chit-chat along with it; so entering into a long conversation, as how
he was chief gardener to the convent of Andouillets, &c. &c. and out
of friendship for the abbess and Mademoiselle Margarita, who was only
in her noviciate, he had come along with them from the confines of
Savoy, &c. &c.--and as
how she had got a white swelling by her
devotions--and what a nation of herbs he had procured to mollify her
humours, &c. &c. and that if the waters of Bourbon did not mend that
leg--she might as well be lame of bot
h--&c. &c. &c.--He so contrived
his story, as absolutely to forget the heroine of it--and with her the
little novice, and what was a more ticklish point to be forgot than
both--
the two mules; who being creatures that take advantage of the
world, inasmuch as their parents took it of them--and they not being in
a condition to return the obligation downwards (as men and women and
beasts are)--they do it side-ways, and long-ways, and back-ways--and
up hill, and down hill, and which way they can
.--Philosophers, with all
their ethicks, have never considered this rightly--how should the poor
muleteer, then in his cups, consider it at all? he did not in the least--
'tis time we do; let us leave him then in the vortex of his element, the
happiest and most thoughtless of mortal men--and for a moment let
us look after the mules, the abbess, and Margarita.

By virtue of the muleteer's two last strokes the mules had gone quietly
on, following their own consciences up the hill, till they had conquer'd
about one half of it; when the elder of them, a shrewd crafty old devil,
at the turn of an angle, giving a side glance, and no muleteer behind
them,--

By my fig! said she, swearing, I'll go no further--And if I do, replied
the other, they shall make a drum of my hide.--

And so with one consent they stopp'd thus--




Volume 7, Chapter 22



--Get on with you, said the abbess.

--Wh - - - - - ysh--ysh--cried Margarita.

Sh - - - a--shu - u--shu - - u--sh - - aw--shaw'd the abbess.

--Whu--v--w--whew--w--w--whuv'd Margarita, pursing up her sweet lips
betwixt a hoot and a whistle.

Thump--thump--thump--obstreperated the abbess of Andouillets
with the
end of her gold-headed cane against the bottom of the calesh--


The old mule let a f--



Volume 7, Chapter 23



WE are ruin'd and undone, my child, said the abbess to Margarita,--we
shall be here all night--
we shall be plunder'd--we shall be ravished--

--We shall be ravish'd, said Margarita, as sure as a gun.

Sancta Maria! cried the abbess (forgetting the O!)--
why was I
govern'd by this wicked stiff joint?
why did I leave the convent of
Andouillets? and
why didst thou not suffer thy servant to go
unpolluted to her tomb?

O my finger! my finger! cried the novice, catching fire at the word
servant--why was I not content to put it here, or there, any where
rather than be in this strait?


Strait! said the abbess.

Strait--said the novice; for
terror had struck their understandings--
the one knew not what she said--the other what she answer'd.

O my virginity! virginity! cried the abbess.

--inity!--inity! said the novice, sobbing.




Volume 7, Chapter 24



MY dear mother, quoth the novice, coming a little to herself,--there are
two certain words, which I have been told will force any horse, or ass,
or mule, to go up a hill whether he will or no; be he never so obstinate
or ill-will'd, the moment he hears them utter'd, he obeys.
They are words
magic! cried the abbess in the utmost horror--No; replied Margarita calm-
ly--but they are words sinful
--What are they? quoth the abbess, inter-
rupting her:
They are sinful in the first degree, answered Margarita,--
they are mortal--and if we are ravished and die unabsolved of them, we
shall both
--but you may pronounce them to me, quoth the abbess of
Andouillets--
They cannot, my dear mother, said the novice, be pro-
nounced at all; they will make all the blood in one's body fly up into
one's face--But you may whisper them in my ear, quoth the abbess.


Heaven! hadst thou no guardian angel to delegate to the inn at the
bottom of the hill?
was there no generous and friendly spirit unem-
ployed--no agent in nature, by some monitory shivering, creeping
along the artery which led to his heart, to rouse the muleteer from his
banquet?--no sweet minstrelsy to bring back the fair idea of the abbess
and Margarita, with their black rosaries!

Rouse! rouse!--but 'tis too late--the horrid words are pronounced this
moment--

--and how to tell them--Ye, who can speak of every thing existing, with
unpolluted lips--instruct me--guide me--




Volume 7, Chapter 25



ALL sins whatever, quoth the abbess, turning casuist in the distress
they were under, are held by the confessor of our convent to be either
mortal or venial: there is no further division.
Now a venial sin being
the slightest and least of all sins--being halved--by taking either only
the half of it, and leaving the rest--or, by taking it all, and amicably
halving it betwixt yourself and another person--in course becomes
diluted into no sin at all.

Now I see no sin in saying, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, a hundred times
together; nor is there any turpitude in pronouncing the syllable ger,
ger, ger, ger, ger, were it from our matins to our vespers: Therefore,
my dear daughter, continued the abbess of Andouillets--I will say
bou, and thou shalt say ger; and then alternately, as there is no
more sin in fou than in bou--Thou shalt say fou--and I will come in
(like fa, sol, la, re, mi, ut, at our complines)
with ter. And
accordingly the abbess, giving the pitch note, set off thus:


Abbess, )  Bou - - bou - - bou - -
Margarita,) --ger, - - ger, - - ger.
Margarita,)  Fou...fou...fou..
Abbess, ) --ter, - - ter, - - ter.

The two mules acknowledged the notes by a mutual lash of their tails;
but it went no further--'Twill answer by an' by, said the novice.


Abbess, )  Bou. bou. bou. bou. bou. bou.
Margarita,) --ger, ger, ger, ger, ger, ger.

Quicker still, cried Margarita.

Fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou.

Quicker still, cried Margarita.

Bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou.

Quicker still--God preserve me; said the abbess--They do not understand
us, cried Margarita--But the Devil does, said the abbess of Andouillets.




Volume 7, Chapter 26



WHAT a tract of country have I run!--how many degrees nearer to the
warm sun am I advanced
, and how many fair and goodly cities have I seen,
during the time you have been reading and reflecting, Madam, upon this
story! There's FONTAINBLEAU, and SENS, and JOIGNY, and AUXERRE, and
DIJON the capital of Burgundy, and CHALLON, and Mâcon the capital
of the Maconese, and a score more upon the road to LYONS--and now I
have run them over--I might as well talk to you of so many market towns
in the moon, as tell you one word about them: it will be this chapter
at the least, if not both this and the next entirely lost, do what I
will--

--Why, 'tis a strange story! Tristram.

--Alas! Madam,

had it been upon some melancholy lecture of the cross--the peace of
meekness, or the contentment of resignation--I had not been incommoded:
or had I thought of writing it upon the purer abstractions of the soul,
and that food of wisdom and holiness and contemplation, upon which the
spirit of man (when separated from the body) is to subsist for ever--
You would have come with a better appetite from it--


--I wish I never had wrote it: but as I never blot any thing out--let
us use some honest means to get it out of our heads directly.

--Pray reach me my fool's cap--I fear you sit upon it, Madam--'tis
under the cushion--I'll put it on--

Bless me! you have had it upon your head this half hour.--There then
let it stay, with a


Fa-ra diddle di

and a fa-ri diddle d

and a high-dum--dye-dum

fiddle - - - dumb - c.

And now, Madam, we may venture, I hope a little to go on.



Volume 7, Chapter 27



--All you need say of Fontainbleau (in case you are ask'd) is, that
it stands about forty miles (south something) from Paris, in the
middle of a large forest--That there is something great in it--That
the king goes there once every two or three years, with his whole
court, for the pleasure of the chace--and that, during that carnival of
sporting, any English gentleman of fashion (you need not forget
yourself) may be accommodated with a nag or two, to partake of the
sport, taking care only not to out-gallop the king--


Though there are two reasons why you need not talk loud of this to
every one.

First, Because 'twill make the said nags the harder to be got; and

Secondly, 'Tis not a word of it true.--Allons!

As for SENS--you may dispatch--in a word--“'Tis an archiepiscopal
see
.”

--For JOIGNY--the less, I think, one says of it the better.

But for AUXERRE--I could go on for ever: for in my grand tour through
Europe, in which, after all, my father (not caring to trust me with
any one) attended me himself, with my uncle Toby, and Trim, and
Obadiah, and indeed most of the family, except my mother, who being
taken up with a project of knitting my father a pair of large worsted
breeches--(the thing is common sense)--and she not caring to be put out
of her way, she staid at home, at SHANDY HALL, to keep things right
during the expedition; in which, I say, my father stopping us two days
at Auxerre, and
his researches being ever of such a nature, that they
would have found fruit even in a desert
--he has left me enough to say
upon AUXERRE: in short, wherever my father went--but 'twas more
remarkably so, in this journey through France and Italy, than in
any other stages of his life--his road seemed to lie so much on one side
of that, wherein all other travellers have gone before him--he saw kings
and courts and silks of all colours, in such strange lights--and his
remarks and reasonings upon the characters, the manners, and customs of
the countries we pass'd over, were so opposite to those of all other
mortal men, particularly those of my uncle Toby and Trim--(to say
nothing of myself)--and to crown all--
the occurrences and scrapes which
we were perpetually meeting and getting into, in consequence of his
systems and opiniotry--they were of so odd, so mix'd and tragi-comical a
contexture
--That the whole put together, it appears of so different a
shade and tint from any tour of Europe, which was ever executed--that
I will venture to pronounce--the fault must be mine and mine only--if it
be not read by all travellers and travel-readers, till travelling is no
more,--or which comes to the same point--till the world, finally, takes
it into its head to stand still.--


--But this rich bale is not to be open'd now; except a small thread or
two of it, merely to unravel the mystery of my father's stay at
AUXERRE.

--As I have mentioned it--'tis too slight to be kept suspended; and when
'tis wove in, there is an end of it.

We'll go, brother Toby, said my father, whilst dinner is coddling--to
the abbey of Saint Germain, if it be only to see these bodies, of
which Monsieur Sequier has given such a recommendation.--I'll go see
any body, quoth my uncle Toby; for he was all compliance through
every step of the journey--
Defend me! said my father--they are all
mummies--Then one need not shave; quoth my uncle Toby--Shave!
no--cried my father--'twill be more like relations to go with our beards
on
--So out we sallied, the corporal lending his master his arm, and
bringing up the rear, to the abbey of Saint Germain.

Every thing is very fine, and very rich, and very superb, and very
magnificent, said my father, addressing himself to the sacristan, who
was a younger brother of the order of Benedictines--but our curiosity
has led us to see the bodies, of which Monsieur Sequier has given the
world so exact a description.--The sacristan made a bow, and lighting a
torch first, which he had always in the vestry ready for the purpose;
he led us into the tomb of St. Heribald--This, said the sacristan,
laying his hand upon the tomb, was a renowned prince of the house of
Bavaria, who under the successive reigns of Charlemagne, Louis le
Debonnair, and Charles the Bald, bore a great sway in the
government, and had a principal hand in bringing every thing into order
and discipline--


Then he has been as great, said my uncle, in the field, as in the
cabinet--I dare say he has been a gallant soldier-
-He was a monk--said
the sacristan.

My uncle Toby and Trim sought comfort in each other's faces--but
found it not: my father clapped both his hands upon his cod-piece,
which was a way he had when any thing hugely tickled him: for though he
hated a monk and the very smell of a monk worse than all the devils in
hell--yet the shot hitting my uncle Toby and Trim so much harder
than him, 'twas a relative triumph; and put him into the gayest humour
in the world.


--And pray what do you call this gentleman? quoth my father, rather
sportingly: This tomb, said the young Benedictine, looking downwards,
contains the bones of Saint MAXIMA, who came from Ravenna on purpose
to touch the body--

--Of Saint MAXIMUS, said my father, popping in with his saint before
him,--they were two of the greatest saints in the whole martyrology,
added my father--
Excuse me, said the sacristan--'twas to touch the
bones of Saint Germain, the builder of the abbey--And what did she
get by it? said my uncle Toby--What does any woman get by it? said my
father--MARTYRDOME; replied the young Benedictine, making a bow down
to the ground, and uttering the word with so humble, but decisive a
cadence, it disarmed my father for a moment. 'Tis supposed, continued
the Benedictine, that St. Maxima has lain in this tomb four hundred
years, and two hundred before her canonization--'Tis but a slow rise,
brother Toby, quoth my father, in this self-same army of martyrs.--A
desperate slow one, an' please your honour, said Trim, unless one
could purchase--I should rather sell out entirely, quoth my uncle
Toby--I am pretty much of your opinion, brother Toby, said my
father.

--Poor St. Maxima! said my uncle Toby low to himself, as we turn'd
from her tomb: She was one of the fairest and most beautiful ladies
either of Italy or France, continued the sacristan--But who the
duce has got lain down here, besides her? quoth my father, pointing
with his cane to a large tomb as we walked on
--It is Saint Optat,
Sir, answered the sacristan--And properly is Saint Optat plac'd! said
my father: And what is Saint Optat's story? continued he. Saint
Optat, replied the sacristan, was a bishop--

--I thought so, by heaven! cried my father, interrupting him--Saint
Optat!--how should Saint Optat fail? so snatching out his pocket-
book, and the young Benedictine holding him the torch as he wrote,
he set it down as a new prop to his system of Christian names,
and I will be bold to say, so disinterested was he in the search of
truth, that had he found a treasure in Saint Optat's tomb, it would
not have made him half so rich: 'Twas as successful a short visit as
ever was paid to the dead; and so highly was his fancy pleas'd with all
that had passed in it,--that he determined at once to stay another day
in Auxerre.


--I'll see the rest of these good gentry to-morrow, said my father, as
we cross'd over the square--And while you are paying that visit, brother
Shandy, quoth my uncle Toby--the corporal and I will mount the
ramparts.



Volume 7, Chapter 28



--NOW this is the most puzzled skein of all--for in this last chapter,
as far at least as it has help'd me through Auxerre, I have been
getting forwards in two different journies together, and with the same
dash of the pen--for I have got entirely out of Auxerre in this
journey which I am writing now, and I am got half way out of Auxerre
in that which I shall write hereafter--There is but a certain degree of
perfection in every thing; and by pushing at something beyond that, I
have brought myself into such a situation, as no traveller ever stood
before me; for I am this moment walking across the market-place of
Auxerre with my father and my uncle Toby, in our way back to din-
ner--and I am this moment also entering Lyons with my post-chaise
broke into a thousand pieces--and I am moreover this moment in a
handsome pavillion built by Pringello,[36] upon the banks of the
Garonne, which Mons. Sligniac has lent me, and where I now sit
rhapsodising all these affairs.


--Let me collect myself, and pursue my journey.



Volume 7, Chapter 29



I AM glad of it, said I, settling the account with myself, as I walk'd
into Lyons--my chaise being all laid higgledy-piggledy with my
baggage in a cart, which was moving slowly before me--I am heartily
glad, said I, that 'tis all broke to pieces; for now I can go directly
by water to Avignon, which will carry me on a hundred and twenty
miles of my journey, and not cost me seven livres--and from thence,
continued I, bringing forwards the account, I can hire a couple of
mules--or asses, if I like, (for nobody knows me,) and cross the plains
of Languedoc for almost nothing--
I shall gain four hundred livres by
the misfortune clear into my purse: and pleasure! worth--worth double
the money by it. With what velocity, continued I, clapping my two hands
together, shall I fly down the rapid Rhone, with the VIVARES on my
right hand, and DAUPHINY on my left, scarce seeing the ancient cities
of VIENNE, Valence, and Vivieres. What a flame will it rekindle in
the lamp, to snatch a blushing grape from the Hermitage and Cotê
roti, as I shoot by the foot of them! and what a fresh spring in the
blood! to behold upon the banks advancing and retiring, the castles of
romance, whence courteous knights have whilome rescued the
distress'd--and see vertiginous, the rocks, the mountains, the
cataracts, and all the hurry which Nature is in with all her great
works about her.


As I went on thus, methought my chaise, the wreck of which look'd
stately enough at the first, insensibly grew less and less in its size;
the freshness of the painting was no more--the gilding lost its
lustre--and the whole affair appeared so poor in my eyes--so sorry!
--so contemptible! and, in a word, so much worse than the abbess of
Andouillets' itself--that I was just opening my mouth to give it to the
devil--when a pert vamping chaise-undertaker, stepping nimbly across
the street, demanded if Monsieur would have his chaise refitted--No,
no, said I, shaking my head sideways--Would Monsieur choose to sell it?
rejoined the undertaker--With all my soul, said I--the iron work is worth
forty livres--and the glasses worth forty more--and the leather you may
take to live on.


What a mine of wealth, quoth I, as he counted me the money, has this
post-chaise brought me in? And
this is my usual method of book-keeping,
at least with the disasters of life--making a penny of every one of 'em
as they happen to me--


--Do, my dear Jenny, tell the world for me, how I behaved under one,
the most oppressive of its kind, which could befal me as a man, proud
as he ought to be of his manhood--


'Tis enough, saidst thou, coming close up to me, as I stood with my
garters in my hand, reflecting upon what had not pass'd--'Tis enough,
Tristram, and I am satisfied, saidst thou, whispering these words in
my ear, * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *;--* * * * * * * *
*--any other man would have sunk down to the centre--

--Every thing is good for something, quoth I.

--I'll go into Wales for six weeks, and drink goat's whey--and I'll
gain seven years longer life for the accident. For which reason
I think
myself inexcusable, for blaming Fortune so often as I have done, for
pelting me all my life long, like an ungracious duchess, as I call'd
her, with so many small evils: surely, if I have any cause to be angry
with her, 'tis that she has not sent me great ones--a score of good
cursed, bouncing losses, would have been as good as a pension to me.


--One of a hundred a year, or so, is all I wish--I would not be at the
plague of paying land-tax for a larger.




Volume 7, Chapter 30




TO those who call vexations, VEXATIONS, as knowing what they are,
there could not be a greater, than
to be the best part of a day at Lyons,
the most opulent and flourishing city in France, enriched with the
most fragments of antiquity--and not be able to see it. To be withheld
upon any account, must be a vexation; but to be withheld by a
vexation--must certainly be, what philosophy justly calls

VEXATION
upon
VEXATION.


I had got my two dishes of milk coffee (which by the bye is excellently
good for a consumption, but you must boil the milk and coffee
together--otherwise 'tis only coffee and milk)--and as it was no more
than eight in the morning, and the boat did not go off till noon, I had
time to see enough of Lyons to tire the patience of all the friends I
had in the world with it. I will take a walk to the cathedral, said I,
looking at my list, and see the wonderful mechanism of this great clock
of Lippius of Basil, in the first place--

Now, of all things in the world, I understand the least of mechanism--I
have neither genius, or taste, or fancy--and have a brain so entirely
unapt for every thing of that kind, that I solemnly declare I was never
yet able to comprehend the principles of motion of a squirrel cage, or
a common knife-grinder's wheel--tho' I have many an hour of my life
look'd up with great devotion at the one--and stood by with as much
patience as any christian ever could do, at the other--


I'll go see the surprising movements of this great clock, said I, the
very first thing I do: and then I will pay a visit to the great library
of the Jesuits, and procure, if possible, a sight of the thirty volumes
of the general history of China, wrote (not in the Tartarean, but)
in the Chinese language, and in the Chinese character too.

Now I almost know as little of the Chinese language, as I do of the
mechanism of Lippius's clock-work; so, why these should have jostled
themselves into the two first articles of my list--I leave to the
curious as a problem of Nature. I own it looks like one of her
ladyship's obliquities
; and they who court her, are interested in
finding out her humour as much as I.

When these curiosities are seen, quoth I, half addressing myself to my
valet de place, who stood behind me--'twill be no hurt if we go to
the church of St. Irenæus, and see the pillar to which Christ was
tied--and after that, the house where Pontius Pilate lived--'Twas at
the next town, said the valet de place--at Vienne; I am glad of it,
said I, rising briskly from my chair, and walking across the room with
strides twice as long as my usual pace--“for so much the sooner shall I
be at the Tomb of the two lovers.”


What was the cause of this movement, and why I took such long strides
in uttering this--I might leave to the curious too; but as no principle
of clock-work is concerned in it--'twill be as well for the reader if I
explain it myself.



Volume 7, Chapter 31



O! THERE is a sweet æra in the life of man, when (the brain being
tender and fibrillous, and more like pap than any thing else)
--a story
read of two fond lovers, separated from each other by cruel parents,
and by still more cruel destiny--


     Amandus--He
     Amanda--She--

each ignorant of the other's course,

     He--east
     She--west

Amandus taken captive by the Turks, and carried to the emperor of
Morocco's court, where the princess of Morocco falling in love with
him, keeps him twenty years in prison for the love of his Amanda.--

She--(Amanda)
all the time wandering barefoot, and with dishevell'd
hair, o'er rocks and mountains, enquiring for Amandus!--Amandus!
Amandus!--making every hill and valley to echo back his name--

Amandus! Amandus!

at every town and city, sitting down forlorn at the gate--Has Aman-
dus!--has my Amandus enter'd?--till,--going round, and round, and
round the world--chance unexpected bringing them at the same mo-
ment of the night, though by different ways, to the gate of Lyons, their
native city, and each in well-known accents calling out aloud,


Is Amandus}
          still alive?
Is my Amanda}

they fly into each other's arms, and both drop down dead for joy.

There is a soft æra in every gentle mortal's life, where such a story
affords more pabulum to the brain, than all the Frusts, and
Crusts, and Rusts of antiquity, which travellers can cook up
for
it.


--'Twas all that stuck on the right side of the cullender in my own,
of what Spon and others, in their accounts of Lyons, had strained
into it; and finding, moreover, in some Itinerary, but in what God
knows--That sacred to the fidelity of Amandus and Amanda, a tomb
was built without the gates, where, to this hour, lovers called upon
them to attest their truths--I never could get into a scrape of that
kind in my life, but this tomb of the lovers would, somehow or other,
come in at the close --nay such a kind of empire had it establish'd over
me, that I could seldom think or speak of Lyons--and sometimes not so
much as see even a Lyons-waistcoat, but this remnant of antiquity
would present itself to my fancy; and I have often said in my wild way
of running on--tho' I fear with some irreverence--“I thought this
shrine (neglected as it was) as valuable as that of Mecca, and so
little short, except in wealth, of the Santa Casa itself, that some
time or other, I would go a pilgrimage (though I had no other busi-
ness at Lyons) on purpose to pay it a visit.”

In my list, therefore, of Videnda at Lyons, this, tho' last,--was
not, you see, least ; so taking a dozen or two of longer strides than
usual cross my room, just whilst it passed my brain, I walked down
calmly into the basse cour, in order to sally forth; and having
called for my bill
--as it was uncertain whether I should return to my
inn, I had paid it--had moreover given the maid ten sous, and was just
receiving the dernier compliments of Monsieur Le Blanc, for a
pleasant voyage down the Rhône--when I was stopped at the gate--



Volume 7, Chapter 32



--'TWAS by a poor ass, who had just turned in with a couple of large
panniers upon his back, to collect eleemosynary turnip-tops and
cabbage-leaves
; and stood dubious, with his two fore-feet on the inside
of the threshold, and with his two hinder feet towards the street, as
not knowing very well whether he was to go in or no.

Now, 'tis an animal (be in what hurry I may) I cannot bear to
strike--there is a patient endurance of sufferings, wrote so
unaffectedly in his looks and carriage, which pleads so mightily for
him, that it always disarms me; and to that degree, that I do not like
to speak unkindly to him: on the contrary, meet him where I will--
whether in town or country--in cart or under panniers--whether in
liberty or bondage--I have ever something civil to say to him on my
part; and as one word begets another (if he has as little to do as
I)--I generally fall into conversation with him; and surely never is my
imagination so busy as in framing his responses from the etchings of
his countenance--and where those carry me not deep enough--in flying
from my own heart into his, and seeing what is natural for an ass to
think--as well as a man, upon the occasion. In truth, it is the only
creature of all the classes of beings below me, with whom I can do
this: for parrots, jackdaws, &c.--I never exchange a word with them
--nor with the apes, &c. for pretty near the same reason; they act
by rote, as the others speak by it, and equally make me silent: nay my
dog and my cat, though I value them both--(and for my dog he would
speak if he could)--yet somehow or other, they neither of them possess
the talents for conversation--I can make nothing of a discourse with
them, beyond the proposition, the reply, and rejoinder,
which
terminated my father's and my mother's conversations, in his beds of
justice--and those utter'd--there's an end of the dialogue--

--But with an ass, I can commune for ever.

Come, Honesty! said I,--seeing it was impracticable to pass betwixt
him and the gate--art thou for coming in, or going out?

The ass twisted his head round to look up the street--

Well--replied I--we'll wait a minute for thy driver:

--He turned his head thoughtful about, and looked wistfully the
opposite way--

I understand thee perfectly, answered I--If thou takest a wrong step in
this affair, he will cudgel thee to death--Well! a minute is but a
minute, and if it saves a fellow-creature a drubbing, it shall not be
set down as ill-spent.


He was eating the stem of an artichoke as this discourse went on, and
in the little peevish contentions of nature betwixt hunger and
unsavouriness, had dropt it out of his mouth half a dozen times, and
pick'd it up again--God help thee, Jack! said I, thou hast a bitter
breakfast on't--and many a bitter day's labour,--and many a bitter blow,
I fear, for its wages--'tis all--all bitterness to thee, whatever life
is to others.--And now thy mouth, if one knew the truth of it, is as
bitter, I dare say, as soot--(for he had cast aside the stem) and thou
hast not a friend perhaps in all this world, that will give thee a
macaroon.--In saying this, I pull'd out a paper of 'em, which I had
just purchased, and gave him one--and at this moment that I am telling
it, my heart smites me, that there was more of pleasantry in the
conceit, of seeing how an ass would eat a macaroon--than of
benevolence in giving him one, which presided in the act.


When the ass had eaten his macaroon, I press'd him to come in--the poor
beast was heavy loaded--his legs seem'd to tremble under him--he hung
rather backwards, and as I pull'd at his halter, it broke short in my
hand--
he look'd up pensive in my face--“Don't thrash me with it--but if
you will, you may”--If I do, said I, I'll be d--d.


The word was but one-half of it pronounced, like the abbess of
Andoüillet's--(so there was no sin in it)--when a person coming in, let
fall a thundering bastinado upon the poor devil's crupper, which put an
end to the ceremony.


Out upon it!

cried I--but the interjection was equivocal--and, I think, wrong placed
too--for the end of an osier which had started out from the contexture
of the ass's panier, had caught hold of my breeches pocket, as he
rush'd by me, and rent it in the most disastrous direction you can
imagine--so that the


Out upon it! in my opinion, should have come in here--but this I
leave to be settled by

             The

           REVIEWERS

             of

          MY BREECHES,

which I have brought over along with me for that purpose.



Volume 7, Chapter 33



WHEN all was set to rights, I came down stairs again into the basse
cour with my valet de place, in order to sally out towards the tomb
of the two lovers, &c.--and was a second time stopp'd at the gate--not
by the ass--but by the person who struck him; and who, by that time, had
taken possession (as is not uncommon after a defeat) of the very spot
of ground where the ass stood.


It was a commissary sent to me from the post-office, with a rescript in
his hand for the payment of some six livres odd sous.

Upon what account? said I.--'Tis upon the part of the king, replied the
commissary, heaving up both his shoulders--

--My good friend, quoth I--as sure as I am I--and you are you--

--And who are you? said he.--

--Don't puzzle me; said I.



Volume 7, Chapter 34



--But it is an indubitable verity, continued I, addressing myself to
the commissary, changing only the form of my asseveration--
that I owe
the king of France nothing but my good will
; for he is a very honest
man, and I wish him all health and pastime in the world--

Pardonnez moi--replied the commissary, you are indebted to him six
livres four sous, for the next post from hence to St. Fons, in your
route to Avignon--which being a post royal, you pay double for the
horses and postillion--otherwise 'twould have amounted to no more than
three livres two sous--

--But I don't go by land; said I.

--You may if you please; replied the commissary--

Your most obedient servant--said I, making him a low bow--

The commissary, with all the sincerity of grave good breeding--made me
one, as low again.--I never was more disconcerted with a bow in my
life.

--The devil take the serious character of these people! quoth I--(aside)
they understand no more of Irony than this--

The comparison was standing close by with his panniers--but something
seal'd up my lips
--I could not pronounce the name--

Sir, said I, collecting myself--
it is not my intention to take post--

--But you may--said he, persisting in his first reply--you may take post
if you chuse--

--And I may take salt to my pickled herring, said I, if I chuse--

--But I do not chuse--

--But you must pay for it, whether you do or no.


Aye! for the salt; said I (I know)--

--And for the post too; added he. Defend me! cried I--

I travel by water
--I am going down the Rhône this very afternoon--my
baggage is in the boat--and
I have actually paid nine livres for my
passage--


C'est tout egal--'tis all one; said he.

Bon Dieu! what, pay for the way I go! and for the way I do not go!


--C'est tout egal; replied the commissary--

--The devil it is! said I--but I will go to ten thousand Bastiles
first--


O England! England! thou land of liberty, and climate of good sense,
thou tenderest of mothers--and gentlest of nurses, cried I, kneeling
upon one knee, as I was beginning my apostrophè.

When the director of Madam Le Blanc's conscience coming in at that
instant, and seeing a person in black, with a face as pale as ashes, at
his devotions--looking still paler by the contrast and distress of his
drapery--ask'd, if I stood in want of the aids of the church--

I go by WATER--said I--and here's another will be for making me pay for
going by OIL.




Volume 7, Chapter 35



AS I perceived the commissary of the post-office would have his six
livres four sous, I had nothing else for it, but to say some smart
thing upon the occasion, worth the money:

And so I set off thus:--

--And pray, Mr. Commissary, by what law of courtesy is a defenceless
stranger to be used just the reverse from what you use a Frenchman in
this matter?

By no means; said he.

Excuse me; said I--for you have begun, Sir, with first tearing off my
breeches--and now you want my pocket--

Whereas--had you first taken my pocket, as you do with your own
people--and then left me bare a--'d after--I had been a beast to have
complain'd--

As it is--

--'Tis contrary to the law of nature.

--'Tis contrary to reason.

--'Tis contrary to the GOSPEL.


But not to this--said he--putting a printed paper into my hand,



           PAR le ROY.

----'Tis a pithy prolegomenon, quoth I--and so read on -- -- -- --
-- -- -- -- ---- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --
-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

--By all which it appears, quoth I, having read it over, a little too
rapidly, that if a man sets out in a post-chaise from Paris--he must
go on travelling in one, all the days of his life--or pay for it.--Excuse
me, said the commissary, the spirit of the ordinance is this--That if
you set out with an intention of running post from Paris to
Avignon, &c. you shall not change that intention or mode of
travelling, without first satisfying the fermiers for two posts further
than the place you repent at--and 'tis founded, continued he, upon this,
that the REVENUES are not to fall short through your fickleness--

--O by heavens! cried I--if fickleness is taxable in France--we have
nothing to do but to make the best peace with you we can--


AND SO THE PEACE WAS MADE;

--And if it is a bad one--as Tristram Shandy laid the corner-stone of
it--nobody but Tristram Shandy ought to be hanged.




Volume 7, Chapter 36



THOUGH I was sensible I had said as many clever things to the
commissary as came to six livres four sous, yet I was determined to
note down the imposition amongst my remarks before I retired from the
place; so putting my hand into my coat-pocket for my remarks--(which, by
the bye, may be a caution to travellers to take a little more care of
their remarks for the future)
“my remarks were stolen”--Never did
sorry traveller make such a pother and racket about his remarks as I
did about mine, upon the occasion.

Heaven! earth! sea! fire! cried I, calling in every thing to my aid but
what I should--My remarks are stolen!--what shall I do?--Mr. Commis-
sary! pray did I drop any remarks, as I stood besides you?--

You dropp'd a good many very singular ones; replied he--Pugh! said I,
those were but a few, not worth above six livres two sous--but these
are a large parcel
--He shook his head--Monsieur Le Blanc! Madam Le
Blanc! did you see any papers of mine?--you maid of the house! run up
stairs--François! run up after her--

--I must have my remarks--they were the best remarks, cried I, that ever
were made--the wisest--the wittiest--What shall I do?--which way shall I
turn myself?

Sancho Pança, when he lost his ass's FURNITURE, did not exclaim more
bitterly.




Volume 7, Chapter 37



WHEN the first transport was over, and the registers of the brain were
beginning to get a little out of the confusion
into which this jumble
of cross accidents had cast them--it then presently occurr'd to me, that
I had left my remarks in the pocket of the chaise--and that
in selling
my chaise, I had sold my remarks along with it, to the chaise-vamper.  
      I leave this void space that the reader may swear into it any
oath that he is most accustomed to--For my own part, if ever I swore a
whole oath into a vacancy in my life, I think it was into that-- * *
* * * * * * *, said I--and so my remarks through France, which were as
full of wit, as an egg is full of meat, and as well worth four hundred
guineas, as the said egg is worth a penny
--have I been selling here to a
chaise-vamper--for four Louis d'Ors--and giving him a post-chaise (by
heaven) worth six into the bargain; had it been to Dodsley, or Becket,
or any creditable bookseller, who was either leaving off business, and
wanted a post-chaise--or who was beginning it--and wanted my remarks,
and two or three guineas along with them--I could have borne it--but
to a chaise-vamper!
--shew me to him this moment, François,--said I--
The valet de place put on his hat, and led the way--and I pull'd off
mine, as I pass'd the commissary, and followed him.



Volume 7, Chapter 38



WHEN we arrived at the chaise-vamper's house, both the house and
the shop were shut up; it was the eighth of September, the nativity of
the blessed Virgin Mary, mother of God--


--Tantarra-ra-tan-tivi--the whole world was gone out a May-poling
--frisking here--capering there--no body cared a button for me
or my remarks; so I sat me down upon a bench by the door, philoso-
phating upon my condition: by a better fate than usually attends me,
I had not waited half an hour, when the mistress came in to take
the papilliotes from off her hair, before she went to the May-poles--

The French women, by the bye, love May-poles, à la folie--that is,
as much as their matins--give 'em but a May-pole, whether in May,
June, July
or September--they never count the times--down it
goes--'tis meat, drink, washing, and lodging to 'em
--and had we but
the policy, an' please your worships (as wood is a little scarce in
France), to send them but plenty of May-poles--


The women would set them up; and when they had done, they would
dance round them (and the men for company) till they were all blind.

The wife of the chaise-vamper stepp'd in, I told you, to take the
papilliotes from off her hair--the toilet stands still for no man--so
she jerk'd off her cap, to begin with them as she open'd the door, in
doing which, one of them fell upon the ground--I instantly saw it was
my own writing--

O Seigneur! cried I--
you have got all my remarks upon your head,
Madam!
--J'en suis bien mortifiée, said she--'tis well, thinks I, they
have stuck there--for
could they have gone deeper, they would have made
such confusion in a French woman's noddle--She had better have gone
with it unfrizled, to the day of eternity.


Tenez--said she--so without any idea of the nature of my suffering, she
took them from her curls, and put them gravely one by one into my
hat--one was twisted this way--another twisted that--ey! by my faith;
and when they are published, quoth I,--

They will be worse twisted still.




Volume 7, Chapter 39



AND now for Lippius's clock! said I, with the air of a man, who had
got thro' all his difficulties--nothing can prevent us seeing that, and
the Chinese history, &c.
except the time, said François--for 'tis
almost eleven--then we must speed the faster, said I, striding it away
to the cathedral.

I cannot say, in my heart, that it gave me any concern in being told by
one of the minor canons, as I was entering the west door,--That
Lippius's great clock was all out of joints, and had not gone for
some years--It will give me the more time, thought I, to peruse the
Chinese history; and besides
I shall be able to give the world a
better account of the clock in its decay, than I could have done in its
flourishing condition--


--And so away I posted to the college of the Jesuits.

Now it is with the project of getting a peep at the history of China
in Chinese characters--as with many others I could mention, which
strike the fancy only at a distance; for as I came nearer and nearer to
the point--
my blood cool'd--the freak gradually went off, till at length
I would not have given a cherry-stone to have it gratified
--The truth
was, my time was short, and my heart was at the Tomb of the Lovers
--I wish to God, said I, as I got the rapper in my hand, that the key of
the library may be but lost; it fell out as well--

For all the JESUITS had got the cholic--
and to that degree, as never
was known in the memory of the oldest practitioner.



Volume 7, Chapter 40



AS I knew the geography of the Tomb of the Lovers, as well as if I had
lived twenty years in Lyons, namely, that it was upon the turning of
my right hand, just without the gate, leading to the Fauxbourg de
Vaise--I dispatched François to the boat, that I might pay the
homage I so long ow'd it, without a witness of my weakness--I walk'd
with all imaginable joy towards the place--when I saw the gate which
intercepted the tomb, my heart glowed within me--

--Tender and faithful spirits! cried I, addressing myself to Amandus
and Amanda--long--long have I tarried to drop this tear upon your
tomb--I come--I come--

When I came--there was no tomb to drop it upon.


What would I have given for my uncle Toby, to have whistled Lillo
bullero!




Volume 7, Chapter 41



NO matter how, or in what mood--but I flew from the tomb of the
lovers--or rather I did not fly from it--(for there was no such thing
existing) and just got time enough to the boat to save my passage;--and
ere I had sailed a hundred yards, the Rhône and the Saôn met
together, and carried me down merrily betwixt them.

But I have described this voyage down the Rhône, before I made it--

--So now I am at Avignon, and as there is nothing to see but the old
house, in which the duke of Ormond resided, and nothing to stop me
but a short remark upon the place, in three minutes you will see me
crossing the bridge upon a mule, with François upon a horse with my
portmanteau behind him, and the owner of both, striding the way before
us, with a long gun upon his shoulder, and a sword under his arm, lest
peradventure we should run away with his cattle. Had you seen my
breeches in entering Avignon,--Though you'd have seen them better, I
think, as I mounted--you would not have thought the precaution amiss,
or found in your heart to have taken it in dudgeon; for my own part, I
took it most kindly; and determined to make him a present of them, when
we got to the end of our journey, for the trouble they had put him to,
of arming himself at all points against them.

Before I go further, let me get rid of my remark upon Avignon, which
is this: That I think it wrong, merely because a man's hat has been
blown off his head by chance the first night he comes to Avignon,--
that he should therefore say, “Avignon is more subject to high winds
than any town in all France:” for which reason I laid no stress upon
the accident till I had enquired of the master of the inn about it, who
telling me seriously it was so--and hearing, moreover, the windiness
of Avignon spoke of in the country about as a proverb--I set it down,
merely to ask the learned what can be the cause--the consequence
I saw--for they are all Dukes, Marquisses, and Counts, there--the
duce a Baron, in all Avignon--so that there is scarce any talking to
them on a windy day.


Prithee, friend, said I, take hold of my mule for a moment--for I want-
ed to pull off one of my jack-boots, which hurt my heel--the man was
standing quite idle at the door of the inn, and as I had taken it into my
head, he was someway concerned about the house or stable, I put the
bridle into his hand--so begun with the boot:--when I had finished the
affair, I turned about to take the mule from the man, and thank him--

--But Monsieur le Marquis had walked in--



Volume 7, Chapter 42



I HAD now the whole south of France, from the banks of the Rhône to
those of the Garonne, to traverse upon my mule at my own leisure--
at
my own leisure
--for I had left Death, the Lord knows--and He only--how
far behind me--“I have followed many a man thro' France, quoth he--but
never at this mettlesome rate.”--Still he followed,--and still I fled him
--but I fled him cheerfully--still he pursued--but, like one who pursued
his prey without hope--as he lagg'd, every step he lost, softened his
looks--why should I fly him at this rate?


So notwithstanding all the commissary of the post-office had said, I
changed the mode of my travelling once more; and, after so precip-
itate and rattling a course as I had run, I flattered my fancy with
thinking of my mule, and that I should traverse the rich plains of
Languedoc upon his back, as slowly as foot could fall.


There is nothing more pleasing to a traveller--or more terrible to
travel-writers, than a large rich plain; especially if it is without
great rivers or bridges; and presents nothing to the eye, but one
unvaried picture of plenty: for after they have once told you, that
'tis delicious! or delightful! (as the case happens)--that the soil was
grateful, and that nature pours out all her abundance, &c. . . . they
have then a large plain upon their hands, which they know not what to
do with--and which is of little or no use to them but to carry them to
some town; and that town, perhaps of little more, but a new place to
start from to the next plain
--and so on.

--This is most terrible work; judge if I don't manage my plains better.



Volume 7, Chapter 43



I HAD not gone above two leagues and a half, before the man with his
gun began to look at his priming.

I had three several times loiter'd terribly behind; half a mile at
least every time; once, in deep conference with a drum-maker, who was
making drums for the fairs of Baucaira and Tarascone--I did not
understand the principles--

The second time, I cannot so properly say, I stopp'd--for meeting a
couple of Franciscans straitened more for time than myself, and not
being able to get to the bottom of what I was about--I had turn'd back
with them--

The third, was an affair of trade with a gossip, for a hand-basket of
Provence figs for four sous; this would have been transacted at once;
but for a case of conscience at the close of it; for when the figs were
paid for, it turn'd out, that there were two dozen of eggs covered over
with vine-leaves at the bottom of the basket--as I had no intention of
buying eggs--I made no sort of claim of them--as for the space they had
occupied--what signified it? I had figs enow for my money--

--But it was my intention to have the basket--it was the gossip's
intention to keep it, without which, she could do nothing with her
eggs--and unless I had the basket, I could do as little with my figs,
which were too ripe already, and most of 'em burst at the side: this
brought on a short contention, which terminated in sundry proposals,
what we should both do--

--How we disposed of our eggs and figs, I defy you, or the Devil
himself, had he not been there (which I am persuaded he was), to form
the least probable conjecture:
You will read the whole of it--not this
year, for I am hastening to the story of my uncle Toby's amours
--but
you will read it in the collection of those which have arose out of the
journey across this plain--and which, therefore, I call my

PLAIN STORIES.

How far my pen has been fatigued, like those of other travellers, in
this journey of it, over so barren a track--the world must judge--but
the traces of it, which are now all set o' vibrating together this moment,
tell me 'tis the most fruitful and busy period of my life; for as I had
made no convention with my man with the gun, as to time--by stopping
and talking to every soul I met, who was not in a full trot--joining all
parties before me--waiting for every soul behind--hailing all those who
were coming through cross-roads--arresting all kinds of beggars,
pilgrims, fiddlers, friars--not passing by a woman in a mulberry-tree
without commending her legs, and tempting her into conversation with a
pinch of snuff--In short, by seizing every handle, of what size or
shape soever, which chance held out to me in this journey--I turned my
plain into a city--I was always in company, and with great variety
too; and as my mule loved society as much as myself, and had some
proposals always on his part to offer to every beast he met--I am
confident we could have passed through Pall-Mall, or St. James's-
Street, for a month together, with fewer adventures--and seen
less of human nature.

O! there is that sprightly frankness, which at once unpins every plait
of a Languedocian's dress--that whatever is beneath it, it looks so
like the simplicity which poets sing of in better days
--I will delude my
fancy, and believe it is so.

'Twas in the road betwixt Nismes and Lunel, where there is the best
Muscatto wine in all France, and which by the bye belongs to the hon-
est canons of MONTPELLIER--and
foul befal the man who has drunk it
at their table, who grudges them a drop of it.

--The sun was set--they had done their work; the nymphs had tied up
their hair afresh--and the swains were preparing for a carousal--my mule
made a dead point--'Tis the fife and tabourin, said I--I'm frighten'd
to death, quoth he--They are running at the ring of pleasure, said I,
giving him a prick--By saint Boogar, and all the saints at the backside
of the door of purgatory
, said he--(making the same resolution with
the abbesse of Andoüillets)
I'll not go a step further--'Tis very well,
sir, said I--I never will argue a point with one of your family, as long
as I live; so leaping off his back, and kicking off one boot into this
ditch, and t'other into that--I'll take a dance, said I--so stay you
here.


A sun-burnt daughter of Labour rose up from the groupe to meet me,
as I advanced towards them; her hair, which was a dark chesnut ap-
proaching rather to a black, was tied up in a knot, all but a single tress.


We want a cavalier, said she, holding out both her hands, as if to
offer them--And a cavalier ye shall have; said I, taking hold of both of
them.

Hadst thou, Nannette, been array'd like a duchesse!

--But that cursed slit in thy petticoat!

Nannette cared not for it.

We could not have done without you, said she, letting go one hand, with
self-taught politeness, leading me up with the other.

A lame youth, whom Apollo had recompensed with a pipe, and to which
he had added a tabourin of his own accord, ran sweetly over the pre-
lude, as he sat upon the bank--Tie me up this tress instantly, said
Nannette, putting a piece of string into my hand--It taught me to forg-
et I was a stranger--The whole knot fell down--We had been seven
years acquainted.


The youth struck the note upon the tabourin--his pipe followed, and off
we bounded--“the duce take that slit!”

The sister of the youth, who had stolen her voice from heaven, sung
alternately with her brother--'twas a Gascoigne roundelay.

VIVA LA JOIA!

FIDON LA TRISTESSA!

The nymphs join'd in unison, and their swains an octave below them--

I would have given a crown to have it sew'd up--Nannette would not
have given a sous--
Viva la joia! was in her lips--Viva la joia! was
in her eyes. A transient spark of amity shot across the space betwixt
us--She look'd amiable!--Why could I not live, and end my days thus?
Just Disposer of our joys and sorrows, cried I, why could not a man sit
down in the lap of content here--and dance, and sing, and say his
prayers, and go to heaven with this nut-brown maid? Capriciously did
she bend her head on one side, and dance up insidious
--Then 'tis time
to dance off, quoth I; so changing only partners and tunes, I danced it
away from Lunel to Montpellier--from thence to Pesçnas,
Beziers--I danced it along through Narbonne, Carcasson, and Castle
Naudairy, till at last I danced myself into Perdrillo's pavillion,
where pulling out a paper of black lines, that I might go on straight
forwards, without digression or parenthesis, in my uncle Toby's
amours--


I begun thus--



             Volume VIII



Volume 8, Chapter 1



--BUT softly--for in these sportive plains, and under this genial sun,
where at this instant all flesh is running out piping, fiddling, and
dancing to the vintage, and every step that's taken, the judgment is
surprised by the imagination, I defy, notwithstanding all that has been
said upon straight lines in sundry pages of my book--I defy the
best cabbage planter that ever existed, whether he plants backwards or
forwards, it makes little difference in the account (except that he
will have more to answer for in the one case than in the other)--I defy
him to go on coolly, critically, and canonically, planting his cabbages
one by one, in straight lines, and stoical distances, especially if
slits in petticoats are unsew'd up--without ever and anon straddling
out, or sidling into some bastardly digression--In Freeze-land,
Fog-land
, and some other lands I wot of--it may be done--

But in this clear climate of fantasy and perspiration, where every
idea, sensible and insensible, gets vent--in this land, my dear
Eugenius--in this fertile land of chivalry and romance, where I now
sit, unskrewing my ink-horn to write my uncle Toby's amours, and with
all the meanders of JULIA's track in quest of her DIEGO, in full view
of my study window
--if thou comest not and takest me by the hand--

What a work it is likely to turn out!


Let us begin it.



Volume 8, Chapter 2



IT is with LOVE as with CUCKOLDOM--

But now I am talking of beginning a book, and have long had a thing
upon my mind to be imparted to the reader, which, if not imparted now,
can never be imparted to him as long as I live (whereas the COMPARISON
may be imparted to him any hour in the day)--I'll just mention it, and
begin in good earnest.

The thing is this.


That of all the several ways of beginning a book which are now in
practice throughout the known world, I am confident my own way of doing
it is the best--I'm sure it is the most religious--for I begin with
writing the first sentence--and trusting to Almighty God for the
second.


'Twould cure an author for ever of the fuss and folly of opening his
street-door, and calling in his neighbours and friends, and kinsfolk,
with the devil and all his imps, with their hammers and engines, &c.
only to observe how one sentence of mine follows another, and how the
plan follows the whole.


I wish you saw me half starting out of my chair, with what confidence,
as I grasp the elbow of it, I look up--catching the idea, even
sometimes before it half way reaches me--

I believe in my conscience I intercept many a thought which heaven
intended for another man.

Pope and his Portrait are fools to me--no martyr is ever so full
of faith or fire--I wish I could say of good works too--but I have no

Zeal or Anger--or

Anger or Zeal--

And till gods and men agree together to call it by the same name--the
errantest TARTUFFE, in science--in politics--or in religion, shall never
kindle a spark within me,
or have a worse word, or a more unkind
greeting, than what he will read in the next chapter.




Volume 8, Chapter 3



--Bon jour!--good morrow!--so you have got your cloak on betimes!--but
'tis a cold morning, and you judge the matter rightly--'tis better to
be well mounted, than go o' foot--and
obstructions in the glands are
dangerous--And how goes it with thy concubine--thy wife,--and thy little
ones o' both sides? and when did you hear from the old gentleman and
lady--your sister, aunt, uncle, and cousins--I hope they have got better
of their colds, coughs, claps, tooth-aches, fevers, stranguries, sciaticas,
swellings, and sore eyes. --What a devil of an apothecary! to take so much
blood--give such a vile purge--puke--poultice--plaister--night-draught--
clyster--blister?--And why so many grains of calomel? santa Maria! and
such a dose of opium! periclitating, pardi! the whole family of ye, from
head to tail--By my great-aunt Dinah's old black velvet mask!
I think
there is no occasion for it.


Now this being a little bald about the chin, by frequently putting off
and on, before she was got with child by the coachman--not one of our
family would wear it after.
To cover the MASK afresh, was more than the
mask was worth--and to wear a mask which was bald, or which could be
half seen through, was as bad as having no mask at all--


This is the reason, may it please your reverences, that in all our
numerous family, for these four generations, we count no more than one
archbishop, a Welch judge, some three or four aldermen, and a single
mountebank--

In the sixteenth century, we boast of no less than a dozen alchymists.




Volume 8, Chapter 4



“IT is with Love as with Cuckoldom”--the suffering party is at least
the third, but generally the last in the house who knows any thing
about the matter:
this comes, as all the world knows, from having half
a dozen words for one thing; and so long, as what in this vessel of the
human frame, is Love--may be Hatred, in that--Sentiment half a yard
higher--and Nonsense----no, Madam,--not there--I mean at the part
I am now pointing to with my forefinger--how can we help ourselves?

Of all mortal, and immortal men too, if you please, who ever
soliloquized upon this mystic subject, my uncle Toby was the worst
fitted, to have push'd his researches, thro' such a contention of
feelings; and he had infallibly let them all run on,
as we do worse
matters, to see what they would turn out--had not Bridget's
pre-notification of them to Susannah, and Susannah's repeated
manifestoes thereupon to all the world, made it necessary for my uncle
Toby to look into the affair.




Volume 8, Chapter 5



WHY weavers, gardeners, and gladiators--or a man with a pined leg
(proceeding from some ailment in the foot)--should ever have had some
tender nymph breaking her heart in secret for them,
are points well and
duly settled and accounted for, by ancient and modern physiologists.

A water-drinker, provided he is a profess'd one, and does it without
fraud or covin, is precisely in the same predicament:
not that, at
first sight, there is any consequence, or show of logic in it,
“That a
rill of cold water dribbling through my inward parts, should light up a
torch in my Jenny's--”


--The proposition does not strike one; on the contrary, it seems to run
opposite to the natural workings of causes and effects--

But it shews the weakness and imbecility of human reason.

--“And in perfect good health with it?”

--The most perfect,--Madam, that friendship herself could wish me--

“And drink nothing!--nothing but water?”

--Impetuous fluid! the moment thou pressest against the flood-gates of
the brain--see how they give way!--

In swims CURIOSITY, beckoning to her damsels to follow--they dive into
the center of the current--

FANCY sits musing upon the bank, and with her eyes following the
stream, turns straws and bulrushes into masts and bow-sprits--And
DESIRE, with vest held up to the knee in one hand, snatches at them,
as they swim by her, with the other--

O ye water drinkers! is it then by this delusive fountain, that ye have
so often governed and turn'd this world about like a mill-wheel--grind-
ing the faces of the impotent--bepowdering their ribs--bepeppering
their noses, and changing sometimes even the very frame and face of
nature--


If I was you, quoth Yorick, I would drink more water, Eugenius--And,
if I was you, Yorick, replied Eugenius, so would I.

Which shews they had both read Longinus--

For my own part, I am resolved never to read any book but my own, as
long as I live.




Volume 8, Chapter 6




I WISH my uncle Toby had been a water-drinker; for then the thing had
been accounted for, That the first moment Widow Wadman saw him, she
felt something stirring within her in his favour--Something!--something.

--Something perhaps more than friendship--less than love--something
--no matter what--no matter where--
I would not give a single hair off
my mule's tail, and be obliged to pluck it off myself (indeed the villain
has not many to spare, and is not a little vicious into the bargain),
to be let by your worships into the secret--


But the truth is, my uncle Toby was not a water-drinker; he drank it
neither pure nor mix'd, or any how, or any where, except fortuitously
upon some advanced posts,
where better liquor was not to be had--or
during the time he was under cure; when the surgeon telling him it
would extend the fibres, and bring them sooner into contact--my uncle
Toby drank it for quietness sake.


Now as all the world knows, that no effect in nature can be produced
without a cause, and as it is as well known, that my uncle Toby was
neither a weaver--a gardener, or a gladiator--unless as a captain, you
will needs have him one--but then
he was only a captain of foot--and
besides, the whole is an equivocation--There is nothing left for us to
suppose, but that my uncle Toby's leg--
but that will avail us little
in the present hypothesis, unless it had proceeded from some ailment
in the foot--whereas his leg was not emaciated from any disorder in
his foot--for my uncle Toby's leg was not emaciated at all. It was a
little stiff and awkward, from a total disuse of it, for the three
years he lay confined at my father's house in town; but it was plump
and muscular, and in all other respects as good and promising a leg as
the other.


I declare, I do not recollect any one opinion or passage of my life,
where my understanding was more at a loss to make ends meet, and
torture the chapter I had been writing, to the service of the chapter
following it, than in the present case: one would think I took a
pleasure in running into difficulties of this kind, merely to make
fresh experiments of getting out of 'em--Inconsiderate soul that thou
art!
What! are not the unavoidable distresses with which, as an author
and a man, thou art hemm'd in on every side of thee--are they,
Tristram, not sufficient, but thou must entangle thyself still more?

Is it not enough that thou art in debt, and that thou hast ten
cart-loads of thy fifth and sixth volumes still--still unsold, and
art almost at thy wit's ends, how to get them off thy hands?


To this hour art thou not tormented with the vile asthma that thou
gattest in skating against the wind in Flanders? and is it but two
months ago, that in a fit of laughter, on seeing a cardinal make water
like a quirister (with both hands) thou brakest a vessel in thy lungs,
whereby, in two hours, thou lost as many quarts of blood; and hadst
thou lost as much more, did not the faculty tell thee--it would have
amounted to a gallon?--




Volume 8, Chapter 7



--But for heaven's sake, let us not talk of quarts or gallons--let us
take the story straight before us; it is so nice and intricate a one,
it will scarce bear the transposition of a single tittle; and, somehow
or other, you have got me thrust almost into the middle of it--


--I beg we may take more care.



Volume 8, Chapter 8



MY uncle Toby and the corporal had posted down with so much heat and
precipitation, to take possession of the spot of ground we have so
often spoke of, in order to open their campaign as early as the rest of
the allies; that they had forgot one of the most necessary articles of
the whole affair, it was neither a pioneer's spade, a pickax, or a
shovel--

--It was a bed to lie on: so that as Shandy-Hall was at that time
unfurnished; and the little inn where poor Le Fever died, not yet
built; my uncle Toby was constrained to accept of a bed at Mrs.
Wadman's, for a night or two, till corporal Trim (who to the
character of an excellent valet, groom, cook, sempster, surgeon, and
engineer, superadded that of an excellent upholsterer too), with the
help of a carpenter and a couple of taylors, constructed one in my
uncle Toby's house.

A daughter of Eve, for such was widow Wadman, and 'tis all the char-
acter I intend to give of her--

     --“ That she was a perfect woman--”

had better be fifty leagues off--or in her warm bed--or playing with a
case-knife--or any thing you please--than make a man the object of
her attention, when the house and all the furniture is her own.


There is nothing in it out of doors and in broad day-light, where a
woman has a power, physically speaking, of viewing a man in more lights
than one--but here, for her soul, she can see him in no light without
mixing something of her own goods and chattels along with him--till by
reiterated acts of such combination, he gets foisted into her inventory--

--And then good night.

But this is not matter of SYSTEM; for I have delivered that above--nor
is it matter of BREVIARY--for I make no man's creed but my own--nor
matter of FACT--at least that I know of; but 'tis matter copulative and
introductory
to what follows.



Volume 8, Chapter 9



I DO not speak it with regard to the coarseness or cleanness of them
--or the strength of their gussets--
but pray do not night-shifts differ
from day-shifts as much in this particular, as in any thing else in the
world; that they so far exceed the others in length, that when you are
laid down in them, they fall almost as much below the feet, as the
day-shifts fall short of them?


Widow Wadman's night-shifts (as was the mode I suppose in King
William's and Queen Anne's reigns) were cut however after this
fashion; and if the fashion is changed (for in Italy they are come to
nothing)--so much the worse for the public; they were two Flemish
ells and a half in length, so that allowing a moderate woman two ells,
she had half an ell to spare, to do what she would with.


Now from one little indulgence gained after another, in the many bleak
and decemberley nights of a seven years widow-hood, things had in-
sensibly come to this pass, and for the two last years had got estab-
lish'd into one of the ordinances of the bed-chamber--That as soon
as Mrs. Wadman was put to bed, and had got her legs stretched down to
the bottom of it, of which she always gave Bridget notice--Bridget,
with all suitable decorum, having first open'd the bed-clothes at the
feet, took hold of the half-ell of cloth we are speaking of, and having
gently, and with both her hands, drawn it downwards to its furthest
extension,
and then contracted it again side-long by four or five even
plaits, she took a large corking-pin out of her sleeve, and with the
point directed towards her, pinn'd the plaits all fast together a
little above the hem; which done, she tuck'd all in tight at the feet,
and wish'd her mistress a good night.


This was constant, and without any other variation than this; that on
shivering and tempestuous nights, when Bridget untuck'd the feet of
the bed, &c. to do this--she consulted no thermometer but that of her
own passions; and so performed it standing--kneeling--or squatting,
according to the different degrees of faith, hope, and charity, she was
in, and bore towards her mistress that night. In every other respect,
the etiquette was sacred, and might have vied with the most mechan-
ical one of the most inflexible bed-chamber in Christendom.

The first night, as soon as the corporal had conducted my uncle Toby
up stairs, which was about ten--Mrs. Wadman threw herself into her
arm-chair, and crossing her left knee with her right, which formed a
resting-place for her elbow,
she reclin'd her cheek upon the palm of
her hand, and leaning forwards, ruminated till midnight upon both sides
of the question.


The second night she went to her bureau, and having ordered Bridget
to bring her up a couple of fresh candles and leave them upon the
table, she took out her marriage-settlement, and read it over with
great devotion: and the third night (which was the last of my uncle
Toby's stay) when Bridget had pull'd down the night-shift, and was
assaying to stick in the corking pin--


--With a kick of both heels at once, but at the same time the most
natural kick that could be kick'd in her situation--for supposing * * *
* * * * * * to be the sun in its meridian, it was a north-east kick--
she kick'd the pin out of her fingers--the etiquette which hung
upon it, down--down it fell to the ground, and was shiver'd into a
thousand atoms.

From all which it was plain that widow Wadman was in love with my
uncle Toby.




Volume 8, Chapter 10



MY uncle Toby's head at that time was full of other matters, so that
it was not till the demolition of Dunkirk, when all the other
civilities of Europe were settled, that he found leisure to return
this.


This made an armistice (that is, speaking with regard to my uncle
Toby--but with respect to Mrs. Wadman, a vacancy)
--of almost eleven
years. But in all cases of this nature, as it is the second blow,
happen at what distance of time it will, which makes the fray--I chuse
for that reason to call these the amours of my uncle Toby with Mrs.
Wadman, rather than the amours of Mrs. Wadman with my uncle Toby.

This is not a distinction without a difference.

It is not like the affair of an old hat cock'd--and a cock'd old hat,
about which your reverences have so often been at odds with one
another--but there is a difference here in the nature of things--


And let me tell you, gentry, a wide one too.



Volume 8, Chapter 11



NOW as widow Wadman did love my uncle Toby--and my uncle Toby did
not love widow Wadman, there was nothing for widow Wadman to do,
but to go on and love my uncle Toby--or let it alone.

Widow Wadman would do neither the one or the other.


--Gracious heaven!--but I forget I am a little of her temper myself;
for whenever it so falls out, which it sometimes does about the
equinoxes, that an earthly goddess is so much this, and that, and
t'other, that I cannot eat my breakfast for her--and that she careth
not three halfpence whether I eat my breakfast or no--

--Curse on her! and so I send her to Tartary, and from Tartary to
Terra del Fuogo, and so on to the devil: in short, there is not an
infernal nitch where I do not take her divinityship and stick it.

But as the heart is tender, and the passions in these tides ebb and
flow ten times in a minute, I instantly bring her back again; and as I
do all things in extremes, I place her in the very center of the
milky-way--

Brightest of stars! thou wilt shed thy influence upon some one--

--The duce take her and her influence too--for at that word I lose all
patience--much good may it do him!--By all that is hirsute and gashly!
I cry, taking off my furr'd cap, and twisting it round my finger--I
would not give sixpence for a dozen such!

--But 'tis an excellent cap too (putting it upon my head, and pressing
it close to my ears)--and warm--and soft; especially if you stroke it the
right way--but alas! that will never be my luck--(so here my philosophy
is shipwreck'd again.)

--No; I shall never have a finger in the pye (so here I break my
metaphor)--

Crust and Crumb

Inside and out

Top and bottom--I detest it, I hate it, I repudiate it--I'm sick at the
sight of it--

'Tis all pepper,
     garlick,
     speak-punctuation:,
     salt, and
     devil's dung--by the great arch-cooks of cooks, who does nothing,
I think, from morning to night, but sit down by the fire-side and
invent inflammatory dishes for us, I would not touch it for the world--

--O Tristram! Tristram! cried Jenny.

O Jenny! Jenny! replied I, and so went on with the thirty-sixth
chapter.



Volume 8, Chapter 12



--“Not touch it for the world,” did I say--

Lord, how I have heated my imagination with this metaphor!




Volume 8, Chapter 13



WHICH shews, let your reverences and worships say what you will of it
(for as for thinking--all who do think--think pretty much alike both
upon it and other matters)--
Love is certainly, at least alphabetically
speaking, one of the most

A gitating
B ewitching
C onfounded
D evilish affairs of life--the most
E xtravagant
F utilitous
G alligaskinish
H andy-dandyish
I racundulous (there is no K to it) and
L yrical of all human passions: at the

same time, the most

M isgiving
N innyhammering
O bstipating
P ragmatical
S tridulous
R idiculous--though by the bye the R should have gone first--But in short
'tis of such a nature, as my father once told my uncle Toby upon the
close of a long dissertation upon the subject--“You can scarce,” said
he, “combine two ideas together upon it, brother Toby, without an
hypallage”--What's that? cried my uncle Toby.

The cart before the horse, replied my father-
-

--And what is he to do there? cried my uncle Toby.

Nothing, quoth my father, but to get in--or let it alone.


Now widow Wadman, as I told you before, would do neither the one or
the other.

She stood however ready harnessed and caparisoned at all points, to
watch accidents.




Volume 8, Chapter 14



THE Fates, who certainly all fore-knew of these amours of widow
Wadman and my uncle Toby, had, from the first creation of matter
and motion (and with more courtesy than they usually do things of this
kind), established such a chain of causes and effects hanging so fast
to one another, that it was scarce possible for my uncle Toby to have
dwelt in any other house in the world, or to have occupied any other
garden in Christendom, but the very house and garden which join'd and
laid parallel to Mrs. Wadman's; this, with the advantage of a
thickset arbour in Mrs. Wadman's garden, but planted in the hedge-row
of my uncle Toby's, put all the occasions into her hands which
Love-militancy wanted; she could observe my uncle Toby's motions, and
was mistress likewise of his councils of war; and as his unsuspecting
heart had given leave to the corporal, through the mediation of
Bridget, to make her a wicker-gate of communication to enlarge her
walks, it enabled her to carry on her approaches to the very door of
the sentry-box; and sometimes out of gratitude, to make an attack, and
endeavour to blow my uncle Toby up in the very sentry-box itself.




Volume 8, Chapter 15



IT is a great pity--but 'tis certain from every day's observation of
man, that
he may be set on fire like a candle, at either end--provided
there is a sufficient wick standing out; if there is not--there's an end
of the affair; and if there is--by lighting it at the bottom, as the
flame in that case has the misfortune generally to put out
itself--there's an end of the affair again.

For my part, could I always have the ordering of it which way I would
be burnt myself--for I cannot bear the thoughts of being burnt like a
beast--I would oblige a housewife constantly to light me at the top; for
then I should burn down decently to the socket; that is, from my head
to my heart, from my heart to my liver, from my liver to my bowels, and
so on by the meseraick veins and arteries, through all the turns and
lateral insertions of the intestines and their tunicles to the blind
gut--


--I beseech you, doctor Slop, quoth my uncle Toby, interrupting him
as he mentioned the blind gut, in a discourse with my father the
night my mother was brought to bed of me--
I beseech you, quoth my
uncle Toby, to tell me which is the blind gut; for, old as I am, I vow I
do not know to this day where it lies.

The blind gut, answered doctor Slop, lies betwixt the Ilion and
Colon--

In a man? said my father.

--'Tis precisely the same, cried doctor Slop, in a woman.--

That's more than I know; quoth my father.




Volume 8, Chapter 16



--And so to make sure of both systems, Mrs. Wadman predetermin-
ed to light my uncle Toby neither at this end or that; but, like a
prodigal's candle, to light him, if possible, at both ends at once.


Now, through all the lumber rooms of military furniture, including both
of horse and foot, from the great arsenal of Venice to the Tower of
London (exclusive), if Mrs. Wadman had been rummaging for seven
years together, and with Bridget to help her, she could not have
found any one blind or mantelet so fit for her purpose, as that
which the expediency of my uncle Toby's affairs had fix'd up ready to
her hands.

I believe I have not told you--but I don't know--possibly I have--be it
as it will, 'tis one of the number of those many things, which a man
had better do over again, than dispute about it--That whatever town or
fortress the corporal was at work upon, during the course of their
campaign, my uncle Toby always took care, on the inside of his
sentry-box, which was towards his left hand, to have a plan of the
place, fasten'd up with two or three pins at the top, but loose at the
bottom, for the conveniency of holding it up to the eye, &c. . . . as
occasions required; so that
when an attack was resolved upon, Mrs.
Wadman had nothing more to do, when she had got advanced to the door
of the sentry-box, but to extend her right hand; and edging in her left
foot at the same movement, to take hold of the map or plan, or upright,
or whatever it was, and with out-stretched neck meeting it half way,--to
advance it towards her; on which my uncle Toby's passions were sure
to catch fire
--for he would instantly take hold of the other corner of
the map in his left hand, and with the end of his pipe in the other,
begin an explanation.

When the attack was advanced to this point;--the world will naturally
enter into the reasons of Mrs. Wadman's next stroke of generalship--
which was, to take my uncle Toby's tobacco-pipe out of his hand as
soon as she possibly could; which, under one pretence or other, but
generally that of pointing more distinctly at some redoubt or breast-
work in the map, she would effect before my uncle Toby (poor soul!)
had well march'd above half a dozen toises with it.

--It obliged my uncle Toby to make use of his forefinger.


The difference it made in the attack was this; That in going upon it,
as in the first case, with the end of her fore-finger against the end
of my uncle Toby's tobacco-pipe, she might have travelled with it,
along the lines, from Dan to Beersheba, had my uncle Toby's lines
reach'd so far, without any effect: For as there was no arterial or
vital heat in the end of the tobacco-pipe, it could excite no
sentiment--it could neither give fire by pulsation--or receive it by
sympathy--'twas nothing but smoke.

Whereas, in following my uncle Toby's forefinger with hers, close
thro' all the little turns and indentings of his works--pressing
sometimes against the side of it--then treading upon its nail--then
tripping it up--then touching it here--then there, and so on--it set
something at least in motion.

This, tho' slight skirmishing, and at a distance from the main body,
yet drew on the rest; for here, the map usually falling with the back
of it, close to the side of the sentry-box, my uncle Toby, in the
simplicity of his soul, would lay his hand flat upon it, in order to go
on with his explanation; and Mrs. Wadman, by a manœuvre as quick as
thought, would as certainly place her's close beside it; this at once
opened a communication, large enough for any sentiment to pass or
re-pass, which a person skill'd in the elementary and practical part of
love-making, has occasion for--

By bringing up her forefinger parallel (as before) to my uncle
Toby's--it unavoidably brought the thumb into action--and the
forefinger and thumb being once engaged, as naturally brought in the
whole hand. Thine, dear uncle Toby! was never now in 'ts right
place--Mrs. Wadman had it ever to take up, or, with the gentlest
pushings, protrusions, and equivocal compressions, that a hand to be
removed is capable of receiving--to get it press'd a hair breadth of
one side out of her way.

Whilst this was doing, how could she forget to make him sensible, that
it was her leg (and no one's else) at the bottom of the sentry-box,
which slightly press'd against the calf of his--So that my uncle Toby
being thus attack'd and sore push'd on both his wings--was it a wonder,
if now and then, it put his centre into disorder?--


--The duce take it! said my uncle Toby.



Volume 8, Chapter 17



THESE attacks of Mrs. Wadman, you will readily conceive to be of
different kinds; varying from each other, like the attacks which
history is full of, and from the same reasons. A general looker-on
would scarce allow them to be attacks at all--or if he did, would
confound them all together--but I write not to them: it will be time
enough to be a little more exact in my descriptions of them, as I come
up to them, which will not be for some chapters; having nothing more to
add in this, but that in a bundle of original papers and drawings which
my father took care to roll up by themselves, there is a plan of
Bouchain in perfect preservation (and shall be kept so, whilst I have
power to preserve any thing),
upon the lower corner of which, on the
right hand side, there is still remaining the marks of a snuffy finger
and thumb, which there is all the reason in the world to imagine, were
Mrs. Wadman's; for the opposite side of the margin, which I suppose
to have been my uncle Toby's, is absolutely clean: This seems an
authenticated record of one of these attacks; for there are vestigia of
the two punctures partly grown up, but still visible on the opposite
corner of the map, which are unquestionably the very holes, through
which it has been pricked up in the sentry-box--

By all that is priestly! I value this precious relick, with its
stigmata and pricks, more than all the relicks of the Romish
church--always excepting, when I am writing upon these matters, the
pricks which entered the flesh of St. Radagunda in the desert, which
in your road from FESSE to CLUNY, the nuns of that name will shew you
for love.


Volume 8, Chapter 18



I THINK, an' please your honour, quoth Trim, the fortifications are
quite destroyed--and the bason is upon a level with the mole
--I think
so too; replied my uncle Toby with a sigh half suppress'd--but step
into the parlour, Trim, for the stipulation--it lies upon the table.

It has lain there these six weeks, replied the corporal, till this very
morning that the old woman kindled the fire with it--

--Then, said my uncle Toby, there is no further occasion for our
services. The more, an' please your honour, the pity, said the
corporal; in uttering which
he cast his spade into the wheel-barrow,
which was beside him, with an air the most expressive of disconsolation
that can be imagined, and was heavily turning about to look for his
pickax, his pioneer's shovel, his picquets, and other little military
stores, in order to carry them off the field--when a heigh-ho! from the
sentry-box, which being made of thin slit deal, reverberated the sound
more sorrowfully to his ear, forbad him.


--No; said the corporal to himself, I'll do it before his honour rises
to-morrow morning; so
taking his spade out of the wheel-barrow again,
with a little earth in it, as if to level something at the foot of the
glacis
--but with a real intent to approach nearer to his master, in
order to divert him--
he loosen'd a sod or two--pared their edges with
his spade, and having given them a gentle blow or two
with the back of
it, he sat himself down close by my uncle Toby's feet and began as
follows.




Volume 8, Chapter 19



IT was a thousand pities--though I believe, an' please your honour, I
am going to say but a foolish kind of a thing for a soldier--

A soldier, cried my uncle Toby, interrupting the corporal, is no more
exempt from saying a foolish thing, Trim, than a man of letters--But
not so often, an' please your honour, replied the corporal--my uncle
Toby gave a nod.

It was a thousand pities then, said the corporal, casting his eye upon
Dunkirk, and the mole, as Servius Sulpicius, in returning out of
Asia (when he sailed from Ægina towards Megara), did upon
Corinth and Pyreus--


--“It was a thousand pities, an' please your honour, to destroy these
works--and a thousand pities to have let them stood.”--

--Thou art right, Trim, in both cases; said my uncle Toby.--This,
continued the corporal, is the reason, that from the beginning of their
demolition to the end--I have never once whistled, or sung, or laugh'd,
or cry'd, or talk'd of past done deeds, or told your honour one story
good or bad--

--Thou hast many excellencies, Trim, said my uncle Toby, and I hold
it not the least of them, as thou happenest to be a story-teller, that
of the number thou hast told me, either to amuse me in my painful
hours, or divert me in my grave ones--thou hast seldom told me a bad
one--

--Because, an' please your honour, except one of a King of Bohemia and
his seven castles,--they are all true; for they are about myself--

I do not like the subject the worse, Trim, said my uncle Toby, on
that score: But prithee what is this story? thou hast excited my
curiosity.

I'll tell it your honour, quoth the corporal, directly--Provided, said
my uncle Toby, looking earnestly towards Dunkirk and the mole
again--provided it is not a merry one; to such, Trim, a man should
ever bring one half of the entertainment along with him; and the
disposition I am in at present would wrong both thee, Trim, and thy
story--It is not a merry one by any means, replied the corporal--Nor
would I have it altogether a grave one, added my uncle Toby--It is
neither the one nor the other, replied the corporal, but will suit your
honour exactly--Then I'll thank thee for it with all my heart, cried my
uncle Toby; so prithee begin it, Trim.


The corporal made his reverence; and though it is not so easy a matter
as the world imagines, to pull off a lank Montero-cap with grace--or
a whit less difficult, in my conceptions, when a man is sitting squat
upon the ground, to make a bow so teeming with respect as the corporal
was wont; yet by suffering the palm of his right hand, which was
towards his master, to slip backwards upon the grass, a little beyond
his body, in order to allow it the greater sweep--and by an unforced
compression, at the same time, of his cap with the thumb and the two
forefingers of his left, by which the diameter of the cap became
reduced, so that it might be said, rather to be insensibly squeez'd--
than pull'd off with a flatus--the corporal acquitted himself
of both
in a better manner than the posture of his affairs promised; and hav-
ing hemmed twice, to find in what key his story would best go,
and
best suit his master's humour,--he exchanged a single look of
kindness with him, and set off thus.

THE STORY OF THE
KING OF BOHEMIA AND
HIS SEVEN CASTLES

THERE was a certain king of Bo - - he--

As the corporal was entering the confines of Bohemia, my uncle Toby
obliged him to halt for a single moment; he had set out bare-headed,
having, since he pull'd off his Montero-cap in the latter end of the
last chapter, left it lying beside him on the ground.

--The eye of Goodness espieth all things--so that before the corporal
had well got through the first five words of his story, had my uncle
Toby twice touch'd his Montero-cap with the end of his cane,
interrogatively--as much as to say, Why don't you put it on, Trim?

Trim took it up with the most respectful slowness, and casting a
glance of humiliation as he did it, upon the embroidery of the
fore-part, which being dismally tarnish'd and fray'd moreover in some
of the principal leaves and boldest parts of the pattern, he lay'd it
down again between his two feet, in order to moralize upon the subject.


--'Tis every word of it but too true, cried my uncle Toby, that thou
art about to observe--

Nothing in this world, Trim, is made to last for ever.”


--But when tokens, dear Tom, of thy love and remembrance wear out,
said Trim, what shall we say?

There is no occasion, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, to say any thing
else; and was a man to puzzle his brains till Doom's day, I believe,
Trim, it would be impossible.

The corporal,
perceiving my uncle Toby was in the right, and that it
would be in vain for the wit of man to think of extracting a purer
moral from his cap, without further attempting it, he put it on; and
passing his hand across his forehead to rub out a pensive wrinkle,
which the text and the doctrine between them had engender'd
, he
return'd, with the same look and tone of voice, to his story
of the
king of Bohemia and his seven castles.

THE STORY OF THE
KING OF BOHEMIA AND
HIS SEVEN CASTLES,
CONTINUED

THERE was a certain king of Bohemia, but in whose reign, except his
own, I am not able to inform your honour--

I do not desire it of thee, Trim, by any means, cried my uncle
Toby.


--It was a little before the time, an' please your honour, when giants
were beginning to leave off breeding:--but in what year of our Lord that
was--

I would not give a halfpenny to know, said my uncle Toby.

--Only, an' please your honour, it makes a story look the better in the
face--

--'Tis thy own, Trim, so ornament it after thy own fashion; and take
any date, continued my uncle Toby, looking pleasantly upon him--take
any date in the whole world thou chusest, and put it to--thou art
heartily welcome--

The corporal bowed; for of every century, and of every year of that
century, from the first creation of the world down to Noah's flood;
and from Noah's flood to the birth of Abraham; through all the
pilgrimages of the patriarchs, to the departure of the Israelites out
of Egypt--and throughout all the Dynasties, Olympiads, Urbeconditas,
and other memorable epochas of the different nations of the world, down
to the coming of Christ, and from thence to the very moment in which
the corporal was telling his story--had my uncle Toby subjected this
vast empire of time and all its abysses at his feet; but as MODESTY
scarce touches with a finger what LIBERALITY offers her with both hands
open--the corporal contented himself with the very worst year of the
whole bunch; which, to prevent your honours of the Majority and
Minority from tearing the very flesh off your bones in contestation, ‘
Whether that year is not always the last cast-year of the last
cast-almanack'
--I tell you plainly it was; but from a different reason
than you wot of--


--It was the year next him--which being the year of our Lord seventeen
hundred and twelve, when the Duke of Ormond was playing the devil in
Flanders--the corporal took it,
and set out with it afresh on his
expedition to Bohemia.

THE STORY OF THE
KING OF BOHEMIA AND
HIS SEVEN CASTLES,
CONTINUED

IN the year of our Lord one thousand seven hundred and twelve, there
was, an' please your honour--

--To tell thee truly, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, any other date would
have pleased me much better, not only on account of the sad stain
upon our history that year,
in marching off our troops, and refusing to
cover the siege of Quesnoi, though Fagel was carrying on the works
with such incredible vigour--but likewise on the score, Trim, of thy
own story; because if there are--and which, from what thou hast dropt,
I partly suspect to be the fact--
if there are giants in it--

There is but one, an' please your honour--

--'Tis as bad as twenty, replied my uncle Toby--thou should'st have
carried him back some seven or eight hundred years out of harm's way,
both of critics and other people: and therefore I would advise thee, if
ever thou tellest it again--


--If I live, an' please your honour, but once to get through it, I will
never tell it again, quoth Trim, either to man, woman, or child--
Poo
--poo! said my uncle Toby--but with accents of such sweet encour-
agement did he utter it, that the corporal went on with his story with
more alacrity than ever.


THE STORY OF THE
KING OF BOHEMIA AND
HIS SEVEN CASTLES,
CONTINUED

THERE was, an' please your honour, said the corporal, raising his voice
and rubbing the palms of his two hands cheerily together
as he begun, a
certain king of Bohemia--


--Leave out the date entirely, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, leaning
forwards, and laying his hand gently upon the corporal's shoulder to
temper the interruption--leave it out entirely, Trim; a story passes
very well without these niceties,
unless one is pretty sure of
'em--Sure of 'em! said the corporal, shaking his head--

Right; answered my uncle Toby, it is not easy, Trim,
for one, bred
up as thou and I have been to arms, who seldom looks further forward
than to the end of his musket, or backwards beyond his knapsack, to
know much about this matter
--God bless your honour! said the corporal,
won by the manner of my uncle Toby's reasoning, as much as by the
reasoning itself, he has something else to do; if not on action, or a
march, or upon duty in his garrison--
he has his firelock, an' please
your honour, to furbish--his accoutrements to take care of--his
regimentals to mend--himself to shave and keep clean,
so as to appear
always like what he is upon the parade; what business, added the
corporal triumphantly, has a soldier, an' please your honour, to know
any thing at all of geography?


--Thou would'st have said chronology, Trim, said my uncle Toby; for
as for geography, 'tis of absolute use to him; he must be acquainted
intimately with every country and its boundaries where his profession
carries him; he should know every town and city, and village and
hamlet, with the canals, the roads, and hollow ways which lead up to
them;
there is not a river or a rivulet he passes, Trim, but he
should be able at first sight to tell thee what is its name--in what
mountains it takes its rise--what is its course--how far it is
navigable--where fordable--where not; he should know the fertility of
every valley, as well as the hind who ploughs it; and be able to
describe, or, if it is required, to give thee an exact map of all the
plains and defiles, the forts, the acclivities, the woods and morasses,
thro' and by which his army is to march; he should know their produce,
their plants, their minerals, their waters, their animals, their
seasons, their climates, their heats and cold, their inhabitants, their
customs, their language, their policy, and even their religion.


Is it else to be conceived, corporal, continued my uncle Toby, rising
up in his sentry-box, as he began to warm in this part of his dis-
course--how Marlborough could have marched his army from the
banks of the Maes to Belburg; from Belburg to Kerpenord--(here
the corporal could sit no longer) from Kerpenord, Trim, to Kalsaken;
from Kalsaken to Newdorf; from Newdorf to Landenbourg; from
Landenbourg to Mildenheim; from Mildenheim to Elchingen; from
Elchingen to Gingen; from Gingen to Balmerchoffen; from Balmer-
choffen to Skellenburg, where he broke in upon the enemy's works;
forced his passage over the Danube; cross'd the Lech--push'd
on his troops into the heart of the empire, marching at the head of
them through Fribourg, Hokenwert, and Schonevelt, to the plains of
Blenheim and Hochstet?--Great as he was, corporal, he could not
have advanced a step, or made one single day's march without the
aids of Geography.--As for Chronology, I own, Trim, continued my
uncle Toby, sitting down again coolly in his sentry-box, that of all
others,
it seems a science which the soldier might best spare, was
it not for the lights which that science must one day give him, in
determining the invention of powder; the furious execution of which,
renversing every thing like thunder before it, has become a new æra to
us of military improvements, changing so totally the nature of attacks
and defences both by sea and land, and awakening so much art and skill
in doing it, that the world cannot be too exact in ascertaining the
precise time of its discovery, or too inquisitive in knowing what great
man was the discoverer, and what occasions gave birth to it.


I am far from controverting, continued my uncle Toby, what historians
agree in, that
in the year of our Lord 1380, under the reign of
Wencelaus, son of Charles the Fourth--a certain priest, whose name
was Schwartz, shew'd the use of powder to the Venetians, in their
wars against the Genoese; but 'tis certain he was not the first;
because if we are to believe Don Pedro, the bishop of Leon--
How came
priests and bishops, an' please your honour, to trouble their heads so
much about gun-powder? God knows, said my uncle Toby--his providence
brings good out of every thing
--and he avers, in his chronicle of King
Alphonsus, who reduced Toledo, That in the year 1343, which was
full thirty-seven years before that time, the secret of powder was well
known, and employed with success, both by Moors and Christians, not
only in their sea-combats, at that period, but in many of their most
memorable sieges in Spain and Barbary--And all the world knows, that
Friar Bacon had wrote expressly about it, and had generously given
the world a receipt to make it by, above a hundred and fifty years
before even Schwartz was born--And that the Chinese, added my uncle
Toby, embarrass us, and all accounts of it, still more, by boasting
of the invention some hundreds of years even before him--

They are a pack of liars, I believe, cried Trim--

--They are somehow or other deceived, said my uncle Toby, in this
matter, as is plain to me from the present miserable state of military
architecture amongst them; which consists of nothing more than a fossé
with a brick wall without flanks--and for what they gave us as a bastion
at each angle of it, 'tis so barbarously constructed,
that it looks for
all the world------Like one of my seven castles, an' please your honour,
quoth Trim.

My uncle Toby, tho' in the utmost distress for a comparison, most
courteously refused Trim's offer
--till Trim telling him, he had half
a dozen more in Bohemia, which he knew not how to get off his
hands--my uncle Toby was so touch'd with the pleasantry of heart of
the corporal--that he discontinued his dissertation upon
gun-powder--and begged the corporal forthwith to go on with his story
of the King of Bohemia and his seven castles.


THE STORY OF THE
KING OF BOHEMIA AND
HIS SEVEN CASTLES,
CONTINUED

THIS unfortunate King of Bohemia, said Trim,--Was he unfortunate,
then? cried my uncle Toby, for he had been so wrapt up in his
dissertation upon gun-powder, and other military affairs, that tho' he
had desired the corporal to go on, yet the many interruptions he had
given, dwelt not so strong upon his fancy as to account for the
epithet--
Was he unfortunate, then, Trim? said my uncle Toby,
pathetically--The corporal, wishing first the word and all its
synonimas at the devil, forthwith began to run back in his mind, the
principal events in the King of Bohemia's story; from every one of
which, it appearing that he was the most fortunate man that ever
existed in the world--it put the corporal to a stand: for not caring to
retract his epithet--and less to explain it--and least of all, to twist
his tale (like men of lore) to serve a system--he looked up in my uncle
Toby's face for assistance--but seeing it was the very thing my uncle
Toby sat in expectation of himself--after a hum and a haw, he went
on--


The King of Bohemia, an' please your honour, replied the corporal,
was unfortunate, as thus--That taking great pleasure and delight in
navigation and all sort of sea affairs--and there happening
throughout the whole kingdom of Bohemia, to be no sea-port town
whatever--

How the duce should there--Trim? cried my uncle Toby; for Bohemia
being totally inland, it could have happen'd no otherwise--It might,
said Trim, if it had pleased God--

My uncle Toby never spoke of the being and natural attributes of God,
but with diffidence and hesitation--


--I believe not, replied my uncle Toby, after some pause--for being
inland, as I said, and having Silesia and Moravia to the east; Lusatia
and Upper Saxony to the north; Franconia to the west; and Bavaria
to the south; Bohemia could not have been propell'd to the sea with-
out ceasing to be Bohemia--
nor could the sea, on the other hand,
have come up to Bohemia, without overflowing a great part of Ger-
many, and destroying millions of unfortunate inhabitants who could
make no defence against it--Scandalous! cried Trim--Which would
bespeak, added my uncle Toby, mildly, such a want of compassion in
him who is the father of it
--that, I think, Trim--the thing could
have happen'd no way.

The corporal made the bow of unfeign'd conviction; and went on.

Now the King of Bohemia with his queen and courtiers happening one
fine summer's evening to walk out--
Aye! there the word happening is
right, Trim, cried my uncle Toby; for the King of Bohemia and his
queen might have walk'd out or let it alone:--'twas a matter of
contingency, which might happen, or not, just as chance ordered it.


King William was of an opinion, an' please your honour, quoth Trim,
that every thing was predestined for us in this world; insomuch, that
he would often say to his soldiers, that “every ball had its billet.”

He was a great man, said my uncle Toby--And I believe, continued
Trim, to this day, that the shot which disabled me at the battle of
Landen, was pointed at my knee for no other purpose, but to take me
out of his service, and place me in your honour's, where I should be
taken so much better care of in my old age--It shall never, Trim, be
construed otherwise, said my uncle Toby.

The heart, both of the master and the man, were alike subject to sudden
over-flowings;--a short silence ensued.


Besides, said the corporal, resuming the discourse--but in a gayer
accent--if it had not been for that single shot, I had never, 'an
please your honour, been in love--

So, thou wast once in love, Trim! said my uncle Toby, smiling--

Souse! replied the corporal--over head and ears! an' please your honour.
Prithee when? where?--and how came it to pass?--I never heard one
word of it before;
quoth my uncle Toby:--I dare say, answered Trim, that
every drummer and serjeant's son in the regiment knew of it--It's high
time I should--said my uncle Toby.

Your honour remembers with concern, said the corporal, the total rout
and confusion of our camp and army at the affair of Landen; every one
was left to shift for himself; and if it had not been for the regiments
of Wyndham, Lumley, and Galway, which covered the retreat over the
bridge Neerspeeken, the king himself could scarce have gained it--he
was press'd hard, as your honour knows, on every side of him--

Gallant mortal! cried my uncle Toby, caught up with enthusiasm--this
moment, now that all is lost, I see him galloping across me, corporal,
to the left, to bring up the remains of the English horse along with
him to support the right, and tear the laurel from Luxembourg's
brows, if yet 'tis possible--I see him with the knot of his scarfe just
shot off, infusing fresh spirits into poor Galway's regiment--riding
along the line--then wheeling about, and charging Conti at the head of
it--Brave, brave, by heaven! cried my uncle Toby--he deserves a
crown--As richly, as a thief a halter; shouted Trim.


My uncle Toby knew the corporal's loyalty;--otherwise
the comparison
was not at all to his mind--it did not altogether strike the corporal's
fancy when he had made it
--but it could not be recall'd--so he had
nothing to do, but proceed.

As the number of wounded was prodigious, and no one had time to think
of any thing but his own safety--Though Talmash, said my uncle Toby,
brought off the foot with great prudence--But I was left upon the
field, said the corporal. Thou wast so; poor fellow!
replied my uncle
Toby--So that it was noon the next day, continued the corporal, before
I was exchanged, and put into a cart with thirteen or fourteen more, in
order to be convey'd to our hospital.

There is no part of the body, an' please your honour, where a wound
occasions more intolerable anguish than upon the knee--

Except the groin; said my uncle Toby. An' please your honour, replied
the corporal,
the knee, in my opinion, must certainly be the most
acute, there being so many tendons and what-d'ye-call-'ems all about
it.

It is for that reason, quoth my uncle Toby, that the groin is
infinitely more sensible--there being not only as many tendons and
what-d'ye-call-'ems (for I know their names as little as thou
dost)--about it--but moreover * * *--

Mrs. Wadman, who had been all the time in her arbour--instantly
stopp'd her breath--unpinn'd her mob at the chin, and stood upon one
leg--

The dispute was maintained with amicable and equal force
betwixt
my uncle Toby and Trim for some time; till Trim at length recollect-
ing that he had often cried at his master's sufferings, but never
shed a tear at his own--was for giving up the point, which my un-
cle Toby would not allow--'Tis a proof of nothing, Trim, said he,
but the generosity of thy temper--

So that whether the pain of a wound in the groin (cæteris paribus) is
greater than the pain of a wound in the knee--or

Whether the pain of a wound in the knee is not greater than the pain of
a wound in the groin--are points which to this day remain unsettled.


Volume 8, Chapter 20



THE anguish of my knee, continued the corporal, was excessive in
itself; and the uneasiness of the cart, with the roughness of the
roads, which were terribly cut up--making bad still worse--every
step was death to me: so that with the loss of blood, and the want of
care-taking of me, and a fever I felt coming on besides--(Poor soul!
said my uncle Toby)--all together, an' please your honour, was more
than I could sustain.

I was telling my sufferings to a young woman at a peasant's house,
where our cart, which was the last of the line, had halted; they had
help'd me in, and the young woman had taken a cordial out of her pocket
and dropp'd it upon some sugar, and seeing it had cheer'd me, she had
given it me a second and a third time--So I was telling her, an' please
your honour, the anguish I was in, and was saying it was so intolerable
to me, that I had much rather lie down upon the bed, turning my face
towards one which was in the corner of the room--and die, than go
on--when, upon her attempting to lead me to it, I fainted away in her
arms. She was a good soul! as your honour, said the corporal, wiping
his eyes, will hear.

I thought love had been a joyous thing, quoth my uncle Toby.

'Tis the most serious thing, an' please your honour (sometimes), that
is in the world.

By the persuasion of the young woman, continued the corporal, the cart
with the wounded men set off without me: she had assured them I should
expire immediately if I was put into the cart. So when I came to
myself--I found myself in a still quiet cottage, with no one but the
young woman, and the peasant and his wife. I was laid across the bed in
the corner of the room, with my wounded leg upon a chair, and the young
woman beside me, holding the corner of her handkerchief dipp'd in
vinegar to my nose with one hand, and rubbing my temples with the
other.

I took her at first for the daughter of the peasant (for it was no
inn)--so had offer'd her a little purse with eighteen florins, which my
poor brother Tom (here Trim wip'd his eyes) had sent me as a token,
by a recruit, just before he set out for Lisbon--


--I never told your honour that piteous story yet--here Trim wiped
his eyes a third time.

The young woman call'd the old man and his wife into the room, to shew
them the money, in order to gain me credit for a bed and what little
necessaries I should want, till I should be in a condition to be got to
the hospital--Come then! said she, tying up the little purse--I'll be
your banker--but as that office alone will not keep me employ'd, I'll be
your nurse too.

I thought by her manner of speaking this, as well as by her dress,
which I then began to consider more attentively--that the young woman
could not be the daughter of the peasant.


She was in black down to her toes, with her hair conceal'd under a
cambric border
, laid close to her forehead: she was one of those kind
of nuns, an' please your honour, of which, your honour knows, there are
a good many in Flanders, which they let go loose--By thy description,
Trim, said my uncle Toby, I dare say she was a young Beguine, of
which there are none to be found any where but in the Spanish
Netherlands--except at Amsterdam--they differ from nuns in this, that
they can quit their cloister if they choose to marry; they visit and
take care of the sick by profession--I had rather, for my own part,
they did it out of good-nature.


--She often told me, quoth Trim, she did it for the love of Christ--I
did not like it.
--I believe, Trim, we are both wrong, said my uncle
Toby--we'll ask Mr. Yorick about it to-night at my brother
Shandy's--so put me in mind; added my uncle Toby.

The young Beguine, continued the corporal, had scarce given herself
time to tell me “she would be my nurse,” when she hastily turned about
to begin the office of one, and prepare something for me--and in a
short time--though I thought it a long one--
she came back with flannels,
&c. &c. and having fomented my knee soundly for a couple of hours, &c.
and made me a thin bason of gruel for my supper--she wish'd me rest, and
promised to be with me early in the morning.--She wish'd me, an' please
your honour, what was not to be had. My fever ran very high that
night--her figure made sad disturbance within me--I was every moment
cutting the world in two--to give her half of it--and every moment was I
crying, That I had nothing but a knapsack and eighteen florins to share
with her--The whole night long was the fair Beguine, like an angel,
close by my bed-side, holding back my curtain and offering me cordials
--and I was only awakened from my dream by her coming there at the
hour promised, and giving them in reality. In truth, she was scarce
ever from me; and so accustomed was I to receive life from her hands,
that my heart sickened, and I lost colour when she left the room:
and
yet, continued the corporal (making one of the strangest reflections
upon it in the world)--

--“It was not love”--for during the three weeks she was almost
constantly with me, fomenting my knee with her hand, night and day--I
can honestly say, an' please your honour--that * * * * * * * * *
* * * *
* * * * once.

That was very odd, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby.

I think so too--said Mrs. Wadman.

It never did, said the corporal.



Volume 8, Chapter 21



--But 'tis no marvel, continued the corporal--seeing my uncle Toby
musing upon it--for Love, an' please your honour, is exactly like war,
in this; that a soldier, though he has escaped three weeks complete
o'Saturday night,--may nevertheless be shot through his heart on
Sunday morning--It happened so here, an' please your honour, with
this difference only--that it was on Sunday in the afternoon, when I
fell in love all at once with a sisserara--It burst upon me, an' please
your honour, like a bomb--scarce giving me time to say, “God bless me.”

I thought, Trim, said my uncle Toby, a man never fell in love so
very suddenly.

Yes, an' please your honour, if he is in the way of it--replied Trim.

I prithee, quoth my uncle Toby, inform me how this matter happened.

--With all pleasure, said the corporal, making a bow.



Volume 8, Chapter 22



I HAD escaped, continued the corporal, all that time from falling in
love, and had gone on to the end of the chapter, had it not been
predestined otherwise--there is no resisting our fate.


It was on a Sunday, in the afternoon, as I told your honour.

The old man and his wife had walked out--

Every thing was still and hush as midnight about the house--

There was not so much as a duck or a duckling about the yard--

--When the fair Beguine came in to see me.

My wound was then in a fair way of doing well--the inflammation had
been gone off for some time, but it was succeeded with an itching both
above and below my knee, so insufferable, that I had not shut my eyes
the whole night for it.

Let me see it, said she, kneeling down upon the ground parallel to my
knee, and laying her hand upon the part below it--it only wants rubbing
a little, said the Beguine; so covering it with the bed-clothes,
she
began with the fore-finger of her right hand to rub under my knee,
guiding her fore-finger backwards and forwards by the edge of the
flannel which kept on the dressing.

In five or six minutes I felt slightly the end of her second finger--and
presently it was laid flat with the other, and she continued rubbing in
that way round and round for a good while; it then came into my head,
that I should fall in love--I blush'd when I saw how white a hand she
had--I shall never, an' please your honour, behold another hand so white
whilst I live--

--Not in that place, said my uncle Toby--


Though it was the most serious despair in nature to the corporal--he
could not forbear smiling.


The young Beguine, continued the corporal, perceiving it was of great
service to me--from rubbing for some time, with two fingers--proceed-
ed to rub at length, with three--till by little and little she brought down
the fourth, and then rubb'd with her whole hand:
I will never say anoth-
er word, an' please your honour, upon hands again--but it was softer
than sattin--

--Prithee, Trim, commend it as much as thou wilt, said my uncle
Toby; I shall hear thy story with the more delight
--The corporal
thank'd his master most unfeignedly; but having nothing to say upon the
Beguine's hand but the same over again--he proceeded to the effects
of it.


The fair Beguine, said the corporal, continued rubbing with her whole
hand under my knee--till I fear'd her zeal would weary her--“I would do
a thousand times more,” said she, “for the love of Christ”--In saying
which, she pass'd her hand across the flannel, to the part above my
knee, which I had equally complain'd of, and rubb'd it also.

I perceiv'd, then, I was beginning to be in love--

As she continued rub-rub-rubbing--I felt it spread from under her hand,
an' please your honour, to every part of my frame--

The more she rubb'd, and the longer strokes she took--the more the fire
kindled in my veins--till at length, by two or three strokes longer
than the rest--my passion rose to the highest pitch--I seiz'd her
hand--

--And then thou clapped'st it to thy lips, Trim, said my uncle
Toby--and madest a speech.

Whether the corporal's amour terminated precisely in the way my uncle
Toby described it, is not material; it is enough that it contained in
it the essence of all the love romances which ever have been wrote
since the beginning of the world.




Volume 8, Chapter 23



AS soon as the corporal had finished the story of his amour--or rather
my uncle Toby for him--Mrs. Wadman silently sallied forth from her
arbour, replaced the pin in her mob, pass'd the wicker gate, and
advanced slowly towards my uncle Toby's sentry-box:
the disposition
which Trim had made in my uncle Toby's mind, was too favourable a
crisis to be let slipp'd--


--The attack was determin'd upon: it was facilitated still more by my
uncle Toby's having ordered the corporal to wheel off the pioneer's
shovel, the spade, the pick-axe, the picquets, and other military
stores which lay scatter'd upon the ground where Dunkirk stood--The
corporal had march'd--the field was clear.

Now, consider, sir, what nonsense it is, either in fighting, or
writing, or any thing else (whether in rhyme to it, or not) which a man
has occasion to do--to act by plan:
for if ever Plan, independent of all
circumstances, deserved registering in letters of gold (I mean in the
archives of Gotham)--it was certainly the PLAN of Mrs. Wadman's
attack of my uncle Toby in his sentry-box, BY PLAN--Now the plan
hanging up in it at this juncture, being the Plan of Dunkirk--and the
tale of Dunkirk a tale of relaxation, it opposed every impression she
could make: and besides, could she have gone upon it--the manœuvre of
fingers and hands in the attack of the sentry-box, was so outdone by
that of the fair Beguine's, in Trim's story--that just then, that partic-
ular attack, however successful before--became the most heartless
attack that could be made--

O! let woman alone for this. Mrs. Wadman had scarce open'd the
wicker-gate, when her genius sported with the change of circumstances.

--She formed a new attack in a moment.




Volume 8, Chapter 24



--I am half distracted, captain Shandy, said Mrs. Wadman, holding
up her cambrick handkerchief to her left eye
, as she approach'd the
door of my uncle Toby's sentry-box--
a mote--or sand--or something--I
know not what, has got into this eye of mine--do look into it--it is not
in the white--

In saying which, Mrs. Wadman edged herself close in beside my uncle
Toby, and squeezing herself down upon the corner of his bench, she
gave him an opportunity of doing it without rising up--Do look into
it--said she.

Honest soul! thou didst look into it with as much innocency of heart,
as ever child look'd into a raree-shew-box; and 'twere as much a sin to
have hurt thee.

--If a man will be peeping of his own accord into things of that
nature--I've nothing to say to it--


My uncle Toby never did: and I will answer for him, that he would
have sat quietly upon a sofa from June to January (which, you know,
takes in both the hot and cold months), with an eye as fine as the
Thracian Rodope's besides him, without being able to tell, whether
it was a black or blue one.

The difficulty was to get my uncle Toby, to look at one at all.

'Tis surmounted. And


I see him yonder with his pipe pendulous in his hand, and the ashes
falling out of it--looking--and looking--then rubbing his eyes--and looking
again, with twice the good-nature that ever Galileo look'd for a spot
in the sun.

--In vain! for by all the powers which animate the organ--Widow
Wadman's left eye shines this moment as lucid as her right--there is
neither mote, or sand, or dust, or chaff, or speck, or particle of
opake matter floating in it--There is nothing, my dear paternal uncle!
but one lambent delicious fire, furtively shooting out from every part
of it, in all directions, into thine--

--If thou lookest, uncle Toby, in search of this mote one moment
longer,--thou art undone.




Volume 8, Chapter 25



AN eye is for all the world exactly like a cannon, in this respect;
That it is not so much the eye or the cannon, in themselves, as it is
the carriage of the eye--and the carriage of the cannon, by which both
the one and the other are enabled to do so much execution. I don't
think the comparison a bad one: However, as 'tis made and placed at the
head of the chapter, as much for use as ornament, all I desire in
return, is, that whenever I speak of Mrs. Wadman's eyes (except once
in the next period), that you keep it in your fancy.

I protest, Madam, said my uncle Toby, I can see nothing whatever in
your eye.

It is not in the white; said Mrs Wadman: my uncle Toby look'd with
might and main into the pupil--


Now of all the eyes which ever were created--from your own, Madam, up
to those of Venus herself, which certainly were as venereal a pair of
eyes as ever stood in a head--there never was an eye of them all, so
fitted to rob my uncle Toby of his repose, as the very eye, at which
he was looking--it was not, Madam a rolling eye--a romping or a wanton
one--nor was it an eye sparkling--petulant or imperious--of high claims
and terrifying exactions, which would have curdled at once that milk of
human nature, of which my uncle Toby was made up--but 'twas an eye
full of gentle salutations--and soft responses--speaking--not like the
trumpet stop of some ill-made organ, in which many an eye I talk to,
holds coarse converse--but whispering soft--like the last low accent of
an expiring saint--“How can you live comfortless, captain Shandy, and
alone, without a bosom to lean your head on--or trust your cares to?”

It was an eye--

But I shall be in love with it myself, if I say another word about it.


--It did my uncle Toby's business.



Volume 8, Chapter 26



THERE is nothing shews the character of my father and my uncle Toby,
in a more entertaining light, than their different manner of deportment,
under the same accident--for I call not love a misfortune, from a per-
suasion, that a man's heart is ever the better for it--Great God! what
must my uncle Toby's have been, when 'twas all benignity without it.

My father, as appears from many of his papers, was very subject to this
passion, before he married--
but from a little subacid kind of drollish
impatience in his nature, whenever it befell him, he would never submit
to it like a christian; but would pish, and huff, and bounce, and kick,
and play the Devil, and write the bitterest Philippicks against the eye
that ever man wrote--there is one in verse upon somebody's eye or
other, that for two or three nights together, had put him by his rest;
which in his first transport of resentment against it,
he begins thus:

      “A Devil 'tis--and mischief such doth work
      As never yet did Pagan, Jew, or Turk.”

In short, during the whole paroxism, my father was all abuse and foul
language, approaching rather towards malediction
--only he did not do it
with as much method as Ernulphus--he was too impetuous; nor with
Ernulphus's policy--for tho'
my father, with the most intolerant
spirit, would curse both this and that, and every thing under heaven,
which was either aiding or abetting to his love--yet never concluded
his chapter of curses upon it, without cursing himself
in at the
bargain, as one of the most egregious fools and cox-combs, he would
say, that ever was let loose in the world.

My uncle Toby, on the contrary, took it like a lamb--sat still and
let the poison work in his veins without resistance--in the sharpest
exacerbations of his wound (like that on his groin) he never dropt one
fretful or discontented word--he blamed neither heaven nor earth--or
thought or spoke an injurious thing of any body, or any part of it; he
sat solitary and pensive with his pipe--looking at his lame leg--then
whiffing out a sentimental heigh ho! which mixing with the smoke,
incommoded no one mortal.

He took it like a lamb--I say.

In truth he had mistook it at first; for having taken a ride with my
father, that very morning, to save if possible a beautiful wood, which
the dean and chapter were hewing down to give to the poor; which
said wood being in full view of my uncle Toby's house, and of
singular service to him in his description of the battle of Wyn-
nendale--by trotting on too hastily to save it--upon an uneasy
saddle--worse horse, &c. &c. . . it had so happened, that
the serous
part of the blood had got betwixt the two skins, in the nethermost part
of my uncle Toby--the first shootings of which (as my uncle Toby
had no experience of love) he had taken for a part of the passion--till
the blister breaking in the one case--and the other remaining--my uncle
Toby was presently convinced, that his wound was not a skin-deep
wound--but that it had gone to his heart.




Volume 8, Chapter 27



THE world is ashamed of being virtuous--my uncle Toby knew little of
the world; and therefore when he felt he was in love with widow
Wadman, he had no conception that the thing was any more to be made a
mystery of, than if Mrs. Wadman had given him a cut with a gap'd
knife
across his finger: Had it been otherwise--yet as he ever look'd
upon Trim as a humble friend; and saw fresh reasons every day of his
life, to treat him as such--it would have made no variation in the
manner in which he informed him of the affair.

“I am in love, corporal!” quoth my uncle Toby.




Volume 8, Chapter 28



IN love!--said the corporal--your honour was very well the day before
yesterday
, when I was telling your honour of the story of the King of
Bohemia--Bohemia! said my uncle Toby - - - - musing a long time - -
--What became of that story, Trim?

--We lost it, an' please your honour, somehow betwixt us
--but your honour
was as free from love then, as I am--'twas just whilst thou went'st off
with the wheel-barrow--with Mrs. Wadman, quoth my uncle Toby--She
has left a ball here--added my uncle Toby--pointing to his breast--

--She can no more, an' please your honour, stand a siege, than she can
fly--cried the corporal--

--But as we are neighbours, Trim,--the best way I think is to let her
know it civilly first--quoth my uncle Toby.

Now if I might presume, said the corporal, to differ from your honour--

--Why else do I talk to thee, Trim? said my uncle Toby, mildly--


--Then I would begin, an' please your honour, with making a good
thundering attack upon her, in return--and telling her civilly
afterwards--for if she knows any thing of your honour's being in love,
before hand--L--d help her!--
she knows no more at present of it, Trim,
said my uncle Toby--than the child unborn--

Precious souls!--


Mrs. Wadman had told it, with all its circumstances, to Mrs. Bridget
twenty-four hours before; and was at that very moment sitting in
council with her, touching some slight misgivings with regard to the
issue of the affairs, which
the Devil, who never lies dead in a ditch,
had put into her head--before he would allow half time, to get quietly
through her Te Deum.


I am terribly afraid, said widow Wadman, in case I should marry him,
Bridget--that the poor captain will not enjoy his health, with the
monstrous wound upon his groin--

It may not, Madam, be so very large, replied Bridget, as you
think--and I believe, besides, added she--that 'tis dried up--

--I could like to know--merely for his sake, said Mrs. Wadman--

--We'll know and long and the broad of it, in ten days--answered Mrs.
Bridget, for whilst the captain is paying his addresses to you--
I'm
confident Mr. Trim will be for making love to me--and I'll let him as
much as he will--added Bridget--to get it all out of him--

The measures were taken at once--and my uncle Toby and the corporal
went on with theirs.

Now, quoth the corporal, setting his left hand a-kimbo, and giving such
a flourish with his right, as just promised success--and no more--if
your honour will give me leave to lay down the plan of this attack--

--Thou wilt please me by it, Trim, said my uncle Toby, exceedingly--
and as I foresee thou must act in it as my aid de camp, here's a crown,
corporal, to begin with, to steep thy commission.

Then, an' please your honour, said the corporal (making a bow first for
his commission)--we will begin with getting your honour's laced clothes
out of the great campaign-trunk, to be well air'd, and have the blue
and gold taken up at the sleeves--and I'll put your white ramallie-wig
fresh into pipes--and send for a taylor, to have your honour's thin
scarlet breeches turn'd--

--I had better take the red plush ones, quoth my uncle Toby--They will
be too clumsy--said the corporal.




Volume 8, Chapter 29



--Thou wilt get a brush and a little chalk to my sword--'Twill be only
in your honour's way, replied Trim.



Volume 8, Chapter 30



--But your honour's two razors shall be new set--and I will get my
Montero cap furbish'd up, and put on poor lieutenant Le Fever's
regimental coat, which your honour gave me to wear for his sake--and as
soon as your honour is clean shaved--and has got your clean shirt on,
with your blue and gold, or your fine scarlet--sometimes one and
sometimes t'other--and every thing is ready for the attack--we'll march
up boldly, as if 'twas to the face of a bastion; and
whilst your honour
engages Mrs. Wadman in the parlour, to the right--I'll attack Mrs.
Bridget in the kitchen, to the left; and having seiz'd the pass, I'll
answer for it, said the corporal, snapping his fingers over his
head--that the day is our own.


I wish I may but manage it right; said my uncle Toby--but I declare,
corporal, I had rather march up to the very edge of a trench--

--A woman is quite a different thing--said the corporal.

--I suppose so, quoth my uncle Toby.




Volume 8, Chapter 31



IF any thing in this world, which my father said, could have provoked
my uncle Toby, during the time he was in love, it was the perverse
use my father was always making of an expression of
Hilarion the
hermit; who, in speaking of his abstinence, his watchings, flagellations,
and other instrumental parts of his religion--would say--tho' with
more facetiousness than became an hermit--“That they were the
means he used, to make his ass (meaning his body) leave off kicking.”

It pleased my father well; it was not only a laconick way of expressing
--but of libelling, at the same time, the desires and appetites of the
lower part of us; so that for many years of my father's life, 'twas his
constant mode of expression--he never used the word passions once
--but ass always instead of them--So that he might be said truly, to
have been upon the bones, or the back of his own ass, or else of some
other man's,
during all that time.

I must here observe to you the difference betwixt


My father's ass

and my hobby-horse--in order to keep characters as separate as may be,
in our fancies as we go along.


For my hobby-horse, if you recollect a little, is no way a vicious
beast; he has scarce one hair or lineament of the ass about him--'Tis
the sporting little filly-folly which carries you out for the present
hour--a maggot, a butterfly, a picture, a fiddlestick--an uncle Toby's
siege--or an any thing, which a man makes a shift to get a-stride on,
to canter it away from the cares and solicitudes of life--'Tis as useful
a beast as is in the whole creation
--nor do I really see how the world
could do without it--

--But for my father's ass--oh! mount him--mount him--mount him--
(that's three times, is it not?)--mount him not:--'tis a beast concu-
piscent--and foul befal the man, who does not hinder him from kicking.




Volume 8, Chapter 32



WELL! dear brother Toby, said my father, upon his first seeing him
after he fell in love--and how goes it with your ASSE?

Now my uncle Toby thinking more of the part where he had had the
blister, than of Hilarion's metaphor--and our preconceptions having
(you know) as great a power over the sounds of words as the shapes of
things, he had imagined,
that my father, who was not very ceremonious
in his choice of words, had enquired after the part by its proper name:
so notwithstanding my mother, doctor Slop, and Mr. Yorick, were
sitting in the parlour, he thought it rather civil to conform to the
term my father had made use of than not.
When a man is hemm'd in by two
indecorums, and must commit one of 'em--I always observe--let him chuse
which he will, the world will blame him
--so I should not be astonished
if it blames my uncle Toby.

My A--e, quoth my uncle Toby, is much better--brother Shandy
--My
father had formed great expectations from his Asse in this onset; and
would have brought him on again; but
doctor Slop setting up an intem-
perate laugh--and my mother crying out L-- bless us!--it drove my
father's Asse off the field
--and the laugh then becoming general--there
was no bringing him back to the charge, for some time--

And so the discourse went on without him.


Every body, said my mother, says you are in love, brother Toby,--and
we hope it is true.

I am as much in love, sister, I believe, replied my uncle Toby, as
any man usually is--Humph! said my father--and when did you know it?
quoth my mother--

--When the blister broke; replied my uncle Toby.


My uncle Toby's reply put my father into good temper--so he charg'd o'
foot.



Volume 8, Chapter 33



AS the ancients agree, brother Toby, said my father, that there are
two different and distinct kinds of love, according to the different
parts which are affected by it--the Brain or Liver
--I think when a man
is in love, it behoves him a little to consider which of the two he is
fallen into.

What signifies it, brother Shandy, replied my uncle Toby, which of
the two it is, provided it will but make a man marry, and love his
wife, and get a few children?

--A few children! cried my father, rising out of his chair, and looking
full in my mother's face, as he forced his way betwixt her's and doctor
Slop's--a few children! cried my father, repeating my uncle Toby's
words as he walk'd to and fro--

--Not, my dear brother Toby, cried my father, recovering himself all
at once, and coming close up to the back of my uncle Toby's chair--not
that I should be sorry hadst thou a score--on the contrary, I should
rejoice--and be as kind, Toby, to every one of them as a father--

My uncle Toby stole his hand unperceived behind his chair, to give my
father's a squeeze--

--Nay, moreover, continued he, keeping hold of my uncle Toby's
hand--
so much dost thou possess, my dear Toby, of the milk of human
nature, and so little of its asperities--'tis piteous the world is not
peopled by creatures which resemble thee; and was I an Asiatic
monarch, added my father, heating himself with his new project--I would
oblige thee, provided it would not impair thy strength--or dry up thy
radical moisture too fast--or weaken thy memory or fancy, brother
Toby, which these gymnics inordinately taken are apt to do--else, dear
Toby, I would procure thee the most beautiful woman in my empire, and
I would oblige thee, nolens, volens, to beget for me one subject
every month--


As my father pronounced the last word of the sentence--my mother
took a pinch of snuff.

Now I would not, quoth my uncle Toby, get a child, nolens, volens,
that is, whether I would or no, to please the greatest prince upon
earth--

--And 'twould be cruel in me, brother Toby, to compel thee; said my
father--but 'tis a case put to shew thee, that
it is not thy begetting a
child
--in case thou should'st be able--but the system of Love and
Marriage thou goest upon, which I would set thee right in--

There is at least, said Yorick, a great deal of reason and plain
sense in captain Shandy's opinion of love; and 'tis amongst the
ill-spent hours of my life, which I have to answer for, that I have
read so many flourishing poets and rhetoricians in my time, from whom
I never could extract so much--


I wish, Yorick, said my father, you had read Plato; for there you
would have learnt that
there are two LOVES--I know there were two
RELIGIONS, replied Yorick, amongst the ancients--one--for the vulgar,
and another for the learned;--but I think ONE LOVE might have served
both of them very well--


I could not; replied my father--and for the same reasons: for of these
Loves, according to Ficinus's comment upon Velasius, the one is
rational--

--the other is natural--

the first ancient--without mother--where Venus had nothing to do: the
second, begotten of Jupiter and Dione--

--Pray, brother, quoth my uncle Toby, what has a man who believes in
God to do with this? My father could not stop to answer, for fear of
breaking the thread of his discourse--

This latter, continued he, partakes wholly of the nature of Venus.


The first, which is the golden chain let down from heaven, excites to
love heroic, which comprehends in it, and excites to the desire of
philosophy and truth--the second, excites to desire, simply--

--I think the procreation of children as beneficial to the world, said
Yorick, as the finding out the longitude--

--To be sure, said my mother, love keeps peace in the world--

--In the house--my dear, I own--

--It replenishes the earth; said my mother--

But it keeps heaven empty--my dear; replied my father.

--'Tis Virginity, cried Slop, triumphantly, which fills paradise.

Well push'd nun! quoth my father.




Volume 8, Chapter 34



MY father had such a skirmishing, cutting kind of a slashing way with
him in his disputations, thrusting and ripping, and giving every one a
stroke to remember him by in his turn—that if there were were twenty
people in company--in less than half an hour he was sure to have ev-
ery one of 'em against him.


What did not a little contribute to leave him thus without an ally,
was, that if there was any one post more untenable than the rest, he
would be sure to throw himself into it; and to do him justice, when he
was once there, he would defend it so gallantly, that 'twould have been
a concern, either to a brave man or a good-natured one, to have seen
him driven out.

Yorick, for this reason, though he would often attack him--yet could
never bear to do it with all his force.

Doctor Slop's VIRGINITY, in the close of the last chapter, had got
him for once on the right side of the rampart; and he was beginning to
blow up all the convents in Christendom about Slop's ears,
when
corporal Trim came into the parlour to inform my uncle Toby, that
his thin scarlet breeches, in which the attack was to be made upon Mrs.
Wadman, would not do
; for that the taylor, in ripping them up, in
order to turn them, had found they had been turn'd before--Then turn
them again, brother, said my father, rapidly, for there will be many a
turning of 'em yet before all's done in the affair--
They are as rotten
as dirt, said the corporal--Then by all means, said my father, bespeak
a new pair, brother
--for though I know, continued my father, turning
himself to the company, that widow Wadman has been deeply in love
with my brother Toby for many years, and has used every art and
circumvention of woman to outwit him into the same passion, yet now
that she has caught him--her fever will be pass'd its height--


--She has gained her point.

In this case, continued my father, which Plato, I am persuaded, never
thought of--
Love, you see, is not so much a SENTIMENT as a SITUATION,
into which a man enters, as my brother Toby would do, into a corps--no
matter whether he loves the service or no--being once in it--he acts as
if he did; and takes every step to shew himself a man of prowesse.


The hypothesis, like the rest of my father's, was plausible enough, and
my uncle Toby had but a single word to object to it--in which Trim
stood ready to second him--but my father had not drawn his conclusion--

For this reason, continued my father (stating the case over again)--not-
withstanding all the world knows, that Mrs. Wadman affects my brother
Toby--and my brother Toby contrariwise affects Mrs. Wadman, and
no
obstacle in nature to forbid the music striking up this very night, yet will
I answer for it, that this self-same tune will not be play'd this twelve-
month.


We have taken our measures badly, quoth my uncle Toby, looking up
interrogatively in Trim's face.

I would lay my Montero-cap, said Trim--Now Trim's Montero-cap,
as I once told you, was his constant wager; and having furbish'd it up
that very night, in order to go upon the attack--it made the odds look
more considerable--I would lay, an' please your honour, my
Montero-cap to a shilling--was it proper, continued Trim (making a
bow), to offer a wager before your honours--

--There is nothing improper in it, said my father--'tis a mode of
expression; for in saying thou would'st lay thy Montero-cap to a
shilling--all thou meanest is this--that thou believest--

--Now, What do'st thou believe?


That widow Wadman, an' please your worship, cannot hold it out ten
days--

And whence, cried Slop, jeeringly, hast thou all this knowledge of
woman, friend?

By falling in love with a popish clergy-woman; said Trim.

'Twas a Beguine, said my uncle Toby.

Doctor Slop was too much in wrath to listen to the distinction; and
my father taking that very crisis to fall in helter-skelter upon the
whole order of Nuns and Beguines, a set of silly, fusty, baggages--

Slop could not stand it--and my uncle Toby having some measures
to take about his breeches--and Yorick about his fourth general
division--in order for their several attacks next day--the company
broke up: and my father being left alone,
and having half an hour u-
pon his hands betwixt that and bed-time; he called for pen, ink, and
paper, and wrote my uncle Toby the following letter of instructions:


My dear brother Toby,

WHAT I am going to say to thee is upon the nature of women, and of
love-making to them; and perhaps it is as well for thee--tho' not so
well for me--that thou hast occasion for a letter of instructions upon
that head, and that I am able to write it to thee.

Had it been the good pleasure of him who disposes of our lots--and
thou no sufferer by the knowledge, I had been well content that thou
should'st have dipp'd the pen this moment into the ink, instead of
myself; but that not being the case----Mrs Shandy being now close
beside me, preparing for bed--I have thrown together without order, and
just as they have come into my mind, such hints and documents as I deem
may be of use to thee; intending, in this, to give thee a token of my
love; not doubting, my dear Toby, of the manner in which it will be
accepted.

In the first place,
with regard to all which concerns religion in the
affair--though I perceive from a glow in my cheek, that I blush as I
begin to speak to thee upon the subject
, as well knowing, notwith-
standing thy unaffected secrecy, how few of its offices thou neglect-
est--yet I would remind thee of one (during the continuance of thy
courtship) in a particular manner, which I would not have omitted;
and that is, never to go forth upon the enterprize, whether it be in
the morning or the afternoon, without first recommending thyself to the
protection of Almighty God, that he may defend thee from the evil one.

Shave the whole top of thy crown clean once at least every four or five
days, but oftener if convenient; lest in taking off thy wig before her,
thro' absence of mind, she should be able to discover how much has been
cut away by Time--how much by Trim.

--'Twere better to keep ideas of baldness out of her fancy.


Always carry it in thy mind, and act upon it as a sure maxim, Toby--

That women are timid:” And 'tis well they are--else there would be
no dealing with them.

Let not thy breeches be too tight, or hang too loose about thy thighs,
like the trunk-hose of our ancestors.

--A just medium prevents all conclusions.


Whatever thou hast to say, be it more or less, forget not to utter it
in a low soft tone of voice. Silence, and whatever approaches it,
weaves dreams of midnight secrecy into the brain: For this cause, if
thou canst help it, never throw down the tongs and poker.

Avoid all kinds of pleasantry and facetiousness in thy discourse with
her, and do whatever lies in thy power at the same time, to keep her
from all books and writings which tend thereto: there are some
devotional tracts, which if thou canst entice her to read over--it will
be well: but suffer her not to look into Rabelais, or Scarron, or
Don Quixote--

--They are all books which excite laughter; and thou knowest, dear
Toby, that there is no passion so serious as lust.


Stick a pin in the bosom of thy shirt, before thou enterest her
parlour.

And if thou art permitted to sit upon the same sopha with her, and
she
gives thee occasion to lay thy hand upon hers--beware of taking it--thou
canst not lay thy hand on hers, but she will feel the temper of thine.

Leave that and as many other things as thou canst, quite undetermined;
by so doing, thou wilt have her curiosity on thy side; and if she is
not conquered by that, and thy Asse continues still kicking, which
there is great reason to suppose--Thou must begin, with first losing a
few ounces of blood below the ears, according to the practice of the
ancient Scythians, who cured the most intemperate fits of the
appetite by that means.

Avicenna, after this, is for having the part anointed with the syrup
of hellebore, using proper evacuations and purges--and I believe
rightly. But thou must eat little or no goat's flesh, nor red deer--nor
even foal's flesh by any means; and carefully abstain--that is, as much
as thou canst, from peacocks, cranes, coots, didappers, and
water-hens--

As for thy drink--I need not tell thee, it must be the infusion of
VERVAIN and the herb HANEA, of which Ælian relates such effects--but
if thy stomach palls with it--discontinue it from time to time, taking
cucumbers, melons, purslane, water-lillies, woodbine, and lettice
, in
the stead of them.

There is nothing further for thee, which occurs to me at present--

--Unless the breaking out of a fresh war
--So wishing every thing, dear
Toby, for best,

I rest thy affectionate brother,

WALTER SHANDY.



Volume 8, Chapter 35




WHILST my father was writing his letter of instructions, my uncle
Toby and the corporal were busy in preparing every thing for the
attack. As the turning of the thin scarlet breeches was laid aside (at
least for the present), there was nothing which should put it off
beyond the next morning; so accordingly it was resolv'd upon, for
eleven o'clock.

Come, my dear, said my father to my mother--'twill be but like a brother
and sister, if you and I take a walk down to my brother Toby's--to
countenance him in this attack of his.

My uncle Toby and the corporal had been accoutred both some time,
when my father and mother enter'd, and the clock striking eleven, were
that moment in motion to sally forth--but the account of this is worth
more than to be wove into the fag end of the eighth[43] volume of such
a work as this.
--My father had no time but to put the letter of
instructions into my uncle Toby's coat-pocket--and join with my
mother in wishing his attack prosperous.

I could like, said my mother, to look through the key-hole out of
curiosity--Call it by its right name, my dear, quoth my father--

And look through the key-hole as long as you will.



             Volume IX



Volume 9, Chapter 1



I CALL all the powers of time and chance, which severally check us in
our careers in this world, to bear me witness, that I could never yet
get fairly to my uncle Toby's amours, till this very moment, that
my
mother's curiosity, as she stated the affair,--or a different impulse
in her, as my father would have it--wished her to take a peep at them
through the key-hole.

“Call it, my dear, by its right name, quoth my father, and look through
the key-hole as long as you will.”

Nothing but the fermentation of that little subacid humour, which I
have often spoken of, in my father's habit, could have vented such an
insinuation--he was however frank and generous in his nature, and at
all times open to conviction; so that he had scarce got to the last
word of this ungracious retort, when his conscience smote him.


My mother was then conjugally swinging with her left arm twisted under
his right, in such wise, that the inside of her hand rested upon the
back of his--
she raised her fingers, and let them fall--it could scarce
be call'd a tap; or if it was a tap--'twould have puzzled a casuist to
say,
whether 'twas a tap of remonstrance, or a tap of confession: my
father, who was all sensibilities from head to foot, class'd it right--
Conscience redoubled her blow
--he turn'd his face suddenly the o-
ther way, and my mother supposing his body was about to turn with it
in order to move homewards, by a cross movement of her right leg,
keeping her left as its centre, brought herself so far in front, that
as
he turned his head, he met her eye--Confusion again! he saw a
thousand reasons to wipe out the reproach, and as many to reproach
himself--a thin, blue, chill, pellucid chrystal with all its humours so
at rest, the least mote or speck of desire might have been seen, at the
bottom of it, had it existed--it did not
--and how I happen to be so
lewd myself, particularly a little before the vernal and autumnal equin-
oxes--Heaven above knows--My mother--madam--was so at no time,
either by nature, by institution, or example.

A temperate current of blood ran orderly through her veins in all
months of the year, and in all critical moments both of the day and
night alike; nor did she superinduce the least heat into her humours
from the manual effervescencies of devotional tracts
, which having
little or no meaning in them, nature is oft-times obliged to find
one--And as for my father's example! 'twas so far from being either
aiding or abetting thereunto, that 'twas the whole business of his
life, to keep all fancies of that kind out of her head--Nature had done
her part, to have spared him this trouble;
and what was not a little
inconsistent, my father knew it--And here am I sitting, this 12th day
of August 1766, in a purple jerkin and yellow pair of slippers,
without either wig or cap on,
a most tragicomical completion of his
prediction, “That I should neither think, nor act like any other man's
child, upon that very account.”


The mistake in my father, was in attacking my mother's motive, instead
of the act itself; for certainly key-holes were made for other purposes;
and considering the act, as an act which interfered with a true proposi-
tion, and denied a key-hole to be what it was--it became a violation of
nature; and was so far, you see, criminal.

It is for this reason, an' please your Reverences, That key-holes are
the occasions of more sin and wickedness, than all other holes in this
world put together.

--which leads me to my uncle Toby's amours.



Volume 9, Chapter 2



THOUGH the corporal had been as good as his word in putting my uncle
Toby's great ramallie-wig into pipes, yet the time was too short to
produce any great effects from it:
it had lain many years squeezed up
in the corner of his old campaign trunk; and as bad forms are not so
easy to be got the better of, and the use of candle-ends not so well
understood, it was not so pliable a business as one would have wished.
The corporal with cheary eye and both arms extended, had fallen back
perpendicular from it a score times, to inspire it, if possible, with a
better air--had SPLEEN given a look at it, 'twould have cost her
ladyship a smile--it curl'd every where but where the corporal would
have it; and where a buckle or two, in his opinion, would have done it
honour, he could as soon have raised the dead.

Such it was--or rather such would it have seem'd upon any other brow;
but the sweet look of goodness which sat upon my uncle Toby's,
assimilated every thing around it so sovereignly to itself, and Nature
had moreover wrote GENTLEMAN with so fair a hand in every line of his
countenance, that even his tarnish'd gold-laced hat and huge cockade of
flimsy taffeta became him;
and though not worth a button in themselves,
yet the moment my uncle Toby put them on, they became serious
objects, and altogether seem'd to have been picked up by the hand of
Science to set him off to advantage.

Nothing in this world could have co-operated more powerfully towards
this, than my uncle Toby's blue and gold--had not Quantity in some
measure been necessary to Grace
: in a period of fifteen or sixteen
years since they had been made, by a total inactivity in my uncle
Toby's life, for he seldom went further than the bowling-green--his
blue and gold had become so miserably too straight for him, that it was
with the utmost difficulty the corporal was able to get him into them;
the taking them up at the sleeves, was of no advantage.--They were
laced however down the back, and at the seams of the sides, &c. in the
mode of King William's reign; and to shorten all description, they
shone so bright against the sun that morning, and
had so metallick and
doughty an air with them, that had my uncle Toby thought of attacking
in armour, nothing could have so well imposed upon his imagination.


As for the thin scarlet breeches, they had been unripp'd by the taylor
between the legs, and left at sixes and sevens--

--Yes, Madam,--but let us govern our fancies. It is enough they were
held impracticable the night before, and as there was no alternative in
my uncle Toby's wardrobe, he sallied forth in the red plush.


The corporal had array'd himself in poor Le Fever's regimental coat;
and with his hair tuck'd up under his Montero-cap, which he had
furbish'd up for the occasion, march'd three paces distant from his
master: a whiff of military pride had puff'd out his shirt at the wrist;
and upon that in a black leather thong clipp'd into a tassel beyond the
knot, hung the corporal's stick--my uncle Toby carried his cane like
a pike.

--It looks well at least; quoth my father to himself.



Volume 9, Chapter 3



MY uncle Toby turn'd his head more than once behind him, to see how
he was supported by the corporal; and the corporal as oft as he did it,
gave a slight flourish with his stick--but not vapouringly; and with the
sweetest accent of most respectful encouragement, bid his honour “never
fear.”

Now my uncle Toby did fear; and grievously too; he knew not (as my
father had reproach'd him) so much as the right end of a Woman from the
wrong, and therefore was never altogether at his ease near any one of
them--unless in sorrow or distress; then infinite was his pity;
nor
would the most courteous knight of romance have gone further, at least
upon one leg, to have
wiped away a tear from a woman's eye; and yet
excepting once that he was beguiled into it by Mrs. Wadman, he had
never looked stedfastly into one; and would often tell my father in the
simplicity of his heart, that it was almost (if not about) as bad as
talking bawdy.--


--And suppose it is? my father would say.




Volume 9, Chapter 4



SHE cannot, quoth my uncle Toby, halting, when they had march'd up to
within twenty paces of Mrs. Wadman's door--she cannot, corporal, take
it amiss.--

--She will take it, an' please your honour, said the corporal, just as
the Jew's widow at Lisbon took it of my brother Tom.--


--And how was that? quoth my uncle Toby, facing quite about to the
corporal.

Your honour, replied the corporal, knows of Tom's misfortunes; but
this affair has nothing to do with them any further than this, That if
Tom had not married the widow--or
had it pleased God after their
marriage, that they had but put pork into their sausages, the honest
soul had never been taken out of his warm bed, and dragg'd to the
inquisition--'Tis a cursed place
--added the corporal, shaking his
head,--when once a poor creature is in, he is in, an' please your
honour, for ever.

'Tis very true; said my uncle Toby, looking gravely at Mrs.
Wadman's house, as he spoke.


Nothing, continued the corporal, can be so sad as confinement for
life--or so sweet, an' please your honour, as liberty.

Nothing, Trim--said my uncle Toby, musing--

Whilst a man is free,--cried the corporal, giving a flourish with his
stick thus--




A thousand of my father's most subtle syllogisms could not have said
more for celibacy.

My uncle Toby look'd earnestly towards his cottage and his bowling-
green.


The corporal had unwarily conjured up the Spirit of calculation with
his wand; and he had nothing to do, but to conjure him down again with
his story,
and in this form of Exorcism, most un-ecclesiastically did
the corporal do it.




Volume 9, Chapter 5



AS Tom's place, an' please your honour, was easy--and the weather
warm--it put him upon thinking seriously of settling himself in the
world; and as it fell out about that time, that
a Jew who kept a
sausage shop in the same street, had the ill luck to die of a stran-
gury, and leave his widow in possession of a rousing trade
--Tom
thought (as every body in Lisbon was doing the best he could devise
for himself) there could be no harm in offering her his service to
carry it on: so without any introduction to the widow, except that of
buying a pound of sausages at her shop--
Tom set out--counting the
matter thus within himself,
as he walk'd along; that let the worst come
of it that could, he should at least get a pound of sausages for their
worth--but, if things went well, he should be set up; inasmuch as he
should get not only a pound of sausages--but a wife and--a sausage
shop, an' please your honour, into the bargain.


Every servant in the family, from high to low, wish'd Tom success;
and I can fancy, an' please your honour, I see him this moment with
his white dimity waist-coat and breeches, and hat a little o' one side,
passing jollily along the street, swinging his stick, with a smile and
a chearful word for every body he met:--But alas! Tom! thou smilest
no more, cried the corporal, looking on one side of him upon the
ground, as if he apostrophised him in his dungeon.

Poor fellow! said my uncle Toby, feelingly.

He was an honest, light-hearted lad, an' please your honour, as ever
blood warm'd--

--Then he resembled thee, Trim, said my uncle Toby, rapidly.

The corporal blush'd down to his fingers ends--a tear of sentimental
bashfulness--another of gratitude to my uncle Toby--and a tear of
sorrow for his brother's misfortunes, started into his eye, and ran
sweetly down his cheek together; my uncle Toby's kindled as one lamp
does at another; and taking hold of the breast of Trim's coat (which
had been that of Le Fever's) as if to ease his lame leg, but in
reality to gratify a finer feeling
--he stood silent for a minute and a
half; at the end of which he took his hand away, and the corporal
making a bow, went on with his story of his brother and the Jew's
widow.




Volume 9, Chapter 6



WHEN Tom, an' please your honour, got to the shop, there was nobody
in it, but
a poor negro girl, with a bunch of white feathers slightly
tied to the end of a long cane, flapping away flies--not killing
them.--'Tis a pretty picture! said my uncle Toby--she had suffered
persecution, Trim, and had learnt mercy--


--She was good, an' please your honour, from nature, as well as from
hardships; and there are circumstances in the story of that poor
friendless slut, that would melt a heart of stone, said Trim; and
some dismal winter's evening, when your honour is in the humour, they
shall be told you with the rest of Tom's story, for it makes a part
of it--

Then do not forget, Trim, said my uncle Toby.

A negro has a soul? an' please your honour, said the corporal
(doubtingly).

I am not much versed, corporal, quoth my uncle Toby, in things of
that kind; but I suppose, God would not leave him without one, any more
than thee or me--

--It would be putting one sadly over the head of another, quoth the
corporal.

It would so; said my uncle Toby. Why then, an' please your honour, is
a black wench to be used worse than a white one?

I can give no reason, said my uncle Toby--

--Only, cried the corporal, shaking his head, because she has no one to
stand up for her--

--'Tis that very thing, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby,--which recommends
her to protection--and her brethren with her; 'tis the fortune of war
which has put the whip into our hands now--where it may be hereafter,
heaven knows!--but be it where it will, the brave, Trim! will not use it
unkindly.


--God forbid, said the corporal.

Amen, responded my uncle Toby, laying his hand upon his heart.

The corporal returned to his story, and went on--but with an embar-
rassment in doing it, which here and there a reader in this world
will not be able to comprehend; for
by the many sudden transitions all
along, from one kind and cordial passion to another, in getting thus
far on his way, he had lost the sportable key of his voice, which gave
sense and spirit to his tale:
he attempted twice to resume it, but
could not please himself; so giving a stout hem! to rally back the
retreating spirits, and aiding nature at the same time with his left
arm a kimbo on one side, and with his right a little extended, sup-
porting her on the other--the corporal got as near the note as he
could; and in that attitude, continued his story.




Volume 9, Chapter 7



AS Tom, an' please your honour, had no business at that time with
the Moorish girl, he passed on into the room beyond, to
talk to the
Jew's widow about love--and this pound of sausages; and being, as I
have told your honour, an open cheary-hearted lad, with his character
wrote in his looks and carriage
, he took a chair, and without much
apology, but with great civility at the same time, placed it close to
her at the table, and sat down.

There is nothing so awkward, as courting a woman, an' please your
honour, whilst she is making sausages--So Tom began a discourse upon
them; first, gravely,--“as how they were made--with what meats, herbs,
and spices.”--Then a little gayly,--as, “With what skins--and if they
never burst--Whether the largest were not the best?”
--and so on--taking
care only as he went along, to season what he had to say upon sausages,
rather under than over;--that he might have room to act in--

It was owing to the neglect of that very precaution, said my uncle
Toby, laying his hand upon Trim's shoulder, that Count De la
Motte lost the battle of Wynendale: he pressed too speedily into the
wood; which if he had not done, Lisle had not fallen into our hands,
nor Ghent and Bruges, which both followed her example; it was so
late in the year, continued my uncle Toby, and so terrible a season
came on, that if things had not fallen out as they did, our troops must
have perish'd in the open field.--

--Why, therefore, may not battles, an' please your honour, as well as
marriages, be made in heaven?--my uncle Toby mused--

Religion inclined him to say one thing, and his high idea of military
skill tempted him to say another;
so not being able to frame a reply
exactly to his mind--my uncle Toby said nothing at all;
and the
corporal finished his story.


As Tom perceived, an' please your honour, that he gained ground, and
that all he had said upon the subject of sausages was kindly taken, he
went on to help her a little in making them.--First, by taking hold of
the ring of the sausage whilst she stroked the forced meat down with
her hand--then by cutting the strings into proper lengths, and holding
them in his hand, whilst she took them out one by one--then, by putting
them across her mouth, that she might take them out as she wanted
them--and so on from little to more, till at last he adventured to tie
the sausage himself, whilst she held the snout.--

--Now a widow, an' please your honour, always chuses a second husband
as unlike the first as she can: so the affair was more than half
settled in her mind before Tom mentioned it.


She made a feint however of defending herself, by snatching up a
sausage:--Tom instantly laid hold of another--

But seeing Tom's had more gristle in it--

She signed the capitulation--and Tom sealed it; and there was an end
of the matter.




Volume 9, Chapter 8



ALL womankind, continued Trim, (commenting upon his story) from
the highest to the lowest, an' please your honour,
love jokes; the
difficulty is to know how they chuse to have them cut; and there is
no knowing that, but by trying, as we do with our artillery in the field,
by raising or letting down their breeches, till we hit the mark.--

--I like the comparison, said my uncle Toby, better than the thing
itself--

--Because your honour, quoth the corporal, loves glory, more than
pleasure.

I hope, Trim, answered my uncle Toby, I love mankind more than
either; and as the knowledge of arms tends so apparently to the good
and quiet of the world--and particularly that branch of it which we
have practised together in our bowling-green, has no object but to
shorten the strides of AMBITION, and intrench the lives and fortunes of
the few, from the plunderings of the many--whenever that drum beats
in our ears, I trust, corporal, we shall neither of us want so much
humanity and fellow-feeling, as to face about and march.


In pronouncing this, my uncle Toby faced about, and march'd firmly as
at the head of his company--and the faithful corporal, shouldering his
stick, and striking his hand upon his coat-skirt as he took his first
step--march'd close behind him down the avenue.


--Now what can their two noddles be about? cried my father to my
mother--by all that's strange, they are besieging Mrs. Wadman in
form, and are marching round her house to mark out the lines of
circumvallation.


I dare say, quoth my mother--But stop, dear Sir--for what my mother
dared to say upon the occasion--and what my father did say upon
it--with
her replies and his rejoinders, shall be read, perused, para-
phrased, commented, and descanted upon--or to say it all in a word,
shall be thumb'd over by Posterity in a chapter apart--I say, by Post-
erity--and care not, if I repeat the word again--for what has this book
done more than the Legation of Moses, or the Tale of a Tub, that it
may not swim down the gutter of Time along with them?

I will not argue the matter: Time wastes too fast: every letter I trace
tells me with what rapidity Life follows my pen: the days and hours of
it, more precious, my dear Jenny! than the rubies about thy neck, are
flying over our heads like light clouds of a windy day, never to return
more--every thing presses on--whilst thou art twisting that lock,--see!
it grows grey; and every time I kiss thy hand to bid adieu, and every
absence which follows it, are preludes to that eternal separation which
we are shortly to make.--


--Heaven have mercy upon us both!



Volume 9, Chapter 9



NOW, for what the world thinks of that ejaculation--I would not give a
groat.




Volume 9, Chapter 11



MY mother had gone with her left arm twisted in my father's right, till
they had got to the fatal angle of the old garden wall, where Doctor
Slop was overthrown by Obadiah on the coach-horse: as this was
directly opposite to the front of Mrs. Wadman's house, when my father
came to it, he gave a look across; and seeing my uncle Toby and the
corporal within ten paces of the door, he turn'd about--“Let us just
stop a moment, quoth my father, and see with what ceremonies my brother
Toby and his man Trim make their first entry-
-it will not detain
us, added my father, a single minute:”--No matter, if it be ten
minutes, quoth my mother.

--It will not detain us half one; said my father.

The corporal was just then setting in with the story of his brother
Tom and the Jew's widow:
the story went on--and on--it had episodes
in it--it came back, and went on--and on again;
there was no end of
it--the reader found it very long--

--G-- help my father! he pish'd fifty times at every new attitude, and
gave the corporal's stick, with all its flourishings and danglings, to
as many devils as chose to accept of them.

When issues of events like these my father is waiting for, are hanging
in the scales of fate, the mind has the advantage of changing the
principle of expectation three times, without which it would not have
power to see it out.


Curiosity governs the first moment; and the second moment is all
œconomy to justify the expence of the first--and for the third, fourth,
fifth, and sixth moments, and so on to the day of judgment--'tis a point
of HONOUR.

I need not be told, that the ethic writers have assigned this all to
Patience; but that VIRTUE, methinks, has extent of dominion sufficient
of her own, and enough to do in it, without invading the few dismantled
castles which HONOUR has left him upon the earth.


My father stood it out as well as he could with these three auxiliaries
to the end of Trim's story; and from thence to the end of my uncle
Toby's panegyrick upon arms, in the chapter following it; when
seeing, that instead of marching up to Mrs. Wadman's door, they both
faced about and march'd down the avenue diametrically opposite to his
expectation--he broke out at once with that little subacid soreness of
humour, which, in certain situations, distinguished his character from
that of all other men.



Volume 9, Chapter 11



--“Now what can their two noddles be about?” cried my father - - &c. -
- - -

I dare say, said my mother, they are making fortifications--

--Not on Mrs. Wadman's premises! cried my father, stepping back--

I suppose not: quoth my mother.

I wish, said my father, raising his voice, the whole science of fortifica-
tion at the devil, with all its trumpery of saps, mines, blinds, gabions,
fausse-brays and cuvetts--

--They are foolish things--said my mother.

Now she had a way, which, by the bye, I would this moment give away my
purple jerkin, and my yellow slippers into the bargain, if some of your
reverences would imitate--and that was, never to refuse her assent and
consent to any proposition my father laid before her, merely because
she did not understand it, or had no ideas of the principal word or
term of art, upon which the tenet or proposition rolled. She contented
herself with doing all that her godfathers and godmothers promised for
her--but no more; and so would go on using a hard word twenty years
together--and replying to it too, if it was a verb, in all its moods and
tenses, without giving herself any trouble to enquire about it.

This was an eternal source of misery to my father, and broke the neck,
at the first setting out, of more good dialogues between them, than
could have done the most petulant contradiction--the few which survived
were the better for the cuvetts--

--“They are foolish things;” said my mother.

--Particularly the cuvetts; replied my father.

'Tis enough--he tasted the sweet of triumph
--and went on.

--Not that they are, properly speaking, Mrs. Wadman's premises, said
my father, partly correcting himself--because she is but tenant for
life--

--That makes a great difference--said my mother--

--In a fool's head, replied my father--

Unless she should happen to have a child--said my mother--

--But she must persuade my brother Toby first to get her one--

To be sure, Mr. Shandy, quoth my mother.

--Though if it comes to persuasion--said my father--Lord have mercy upon
them.

Amen: said my mother, piano.

Amen: cried my father, fortissime.

Amen: said my mother again--but with such a sighing cadence of personal
pity at the end of it, as discomfited every fibre about my father
--he
instantly took out his almanack; but before he could untie it, Yorick's
congregation coming out of church, became a full answer to one half
of his business with it--and my mother telling him it was a sacrament
day--left him as little in doubt, as to the other part--
He put his alma-
nack into his pocket.

The first Lord of the Treasury thinking of ways and means, could not
have returned home with a more embarrassed look.



Volume 9, Chapter 12



UPON looking back from the end of the last chapter, and surveying the
texture of what has been wrote, it is necessary, that upon this page
and the three following,
a good quantity of heterogeneous matter be
inserted to keep up that just balance betwixt wisdom and folly, without
which a book would not hold together a single year: nor is it a poor
creeping digression
(which but for the name of, a man might continue as
well going on in the king's highway) which will do the business--no;
if
it is to be a digression, it must be a good frisky one, and upon a
frisky subject too,
where neither the horse or his rider are to be
caught, but by rebound.

The only difficulty, is raising powers suitable to the nature of the
service: FANCY is capricious--WIT must not be searched for--and
PLEASANTRY (good-natured slut as she is) will not come in at a call,
was an empire to be laid at her feet.

--The best way for a man, is to say his prayers--


Only if it puts him in mind of his infirmities and defects as well
ghostly as bodily
--for that purpose, he will find himself rather worse
after he has said them than before--for other purposes, better.

For my own part, there is not a way either moral or mechanical under
heaven that I could think of, which I have not taken with myself in
this case:
sometimes by addressing myself directly to the soul herself,
and arguing the point over and over again with her upon the extent of
her own faculties--

--I never could make them an inch the wider--

Then by changing my system, and trying what could be made of it upon
the body, by temperance, soberness, and chastity: These are good, quoth
I, in themselves--they are good, absolutely;--they are good, relatively;
--they are good for health--they are good for happiness in this world
--they are good for happiness in the next--

In short, they were good for every thing but the thing wanted; and
there they were good for nothing, but to leave the soul just as heaven
made it: as for the theological virtues of faith and hope, they give it
courage; but then that snivelling virtue of Meekness
(as my father
would always call it) takes it quite away again, so you are exactly
where you started.


Now in all common and ordinary cases, there is nothing which I have
found to answer so well as this--

--Certainly, if there is any dependence upon Logic, and that
I am not
blinded by self-love, there must be something of true genius about me,
merely upon this symptom of it, that I do not know what envy is:
for
never do I hit upon any invention or device which tendeth to the
furtherance of good writing, but I instantly make it public;
willing
that all mankind should write as well as myself.

--Which they certainly will, when they think as little.




Volume 9, Chapter 13




NOW in ordinary cases, that is, when I am only stupid, and the thoughts
rise heavily and pass gummous through my pen--

Or that I am got, I know not how, into a cold unmetaphorical vein of
infamous writing, and cannot take a plumb-lift out of it for my soul;
so must be obliged to go on writing like a Dutch commentator to the
end of the chapter, unless something be done--


--I never stand conferring with pen and ink one moment; for if a pinch
of snuff, or a stride or two across the room will not do the business
for me--I take a razor at once
; and having tried the edge of it upon the
palm of my hand, without further ceremony, except that of first
lathering my beard, I shave it off; taking care only if I do leave a
hair, that it be not a grey one: this done, I change my shirt--put on a
better coat--
send for my last wig--put my topaz ring upon my finger; and
in a word, dress myself from one end to the other of me, after my best
fashion.

Now the devil in hell must be in it, if this does not do:
for consider,
Sir, as every man chuses to be present at the shaving of his own beard
(though there is no rule without an exception), and unavoidably sits
over-against himself the whole time it is doing, in case he has a hand
in it--the Situation, like all others, has notions of her own to put
into the brain.--

--I maintain it, the conceits of a rough-bearded man, are seven years
more terse and juvenile for one single operation; and if they did not
run a risk of being quite shaved away, might be carried up by continual
shavings, to the highest pitch of sublimity--How Homer could write
with so long a beard, I don't know
--and as it makes against my
hypothesis, I as little care--But let us return to the Toilet.

Ludovicus Sorbonensis makes this entirely an affair of the body
as he calls it--but he is deceived:
the soul and
body are joint-sharers in every thing they get: A man cannot dress, but
his ideas get cloth'd at the same time; and if he dresses like a
gentleman, every one of them stands presented to his imagination,
genteelized along with him--so that he has nothing to do, but take his
pen, and write like himself.

For this cause, when your honours and reverences would know whe-
ther I writ clean and fit to be read, you will be able to judge full as well
by looking into my Laundress's bill, as my book: there is one single
month in which I can make it appear, that I dirtied one and thirty
shirts with clean writing;
and after all, was more abus'd, cursed, crit-
icis'd, and confounded, and had more mystic heads shaken at me, for
what I had wrote in that one month, than in all the other months of
that year put together.

--But their honours and reverences had not seen my bills.




Volume 9, Chapter 14




AS I never had any intention of beginning the Digression, I am making
all this preparation for, till I come to the 74th chapter--I have this
chapter to put to whatever use I think proper--I have twenty this
moment ready for it--
I could write my chapter of Button-holes in it--

Or my chapter of Pishes, which should follow them--

Or my chapter of Knots, in case their reverences have done with
them--they might lead me into mischief: the safest way is to follow the
track of the learned,
and raise objections against what I have been
writing, tho' I declare before-hand, I know no more than my heels how
to answer them.

And first, it may be said,
there is a pelting kind of thersitical
satire, as black as the very ink 'tis wrote with--(and by the bye,
whoever says so, is indebted to the muster-master general of the
Grecian army, for suffering the name of so ugly and foul-mouth'd a
man as Thersites to continue upon his roll--for it has furnish'd him
with an epithet)--in these productions he will urge, all the personal
washings and scrubbings upon earth do a sinking genius no sort of
good--but just the contrary, inasmuch as the dirtier the fellow is, the
better generally he succeeds in it.


To this, I have no other answer--at least ready--but that the
Archbishop of Benevento wrote his nasty Romance of the Galatea,
as all the world knows, in a purple coat, waistcoat, and purple pair of
breeches; and that the penance set him of writing a commentary upon the
book of the Revelations, as severe as it was look'd upon by one part
of the world, was far from being deem'd so, by the other, upon the
single account of that Investment.

Another objection, to all this remedy, is its want of universality;
forasmuch as the shaving part of it, upon which so much stress is laid,
by an unalterable law of nature excludes one half of the species
entirely from its use: all I can say is, that female writers, whether
of England, or of France, must e'en go without it--


As for the Spanish ladies--I am in no sort of distress--




Volume 9, Chapter 15




THE seventy-fourth chapter is come at last; and brings nothing with it
but a sad signature of
“How our pleasures slip from under us in this
world!”

For in talking of my digression--I declare before heaven I have made
it! What a strange creature is mortal man!
said she.

'Tis very true, said I--but 'twere better to get all these things out
of our heads, and return to my uncle Toby.




Volume 9, Chapter 16




WHEN my uncle Toby and the corporal had marched down to the bottom of
the avenue, they recollected their business lay the other way; so they
faced about and marched up straight to Mrs. Wadman's door.

I warrant your honour; said the corporal, touching his Montero-cap
with his hand, as he passed him in order to give a knock at the
door--My uncle Toby, contrary to his invariable way of treating his
faithful servant, said nothing good or bad: the truth was, he had not
altogether marshal'd his ideas;
he wish'd for another conference, and
as the corporal was mounting up the three steps before the door--he
hem'd twice--a portion of my uncle Toby's most modest spirits fled, at
each expulsion, towards the corporal; he stood with the rapper of the
door suspended for a full minute in his hand, he scarce knew why.
Bridget stood perdue within, with her finger and her thumb upon the
latch, benumb'd with expectation; and Mrs Wadman, with an eye ready
to be deflowered again, sat breathless behind the window-curtain of her
bed-chamber, watching their approach.

Trim! said my uncle Toby--but as he articulated the word, the minute
expired, and Trim let fall the rapper.

My uncle Toby perceiving that all hopes of a conference were knock'd
on the head by it--whistled Lillabullero.



Volume 9, Chapter 17



AS Mrs. Bridget's finger and thumb were upon the latch, the corporal
did not knock as often as perchance your honour's taylor--I might have
taken my example something nearer home; for I owe mine, some five and
twenty pounds at least, and wonder at the man's patience--


--But this is nothing at all to the world: only
'tis a cursed thing to
be in debt; and there seems to be a fatality in the exchequers of some
poor princes, particularly those of our house, which no Economy can
bind down in irons: for my own part, I'm persuaded there is not any one
prince, prelate, pope, or potentate, great or small upon earth, more
desirous in his heart of keeping straight with the world than I am
--or
who takes more likely means for it. I never give above half a
guinea--or walk with boots--or cheapen tooth-picks--or lay out a
shilling upon a band-box the year round; and
for the six months I'm in
the country, I'm upon so small a scale, that with all the good temper
in the world, I outdo Rousseau, a bar length--for I keep neither man
or boy, or horse, or cow, or dog, or cat, or any thing that can eat or
drink, except a thin poor piece of a Vestal (to keep my fire in), and
who has generally as bad an appetite as myself
--but if you think this
makes a philosopher of me--I would not, my good people! give a rush for
your judgments.


True philosophy--but there is no treating the subject whilst my uncle
is whistling Lillabullero.

--Let us go into the house.




Volume 9, Chapter 18




Volume 9, Chapter 19




Volume 9, Chapter 20



-- * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *.

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
*.--

--You shall see the very place, Madam; said my uncle Toby.

Mrs. Wadman blush'd--look'd towards the door--turn'd pale--blush'd
slightly again--recover'd her natural colour--blush'd worse than ever;

which, for the sake of the unlearned reader, I translate thus--

L--d! I cannot look at it--
What would the world say if I look'd at it?
I should drop down, if I look'd at it--
I wish I could look at it--
There can be no sin in looking at it.
--I will look at it
.”


Whilst all this was running through Mrs. Wadman's imagination, my
uncle Toby had risen from the sopha, and got to the other side of the
parlour door,
to give Trim an order about it in the passage--

* * * * * * * * * * * * * *--I believe it is in the garret, said my
uncle Toby--I saw it there, an' please your honour, this morning,
answered Trim--Then prithee, step directly for it, Trim, said my
uncle Toby, and bring it into the parlour.

The corporal did not approve of the orders, but most cheerfully obeyed
them. The first was not an act of his will--the second was; so he put on
his Montero-cap, and went as fast as his lame knee would let him. My
uncle Toby returned into the parlour, and sat himself down again upon
the sopha.


--You shall lay your finger upon the place--said my uncle Toby.--I
will not touch it, however, quoth Mrs. Wadman to herself.

This requires a second translation:--it shews what little knowledge is
got by mere words--we must go up to the first springs.

Now in order to clear up the mist which hangs upon these three pages, I
must endeavour to be as clear as possible myself.

Rub your hands thrice across your foreheads--blow your noses--cleanse
your emunctories--sneeze, my good people!--God bless you--


Now give me all the help you can.



Volume 9, Chapter 21



AS there are fifty different ends (counting all ends in--as well civil
as religious) for which a woman takes a husband, the first sets about
and
carefully weighs, then separates and distinguishes in her mind,
which of all that number of ends is hers; then by discourse, enquiry,
argumentation, and inference, she investigates
and finds out whether
she has got hold of the right one--and if she has--then, by pulling it
gently this way and that way, she further forms a judgment, whether it
will not break in the drawing.

The imagery under which Slawkenbergius impresses this upon the
reader's fancy, in the beginning of his third Decad, is so ludicrous,
that the honour I bear the sex, will not suffer me to quote
it--otherwise it is not destitute of humour.

“She first, saith Slawkenbergius, stops the asse, and holding his
halter in her left hand (lest he should get away) she thrusts her right
hand into the very bottom of his pannier to search for it--For
what?--you'll not know the sooner, quoth Slawkenbergius, for
interrupting me--

“I have nothing, good Lady, but empty bottles;' says the asse.

“I'm loaded with tripes;” says the second.


--And thou art little better, quoth she to the third; for nothing is
there in thy panniers but trunk-hose and pantofles--
and so to the fourth
and fifth, going on one by one through the whole string, till coming to
the asse which carries it, she turns the pannier upside down, looks at
it--considers it--samples it--measures it--stretches it--wets it--dries
it--then takes her teeth both to the warp and weft of it.

--Of what? for the love of Christ!

I am determined, answered Slawkenbergius, that all the powers upon
earth shall never wring that secret from my breast.




Volume 9, Chapter 22



WE live in a world beset on all sides with mysteries and riddles--and so
'tis no matter--else it seems strange, that Nature, who makes every
thing so well to answer its destination,
and seldom or never errs,
unless for pastime, in giving such forms and aptitudes to whatever
passes through her hands, that whether she designs for the plough, the
caravan, the cart--or whatever other creature she models, be it but an
asse's foal, you are sure to have the thing you wanted;
and yet at the
same time should so eternally bungle it as she does, in making so
simple a thing as a married man.

Whether it is in the choice of the clay--or that it is frequently
spoiled in the baking; by an excess of which a husband may turn out too
crusty (you know) on one hand--or not enough so, through defect of
heat, on the other--or whether this great Artificer is not so attentive
to the little Platonic exigences of that part of the species, for
whose use she is fabricating this
--or that her Ladyship sometimes
scarce knows what sort of a husband will do--I know not: we will
discourse about it after supper.

It is enough, that neither the observation itself, or the reasoning
upon it, are at all to the purpose--but rather against it; since with
regard to my uncle Toby's fitness for the marriage state, nothing was
ever better:
she had formed him of the best and kindliest clay--had
temper'd it with her own milk, and breathed into it the sweetest
spirit--she had made him all gentle, generous, and humane--she had
filled his heart with trust and confidence, and disposed every passage
which led to it, for the communication of the tenderest offices
--she
had moreover considered the other causes for which matrimony was
ordained--


And accordingly * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *.

The DONATION was not defeated by my uncle Toby's wound.

Now this last article was somewhat apocryphal; and the Devil, who is
the great disturber of our faiths in this world, had raised scruples in
Mrs. Wadman's brain about it; and like a true devil as he was, had
done his own work at the same time, by turning my uncle Toby's Virtue
thereupon into nothing but empty bottles, tripes, trunk-hose, and
pantofles.




Volume 9, Chapter 23



MRS. Bridget had pawn'd all the little stock of honour a poor chamber
-maid was worth in the world, that she would get to the bottom of the
affair in ten days; and it was built upon one of the most concessible
postulata in nature: namely, that whilst my uncle Toby was making love
to her mistress, the corporal could find nothing better to do, than make
love to her--“And I'll let him as much as he will, said Bridget, "to get
it out of him
.”

Friendship has two garments; an outer and an under one. Bridget was
serving her mistress's interests in the one
--and doing the thing which
most pleased herself in the other: so had as many stakes depending upon
my uncle Toby's wound, as the Devil himself--Mrs. Wadman had but
one--and as it possibly might be her last (without discouraging Mrs.
Bridget, or discrediting her talents) was determined to play her
cards herself.

She wanted not encouragement: a child might have look'd into his
hand--
there was such a plainness and simplicity in his playing out what
trumps he had--with such an unmistrusting ignorance of the ten-ace--
and so naked and defenceless did he sit upon the same sopha with wid-
ow Wadman, that a generous heart would have wept to have won the
game of him.

Let us drop the metaphor
.



Volume 9, Chapter 24



--AND the story too--if you please: for though I have all along been
hastening towards this part of it, with so much earnest desire, as well
knowing it to be the choicest morsel of what I had to offer to the
world, yet now that I am got to it, any one is welcome to take my pen,
and go on with the story for me that will--I see the difficulties of the
descriptions I'm going to give--and feel my want of powers.


It is one comfort at least to me, that I lost some fourscore ounces of
blood this week in a most uncritical fever which attacked me at the
beginning of this chapter; so that I have still some hopes remaining,
it may be more in the serous or globular parts of the blood, than in
the subtile aura of the brain--be it which it will--an Invocation can
do no hurt--and I leave the affair entirely to the invoked, to inspire
or to inject me according as he sees good
.


        T H E  I N V O C A T I O N


GENTLE Spirit of sweetest humour, who erst did sit upon the easy pen of
my beloved CERVANTES; Thou who glidedst daily through his lattice, and
turned'st the twilight of his prison into noon-day brightness by thy pres-
ence--tinged'st his little urn of water with heaven-sent nectar, and all
the time he wrote of Sancho and his master, didst cast thy mystic mantle
o'er his wither'd stump, and wide extended it to all the evils of his life--

--Turn in hither, I beseech thee!--behold these breeches!--they are all
I have in world--that piteous rent was given them at Lyons--

My shirts! see what a deadly schism has happen'd amongst 'em
--for the
laps are in Lombardy, and the rest of 'em here--I never had but six,
and a cunning gypsey of a laundress at Milan cut me off the fore-laps
of five--To do her justice, she did it with some consideration--for I
was returning out of Italy.

And yet, notwithstanding all this, and a pistol tinder-box which was
moreover filch'd from me at Sienna, and twice that I pay'd five Pauls
for two hard eggs,
once at Raddicoffini, and a second time at Capua--
I do not think a journey through France and Italy, provided a man keeps
his temper all the way, so bad a thing as some people would make you
believe:
there must be ups and downs, or how the duce should we get
into vallies where Nature spreads so many tables of entertainment.--
'Tis nonsense to imagine they will lend you their voitures to be shaken
to pieces for nothing; and unless you pay twelve sous for greasing your
wheels, how should the poor peasant get butter to his bread?
--We really
expect too much--and for the livre or two above par for your suppers
and bed--at the most they are but one shilling and ninepence halfpenny
--
who would embroil their philosophy for it? for heaven's and for your
own sake, pay it--pay it with both hands open, rather than leave Dis-
appointment
sitting drooping upon the eye of your fair Hostess and her
Damsels
in the gate-way, at your departure--and besides, my dear Sir,
you get a sisterly kiss of each of 'em worth a pound--at least I did--

--For my uncle Toby's amours running all the way in my head, they had
the same effect upon me as if they had been my own--
I was in the most
perfect state of bounty and good-will; and felt the kindliest harmony
vibrating within me, with every oscillation of the chaise alike; so
that whether the roads were rough or smooth, it made no difference;
every thing I saw or had to do with, touch'd upon some secret spring
either of sentiment or rapture.


--They were the sweetest notes I ever heard;
and I instantly let down
the fore-glass to hear them more distinctly--'Tis Maria; said the
postillion, observing I was listening--Poor Maria, continued he
(leaning his body on one side to let me see her, for he was in a line
betwixt us), is sitting upon a bank playing her vespers upon her pipe,
with her little goat beside her.


The young fellow utter'd this with an accent and a look so perfectly in
tune to a feeling heart
, that I instantly made a vow, I would give him
a four-and-twenty sous piece, when I got to Moulins--

--And who is poor Maria? said I.


The love and piety of all the villages around us; said the postillion--
it is
but three years ago, that the sun did not shine upon so fair, so
quick- witted and amiable a maid;
and better fate did Maria deserve,
than to have her Banns forbid, by the intrigues of the curate of the
parish who published them--

He was going on, when Maria, who had made a short pause,
put the pipe
to her mouth, and began the air again--they were the same notes;--yet
were ten times sweeter:
It is the evening service to the Virgin, said the
young man--but who has taught her to play it--or how she came by her
pipe, no one knows; we think that heaven has assisted her in both; for
ever
since she has been unsettled in her mind, it seems her only con-
solation
--she has never once had the pipe out of her hand, but plays
that service upon it almost night and day.

The postillion delivered this with so much discretion and natural
eloquence, that I could not help decyphering something in his face
above his condition,
and should have sifted out his history, had not
poor Maria taken such full possession of me.

We had got up by this time almost to the bank where Maria was
sitting:
she was in a thin white jacket, with her hair, all but two
tresses, drawn up into a silk-net, with a few olive leaves twisted a
little fantastically on one side--she was beautiful; and if ever I felt
the full force of an honest heart-ache, it was the moment I saw her--


--God help her! poor damsel! above a hundred masses, said the
postillion, have been said in the several parish churches and convents
around, for her,--but without effect;
we have still hopes, as she is
sensible for short intervals, that the Virgin at last will restore her

to herself; but her parents, who know her best, are hopeless upon that
score, and think her senses are lost for ever.

As the postillion spoke this,
MARIA made a cadence so melancholy, so
tender and querulous, that I sprung out of the chaise
to help her, and
found myself sitting betwixt her and her goat before I relapsed from my
enthusiasm.

MARIA look'd wistfully for some time at me, and then at her goat--and
then at me--and then at her goat again, and so on, alternately--

--Well, Maria, said I softly--What resemblance do you find?


I do entreat the candid reader to believe me, that it was
from the
humblest conviction of what a Beast man is,
--that I asked the
question; and that
I would not have let fallen an unseasonable
pleasantry in the venerable presence of Misery, to be entitled to all
the wit that ever Rabelais scatter'd--and yet I own my heart smote
me
, and that I so smarted at the very idea of it, that I swore I would
set up for Wisdom, and utter grave sentences the rest of my days--and
never--never attempt again to commit mirth
with man, woman, or child,
the longest day I had to live.


As for writing nonsense to them--I believe there was a reserve--but that
I leave to the world.

Adieu, Maria!--adieu, poor hapless damsel!--some time, but not now, I
may hear thy sorrows from thy own lips--but I was deceived; for that
moment she took her pipe and told me such a tale of woe with it,
that I
rose up, and with broken and irregular steps walk'd softly to my chaise.

--What an excellent inn at Moulins!



Volume 9, Chapter 25



WHEN we have got to the end of this chapter (but not before) we must
all turn back to the two blank chapters, on the account of which my
honour has lain bleeding this half hour--I stop it, by pulling off one
of my yellow slippers and throwing it with all my violence to the
opposite side of my room, with a declaration at the heel of it--

--That whatever resemblance it may bear to half the chapters which are
written in the world, or for aught I know may be now writing in it--that
it was as casual as the foam of Zeuxis his horse; besides, I look upon a
chapter which has only nothing in it, with respect; and considering what
worse things there are in the world--That it is no way a proper subject
for satire--


--Why then was it left so? And here without staying for my reply,
shall
I be called as many blockheads, numsculs, doddypoles, dunderheads,
ninny-hammers, goosecaps, joltheads, nincompoops, and sh--t-a-beds
--and other unsavoury appellations, as ever the cake-bakers of
Lerne cast in the teeth of King Garangantan's shepherds
--And I'll
let them do it, as Bridget said, as much as they please; for how was
it possible they should foresee the necessity I was under of writing

the 84th chapter of my book, before the 77th, &c?

--So I don't take it amiss--All I wish is, that it may be a lesson to
the world, “to let people tell their stories their own way.”


           The Eightenth Chapter


AS Mrs. Bridget opened the door before the corporal had well given
the rap, the interval betwixt that and my uncle Toby's introduction
into the parlour, was so short,
that Mrs. Wadman had but just time to
get from behind the curtain--lay a Bible upon the table, and advance a
step or two towards the door to receive him.

My uncle Toby saluted Mrs. Wadman, after the manner in which women
were saluted by men in the year of our Lord God one thousand seven
hundred and thirteen--then facing about,
he march'd up abreast with her
to the sopha, and in three plain words
--though not before he was sat
down--nor after he was sat down--but as he was sitting down,
told her,
he was in love”--so that my uncle Toby strained himself more in
the declaration than he needed.


Mrs. Wadman naturally looked down, upon a slit she had been darning
up in her apron, in expectation every moment, that my uncle Toby
would go on; but
having no talents for amplification, and Love moreover
of all others being a subject of which he was the least a master
--When
he had told Mrs. Wadman once that he loved her, he let it alone, and
left the matter to work after its own way.

My father was always in raptures with this system of my uncle Toby's,

as he falsely called it, and would often say, that could his brother
Toby to his processe have added but a pipe of tobacco--he had

wherewithal to have found his way, if there was faith in a Spanish
proverb, towards the hearts of half the women upon the globe.


My uncle Toby never understood what my father meant; nor will I
presume to extract more from it, than a condemnation of
an error which
the bulk of the world lie under--but the French, every one of 'em to
a man, who believe in it, almost as much as the REAL PRESENCE, “That
talking of love, is making it
.”

--I would as soon set about making a black-pudding by the same receipt.


Let us go on: Mrs. Wadman sat in expectation my uncle Toby would do
so, to almost the first pulsation of that minute, wherein silence on
one side or the other, generally becomes indecent: so edging herself a
little more towards him, and raising up her eyes, sub blushing, as she
did it--she took up the gauntlet--or the discourse
(if you like it
better) and communed with my uncle Toby, thus:

The cares and disquietudes of the marriage state, quoth Mrs. Wadman,
are very great.
I suppose so--said my uncle Toby: and therefore when a
person, continued Mrs. Wadman, is so much at his ease as you are--so
happy, captain Shandy, in yourself, your friends and your amusements
--I wonder, what reasons can incline you to the state--


--They are written, quoth my uncle Toby, in the Common-Prayer Book.

Thus far my uncle Toby went on warily, and kept within his depth,
leaving Mrs. Wadman to sail upon the gulph as she pleased.

--As for children--said Mrs. Wadman--though a principal end perhaps of
the institution, and the natural wish, I suppose, of every parent--yet
do not we all find, they are certain sorrows, and very uncertain com-
forts? and what is there, dear sir, to pay one for the heart-achs--what
compensation for the many tender and disquieting apprehensions of a
suffering and defenceless mother who brings them into life? I declare,
said my uncle Toby, smit with pity,
I know of none; unless it be the
pleasure which it has pleased God--

A fiddlestick!
quoth she.


           The Ninetenth Chapter


NOW there are such an infinitude of notes, tunes, cants, chants, airs,
looks, and accents with which the word fiddlestick may be pronounced
in all such causes as this, every one of 'em impressing a sense and
meaning as different from the other, as dirt from cleanliness
--That
Casuists (for it is an affair of conscience on that score) reckon up no
less than fourteen thousand in which you may do either right or wrong.

Mrs. Wadman hit upon the fiddlestick, which summoned up all my
uncle Toby's modest blood into his cheeks
--so feeling within himself
that he had somehow or other got beyond his depth, he stopt short; and
without entering further either into the pains or pleasures of matrimony,
he laid his hand upon his heart, and made an offer to take them as they
were, and share them along with her.


When my uncle Toby had said this, he did not care to say it again; so
casting his eye upon the Bible which Mrs. Wadman had laid upon the
table, he took it up; and
popping, dear soul! upon a passage in it, of
all others the most interesting to him--which was the siege of
Jericho--he set himself to read it over--leaving his proposal of
marriage, as he had done his declaration of love, to work with her
after its own way.
Now it wrought neither as an astringent or a
loosener; nor like opium, or bark, or mercury, or buckthorn, or any one
drug which nature had bestowed upon the world--in short, it work'd not
at all in her;
and the cause of that was, that there was something
working there before--Babbler that I am! I have anticipated what it was
a dozen times; but there is fire still in the subject--allons.




Volume 9, Chapter 26



IT is natural for a perfect stranger who is going from London to
Edinburgh, to enquire before he sets out, how many miles to York;
which is about the half way--nor does any body wonder, if he goes on
and asks about the corporation, &c. - -

It was just as natural for Mrs. Wadman, whose first husband was all
his time afflicted with a Sciatica, to wish to know how far from the
hip to the groin; and how far she was likely to suffer more or less in
her feelings, in the one case than in the other.

She had accordingly read Drake's anatomy from one end to the other.
She had peeped into Wharton upon the brain, and borrowed[45] Graaf
upon the bones and muscles; but could make nothing of it.

She had reason'd likewise from her own powers--laid down
theorems--drawn consequences, and come to no conclusion.

To clear up all, she had twice asked Doctor Slop,
“if poor captain
Shandy was ever likely to recover of his wound--?”

--He is recovered, Doctor Slop would say--

What! quite?


Quite: madam--

But what do you mean by a recovery? Mrs. Wadman would say.

Doctor Slop was the worst man alive at definitions;
and so Mrs.
Wadman could get no knowledge: in short, there was no way to extract
it, but from my uncle Toby himself.

There is an accent of humanity in an enquiry of this kind which lulls
SUSPICION to rest--and I am half persuaded the serpent got pretty near
it, in his discourse with Eve; for the propensity in the sex to be deceiv-
ed could not be so great, that she should have boldness to hold chat
with the devil, without it--But there is an accent of humanity--how
shall I describe it?--'tis an accent which covers the part with a garment,
and gives the enquirer a right to be as particular with it, as your body-
surgeon.

“--Was it without remission?--


“--Was it more tolerable in bed?

“--Could he lie on both sides alike with it?

“--Was he able to mount a horse?


“--Was motion bad for it?' et cætera, were so tenderly spoke to, and
so directed towards my uncle Toby's heart, that every item of them
sunk ten times deeper into it than the evils themselves--but when Mrs.
Wadman went round about by Namur to get at my uncle Toby's groin;
and engaged him to attack the point of the advanced counterscarp, and
péle mele with the Dutch to take the counterguard of St. Roch
sword in hand--and then with tender notes playing upon his ear, led him
all bleeding by the hand out of the trench, wiping her eye, as he was
carried to his tent--Heaven! Earth! Sea!--all was lifted up--the springs
of nature rose above their levels--an angel of mercy sat besides him on
the sopha--his heart glow'd with fire--and had he been worth a thousand,
he had lost every heart of them to Mrs. Wadman.


--And whereabouts, dear sir, quoth Mrs. Wadman, a little categorically,
did you receive this sad blow?--In asking this question, Mrs. Wadman
gave a slight glance towards the waistband of my uncle Toby's red plush
breeches, expecting naturally, as the shortest reply to it, that my uncle
Toby would lay his fore-finger upon the place--It fell out otherwise--
for my uncle Toby having got his wound before the gate of St. Nicolas,
in one of the traverses of the trench opposite to the salient angle of
the demibastion of St. Roch; he could at any time stick a pin upon the
identical spot of ground where he was standing when the stone struck
him: this struck instantly upon my uncle Toby's sensorium--and with it,
struck his large map of the town and citadel of Namur and its environs,
which he had purchased and pasted down upon a board,
by the corporal's
aid, during his long illness--
it had lain with other military lumber in the
garret ever since,
and accordingly the corporal was detached to the garret
to fetch it.


My uncle Toby measured off thirty toises, with Mrs. Wadman's
scissars, from the returning angle before the gate of St. Nicolas;
and with such a virgin modesty laid her finger upon the place, that the
goddess of Decency, if then in being--if not, 'twas her shade--shook her
head, and with a finger wavering across her eyes--forbid her to explain
the mistake.

Unhappy Mrs. Wadman!

--For nothing can make this chapter go off with spirit but an
apostrophe to thee--but my heart tells me, that in such a crisis an
apostrophe is but an insult in disguise, and ere I would offer one to a
woman in distress--let the chapter go to the devil;
provided any damn'd
critic in keeping will be but at the trouble to take it with him.




Volume 9, Chapter 27



MYy uncle Toby's Map is carried down into the kitchen.



Volume 9, Chapter 28



--AND here is the Maes--and this is the Sambre; said the corporal,
pointing with his right hand extended a little towards the map, and his
left upon Mrs. Bridget's shoulder
--but not the shoulder next him--and
this, said he, is the town of Namur--
and this the citadel--and there
lay the French--and here lay his honour and myself--and in this cursed
trench, Mrs. Bridget, quoth the corporal, taking her by the hand, did
he receive the wound which crush'd him so miserably here.--In
pronouncing which, he slightly press'd the back of her hand towards the
part he felt for--and let it fall.

We thought, Mr. Trim, it had been more in the middle,--said Mrs.
Bridget--

That would have undone us for ever--said the corporal.


--And left my poor mistress undone too, said Bridget.

The corporal made no reply to the repartee, but by giving Mrs.
Bridget a kiss.

Come--come--said Bridget--
holding the palm of her left hand parallel to
the plane of the horizon, and sliding the fingers of the other over it,
in a way which could not have been done, had there been the least wart
or protruberance--'Tis every syllable of it false, cried the corporal,
before she had half finished the sentence--


--I know it to be fact, said Bridget, from credible witnesses.

--Upon my honour, said the corporal, laying his hand upon his heart,
and blushing, as he spoke, with honest resentment--'tis a story, Mrs.
Bridget, as false as hell
--Not, said Bridget, interrupting him,
that either I or my mistress care a halfpenny about it, whether 'tis so
or no--only that when one is married, one would chuse to have such a
thing by one at least--

It was somewhat unfortunate for Mrs. Bridget, that she had begun the
attack with her manual exercise; for the corporal instantly
* * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *.



Volume 9, Chapter 29



IT was like the momentary contest in the moist eye-lids of an April
morning, “Whether Bridget should laugh or cry.”

She snatch'd up a rolling-pin--'twas ten to one, she had laugh'd--

She laid it down--she cried; and had one single tear of 'em but tasted
of bitterness, full sorrowful would the corporal's heart have been
that
he had used the argument; but the corporal understood the sex, a quart
major to a terce
at least, better than my uncle Toby, and accordingly
he assailed Mrs. Bridget after this manner.

I know, Mrs. Bridget, said the corporal, giving her a most respectful
kiss, that
thou art good and modest by nature, and art withal so
generous a girl in thyself, that, if I know thee rightly, thou would'st
not wound an insect, much less the honour of so gallant and worthy a
soul as my master
, wast thou sure to be made a countess of--but thou
hast been set on, and deluded, dear Bridget, as is often a woman's
case, “to please others more than themselves--”

Bridget's eyes poured down at the sensations the corporal excited
.

--Tell me--tell me, then, my dear Bridget, continued the corporal,
taking hold of her hand, which hung down dead by her side,--and giving
a second kiss--whose suspicion has misled thee?


Bridget sobb'd a sob or two--then open'd her eyes--the corporal wiped
'em with the bottom of her apron--she then open'd her heart and told
him all.



Volume 9, Chapter 30



MY uncle Toby and the corporal had gone on separately with their
operations the greatest part of the campaign, and as effectually cut
off from all communication of what either the one or the other had been
doing, as if they had been separated from each other by the Maes or
the Sambre.

My uncle Toby, on his side, had presented himself every afternoon in
his red and silver, and blue and gold alternately, and sustained an
infinity of attacks in them, without knowing them to be attacks--and so
had nothing to communicate--


The corporal, on his side, in taking Bridget, by it had gain'd considerable
advantages--and consequently had much to communicate--but what
were the advantages--as well as what was the manner by which he
had seiz'd them,
required so nice an historian, that the corporal durst
not venture upon it; and as sensible as he was of glory, would rather
have been contented to have gone bareheaded and without laurels for
ever, than torture his master's modesty for a single moment--


--Best of honest and gallant servants!--But I have apostrophiz'd thee,
Trim! once before--and could I apotheosize thee also (that is to say)
with good company--I would do it without ceremony in the very next
page.




Volume 9, Chapter 31



NOW my uncle Toby had one evening laid down his pipe upon the table,
and was
counting over to himself upon his finger ends (beginning at his
thumb) all Mrs. Wadman's perfections one by one
; and happening two or
three times together, either by omitting some, or counting others twice
over, to puzzle himself sadly before he could get beyond his middle
finger
--Prithee, Trim! said he, taking up his pipe again,--bring me a
pen and ink: Trim brought paper also.

Take a full sheet--Trim! said my uncle Toby, making a sign with his
pipe at the same time to take a chair and sit down close by him at the
table. The corporal obeyed--
placed the paper directly before him--took
a pen, and dipp'd it in the ink.

--She has a thousand virtues, Trim! said my uncle Toby--

Am I to set them down,
an' please your honour? quoth the corporal.

--But they must be taken in their ranks, replied my uncle Toby; for
of them all, Trim, that which wins me most, and which is a security
for all the rest, is the compassionate turn and singular humanity of
her character
--I protest, added my uncle Toby, looking up, as he
protested it, towards the top of the ceiling--That was I her brother,
Trim,
a thousand fold, she could not make more constant or more
tender enquiries after my sufferings
--though now no more.

The corporal made no reply to my uncle Toby's protestation, but by a
short cough
--he dipp'd the pen a second time into the inkhorn; and my
uncle Toby, pointing with the end of his pipe as close to the top of
the sheet at the left hand corner of it, as he could get it--the
corporal wrote down the word


H U M A N I T Y - - - - thus.

Prithee, corporal, said my uncle Toby, as soon as Trim had done it--
how often does Mrs. Bridget enquire after the wound on the cap of
thy knee, which thou received'st at the battle of Landen?

She never, an' please your honour, enquires after it at all.

That, corporal, said my uncle Toby,
with all the triumph the goodness
of his nature would permit--That shews the difference in the character
of the mistress and maid
--had the fortune of war allotted the same
mischance to me, Mrs. Wadman would have enquired into every
circumstance relating to it a hundred times--
She would have enquired,
an' please your honour, ten times as often about your honour's
groin--The pain, Trim, is equally excruciating,--and Compassion has
as much to do with the one as the other--


--God bless your honour! cried the corporal--what has a woman's
compassion to do with a wound upon the cap of a man's knee? had your
honour's been shot into ten thousand splinters at the affair of
Landen, Mrs. Wadman would have troubled her head as little about it
as Bridget; because, added the corporal, lowering his voice, and
speaking very distinctly, as he assigned his reason--


“The knee is such a distance from the main body--whereas the groin,
your honour knows, is upon the very curtain of the place.”


My uncle Toby gave a long whistle--but in a note which could scarce
be heard across the table.

The corporal had advanced too far to retire--in three words he told the
rest--

My uncle Toby laid down his pipe as gently upon the fender, as if it
had been spun from the unravellings of a spider's web--

--Let us go to my brother Shandy's, said he.




Volume 9, Chapter 32



THERE will be just time, whilst my uncle Toby and Trim are walking
to my father's, to inform you that Mrs. Wadman had, some moons before
this, made a confident of my mother; and that Mrs. Bridget, who had
the burden of her own, as well as her mistress's secret to carry, had
got happily delivered of both to Susannah behind the garden-wall.

As for my mother, she saw nothing at all in it, to make the least
bustle about--but
Susannah was sufficient by herself for all the ends
and purposes you could possibly have, in exporting a family secret; for
she instantly imparted it by signs to Jonathan--and Jonathan by
tokens to the cook as she was basting a loin of mutton; the cook sold
it with some kitchen-fat to the postillion for a groat, who truck'd it
with the dairy maid for something of about the same value--and though
whisper'd in the hay-loft, FAME caught the notes with her brazen
trumpet, and sounded them upon the house-top--In a word, not an old
woman in the village or five miles round, who did not understand the
difficulties of my uncle Toby's siege, and what were the secret
articles which had delayed the surrender.--

My father, whose way was to force every event in nature into an
hypothesis, by which means never man crucified TRUTH at the rate he
did
--had but just heard of the report as my uncle Toby set out; and
catching fire suddenly at the trespass done his brother by it, was
demonstrating to Yorick, notwithstanding my mother was sitting
by--not only,
“That the devil was in women, and that the whole of the
affair was lust;” but that every evil and disorder in the world, of
what kind or nature soever, from the first fall of Adam, down to my
uncle Toby's (inclusive), was owing one way or other to the same
unruly appetite.


Yorick was just bringing my father's hypothesis to some temper, when
my uncle
Toby entering the room with marks of infinite benevolence
and forgiveness in his looks, my father's eloquence re-kindled against
the passion--and as he was not very nice in the choice of his words
when he was wroth
--as soon as my uncle Toby was seated by the fire,
and had filled his pipe, my father broke out in this manner.




Volume 9, Chapter 33



--THAT provision should be made for continuing the race of so great, so
exalted and godlike a Being as man--I am far from denying--but philosophy
speaks freely of every thing; and therefore I still think and do maintain it
to be a pity, that it should be done by means of a passion which bends
down the faculties, and turns all the wisdom, contemplations, and oper-
ations of the soul backwards--a passion, my dear, continued my father,
addressing himself to my mother, which couples and equals wise men
with fools, and makes us come out of our caverns and hiding-places
more like satyrs and four-footed beasts than men.


I know it will be said, continued my father (availing himself of the
Prolepsis), that in itself, and simply taken--like hunger, or thirst,
or sleep--'tis an affair neither good or bad--or shameful or otherwise
.--Why then did the delicacy of Diogenes and Plato so recalcitrate
against it? and
wherefore, when we go about to make and plant a man,
do we put out the candle? and for what reason is it, that all the parts
thereof--the congredients--the preparations--the instruments, and
whatever serves thereto, are so held as to be conveyed to a cleanly
mind by no language, translation, or periphrasis whatever?

--The act of killing and destroying a man, continued my father, raising
his voice--and turning to my uncle Toby--you see, is glorious--and the
weapons by which we do it are honourable--We march with them upon our
shoulders--We strut with them by our sides--We gild them--We carve
them--We in-lay them--We enrich them--Nay, if it be but a scoundrel
cannon, we cast an ornament upon the breach of it.--


--My uncle Toby laid down his pipe to intercede for a better epithet--
and Yorick was rising up to batter the whole hypothesis to pieces--

--When Obadiah broke into the middle of the room with a complaint,
which cried out for an immediate hearing.


The case was this:

My father, whether by ancient custom of the manor, or as impropriator
of the great tythes, was obliged to keep a Bull for the service of the
Parish, and Obadiah had led his cow upon a pop-visit to him one day
or other the preceding summer--I say, one day or other--because as
chance would have it, it was the day on which he was married to my
father's house-maid--so one was a reckoning to the other.
Therefore
when Obadiah's wife was brought to bed--Obadiah thanked God--


--Now, said Obadiah, I shall have a calf: so Obadiah went daily to
visit his cow.

She'll calve on Monday--on Tuesday--on Wednesday at the farthest--

The cow did not calve--no--she'll not calve till next week--the cow put
it off terribly--till at the end of the sixth week Obadiah's
suspicions (like a good man's) fell upon the Bull.

Now the parish being very large, my father's Bull, to speak the truth
of him, was no way equal to the department; he had, however, got
himself, somehow or other, thrust into employment--and as he went
through the business with a grave face, my father had a high opinion of
him.


--Most of the townsmen, an' please your worship, quoth Obadiah,
believe that 'tis all the Bull's fault--

--But may not a cow be barren?
replied my father, turning to Doctor
Slop.

It never happens: said Dr. Slop, but the man's wife may have come
before her time naturally enough--
Prithee has the child hair upon his
head?
--added Dr. Slop--

--It is as hairy as I am; said Obadiah.--Obadiah had not been shaved
for three weeks--Wheu - - u - - - - u - - - - - - - - cried my father;
beginning the sentence with an exclamatory whistle--and so, brother
Toby, this poor Bull of mine, who is as good a Bull as ever p--ss'd,
and might have done for Europa herself in purer times--had he but two
legs less, might have been driven into Doctors Commons and lost his
character--which to a Town Bull, brother Toby, is the very same thing
as his life--

L--d! said my mother, what is all this story about?--

A COCK and a BULL, said Yorick--And one of the best of its kind, I
ever heard.


END OF THE FOURTH VOLUME




















        Richest Passages

1  2  3  4  5  6  7  8  9  10

11  12  13  14  15  16  17  18

19  20  21  22  23  24  25  26

27  28  29  30  31  32  33  34

35  36  37  38  39  40  41  42

43  44  45  46  47  48  49  50

51  52  53  54  55  56  57  58

59  60  61  62  63  64  65  66

67  68  69  70  71  72  73  74

75  76  77  78  79  80  81  82

83  84  85  86  87  88  89  90

91  92  93  94  95  96  97  98

99  100  101  102  103  104  105  106

107 108  109  110  111  112  113  114

115 116  117  118  119  120  121  122

123 124  125  126  127  128  129  130

131 132  133  134  135  136  137  138

139 140  141  142  143  144  145  146

147 148  149  150  151  152  153  154

155 156  157  158  159  160  161